A i) (a' ^ 1 mx lift m J Tn)1f!^flffll«S¥lPT|] ^tffffii; Kntkrku, according to act of Congress, in the year 1868, By L. ST KB bins, in the Olerk's Office of the Disti-ict Court of Connecticut. -^0 5' PREFACE. In the summer of 1865, and in the following winter, I made two visits to the South, spending four months in eight of the principal States which had lately been _ in rebellion. I saw the most noted battle-fields of the war. I made ac- quaintance with officers and soldiers of both sides. I followed in the track of the destroying armies. I travelled by rail- road, by steamboat, by stage-coach, and by private convey- ance ; meeting and conversing with all sorts of people, from high State officials to " low-down " whites and negroes ; en- deavoring, at all times and in all places, to receive correct impressions of the country, of its inhabitants, of the great contest of arms just closed, and of the still greater contest of principles not yet terminated. This book is the result. It is a record of actual observa- tions and conversations, free from fictitious coloring. Such stories as were told me of the war and its depredations would have been spoiled by embellishment ; pictures of existing con- ditions, to be valuable, must be faithful ; and what is now most desirable, is not hypothesis or declamation, but the light of plain facts upon the momentous question of the hour, which must be settled, not according to any political or sec- tional bias, but upon broad grounds of Truth and Eternal Right. I have accordingly made my narrative as ample and as literally faithful as the limits of these pages, and of my own opportunities, would allow. Whenever practicable, I have IV PREFACE. stepped aside and let the people I met speak for themselves. Notes taken on the spot, and under all sorts of circum- stances, — on horseback, in jolting wagons, by the firelight of a farm-house, or negro camp, sometimes in the dark, or in the rain, — have enabled me to do this in many cases with absolute fidelity. Conversations which could not be reported in this way, were written out as soon as possible after they took place, and while yet fresh in my memory. Idiomatic pecu- liarities, which are often so expressive of character, I have reproduced without exaggeration. To intelligent and candid men it was my habit to state frankly my intention to publish an account of my journey, and then, with their permission, to jot down such views and facts as they saw fit to impart. Sometimes I was requested not to report certain statements of an important nature, made in the glow of conversation ; these, not without regret, I have suppressed ; and I trust that in no instance have I violated a confidence that was reposed in me. I may add that the conversations recorded are generally of a representative character, being selected from among hundreds of such I and that if I have given seemingly undue prominence to any subject, it has been because I found it an absorbing and universal topic of discussion. Mat, 1866. TABLE OF CONTENTS. CHAPTER I. — The Stakt. Harrisburg. — First Indications of War. — Reminiscences of Lee's Invasion. — On to Gettysburg. — The Town and its Inhabitants. — The Hero of Gettysburg. .Page 17 CHAPTER n. — The Field of Gettysburg. Cemetery Hill. — Pivot of the Battle and of the War. — Gulp's Hill, .r- Rock Creek. — Cemetery at Sunset. — John Burns. — The Peach Orchard. — Devil's Den and Little Round Top. — Round Top. — Meade's Head-Quarters. — Woman's Hero- ism and Humanity. — A Soldier and his Benefactor. — Harvest of Bullets.... 20 CHAPTER in. — A Reminiscence of Chambersbueg. Quiet Country. — Ruins of Chambersburg. — Burning of the Town. — Flight of the Inhabitants. — Escape of the Raiders. — Death of Three Rebels. — Homeless Inhab- itants. — State Appropriation for their Relief. — No Loss without Gain 34 CHAPTER rV. — South Mountain. Hagerstown. — Valley of the Antietam. — Boonsboro'. — The Rebels in Maryland. — View of the Mountain. — The Ascent. — Scene of General Reno's Death. — Reb- els buried in a Well. — A Mountaineer's Story. — View of Catoctin Valley. — Strong Rebel Position. — Patriot Graves. — Antietam Valley at Sunset 40 CHAPTER V. — The Field of Antietam. Rebel Line of Retreat. — Keedysville. — Brick Church Hospital. — Porter and his Reserves. — Banks of the Antietam. — Scenes at the Straw-Stacks. — Unfortunate Farmers. — Hospital Cemetery. — The Corn Field. — The Old Ploughman. — A Lesson for Vanity. — A Soldier's Name. — The Dunker Church. — Sharpsburg. — Shelter from the Rain. — Southern Pronunciation. — Burnside's Bridge. — An- cient and Modern Heroes. — Antietam National Cemetery. — The Battle 44 CHAPTER VI. — Down the River to Harper's Ferry. Search for a Vehicle. — "Mr. Bennerhalls." — Mr. Benner without the "halls." — Leaving Sharpsburg. — Mountain Scenery. — Capt. Speaker's Narrative. — Sur- render of Harper's Ferry. — Escape of Twenty-two Hundred Cavalry. — Capture of Rebel Wagon Train. — Morning in Greencastle. — Arrival at the Ferry 57 CHAPTER VII. — Around Harper's Ferry. River and Mountain Scener>^. — Marj'land Heights. — John Brown's Engine-House. — Reminiscence of Jolih Brown. — Political Inconsistency. — Negro from Shenan- doah Valley. — Folly of Secession 64 CHAPTER VIIL — A Trip to Charlestown. Railroad Passengers. — A Desolated Countrv. — Farmers and Land. — A Dilapidated Town. — Meeting an Acquaintance. — fioarding-House Fare. — People and the Government Policy. — Charlestown Jail and Court-House. — John Brown's Trial. — " His Soul Marching On." — A One-armed Confederate. — John Brown's Gallows. — Scene from the Scaffold. — The Church and its Uses 69 VI TABLE OF CONTENTS. CHAPTER IX. — A Scene at the White House. Washington. — A Crowd of Pardon-Seekers. — President's Reception 75 CHAPTER X. — Bull Run. From Alexandria to Manassas. — Manassas Junction. — " Overpowered," but not Whipped. — Ambulance Wagon. — The Driver and the Roads. — Scene of the First Bull Run. — Soldiers' Monument. — Luncheon in the Woods. — Scene of the Second Bull Run. — The Monument. — Groverton. — The two Battles and their Lessons. — The Stone House. — Miscegenated Cider. — Virginia Negroes 81 CHAPTER XL —Visit to Mount Vernon. Down the Potomac. — Landing at Mt. Vernon. — A Throng of Pilgrims. — Tomb of Washington. — Character of Washington. — Mansion and Out-houses. — Girl at the Wash-tub. — Washington's Well. — Shade-Trees. — Within the Mansion. — Relics. — The Portico. — Washington's Love of Home. — Thunder-storm 91 CHAPTER Xn. — "State Pkide." Acquia Creek. — Railroad and Stage-Coaches. — View of Fredericksburg. — Crossing the Eappannock. — Ruins of the Town — "A Son of Virginia." — " State Pride " and "Self-Conceit." — Virginia jind South Carolina. — Back in the Union. — Down at the Hotel. — Another Name for State Pride 100 CHAPTER XHL — The Field of Fkedericksburg. The Situation. — The Stone Wall of History. — A Rebel Eye-witness. — Stripping the Dead. — Strange Breastworks. -^ Fidelity of a Dog. — Gen. Lee's "Human- ity." — Private Cemetery. — The Marye House. — Negro who did n't see the Fight. — Southern Consistency. — Dissolution of the Rebel Army. — The Buried Dead. — House of Washington's Mother. — Marj' Washington's Monument. — The Lacy House. — Scene from the Windows. — Storming of Fredericksburg 106 CHAPTER XIV. — To Chancellorsville. 'Lijah and his Buggy. — A Three-Dollar Horse. — Trade in Soldiers' Clothing. — Small Farmers. — Right Ignorant but Right Sharp. — Sedgwick's Retreat. — Farms and Crops. — Views of Emancipation. — Poor Whites and Niggers. — The Man that killed Harrow. — Along the Plank-Road. — Tales of the Old Times. — Chancel- lorsville Farm. — What was under the Weeds. — Bones for the Bone-Factory. — Chancellorsville Burying-Ground. — Death of Stonewall Jackson 114 CHAPTER XV. — The Wilderness. Days of Anxiety. — Inflexible Spirit of the People. — Locust Grove. — The Wilder- ness Church. — Relics of the Battle. — Skeletons above Ground. — Wilderness Cemetery. — A Summer Shower. — The Wounded in the Fire. — The Rainbow..l23 CHAPTER XVI. — Spottsylvania Court -House. Elijah " Cut." — Richard " H." Hicks. — Poor Whites and the War. — Dead Men's Clothes. — A "Heavy Coon Dog." — Traces of the Battle. — View of the Court- House. — Grant's Breastworks. — County Clerk. — Whites and Blacks in the County. — Ignorance of the Lower Classes. — The Negro " Fated " 129 CHAPTER XVII. — The Field of Spottsylvania. The Tavern-Keeper's Relics. — A Union Officer's Opinions. — The Landlord's Corn- field. — Rebel and Yankee Troops. — Scene of the Decisive Conflict. — Graves of Spottsylvania. — Women " Chincapinnin." — Leaves from a Soldier's Testament. .137 CHAPTER XVIII.— "On to Richmond." A Bubble Vanished. — Desolate Scenery. — Virginia and Massachusetts. — Ashton. — Suburbs. — Northern Men in Richmond. — Appearance of the City 143 CHAPTER XIX. — The Burnt District. Ruins of Richmond. — Why the Rebels burnt the City. — Panic of the Inhabitants. — TABLE OF CONTENTS. vii Origin of the Fire. — Conflicting Opinions. — Fire of December, 1811. — Rehnild- ing. — Negroes at Work. — Colored Laborer. — Hasty Reconstruction 147 CHAPTER XX. — LiBBY, Castle Thunder, and Belle Isle. Libby Prison. — Castle Thunder. — James River. — Manchester Bridge. — Negroes with Bundles. — Old Negro's Story. — Belle Island. — Talk with a Boatman. — Hatred of the Confederacy. — Skiff to Brown's Island. — Father and Daughter . . 153 .^ CHAPTER XXI. —Feeding the Destitute. Destitute Ration Tickets. — White and Black Mendicants. — Spirit of Rapacity. — Certificates. — Spurious Cases. — American Union Commission 161 CHAPTER XXII. — The Union Men of Richmond. One of the Twenty-one. — His Account of Confederate Times. — Rebel Fast Days. — Insurrection of Women. — Mr. L 's Story. — Colonel Dahlgren's Body. — Night Work for Union Men. — Story of Mr. W . — In Salisbury Prison. — Union Women. — Minor Prisons. — " One Honest Yankee." — Books for the Prisoners. — White and his Mule Cart. — Scene in a Prison Yard. — The Premises by Moon- light. — Not a " Love Affair." — Escape of Two Prisoners. — A Halter Case. — Running the Lines to Butler. — Partiality to Traitors. — Union League 166 CHAPTER XXIII.— Markets and Farming. Mixed Population of Richmond. — Market Carts. — Scene at the Stalls. — Vegetable Gardens. — Experience of a Jersey Farmer. — Farms for Sale 178 CHAPTER XXIV. — In and around Richmond. St. John's Church and Patrick Henr_y. — St. Paul's and Jeff. Davis. — State and Confederate Capitol. — Negro Auction-Rooms. — Hollywood and Oakwood Ceme- teries. — General Lee's Head-Quarters Wagon. — Rebel Conscript Camp. — A Champion of Slavery. — A Rebel. — Secesh Song 182 CHAPTER XXV. — People and Politics. A Conservative Union Man. — A Confederate Soldier's Opinions. — Female Seces- sionists. — Confederate Soldiers and the Ladies. — "Bomb-proof" Situations. — Governor Pierpoint. — Advantages to Northern Business Men. — State Debt and Finances. — Virginia Enterprise. — Coal Mines on the James. — Speech of a Played- Out Politician. — A Rival Candidate. — Political Views. — New Men .187 CHAPTER XXVL — Fortifications. —Dutch Gap. — Fair Oaks. Ride with Alajor K . — Forts and Earthworks. — Winter Quarters of the Army of the .James. — Aft'air at Laurel Hill. — At New-Market Heights. — Gallop across the Country. — Butler's Canal. — Origin of the Name "Dutch Gap." — Cox's House. — Out on the Nine-Mile Road. — Fair Oaks Station. — Seven Pines. — Charge of Sickles's Brigade. — Savage's Station. — Two Sundays 198 CHAPTER XXVII. — In and about Petersburg. From Richmond to the "Cockade City." — Evening with Judge . — Story of Two Brothers. — Shelling of Petersburg. — Black l^opulation. — Ride with Colonel E . — The "Crater." —Forts Hell and Damnation. — Forts Morton and Sted- man. — " Petersburg Express." — A Beautiful but Silent City. — Signal Tower . .205 CHAPTER XXVIII. — James River and Fortress Monroe. City Point. — Landmarks of Famous Events. — Hotel under the Fortress. — Jeff. Davis's Private Residence. — Circuit of the Ramparts. — Pardoned Rebel.. 215 CHAPTER XXIX.— About Hampton. Burning of Hampton. — Freedmen's Settlements. — Visits to the Freedmen . .219 CHAPTER XXX. — A General View of Virginia. Fertility. — Natural Advantages. — Old Fields. — Hills and Valleys. — Pre ducts. — via TABLE OF CONTENTS. Value .of Land. — Manufactures. — Oysters. — Common Schools. — Freedmen'a Schools. — Negro Population. — Old Prejudice. — Wages. — Negroes in Tobacco Factories. — Freedmen's Bureau. — Secession. — Railroads. — Finances. — Pros- pects .- 224 CHAPTER XXXI. — The "Switzerland of America." East Tennessee. — Home of President Johnson. — Knoxville. — An Old Nigger- Dealer. — Table-Talk. — East Tennesseeans and Niggers. — Neighborhood Feuds. — Persecution and Retaliation. — Story of a Loyal Refugee 237 CHAPTER XXXIL — East Tennessee Farmers. Description of the People. — " Domestic." — School-Fund and Schools. — Sects. — Farming. — Horses and Mules. — Grazing. — Want of a Market. — Products. — Mines 243 CHAPTER XXXHL — In and about Chattanooga. View from Cameron Hill. — Mixed Population. — Post School. — Freedmen's Schools. — Freedmen. — Contraband Village. — Parade of a Colored Regiment 248 CHAPTER XXXIV. — Lookout Mountain. A Bag of Grist. — Ascent of the Mountain. — The General's Orderly. — View from Point Lookout. — " Battle in the Clouds." — " Old Man of the Mountain." 255 CHAPTER XXXV. ^ The Soldiers' Cemetery. National Cemetery of Chattanooga. — The Cave. — Intemng the Dead 260 CHAPTER XXXVL — Mission Ridge and Chickamauga. Storming the Ridge. — Rossville Gap. — A Dreary Scene. — The " Deadenings." — Dyer Farm. — Camp of Colored Soldiers. — African Superstition. — Disinterring the Dead. — The Blunder of Chickamauga. — General Thomas's Fight 263 CHAPTER XXXVII. — From Chattanooga to Muefreesboro'. •Traces of ^Military Operations. — "Union Men." — Passing the Cumberland Moun- tains. — The Country. — Story of Two Brothers. — " Liltle Johnny Reb." — Rail- road Travel. — General Hazen's Head-Quarters. — Rebel Persecutions 270 CHAPTER XXXVIII. — Stone River. Fortress Rosecrans. — Rebel and Union Lines. — McCook Surprised. — Round For- est. — Cemetery of Hazen's Brigade. — New National Cemetery 275 CHAPTER XXXIX. — The Heart of Tennessee. Nashville. — Cotton and Cotton Seed. — Battle of Nashville. — Legislature and Pol- itics. — Governor Brownlow. — Major-General Thomas. — On Freedmen. — Freed- men's Bureau. — Black and White Industry. — Freedmen's Schools 279 CHAPTER XL. — Bt Railroad to Corinth. Condition of Railroad. — Battle-Ground of Franklin.' — Crossing the River at De- catur. — A Young South Carolinian. — Whipping a Negro. — A Night in the Cars. — Morning in Corinth. — " Mighty Particular." — The Corinthian Style. — Game. — Mr. M 's Family and Servants. — Fate of a "Respectable Citizen." 290 CHAPTER XLI. — On Horseback from Corinth. Winter Morning in the Woods. — Stop at a Log-House. — An Old Lady's Mis- fortunes. — Old Lee's Story. — A Roadside Encounter 297 CHAPTER XLIL — Zeek. Talk by the Way. — Mistletoe. — Farm-Houses. — Route of the Armies. — Beaure- gard's Bivouac. — Across Owl Creek. — Zeek's Home 303 TABLE OF CONTENTS. ix CHAPTER XLIIL — Zeek's Family. ^ Tennessee Farm-House. — The Farmer. — The Kitchen. — Too well Ventilated by Half. — The Farmyard. — Mule-Pen and Out-Buildings 306 CHAPTER XLIV. — A Night in a Tennessee Farm-House. Concerning Doors. — Talli by the Firelight. — Depredations of the Two Armies. — Hunting Conscripts. — Origin of the Name ''Owl Creek." — Reminiscences of the Battle. — Smart Son-in-law. — Zeek Retires. — The Bridal Chamber 312 CHAPTER XLV. — The Field of Shiloh. Departure. — Bridal Home. — Before and After the Battle. — Hildebrand's Picket Line. — Graves in the Woods. — Shiloh Church. — Skeletons Fiooted up by Swine. — Romance of the Widow Ray House. — Romance of a Bale of Hay. — Members of One Family. — Sheep Pasture. — The " Long Avenue." — Trenches of the Dead. — Pittsburg Landing. — General Prentiss's Disaster 321 CHAPTER XLVI — Waiting for the Train at Midnight. Mrs. M on Slavery. — Hunting for the Railroad. — Negro Encampment 328 CHAPTER XL VH. — From Corinth to Memphis. West Tennessee. — Two Sides to the Picture. — Commerce of Memphis 332 CHAPTER XLVni. — Freedmen's Schools and the Freedmen's Bureau. Freedmen in Memphis. — Colored Benevolent Societies. — Schools. — Officers of the . Bureau. — Old \Vrongs Righted. — Summary .Justice. — Milly Wilson's Story. — Cases from Mississippi. — Business of the Bureau. — Suppressed Wills 33S CHAPTER XLTX. — Down the Mississippi. A Mississippi Steamboat. — Passengers. — Supper. — Evening Amusements. — Steam- boat Race. — River and Shores. — Landings. — Captain and Colored Gentleman. — An Awful Thought. — Helena. — A Colored Soldier's Return. — Condition of the Levees. — Freshets. — Best Protected Plantations. — Negro Insurrections 347 CHAPTER L. — In and' about Vicksburg. Sight of the Town. — Yankee Canal. — Hills of Vicksburg. — Caves. — An L nder- Ground Residence. — Bombardment. — Famine. — Ride to the Fortiticatioiis. — Grant and Pemberton Monument. — Sherman's Unsuccessful Assault. — Cliickasaw Bayou. — Indian Mounds. — Fortifications below Vicksburg. — ''Will the Fieed- men Work ?".... ; 356 CHAPTER LI. — Free Labor in Mississippi. Laborers defrauded of their Hire. — " Honesty " of a Planter. — Northern and South- em Master. — Freedmen and Planters. — Furnishing Supplies. — Slave Labor on Mr. P 's Plantation. — Overseers and Negroes. — Change at Christmas 362 CHAPTER LII. — A Reconstructed State. Ignorance of the Free-Labor System. — Serf Code. — Freedmen in Civil Courts. — Convention and Legislature. — State Militia. — White and Black OflFenders. — Persecution of Union Men. — A Pardoned Rebel. — Freedmen's Schools 369 CHAPTER LIII. — A few Words about Cotton. Best Cotton Lands. —Anxiety of the Planter. — Fascination of the Culture. — North- ern Planters. — Estimate of Cost and Profits. — Prospect of Crop 379 CHAPTER LIV.— Davis's Bend. — Grand Gulf.— Natohez. Home of Jeff. Davis. — Colony of Paupers. — Other Farms on the Peninsula. — Suc- cess of the Freedmen. — Colored Courts. — Village of Grand Gulf. — The " Gulf." — Situation of Natchez. — Cargoes of Cotton. — Talk with an Overseer 383 TABLE OF CON'TENTS. CHAPTER LV. — The Lower Mississippi. TJsed-up Dock Hands. — Toilsome Work and Brutal Treatment. — French Custom. — Steamboat Acquaintances. ^ Pay for Slaves. — .Jim B and his Niggers.— "A Mountain Spout of a Woman." — Talk with an Arkansas Planter. — Louisiana Planters. — Deck Passengers. — Black Woman's Story. — French Inhabitants. — Creoles and Slaves. — Villages and Plantations. — Levees. — The River flowing on a Ridge. — Unavailable Swamps. — River Water. — River runs Up Hill 388 CHAPTER LVL — The Crescent City. Midwinter at New Orleans. — French Quarter. — Anomalous Third Class. — Style of Building. — Levee. — Where the Cotton goes. — Shipment of Cotton during the War and since. — Freight of a Liverpool Steamer. — St. Charles Rotunda. — One of the Crowd. — His Scheme for making a Fortune. — His Opinion of the Plant- ers. — Northern Men in Louisiana. — Planters and Niggers. — Hard Overseers. — General Phil. Sheridan. — Military Division of the Gulf. — Troops in Texas. — The Mexican Question. — The South to be Northernized. — Sheridan's Personal Appearance. — Governor Wells. — Deeds and Professions. — Mayor Kennedy. — On the Future of New Orleans and the South. — Street Railroads. — Property owned hy People of Color. — A Black and White Strike 397 CHAPTER LVIL — Politics, Free Labor, and Sugar. Radical Union Men. — On the President's Policy. — On General Banks. — Gentle- man who had no Vote. — Newspapers. — General T. W. Sherman. — Rebel Militia. — Colored "Cavalry" Drilling. — Capital and Labor. — Louisiana Serf Code. — Planters and the Bureau. — Dependence of the Negroes. — Defrauded by Whites. — Independent Homes for the Freedmen. — Colored Schools. — Northern Men. — A Sugar Plantation. — Abandoned Parishes. — Sugar and Cotton. — Cane Planting. — Field of Cane in June. — A Sugar-Mill. — Sugar Crop. — White Laborer 406 CHAPTER LVIIL — The Battle of Mobile Bat. Lake Ponchartrain. — Capture of the " Waterwitch." — Morning in the Gulf. — En- tering Mobile Bay. — Scene of Farragut's Fight. — A Poet in the Battle 415 CHAPTER LIX. — Mobile. The^Merchant Fleet. — Harbors on the Gulf. — Spanish Fort. — Obstnictions in the Channel. — Up Spanish River. — The City. — The Great Explosion. — Busi- ness 420 CHAPTER LX. — Alabama Planters. River Steamers. — Character of Alabamians. — One of the Despairing Class. — Mr. J 's Experience. — Mr. G 's Opinions. — Mr. H of Lowndes County. — Planters' Justice. — One of the Hopeful Class. — Agricultural Associations 423 CHAPTER LXI. — Wilson's Raid. Shores of the Alabama. — Plantation Ploughs. — Author's Ignorance Enlightened. — Selma. — Ruins of the Town. — Chain-Gang. — Battle of Selma. — A Freedman's Story. — Loj'alty and Fidelity. — Negro Boy Arthur. — Raiders in Lowndes Coun- ty. — Planter's Wife and the Wine. — Track of Wilson's Cavalry 433 CHAPTER LXIL — Notes on Alabama. Montgomery. — The Capitol. — Where the Confederate Egg was Hatched. -- Men of the Back Country. — Small Farmers in the Legislature. — Original Secessionists and Union Men. — Young Man of Chambers County. — A Prisoner at Harrisburg. — Life among the Yankees. — Return Home. — Disloyalty of the People. — News- papers and Churches. — Northern and Southern Alabama. — Union Men of Ran- dolph County. — Great Destitution. — Service of the Freedmen's Bureau. — Negro in Civil Courts. — Freedmen's Schools. — Cotton Stealing. — Prospect of Cotton •Crop. — How to Hire the Freedmen. — All Sorts of Contracts. — Nortliera Men iu TABLE OF CONTENTS. xi Alabama. — Topography. — Tree Moss. — Best Cotton Lands. — Disadvantages. — Artesian Wells. — Region of Small Farms. — Climate. — Common Schools. — First Cotton Crop. — Indian War. — Kailroads 441 CHAPTER LXIII. — In and about Atlanta. Closing Battles of the War. — The Yankees at West Point. — Foggy Night at At- lanta. — Citv bv Daylight. — Colored Soldier's Widow. — Properly Destroyed. — Religion a Nuisance. — Rebuilding. — Rents. — White and Black Refugees. — Ac- counts bv Citizens. — Negro's Horse. — Jesse Wade, the Poor White; on Sher- man's Strategy; on Schools; on Reconstruction. — Nigiier vtrsm White Man. — Out-door Convention of Freed People. — Georgia Railroads and Banks 452 CHAPTER LXIV. — Down in Middle Georgia. Last View of Atlanta. — Negro Emigration. — Indigent Negroes. —Niggers' best Friends. — Railroad to Macon. — The Countiy. — City of Refuge. — Colored Popu- lation. — Murders and Shootings. — Need of Cavalry. — Georgia and the War. — Freedmen's Bureau and the People. — Negro of Middle Georgia. — Intiraction of Contracts. — Control of Bureau Funds. — Macon Freedmen's schools. — Union Men in Georgia. — An Old Settler's Story. — " No Party " Cry. — Confederates and Yankees 460 CHAPTER LXV. — Andersonville. Yankee Prison at Macon. — "Death's Acre." — Trial of Captain Wirz. — His Per- sonal Appearance. — Scene of his Crimes. — Name of the Town. — Present Appear- ance. — The Stockade. — Double Walls. — The Dead Line. — Prisoners' Caves.—. Huts and I5arrack Sheds. — Out-Buildings. — Cemetery. — Death Record. — In- scriptions. — Rebel Owner's Claim. — Testimony of Georgians 468 CHAPTER LXVI. — Sherman in Middle Georgia. Tradition regarding General Sherman's Gloves. — Confederate General's Testimony. — Criticisms and Anecdotes. — "The Great Robber" in .Jones County. — Confed- erate Stockings. — Yankee Soldiers and Rebel Dogs. — Sherman's Field Orders. — Pillagers. — Shooting Horses and Stock. — Army and its Stragglers. — Negro and the Trunk. — Persuasion of a Rope. — The " Great Robber " in Putnam County. — Not a Raid. — Movement of the Army. — Panic of the People. — Flight from Mil- ledgeville. — Masters and Slaves 475 CHAPTER LXVIL — Plantation Glimpses.; Worn-out Plantations. — Houses on Props. — A Northern Man's Experience. — Men and Women Ploughing. — Home Manufactures. — A Planter's House. — Old Mas- ter and Young Master. — A Georgia Woman and the Yankees 482 CHAPTER LXVni. — Politics and Free Labor in Georgia. Milledgeville. — State Legislature. — Repudiation. — Complaints of Confederate Des- potism. — Value of Slave Propertj^ ; to be Paid for by the Government. — Common- School System. — Freedmen's Schools. — Negro with the Small-Pox'. — Georgia Planter and Niggers. — Kinder than the Yankees. — Poor Whites in New York and Massachusetts. — Abuse of the Yankees; of Freedmen's Bureau. — Mr. C of Oglethorpe County; why he damned the Yankees. — Tax on Color. — South- ern Methods. — State Commissioner of the Bureau. — Planters" Profits. — Mean- ness of the Georgians. — Sending Negroes out of the State. — Ignorance of the Freed People. — Tendency to Idleness. — Bribes Offered. — Cruelties to Freed- men. — Public Sentiment on the Subject. — Cotton Crop 488 CHAPTER LXIX.— Sherman in Eastern Georgia. Sherman and the Railroads. — Condition of the Tracks. — General Grant on Sher- man's " Hair Pins." — Machinery for Destroying Track. — Condition of the Bent Iron. — Railroad Buildings. — One Glove off. — The "Bummers"' in Burke County. — People Stripped of Everything. — Sherman and the Old Woman. — Buried Gold and Silver. — Shrewdness of Planter's Wife. — A " Sorry " Watch. — Experience of a Northern Man. — Running off Goods and Stock. — Hiding Place in xii TABLE OF CONTEN^TS. the Bushes. — Coming of the Soldiers. — Stopped bj'' Yankee Cavalry. — "Why the Women screamed. — Pursuit of a Horse. — Luck of a Poor Planter. — Reduced to Corn-Meal Bran. — By Stage to Scarborough. — By Rail to Savannah. — Com- ments of the Passengers. — By the Ogeechee River. — Importation of Hay... 501 CHAPTER LXX.— A Glance at Savannah. Sherman at Savannah. — Conference with Secretary Stanton. — Issuing of General Orders No. 15. — Aspect of the City, — Situation! — Inhabitants. — Trade. — Col- ored Schools. — Bonaventure Cemetery 508 CHAPTER LXXI. — Charleston and the War. Charleston and Savannah Railroad. — Steamboats. — Morning in Charleston Harbor. — Objects in the Mist. — Historic Water. — Charleston and the Old Flag. — Early Walk in the City. — Turkey Buzzards. — People and Houses. — Great Fire of 1861. ^Its Origin. — Picturesque Ruins. — Damage done by Shells. — Spite against Firemen. — l*anic and Flight of the Inhabitants. — A Northern Man's Experience. — Nineteen Months' Bombardment. — Not a Joyful Anniversary. — Evacuation by the Rebels. — Fire and Explosion. — The City isolated 511 CHAPTER LXXII.— A Visit to Fort Sumtee. Harbor Obstructions. — Destructive Water Worm. — Palmetto Wharves. — Fort Sum- ter from without. — A Mass of Ruins. — Effect of Bombardment. — Section of the Old Wall. — Landing at the Fort. — Inside View. — The Old Flag again. — Situa- tion of the Fort. — Old Iron under the Walls. — Cost of United States Forts. — Garrison. — Beauregard's Bombardment. — Major Anderson's F'ame. — Fame not so cheap since. — Jlilitary Duty and Common Sense. — Policy of the Government. — The F'prt from Morris Island 517 CHAPTER LXXIIL — A Prison and a Prisoner. General S 's Visits to Charleston. — Taken Prisoner. — Jumping from the Cars. — Circular Perambulation. — The Man with the Bag of Com. — Pine-leaves and Tobacco. — Chased by Blood-hounds. — What he lived on. — Visit to a lone Widow. — Night in a Canebrake. — A Man on Horseback. — Proffer of a Canteen. — A Friend in Need. — Night in a Gin-House. — Parting in the Morning. -- Entan- gled among Streams. — Taken for a Spy. — Recognized. — How he got his Clothes again. — Sent to Macon. — Tunnelling the Ground under the Stockade. — Betrayed. — Sent to Charleston. — The Work-house. — Jail and Hospitals. — Entrance to the Work-house, Rooms, and Cells. — Prisoners' Bunks. — Visited by a Shell. — Watching the Shells by Night.— A Taste of the pure Air. — Negro Whippings. — Tower of Observation. — Mountain of Oftal. — " Kindness " to Prisoners. — Plans of F^scape. — Exploring the Cistern. — Tunnelling the Walls. — Betraj^ed again. — Grand Scheme to Capture and Fire the City. — Exchanged 521 CHAPTER LXXI v. — The Sea-Islands. Negro of Cotton States and Border States. — Causes of Difference. — Slaves and Slavery in South Carolina. — Labor Disorganized. — Negro Instincts. — Emigra- tion to the Coast. — Settlements under Sherman's Order. — No more Allotments. — General Howard's Visit. — President's Theory. — Conflict of Authority. — Of Claims. — Nothing Settled. — Freedmen's Crops' — Gun and Fishing-Rod. — Dis- couragement. — Difficult Question 532 CHAPTER LXXV. — A Visit to James Island. Stroll along the Wharves. — Negroes imder Coal-Sheds. — Misery. — Boats to James Island. — Planters and their Freedmen. — Taciturn Boatman. — Previous Visits. — Captured by Negroes. — Third Visit. — Our Reception. — Number of Freedmen. — House of Three Orphans. — Conversation with their Guardian. — An Unreasonable Complaint. — A Northern Man's Fortunes. — Negro from St. John. — '' Faithful Old Family Servant." — Colored Guard. — Women " Listing." — Our Guard takes Notes. —"Negroes Farming. — Attachment to their Homes. — Children going to School. — Shade-Trees used for Fences. — Extent of the Island. — Freedmen their own Drivei 537 TABLE OF CON^TENTS. Xiii CHAPTER LXXVI. — Sherman in South Carolina. Destruction by the Army. — A South Side View. — In Orangeburg District. — A Lady's Account. — Discipline of the Army. — Fidelity of an Old Cook. — Warned by a Dream. — Behavior of the Negroes. — Firing Houses. — Foragers. — Yankee OfBcers. — Soldiers' Fun and Mischief. — Behavior. — Destructiveness. — Three Nights in the Chimney Corner. — White Lie by a Black Boy. — White Officers and Black Girls. — Kobbed of everything. — Ihe Negroes afterwards. — Few White Men left in the Country. — Cut olf from Charleston 546 CHAPTER LXXVIL — The Burning of CoLUMBfA. The Fall of Pride. — Infatuation of the People. — Scenes of Panic. — Citizen Plun- derers. — General Sherman's Promise. — Origin of the Fires. — Accounts by Re- sponsible Citizens. — Rocket Signals. — Fire-Balis thrown into Houses. — Storie-s of Federal Guards. — Skill at tinding Treasures. — "Divining Rods." — The Fire in the Distance. — Dismay and Terror. — Thirty Millions of Property Destroyed. — Sacking of the Churches; of Masonic and Odd-Fellow Lodges. — Dnnikenness. — Discipline. — Robberies. — Many Guards faithful. — Curious Incidents. — Funeral of a Lapdog. — Popular Jokes in the Army. ^— Mrs. Minegault's Bracelet. — Des- titution. — Doing as we would have been done by. — War and Institutions of Learning. — Horrors left behind. — Ruins 553 CHAPTER LXXVIII. — Notes on South Carolina. Free Labor in the Eastern District. — West of the Wateree. — Planters and the Crop they depended on. — Cotton and Com. — Crops during the Confederacy. — Rice Culture. — Railroads. — Finances. — United States Taxes. — Prevalence of Crime. — Dishonest Treasury Agents; their Modes of Operating. — Animosity against the Government. — Progressive Class. — Governor Orr on Negro Sutirage. — Story of a Negro Carpenter. — Freedmen's Schools . . 565 CHAPTER LXXIX. — The Ride' to Winnsboro'. By Stage from Columbia. — Destruction of the Railroad Track. — The Yankees Dis- sected. — A Skeleton at the Banquet. — Stage-Coach Conversation. — Negro Suf- frage and Free Labor. — Spirit of the People. — Outrages on Negroes. — A Candid Confession. — Sherman's " Bummers " at Winnsboro' 571 CHAPTER LXXX. — A Glimpse of the old North State. Change of Scene. — North Carolina Legislature. — Business at Raleigh. — Impov- erishment of the State. — Effects of Repudiation. — Stay Laws. — Rice Culture. — North Carolina Farmers. — Freedmen and Freedmen's Schools. — Governor Worth on Sherman's "Bummers" 578 CHAPTER LXXXI. — Conclusions. Return Home. — Svimming Up. — Condition of the South. — Demand for Capital and Labor. — Recovery of Agriculture and Business. — A Hint to Emigrants. — Loy- alty of the People. — Union Men at the Close of Hostilities. — A Change for the Worse. — Talk for the Talk's sake. — Enough of War. — Danger of Unarmed Re- bellion. — Aims of Southern Leaders. — Security needed. — How to punish Treason. — Plans of Reconstruction. — Southern Plan. — Southern Representatives and the Test Oath. — The Rule of Justice. — Principles of the Declaration of In- dependence. — Impartial Suffrage. — History of Progressive Ideas. — Time for the Somng of the New Seed. — Are the Blacks prepared for the Franchise V — The Basis of Representation. — Prospects 583 CHAPTER LXXXII. The Work of Restoration. A Tear later. — Hopes disappointed. — Position of the Whites of the South. — Treatment of Southern Unionists, Black and White. — Sections where the Hostil- ity was most intense. — Honorable and Noble Exceptions to this State of Feel- ing. — The most Noisy Supporters of the Lost Cause. — The Effect of President Johnson's Course in stimulating this Hostility. — Review of his Course so far as it relates to Reconstruction. — Interviews with Southern iMen. — Organization of Provisional Governments. — Specimens of the Blen appointed by him as Gov- ernors. — Defiance of Congress in Advance. — Assurances to South Carolina. — Democratic Conventions indorsing the President's Policy. — The Message of De- xiv TABLE OF CONTENTS. cember, 1865. — Opposition to Congjress. — His " White-washing Message." — Veto of the First I'reedmen's Bureau Bill. — The 22d of February Speech. — Veto of the Civil Kights Bill. — Its Passage over the Veto. — Provisions of the Bill. — The Fourteenth Amendment to the Constitution. — What it was. — Veto of the Second Freedmen's Bureau Bill. — Passage over the Veto. — Its Provisions. — Admission of Tennessee. — Mr. Johnson signs the Resolution, but protests. — The Memphis Riot. — The New Orleans Massacre. — Mr. Johnson responsible for them. — Gen- eral Sheridan's Account of it. — The Philadelphia Convention. — Its Tears. — It proves a Failure. — Mr. Johnson weeps. — Mr. Johnson's Speeches. — Reply to the Philadelphia Committee. — " Congress hanging on the Verge of the Govern- ment." — "Swinging round the Circle." — Disgraceful Conduct of Mr. Johnson. — Billingsgate in his Speeches. — Wearisome Platitudes. — The Effect they had on the Elections of 1866 691 CHAPTER LXXXIII. Reconstruction. Condition of the Republican and Democratic Parties in Congress in December, 1866. — The District of Columbia Elective Franchise Bill passed: Its Provisions. — Mr. Johnson vetoes it, but it is passed over the Veto. — Territorial Franchise Bill passed. — Admission of Nebraska as a State, with the Elective Franchise Proviso. — Difficulties in Maturing satisfactorily the Reconstruction Act. — The Provisions of the House Bill. — It is materially ciianged in the Senate. — Further Moditica- tion in the House Provisions of the Bill as tinall}' passed. — Necessity for the Tenure of Office Act: Its Provisions. — Effect of the Passage of the District of Columbia Franchise Bill on Tennessee. — Decision of the Supreme Court of Ten- nessee. — The First Supplementary Reconstruction Act of the Fortieth Congress. — It is vetoed, and re-passed : Its Provisions. — Arrangement for the Call of a Summer Session. — Mr. Stanbery's Exposition of the Reconstruction Acts. — The Summer Session of 1867. — The Second Supplementary Reconstruction Act : Its Provisions. — Appropriations for Carrying out the Reconstruction Acts. — The President's Communication. — ^ The Resolution of the House in Reply. —Sharp Talk. — The Completion of Congressional Legislation on the Subject "in 1867. — Condition of the Desolated States in 1867 605 CHAPTER LXXXIV. The Work of Restoration. Votes on the Fourteenth Constitutional Amendment. — The New States and Recon- structed States likely to vote for it. — Action of the Commanders of the Military Districts. — The Fifth District. — Measures adopted by General Sheridan. — His Reasons for them. — Further Action of General Sheridan. — Governor Wells re- moved, and Governor Flanders appointed. — Incidents in Charleston : The Rail- road Cars; The Flag at the Charleston Fire Parade. — General Sickles' Order No. 10: Its Provisions. — Attorney-General Stanbery's Objections to it. — Other Orders of General Sickles. — He asks to be relieved of his Command. — Troubles in General Pope's District. — Insubordination of Governor Jenkins: General Pope asks that he be removed; General Grant's Indorsement. — Riot in Mobile. — In Richmond. — Registration, and Powers of Military Commanders. — The Interfer- ence of the Attorney-General. — His Written Opinions. — General Grant decides that they are not Mandatory. — General Sheridan's Opinion of them. — Removal of Throckmorton. — Sheridan's Complaint of Rousseau. — The Removal of Secre- tary Stanton determined upon, and of General Sheridan also — The President's Letter to Stanton. — Stanton's Reply. — General Grant's Private Letter to the Presi- dent. — Stanton suspended, and Grant appointed Secretary of War nd interim. — The Order for Sheridan's Removal. — General Grant's Protest. — The President's Reply. — Thomas appointed to the Fifth District, but declines on account of his Health. — Hancock appointed. — General Griffin's Death. — General Sickles' Re- moval. — Generals Canby and Mower's Orders. — The President's two Proclama- tions. — Who are to be amnestied. — The President's Pardons. — General Han- cock's Special Order. — The President's delight with it. — He proposes that Con- gress shall make a Public Recognition of the General's Patriotism. — Congress "don't see it." — Measures of General Hancock. — General Grant revokes his Orders. — Hancock asks to be relieved, and is appointed by the President to the Command of the New Department of Washington. — The New Constitutions. — Alabama: The Measures of the Rebels to prevent the adoption of the Constitution. — The Constitutions of the other States adopted. — Vote on Convention and Con- stitution 624 TABLE OF CONTENTS. xv CHAPTER LXXXV. Suffering at the South among the Freedmen and Loyal Whites. — Causes. — The Discliarfi'e of the Freedmen by their Euiplovers for Voting. — Good Conduct of the Freedmen. — Description of the Scenes at the Polls in Montgomery, Ala. — Xegro Sutfrage, North and South. — Reasons why it was indispensable that the FVeedmen shoidd have the Ballot. — Testimony to the Good Conduct of the Negroes at the South. — Southern White Loyalty. — The Competency of the Negro tor the exercise of Suffrage equal to that of the Poor Whites. — Eloquence of a Negro in Arkansas, a recent Slave. — The Destitution at the South. — Wrongs Inflicted on the Freedmen. — Laziness of the Rebel Whites. — The Advance in Education at tiie South. — Benevolent Associations. — Freedmen'o Bureau. — Mr. Peabody's Munificent Gift. — Higher Education. — The Educational Provisions in the New Constitutions. — The Results which must flow from this In the Future 651 CHAPTER LXXXVL— Impeachment. Fore-shadowings of Impeachment. — Action on the subject in the XXXIXlh Con- gress. — Mr. Ashley's Motion. — Its defeat. — The resolutions of Messrs. Loan and Kelso. — 5Ir. Ashley's resolution. — Heport of the Impeachment Committee. — Post- ponement to XLth Congress. — The Committee renewed. — Their report. — Impeach- ment killed for the time.— Conduct of the President. — Reinstatement of Secretary Stanton. — The President's quarrel with General Grant. — The reason why. — His at- tempts to prevent any communication with Secretary Stanton. — His attempt to remove Stanton and appoint General Thomas Secretary ad interim. — Stanton re- fuses obedience and appeals to congress. — The excitement. — Impeachment resolu- tions moved immediately. Report of committee on reconstruction. — The vote on Im- peachment — The announcement to the Senate. — Its reception. — Preparation of the Articles of Impeachment. — The managers elected. — The articles. — The Senate or- ganized as a High Court of Impeachment — The progress of the trial. — The speeches. — The Secret Session of the Court. — The delay of the vote. — The first vote on the eleventh article. — Defeat of Impeachment by a single vote. — The vote. — Probable effect on the President. — The vote on the second and third articles. — Mr. Stanton's resignation. — The National Convention at Chicago. — Nomination of Grant aud Colfax. — The ballots for Vice President. — The Platform. — Certainty of success. — The glorious future 669 THE SOUTH. CHAPTER I. THE STAET. In the month of August, 1865, I set out to visit some of the scenes of the great conflict through which the countiy had lately passed. On the twelfth I reached Harrisburg, — a plain, prosaic town of brick and wood, with nothing especially attractive about it except its broad-sheeted, shining river, flowing down from the Blue Ridge, around wooded islands, and between pleasant shores. It is in this region that the traveller from the North first meets with indications of recent actual war. The Susque- hanna, on the eastern shore of which the city stands, forms the northern limit of Rebel military operations. The " high-water mark of the Rebellion " is here : along these banks its utter- most ripples died. The bluffs opposite the town are still crested with the hastily constructed breastworks, on which the citizens worked night and day in the pleasant month of June, 1863, throwing up, as it were, a dike against the tide of inva- sion. These defences were of no practical value. They were unfinished when the Rebels appeared in force in the vicinity : Harrisburg might easily have been taken, and a way opened into the heart of the North. But a Power greater than man's ruled the event. The Power that lifted these azure hills, and spread out the green valleys, and hollowed a passage for the stream, appointed to treason also a limit and a term. " Thus fkv and no farther." 16 THE START. The surrounding country is full of lively reminiscences of tliose terrible times. Panic-stricken populations flying at the ap})roach of the enemy; whole families fugitive from homes none thought of defending ; flocks and herds, horses, wagon- loads of promiscuously heaped household stuffs and farm prod- uce, — men, women, chiklren, riding, walking, running, driv- ing or leading their bewildered four-footed chattels, — all rushing forward with clamor and alarm under clouds of dust, crowding every road to the river, and thundering across the lono; brido-es, regardless of the " five-dollars-fine " notice, (though it is to be hoped that the toll-takers did tlieir duty ;) — such were the scenes which occurred to render the Rebel invasion memorable. The thrifty Dutch farmers of the lower counties did not gain much credit either for courage or patriot- ism at that time. It was a panic, however, to which almost anv conuuunity would have been liable. Stuart's famous raid o^ the previous year was well remembered. If a small cavalry force had swept from their track through a circuit of about sixty miles over two thousand horses, what was to be expected from Lee's whole army ? Resistance to the formidable advance of one hundred thousand disci])lined troops was of course out of the question. The slowness, however, with which the people responded to the State's almost frantic calls for volunteers was in singular contrast with the alacrity each man showed to run off" his horses and get his goods out of Rebel reach. From Harrisburg I went, by the way of York and Hanover, to Gettysburg. Having hastily secured a room at a hotel in the Square, (the citizens call it the " Di'mond,") I inquii'ed the way to the battle-ground. " You are on it now," said the landlord, with proud satis- faction, — for it is not every man that lives, much less keeps a tavern, on the field of a world-famous fight. " I tell you the truth," said he ; and, in proof of his words, (as if the fact were too wonderful to be believed without proof,) he showed me a Rebel shell imbedded in the brick wall of a house close by. TN. B. The battle-field was put into the bill.) JOHN BURNS. 17 Gettysburg is the capital of Adams County : a town of about three thousand souls, — or fifteen hundred, according to John Burns, who assured me that half the population were Copperheads, and that they had no souls. It is pleasantly situated on the swells of a fine undulating country, drained by the headwaters of the Monocacy. It has no especial natural advantages ; owing its existence, pi'obably, to the mere fact that several important roads found it convenient to meet at this point, to which accident also is due its historical renown. The circumstance which made it a burg made it likewise a battle-field. About the town itself there is nothing very interesting. It consists chiefly of two-story houses of wood and brick, in dull rows, with thresholds but little elevated above the street. Rarely a front yard or blooming garden-plot relieves the dreary monotony. Occasionally there is a three-story house, comfort- able, no doubt, and sufficiently expensive, about which the one thing remarkable is the total absence of taste in its construe- tion. In this respect Gettysburg is but a fair sample of a large class of American towns, the builders of which seem never once to have been conscious that there exists such a thing as beauty. John Burns, known as the " hero of Gettysburg," was almost the first person whose acquaintance I made. He was sitting under the thick shade of an English elm in front of the tavern. The landlord introduced him as " the old man who took his gun and went into the first day's fight." He rose to his feet and received me with sturdy politeness ; his evident delight in the celebrity he enjoys twinkling through the veil of a naturally modest demeanor. " John will go with you and show you the different parts of the battle-ground," said the landlord. " Will you, John ? " " Oh, yes, I '11 go," said John, quite readily ; and we set out. 2 IS THE FIELD OF GETTYSBURG. CHAPTER II. THE FIELD OF GETTYSBURG. A MILE south of the town is Cemetery Hill, tlie head and front of an important ridge, running two miles farther south to Round Top, — the ridge held by General Meade's army during the great battles. The Rebels attacked on three sides, — on the west, on the north, afid on the east ; breaking their forces in vain upon this tremendous wedge, of which Cemetery Hill may be considered the point. A portion of Ewell's Corps had passed through the town several days before, and neglected to secure that very commanding position. Was it mere accident, or something more, which thus gave the key to the country into our hands, and led the invaders, alarmed by Meade's vigorous pursuit, to fall back and fight the decisive battle here ? With the old " hero " at my side pointing out the various points of interest, I ascended Cemetery Hill. The view from the top is beautiful and striking. On the north and east is spread a finely variegated farm country ; on the west, M"ith woods and valleys and sunny slopes between, rise the summits of the Blue Ridge. It was a soft and peaceful summer day. There was scarce a sound to break the stillness, save the shrill note of the locust, and the perpetual click-click of the stone-cutters at work upon the granite headstones of the soldiers' cemetery. There was nothing to indicate to a stranger that so tranquil a spot had ever been a scene of strife. We were walking in the time- Iiallowed place of the dead, by whose side the martyr-soldiers who fought so bravely and so well on those terrible first days of July, slept as sweetly and securely as they. THE CEMETERY. 19 " It don't look here as it did after the battle," said John Burns. " Sad work was made with the tombstones. The ground was all covered with dead horses, and broken wagons, and pieces of shells, and battered muskets, and everything of that kind, not to speak of the heaps of dead." But now the tombstones have been replaced, the neat iron fences have been mostly repaired, and scarcely a vestige of the fight remains. Only the burial-places of the slain are there. Thirty-jive hun- dred and sixti/ slaughtered Union soldiers lie on the field of Gettysburg. This number does not include those whose bodies have been claimed by friends and removed. The new cemetery, devoted to the patriot slain, and dedi- cated with fitting ceremonies on the 19tli of November, 18G3, adjoins the old one. In the centre is the spot reserved for the monument, the corner-stone of which was laid on the 4th of July, 18G5. The cemeteiy is semicircular, in the form of an amphitheatre, except that the slope is reversed, the monument occupying the highest place. The granite headstones resemble rows of semicircular seats. Side by side, with two feet of ground allotted to each, and with their heads towards the monument, rest the three thousand five hundred and sixty. The name of each, when it coukl be ascertained, together with the number of the company and regiment in which he served, is lettered on the granite at his head. But the barbarous practice of stripping such of our dead as fell into their hands, in which the Rebels indulged here as elsewhere, rendered it impossible to identify large numbers. The headstones of these are lettered " Unknown." At the time when I visited the cemetery, the sections containing most of the unknown had not 3^et received their headstones, and their resting-places were indicated by a forest of stakes. I have seen few sadder sights. The spectacle of so large a field crowded with the graves of the slain brings home to the heart an overpowering sense of the horror and wickedness of war. Yet, as I have said, not all our dead are here. None of the Rebel dead are here. Not one of those who fell on other fields, or died in hospitals 20 THE FIELD OF GETTYSBURG. ani prisons in those States "where the war was chiefly waged, — not one out of those innumerable martyred hosts hes on this pleasant hill. The bodies of once living and brave men, slowly mouldering to dust in this sanctified soil, form but a small, a single sheaf from that great recent harvest reaped by Death with the sickle of war. Once living and brave I How full of life, how full of un- flinching courage and fiery zeal they marched up hither to fio;ht the ereat fiiiht, and to o-ive their lives ! And each man had his history ; each soldier resting here had his interests, his loves, his darling hopes, the same as you or I. All were laid down with his life. It was no trifle to him : it was as great a thing to him as it would be to you, thus to be cut off from all things dear i]i this world, and to drop at once into a vague eternit3^ Grown accustomed to the waste of life through years of war, Ave learn to think too lightly of such sacrifices. " So many killed," — with that brief sentence we glide over the unimaginably fearful fact, and pass on to other details. We indulge in pious commonplaces, — " They have gone to a better world ; they have their reward," and the like. No doubt this is true ; if not, then life is a mockery, and hope a lie. But the future, Avith all our foith, is vague and uncer- tain. It lies before us like one of those unidentified heroes, hidden from sight, deep-buried, mysterious, its headstone let- tered " Unknown." Will it ever rise ? Through trouble, toils, and privations, — not insensible to danger, but braving it, — these men — and not these only, but the uncounted thou- sands represented by these — confronted, for their country's sake, that awful vuicertainty. Did they believe in your better world ? Whether they did or not, this world was a reality, and dear to them. I looked into one of the trenches, in which workmen were laying foundations for the headstones, and saw the ends of the coffins protruding. It was silent and dark down there. Side by side the soldiers slept, as side by side they fought. I chose out one coffin from among the rest, and thought of him ■vbose dust it contained, — your brother and mine, althougs J^ ^ '1 ^.i.' , / LLESDliRG ^3i iltryj? ©ny) ~<"t.'^»^^ DRAWESVILLE 1 4^^. r^iiiF^ i PROSPECT FROM CEMETERY HILL. 23 we never knew him. I thought of him as a child, tenderly reared up — for this. I thought of his home, his heart-Hfe : — • " Had he a father ? Had he a mother ? Had he a sifter ? Had he a brother ? Or was there a nearer one Still, and a dearer cr. i Yet, than all other .' " I could not know ; in this world, none wUI ever know. He sleeps with the undistinguishable multitude, and his headstone is lettered " Unknown." Eighteen loyal States are represented by the tenants of these graves. New York has the greatest number, — up- wards of eight hundred ; Pennsylvania comes next in order, having upwards of five hundred. Tall men from Maine, young braves from Wisconsin, heroes from every State be- tween, met here to defend their country and their homes. Sons of Massachusetts fought for Massachusetts on Pennsyl- vania soil. If they had not fought, or if our armies had been annihilated here, the whole North would have been at the mercy of Lee's victorious legions. As Cemetery Hill was the pivot on which turned the fortunes of the battle, so Gettys- burg itself was the pivot on which turned the destiny of the nation. Here the power of aggressive treason culminated ; and from that memorable Fourth of July, when the Rebel in- vaders, beaten in the three days' previous fight, stole away down the valleys and behind the mountains on their ignomin- ious retreat, — from that day, signalized also by the fall of Vicksburg in the West, it waned and waned, until it was swept from the earth. Cemetery Hill should be first visited by the tourist of the battle-ground. Here a view of the entire field, and a clear understanding of the military operations of the three days, are best obtained. Looking north, away on your left lies Semi- nary Ridge, the scene of the first day's fight, in which the gal- lant Reynolds fell, and from Avhich our troops were driven back 24 THE FIELD OF GETTYSBURG. in confusion through the town by overwhehning numbers in the afternoon. Farther south spread the beautiful woods and vales that swarmed with Rebels on the second and third day, and from which they made such desperate charges upon our lines. On the right as you stand is Gulp's Hill, the scene of Ewell's furious but futile attempts to flank us there. You are in the focus of a half-circle, from all points of which was poured in upon this now silent hill such an artillery fire as has seldom been concentrated upon one point of an open field in any of the great battles upon this planet. From this spot extend your observations as you please. Guided by the sturdy old man, I proceeded first to Gulp's Hill, following a line of breastworks into tlie woods. Here are seen some of the soldiers' devices, hastily adopted for defence. A rude embankment of stakes and logs and stones, covered with earth, forms the pi-incipal work ; aside from which you meet Avith little private breastworks, as it were, consisting of rocks heaped up by the trunk of a tree, or beside a larger rock, or across a cleft in the rocks, where some sharpshooter stood and exercised his skill at his ease. The woods are of oak chiefly, but with a liberal sprinkling of chestnut, black-walnut, hickory, and other common forest- trees. Very beautiful they were that day, with their great, silent trunks, all so friendly, their clear vistas and sun-spotted spaces. Beneath reposed huge, sleepy ledges and boulders, their broad backs covered with lichens and old moss. A more fitting spot for a picnic, one would say, than for a battle. Yet here remain more astonishing evidences of fierce fight- ing than anywhere else about Gettysburg. The trees in cer- tain localities are all scarred, disfigured, and literally dying or dead from their wounds. The marks of balls in some of the trunks are countless. Here are limbs, and yonder are whole tree-tops, cut off by shells. Many of these trees have been hacked for lead, and chips containing bullets have been carried away for relics. Past the foot of the hill runs Rock Creek, a muddy, sluggisli stream, " great for eels," said John Burns. Big boulders aid QUIET OF CEMETERY HILL. 25 blocks of stone lie scattered along its bed. Its low shores are covered with thin grass, shaded by the forest-trees. Plenty of Rebel knapsacks and haversacks lie rotting upon the ground ; and there are Rebel graves near by in the woods. By tliese I was inchned to pause longer than John Burns thought it worth the while. I felt a pity for these unhappy men, which he could not understand. To him they were dead Rebels, and nothing more ; and he spoke with great disgust of an effort which had been made by certain " Copperheads " of the town to have all the buried Rebels now scattered about in the woods and fields gathered together in a cemetery near that dedicated to our own dead. " Yet consider, my friend," I said, " though they were altogether in the wrong, and their cause was infernal, these, too, were brave men ; and, under different circumstances, with no better hearts than they had, they might have been lying in honored graves up yonder, instead of being buried in heaps, like dead cattle, down here." Is there not a better future for these men also ? The time will come when we shall at least cease to hate them. The cicada was singing, insects were humming in the air, crows were cawing in the tree-tops, the sunshine slept on the boughs or nestled in the beds of brown leaves on the ground, — all so pleasant and so pensive, I could have passed the day there. But John reminded me that night was approaching, and we returned to Gettysburg. That evening I walked alone to Cemetery Hill, to see the sun set behind the Blue Ridge. A quiet prevailed there still more profound than during the day. The stone-cutters had finished their day's woi'k and gone home. The katydids were, singing, and the shrill, sad chirp of the crickets welcomed the cool shades. The sun went down, and the stars came out and shone upon the graves, — the same stars which were no doubt shining even then upon many a vacant home and mourninf heart left lonely by the husbands, the fathers, the dear brothers and sons, who fell at Gettysburg. The next morning, according to agreement, I went to call 26 TPIE FIELD OF GETTYSBURG. on the old hero. I found him hving in the upper part of a little whitewashed two-story house, on the corner of two streets west of the town. A flight of wooden steps outside took me to his door. He was there to welcome me. John Burns is a stoutish, slightly bent, hale old man, with a light-blue eye, a long, aggressive nose, a firm-set mouth expressive of deter- mination of character, and a choleric temperament. His hair, originally dark -brown, is considerably bleached with age ; and his beard, once sandy, covers his face (shaved once or twice a week) with a fine crop of silver stubble. A short, massy kind of man ; about five feet four or five inches in height, I should judge. He was never measured but once in his life. That was when he enlisted in the War of 1812. He was then nineteen years old, and stood five feet in his shoes. " But I 've growed a heap since," said John. At my request he told his story. On the morning of the first day's fight he sent his wife away, telling her that he would take care of the house. The firing was near by, over Seminary Ridge. Soon a wounded soldier came into the town and stopped at an old house on the opposite corner. Burns saw the poor fellow lay down his musket, and the inspiration to go into the battle seems then first to have seized him. He went over and demanded the gun. " What are you going to do with it? " asked the soldier. " I 'm going to shoot some of the damned Rebels ! " replied John. He is not a swearing man, and the strong adjective is to be taken in a strictly literal, not a profane, sense. Having obtained the gun, he pushed out on the Chambers- burg Pike, and was soon in the thick of the skirmish. " I wore a high-crowned hat and a long-tailed blue ; and I was seventy year old." The sight of so old a man, in such costume, rushing fear- lessly forward to get a shot in the very front of the battle, of course attracted attention. He fought with the Seventh Wis- consin Regiment ; the Colonel of which ordered him back, and JOHN BURNS'S STORY. 27 questioned him, and finally, seeing the old man's patriotic determination, gave him a good rifle in place of the mnsket he had brought with him. " Are jou a good shot ? " " Tolerable good," said John, who is an old fox-hunter. " Do you see that Rebel riding yonder ? " " I do." " Can you fetch him ? " " I can try." The old man took deliberate aim and fired. He does not say he killed the Rebel, but simply that his shot was cheered by the Wisconsin boys, and that afterwards the horse the Rebel rode was seen galloping with an empty saddle. " That 's all I know about it." He fought until our forces were driven back in the after- noon. He had already received two slight wounds, and a third one through the arm, to which he paid little attention ; " only the blood running down my hand bothered me a heap." Then, as he was slowly falling back with the rest, he received a final shot through the leg. " Down I went, and the whole Rebel army run over me." Helpless, nearly bleeding to death from his wounds, he lay upon the field all night. " About sun-up, next morning, I crawled to a neighbor's house, and found it full of wounded Rebels." The neighbor afterwards took him to his own house, which had also been turned into a Rebel hospital. A Rebel surgeon dressed his wounds ; and he says he received decent treatment at the hands of the enemy, until a Copperhead woman living opposite " told on him." " That 's the old man who said he was going out to shoot some of the damned Rebels ! " Some officers came and questioned him, endeavoring to con- vict him of bushwhackino;. But the old man p-ave them little satisfaction. Tliis was on Friday, the third day of the battle ; and lie was alone with his wife in the upper part of the house. The Rebels left ; and soon after two shots were fired. One bullet entered the window, passed over Burns's head, and penetrated the wall behind the lounge on which he was lying. 28 TPIE FIELD OF GETTYSBURG. The other shot fell lower, passing through a door. Burn;* is certain that the design was to assassinate him. That the shot were fired by the Rebels there can be no doubt ; and as they were fired from their own side, towards the town, of which they held possession at the time, John's theory seems the true one. The hole in the window, and the bullet-marks in the door and wall, remain. Burns went with me over the ground where the first day's fight took place. He showed me the scene of his hot day's work, — pointed out two trees behind which he and one of the Wisconsin boys stood and " picked off every Rebel that showed his head," and the spot where he fell and lay all night under the stars and dew. This act of daring on the part of so aged a citizen, and his subsequent sufferings from wounds, naturally called out a great deal of sympathy, and caused him to be looked upon as a hero. But a hero, like a prophet, has not all honor in his own country. There is a wide-spread, violent prejudice against Burns among that class of the townspeople termed " Copper- heads." The young men especially, who did not take their guns and go into the fight as this old man did, but who ran, when running was possible, in the opposite direction, dislike Burns ; some averring that he did not have a gun in his hand that day, but that he was wounded by accident, happening to get between the two lines. Of his going into the fight and fighting^ there is no doubt whatever. Of his bravery, amounting even to rashness, there can be no reasonable question. He is a patriot of the most zealous sort ; a hot, impulsive man, who meant what he said when he started with the gun to go and shoot some of the Rebels qualified with the strong adjective. A thoroughly honest man, too, I think ; although some of his remarks are to be taken with considerable allowance. His temper causes him to form iuinioderate opinions and to make strong statements. " He always goes heyant^'' said my landlord. Burns is a sagacious observer of men and things, and makes occasionally such shrewd remarks as this : LITTLE ROUND TOP. 29 " Whenever you see the marks of shells and bullets on a house all covered up, and painted and plastered over, that 'ci the house of a Rebel sympathizer. But when you see them all preserved and kept in sight, as something to be proud of, that 's the house of a true Union man ! " Well, whatever is said or thought of thi, old hero, he is what he is^ and has satisfaction in that, and not in other people's opinions ; for so it must finally be with all. Character is the one thing valuable. Reputation, which is a mere shadow of the man, what his character is reputed to be, is, in the long run, of infinitely less importance. * I am happy to add that the old man has been awarded a pension. The next day I mounted a hard-trotting horse and rode to Round Top. On the way I stopped at the historical peach- orchard, known as Sherfy's, where Sickles's Corps was re- pulsed, after a terrific conflict, on Thursday, the second day of the battle. The peaches were green on the trees then ; but they were ripe now, and the branches were breaking down with them. One of Mr. Sherfy's girls — the youngest she told me — was in the orchard. She had in her basket rareripes to sell. They were large and juicy and sweet, — all the redder, no doubt, for the blood of the brave that had drenched the sod. So calm and impassive is Nature, silently turning all things to use. The carcass of a mule, or the godlike shape of a warrior cut down in the hour of glory, — she knows no difi'erenco between them, but straightway proceeds to convert both alike into new forms of life and beauty. Between fields made memorable by hard fighting I rod(5 eastward, and, entering a pleasant wood, ascended Little Round Top. The eastern slope of this rugged knob is covered with timber. The western side is steep, and wild with rocks and bushes. Near by is the Devil's Den, a dark cavity in the rocks, interesting henceforth on account of the fight that took place here for the possession of these heights. A photographic view, taken the Sunday morning after the battle, shows eight dead Rebels tumbled headlong, with their guns, among the rocks below the Den. 30 THE FIELD OF GETTYSBURG. ^ A little farther on is Round Top itself, a craggy tusk of the rock-jawed earth pushed up there towards the azure. It is covered all over with broken ledges, boulders, and fields of stones. Among these the forest- trees have taken root, — thrifty Nature making the most of things even here. The serene leafy tops of ancient oaks tower aloft in the bluish- golden air. It is a natural fortress, which our boys strength- ened still further by throwing up the loose stones into handy breastworks. Returning, I rode the whole length of the ridge held by our troops, realizing more and more the importance of that ex- traordinary position. It is like a shoe, of which Roimd Top represents the heel, and Cemetery Hill the toe. Here all our forces were concentrated on Thursday and Friday, within a space of two miles. Movements from one part to another of this compact field could be made with celerity. Lee's forces, on the other hand, extended over a circle of seven miles or more around, in a country where all their movements could be watched by us and anticipated. At a point well forward on the foot of this shoe, Meade had his headquarters. I tied my horse at the gate, and entered the little square box of a house which enjoys that historical celeb- rity. It is scarcely more than a hut, having but two little rooms on the ground-floor, and I know not what narrow, low- roofed chambers above. Two small girls, with brown German faces, were paring wormy apples under, the porch ; and a round-shouldered, bareheaded, and barefooted woman, also with a German face and a strong German accent, was drawing water at the well. I asked her for drink, which she kindly gave me, and invited me into the house. The little box was whitewashed outside and in, except the floor and ceilings and inside doors, which were neatly scoured. The woman sat down to some mending, and entered freely into conversation. She was a Avidow, and the mother of six children. The two gii'ls cutting wormy apples at the door were the youngest, and the only ones left to her. A son in the army was expected home in a few days. She did not REMINISCENCES. 31 know how old her children were ; she did not know how old she was herself, " she was so forgetful." She ran away at the time of the fight, but was sorry after- wards she did not stay at home. " She lost a heap." The house was robbed of almost everything ; " coverlids and sheets, and some of our own clo'es, all carried away. They got about two ton of hay from me. I owed a little on my land yit, and thought I 'd put in two lots of wheat that year, and it was all trampled down, and I did n't git nothing from it. I had seven pieces of meat yit, and them was all took. All I had when I got back was jist a little bit of fiour yit. The fences was all tore down, so that there wa'n't one standing, and the rails was burnt up. One shell come into the house and knocked a bedstead all to pieces for me. One come in under the roof and knocked out a rafter for me. The porch was all knocked down. There was seventeen dead horses on my land. They burnt five of 'em around my best peach-tree, and killed it ; so I ha'n't no peaches this year. They broke down all my young apple-trees for me. The dead horses sp'iled my spring, so I had to have my well dug." I inquired if she had ever got anything for the damage. " Not much. I jist sold the bones of the dead horses. I could n't do it till this year, for the meat had n't rotted off yit. I got fifty cents a hundred. There was seven hundred and fifty pounds. You can reckon up what they come to. That 's all I got." Not much, indeed ! This poor woman's entire interest in the great battle was, I found, centred in her own losses. What the country lost or gained, she did not know nor care, never having once thought of that side of the question. The town is full of similar reminiscences ; and it is a subject which everybody except the " Copperheads " likes to talk with you about. There were heroic women here, too. On the evening of Wednesday, as our forces were retreating, an ex- hausted Union soldier came to Mr. Gulp's house, near Gulp's Hill, and said, as he sank down, — 82 THE FIELD OF GETTYSBURG. " If I can't have a drink of water, I must die." Mrs. Gulp, who had taken refuge in tlie cellar, — for the house was now between the two fires, — said, — " I will go to the spring and get you some water." It was then nearly dark. As she was returning with the water, a bullet whizzed past her. It was fired by a sharpshooter on our own side, who had mistaken her for one of the advanc- ing Rebels. Greatly frightened, she hurried home, bringing the water safely. One poor soldier was made eternally grate- ful by this courageous, womanly deed. A few days later the sharpshooter came to the house and learned that it was a ministerino; ancel in the euise of a woman he had shot at. Great, also, must have been his gratitude for the veil of dark- ness which caused him to miss his aim. Shortly after the battle, sad tales wei^e told of the cruel in- hospitality shown to the wounded Union troops by the people of Gettysburg. Many of these stories were doubtless true ; but they were true only of the more brutal of the Rebel sympathizers. The Union men threw open their hearts and their houses to the wounded. One afternoon I met a soldier on Cemetery Hill, who was in the battle ; and who, being at Harrisburg for a few days, had taken advantage of an excur- sion train to come over and revisit the scene of that terrible experience. Getting into conversation, we walked down the hill together. As we were approaching a double house with high wooden steps, he pointed out the farther one, and said, - " Saturday morning, after the fight, I got a piece of bread at that house. A man stood on the steps and gave each of our fellows a piece. We were hungry as bears, and it was a god- send. I should like to see that man and thank him." Just then the man himself appeared at the door. We went over, and I introduced the soldier, who, with tears in his eyes, expressed his gratitude for that act of Chi'istian charity. "Yes," said the man, when reminded of the circumstance, " we did what we could. We baked bread here night and day to give to every hungry soldier who wanted it. We sent away our own children, to make room for the wounded soldiers, and for days our house was a hospital." THE HARVEST OF BULLETS. 33 Instances of this kind are not few. Let them be remem- bered to the honor of Gettysburg. Of the magnitude of a battle fought so desperately during three days, by armies numbering not far from two hundred thousand men, no adequate conception can be formed. One or two facts may help to give a faint idea of it. Mr. Gulp's meadow, below Cemetery Hill, — a lot of near twenty acres, — was so thickly strown with Rebel dead, that Mr. Gulp de- clared he " could have walked across it without putting foot upon the ground." Upwards of three hundred Gonfederates were buried in that fair field in one hole. On Mr. Gwynn's farm, below Round Top, near five hundred sons of the South lie promiscuously heaped in one huge sepulchre. Of the quan- tities of iron, of the wagon-loads of arms, knapsacks, haver- sacks, and clothing, which strewed the country, no estimate can be made. Government set a guard over these, and for weeks officials were busy in gathering together all the more valuable spoils. The harvest of bullets was left for the citi- zens to glean. Many of the poorer people did a thriving bus- iness picking up these missiles of death, and selling them to dealers ; two of whom alone sent to Baltimore fifty tons of lead collected in this way from the battle-field. 84 A REMINISCENCE OF CHAJMBERSBURG. CHAPTER III. A REMINISCENCE OF CHAMBERSBURG. Friday afternoon, August 18tli, I left Gettysburg for Chambersburg, by stage, over a rough turnpike, which had been broken to pieces by Lee's artillery and army Avagons two years before, and had not since been repaired. We traversed a sleepy-looking wheat and corn country, " Wherein it seemed always afternoon," SO little stir was there, so few signs of life and enterprise were visible. Crossing the Blue Ridge, we passed through a more busy land later in the day, and entered the pleasant suburbs of Chambersburg at sunset. The few scattered residences east of the railroad were soon passed, however, and we came upon scenes which quickly re- minded us that we had entered a doomed and desolated place. On every side were the skeletons of houses burned by the Rebels but a little more than a year before. We looked across their roofless and broken walls, and through the sightless windows, at the red sunset sky. They stared at us with their empty eye-sockets, and yawned at us with their fanged and jagged jaws. Dead shade-trees stood solemn in the dusk beside the dead, deserted streets. In places, the work of re- building had been vigorously commenced ; and the streets were to be traversed only by narrow paths between piles of old brick saved from the ruins, stacks of new brick, beds of mortar, and heaps of sand. Our driver took us to a new hotel erected on the ruins of an old one. The landlord, eager to talk upon the exciting subject, told me his story while supper was preparing. FIRING OF CHAMBERSBURG. 35 " I had jeest bought the hotel that stood where this does, and paid eight thousand dollars for it. I had laid out two thousand dollars fitting it up. All the rooms had been new papered and furnished, and there was three hundred- dollars' worth of carpets in the house not put down yet, when the Rebels they jeest come in and burnt it all up." This was spoken with a look and tone which showed what a real and terrible thing the disaster was to this man, far dif- ferent from the trifle it appears on paper. I found everybody full of talk on this great and absorbing topic. On the night of July 29th, 1864, the Rebel cavalry appeared before the town. Some artillery boys went out with a field-piece to frighten them, and fired a few shots. That kept the raiders at bay till morning ; for they had come, not to fight, but to destroy ; and it was ticklish advancing in the dark, with the suggestive field-piece flashing at them. Tlie next morning, however, quite early, before the alarmed inhabitants had thought of breakfast, they entered, — the field-piece keeping judiciously out of sight. They had come with General Early's orders to burn the town, in retaliation for General Hunter's spoliation of the Shenandoah Valley. That they would com- mit so great a crime was hardly to be credited ; for what Hunter had done towards destroying that granary of the Con- federacy had been done as a military necessity, and there was no such excuse for burning Chambersburg. It seemed a folly as well as a crime ; for, with our armies occupying the South, and continually acquiring new districts and cities, it was in their power, had they been equally barbarous, to take up and carry on this game of retaliation until the whole South should have become as Sodom. Chambersburg had suffered from repeated Rebel raids, but it had escaped seriovTS damage, and the people were inclined to jeer at those neighbormg towns which had been terrified into paying heavy ransoms to the marauders. But now its time had come. The Confederate leaders demanded of the author- ities one hundred thousand dollars in gold, or five hundred thousand dollars in United States currency ; promising that 86 A EEMINISCENCE OF CHAMBERSBURG. if the money was not forthcoming in fifteen minutes, the torch would be apphed. I know not whether it was possible to raise so great a sum in so short a time. At all events, it was not raised. Then suddenly from all parts of the town went up a cry of horror and dismay. The infernal work had begun. The town was fired in a hundred places at once. A house was entered, a can of kerosene emptied on a bed, and in an in- stant up went a burst of flame. Extensive plundering was done. Citizens were told that if they would give their money their houses would be spared. The money Avas in many instances promptly given, when their houses were as promptly fired. Such a wail of women and children, fleeing for life from their flaming houses, has been seldom heard. Down the hard- ened cheeks of old men who could scarce remember that they had ever Avept, the tears ran in streams. In the terrible con- fusion nothing was saved. In many houses money, which had been carefully put away, was abandoned and burned. The heat of the flames was fearful. Citizens who described those scenes to me considered it miraculous that in the midst of so great terror and excitement, with the town in flames on all sides at once, not a life Avas lost. The part of the town east of the railroad is said to have been saved by the j^resence of mind and greatness of spirit of a heroic lady. As her house was about to be fired, she appealed to a cavalry captain, and, shoAving him the throngs of Aveeping and wailing Avomen and children seeking refuge in the cut through which the railroad passes, said to him, with solemn emphasis, — " In the day of judgment, sir, you Avill see that sight again ; then, sir, you will' have this to ansAver for ! " The captain Avas touched. " It is contrary to orders," said he, " but this thing shall be stopped." And he stationed a guard along the track to prevent further destruction of the city in that direction. The homeless citizens crowded to a hill and watched from its THREE REBELS. 37 summit the completion of the diabolical work. The whirl- wind of fire and smoke that went roaring up into the calm, blue heavens, soon overcanopied by one vast cloud, was in- describably appalling. Fortunately the day was still, other- wise not a house would have been left standing. As it was, three hundred and forty houses were burned, comprising about two thirds of the entire town. The raiders were evidently afraid of being caught at tlie work. The smoke, which could be seen thirty or forty miles away, would doubtless prove a pillar of cloud to guide our cavalry to the spot. Having hastily accomplished their task, therefore, with equal haste they decamped. Three of their number, however, paid the penalty of the crime on the spot. Two, plundering a cellar, were shot by a redoubtable apothecary, — a choleric but conscientious man, who was much troubled in his mind afterwards for what he had done ; for it is an awful thing to take human life even under circumstances the most justifiable. " He was down-hearted all the next day about it," said one. In the meanwhile the dead marauders were roasted and broiled, and reduced to indistinguishable ashes, in the pyre they had themselves pre- pared. A major of the party, who had become intoxicated plunder- ing the liquor-shops, lingered behind his companions. He was surrounded by the incensed populace and ordered to sur- render. Refusing, and drawing his sword with maudlin threats, he was shot down. He was then buried to his breast outside of the town, and left with just his shoulders protruding from the ground, Avith his horrible lolling head drooping over them. Having been exhibited in this state to the multitude, many of whom, no doubt, found some comfort in the sight, he was granted a more thorough sepulture. A few weeks before my visit to the place, a gentle-faced female from the South came to claim his body ; for he, too, was a human being, and no mere monster, as many supposed, and there were those that did love him. The distress and suffering of the burnt-out inhabitants of S8 A REMINISCENCE OF CHAMBERSBURG. Chambersburg can never be told. " For six weeks the^y were jeest kept alive by the prowisions sent by other towns, which we dealt out here to every one that asked," said my landlord. " And I declare to fortune," he added, " there w^as scoundrels from the outside that had n't lost a thing, that would come in here and share with our starving people." These scoundrels, he said, were Germans, and he M-as very severe upon them, although he himself had a German name, and a German ac- cent which three generations of his race in this country had not entirely eradicated. Besides the charity of the towns, the State granted one hundred thousand dollars for the relief of the sufferers. This was but as a drop to them. Those who had property remain- ing got nothing. The appropriation was intended for those who had lost everything, — and there were hundreds of such ; some of whom had been stopped in the streets and robbed even of their shoes, after their houses had been fired. " This was jeest hoAV it worked. Some got more than they had before the fire. A boarding-house girl that had lost say eight dollars, would come and say she had lost fifty, and she 'd get fifty. But men like me, that happened to have a little property outside, never got a cent." It will always remain a matter of astonishment that the great and prosperous State of Pennsylvania did not make a more generous appropriation. The tax necessary for the purpose would scarcely have been felt by any one, while it would have been but a just indemnification to those who had suffered in a cause which the whole loyal North was bound to uphold. Families enjoying a small competency had been at once reduced to poverty ; men doing a modest and comfortable business were unable to resume it. Those who could ob- tain credit before could now obtain none. Insurance was void. Householders were unable to rebuild, and at the time of my visit many were still living in shanties. Nearly all the rebuilding that was in progress ,was done on borrowed capital. But there is no loss without gain. Chambersburg will in NO LOSS WITHOUT GAIN. 39 tlie end be greatly benefited by the fire, inasmuch as the old two-story buildings, of which the town was originally composed, are being replaced by three-story houses, much finer and more commodious. So let it be with our country ; fearful as our loss has been, we shall build better anew. 10 SOUTH MOUNTAIN. CHAPTER IV. SOUTH MOUNTAIN. The next day I took the cars for Hagerstown ; passed Sun- day in that slow and ancient burg ; and early on Monday morning set out by stage for Boonsboro'. Our course lay down the valley of the Antietam. We crossed the stream at Funk's Town, a little over two miles from Hagerstown. " Stop at two miles and you won't be here," said the driver. The morning was fine ; the air fresh and inspiring ; and the fact that the country through which we passed had been fought over repeatedly during the war, added interest to the ride. A fertile valley : on each side were fields of tall and stalwart corn. Lusty milkweeds stood by the fences ; the driver called them "wild cotton." And here the Jamestown-weed, with its pointed leaves, and flower resembling the bell of a morning-glory, became abundant. " That 's y/wzson," said the driver ; and he proceeded to extol its medicinal qualities. " Makes a good sa'v'. Rub that over a boss, and I bet ye no fly lights on him ! " At Boonsboro' some time was consumed in finding a con- veyance and a guide to take me over the battle-fields. At length I encountered Lewy Smith, light and jaunty Lewy Smith, with his light and jaunty covered carryall, — whom I would recommend to travellers. I engaged him for the afternoon of that day and for the day following ; and imme- diately after dinner he was at the tavern-door, snapping his whip. The traveller's most pleasant experience of Boonsboro' is leaving it. The town contains about nine hundred inhabit- ants ; and the wonder is how so many human souls can rest SOUTH MOUNTAIN. 41 content to live in such a mouldy, lonesome place. But once outside of it, you find Nature as busy in making the world beautiful, as man inside has been in making it as ugly as pos- sible. A countiy village carries with it the idea of somethhig pleasant, shady, green ; therefore do not think of Boonsboro' as a country village. Leave it behind you as soon as con- venient, and turn your face to the mountain. That is the famed South Mountain, where the prologue to the Antietam fight was enacted. " I never heard it called South Mountain till after the battle," said Lewy Smith. " It was always the Blue Ridge with us." He had never heard of Turner's Gap, or Frog Gap, either. " We always called it just the gap in the mountain." The road to the gap runs southeast from Boonsboro', then turns easterly up the hills. It stretched long and pleasant before us. " The night before the battle," said Lewy Smith, " this road was lined with Rebels, I tell ye ! Both sides were co veered with them about as thick as they could lie. It was a great sight to see so many soldiers ; and it did n't seem to us there were men enough in the Union army to fight them. We thought the Rebels had got possession of Maryland, sure. They just went into our stores and took what they pleased, and paid in Confederate money ; they had come to stay, they said, and their money would be better than ours in a little while. Some who got plenty of it did well ; for when the Rebels slaughtered a drove of cattle, they would sell the hides and take their own currency for pay." The mountain rose before us, leopard-colored, spotted with sun and cloud. A few mean log houses were scattered along the road, near the summit of which we came to the Moun- tain House, a place of summer resort. Here again man had done his best to defeat the aim of Nature ; the house and everything about it looked dreary and forbidding, while all around lay the beautiful mountain in its wild forest-shades. Lewy left his horse at the stable, and we entered the woods, pursuing a mountain-road which runs south along the crest. A tramp of twenty minutes brought us to the scene of Gen- eral Reno's brilliant achievement and heroic death. A rude 42 SOUTH MOUNTAIN. stone set up in the field, near a spreading chestnut, marks the spot Avhere he felL A few rods north of this, running east and west, is the mountain-road, with a stone wall on each side of it, where the Rebels fought furiously, until driven out from their defences by our boys coming up through the woods. The few wayside trees are riddled with bullets. A little higher up the crest is a log house, and a well in which fifty- seven dead Rebels are buried. " The owner of the house was offered a dollar a head for burying them. The easiest way he could do was to pitch them into the well. Bvit he don't like to own up to having done it now." It was a sunny, breezy field. " Up yer 's a heap of air sturrin'," said a mountaineer, whom we met coming up the road. We sat down and talked with him by the stone wall ; and he told us of his tribulations and mishaps on the day of the battle, attempting to fly south over the mountain with his family ; overloading his wagon, and breaking down just as the shells began to explode around him ; doing everything " wrons-eend fust, he was so sheered." We pushed along through the woods to the eastern brow of the crest, in order to obtain a general view of the field. Emerging from among the trees, a sviperb scene opened before us, — Catoctin Valley, like a poem in blue and gold, with its patches of hazy woods, sunlit misty fields, and the Catoctin Mountains rolling up ethereal beyond. The bridge across Catoctin Creek, half a mile west of Mid- dletown, where the fighting began on that memorable Sunday, September 14th, 1862, could be seen half hidden and far away below. There our troops came up with the rear-guard of the invading army. Driven back from the Creek, the Rebels massed their forces and formed their line of battle, two miles in extent, on this mountain-side, in positions of formida- ble strength. Standing on the brow of the commanding crest, you would say that ten thousand men, rightly posted, might here check the advance of ten times their number, hold the gap on the left there, and prevent the steep mountain-sides from being scaled. SUNSET OVER THE ANTIETAM. 43 In a barren pasture above the slope climbed by Reno's men in face of the Rebel fire, we came upon a little row of graves under some locust-trees. I took note of a few names lettered on the humble head-boai'ds. " John Dunn ; " " T. G. Dixon, Co. C, 23d Regt. O. V. I. ;" several more were of the 23d Ohio, — the impetuous regiment that had that day its famous hand-to- hand conflict with the 23d South Carolina, in which each man fought as though the honor of the nation depended upon his individual arm. Here lay the victorious fallen. A few had been removed from their rude graves. The head-boards of others had been knocked down by cows. We set them up again, and left the field to the pensive sound of the cow-bells and the teasing soncf of the locust. Walking back to the road through the gap, and surveying the crests flanking and commanding it, which were held by the Rebels, but carried with irresistible impetuosity by the men of Burnside's and Hooker's corps, one is still more astonished by the successful issue of that terrible day's work. All along these heights rebel and loyal dead lie buried in graves scarcely distinguishable from each other. Long after the battle, ex- plorers of the woods were accustomed to find, in hollows and behind logs, the remains of some poor fellow, generally a Rebel, who, wounded in the fight, or on the retreat, had dragged himself to such shelter as he could find, and died there, alone, uncared for, in the gloomy and silent wilderness. Crampton's Gap, six miles farther south, stormed and carried that same Sabbath day by the men of Franklin's corps, I did not visit. The sun was setting as we turned our faces west- ward ; and all the way down the mountain we had the An- tietam valley before us, darkening and dai'kening under a skv full of the softest twilight tints and tranquillity. 44 THE FIELD OF ANTIETAM. CHAPTER V. THE FIELD OF ANTIETAM. At seA-en o'clock the next morning, light and jaunty Lewy Smith was snapping his whip again at the taveni-door ; and I was soon riding out of the village by his side. Our course lay along the line of the Rebel retreat and of the advance of the right wing of our army. A pleasant road, under the edge of woods still wet with recent rain, brought us to Keedysville, a little cluster of brick and log houses, all of which, Lewy told me, were turned into hospitals after the great battle. At the farther end of the town is a brick church. *' That was a hospital too. Many an arm, a leg, a hand, was left there by our boys. There 's a pit behind the church, five feet long, five feet deep, and two feet wide, just full of legs and arms." We rode on until we obtained a view of the pleasant hill- sides where Porter lay with his reserves, while the other army- corps did the fighting, on the day of Antietam ; then turned to the right down a little stream, and past a dam, the waters of which glided still and shadowy under fringed banks ; and soon came in sight of the fields wdiere the great fight began. There they lay, over the farther bank of the Antietam, some green, some ploughed, the latter turning up yellow as ripe grain in the morning light. " We used to could drive all over this country where we pleased. The fences were laid down, and it was all trampled and cut up with the wagons, and soldiers, and artillery." But the fences had been replaced, and now Lewy was obliged to keep the open road. 'At a turn we came to a farm-house, near which were a number of dilapidated barns and other outbuildings, and some Did straw stacks. " It was a sight to behold, passing yer after HOSPITAL CEMETERY. 45 the battle ! " said Lewy Smith, shaking his liead sadly at the reminiscence. " All in and around these yer buildings, all around the hay-stacks, and under the fences, it was just noth- ino; but o;roanino;, wounded men ! " Crossing the yellow-flowing Antietam, we turned up the right bank, with its wooded shores on our right, and on our left a large cornfield containing not less than forty or fifty acres. " There was riijht smart o' corn all throuo;h yer time of the battle. Good for the armies, but not for the farmers. Come to a cornfield like this, they just turned their horses and cattle right into it, and let 'em eat." You fortunate farmers of the North and West, so proud and so careful of your well- tilled fields never yet broken into in this ruinous fashion, have you fully realized what war is ? Leavino; the course of the creek, and crossino; the fields where the fighting on our extreme right began, we reached a still and shady grove, beside which, fenced in from a field, Avas a little oblong burying-ground of something like half an acre. In the centre was a plain wooden monument con- structed of boards painted white ; the pedestal bearing this inscription : — " Let no man desecrate this burial-place of our dead; " And the side of the shaft, towards the fence, these words : " / am the resurrection and the life. He that helieveth in me^ though he loere dead, yet shall he live.''^ This was the hospital cemetery. The graves were close together in httle rows running across the narrow field. They were all overgrown with grass and weeds. Each was marked by a small rounded head-board, painted white, and bearing the name of the soldier sleeping below. Here is one out of the number : — Co. G. 12th Mass. Died Oct. 14th, 1862. 46 THE FIELD OF ANTIETAM. As I wrote down this name, the hens in the farm-yard neat by were cackUng jubilantly. The clouds broke also ; a shaft of sunlight fell upon the glistening foliage of the grove, and slanted down through its beautiful vistas. I looked up from the sad rows of patriot graves, and saw the earth around me, all around and above the silent mouldering bodies of the slain, smiling sw'eetly through her misty veil. For Nature will not mourn. Nature, serene, majestic, full of faith, makes haste to cover the wounds in the Earth's fair bosom, and to smile upon them. The graves in our hearts also, which we deemed forever desolate, she clothes with the tender verdure of reviv- ing hope before we are aware, and gilds them Avith the sun- shine of a new love and joy. Blessed be our provident mother for this sweet law, but for wdiich the homes in the land, bereft by these countless deaths in hospitals and on bloody fields, would lie draped in endless mourning. Near the monument, in the midst of the level burying-place, grew a loftily nodding poke-weed, the monarch of his ti'ibe. It w^as more like a tree than a weed. With its roots down amono- the graves, and its hundred hands stretched on high, it stood like another monument, holding up to heaven, for a sien, its berries of dark blood. Pursuing a road along the ridge in a southwesterly direc- tion, Lewy at length reined up his horse in another peaceful little grove. Without a word he pointed to the rotting knap- sacks and haversacks on the ground, and to the scarred trees. I knew the spot ; it was the boundary of the bloody " corn- field." We had approached from the side on which our boys advanced to that frightful conflict, driving the Rebels before them, and being di'iven back in turn, in horrible seesaw, until superior Northern pluck and endurance finally prevailed. In a field beside the grove we saw a man ploughing, with three horses abreast, and a young lad for escort. We noticed loose head-boards, overturned by .the plough, on the edge of the grove, and lying half imbedded in the fuiTows. This man was ploughing over graves ! Adjoining the field was the historic cornfield. I w^alked to the edge of it, and waited there for the man to turn his THE OLD PLOUGHMAN. 47 long slow furrow down tliat way. I sat upon the fence, near which was a trench filled with unnumbered Rebel dead. " A power of 'em in this yer field ! " said the ploughman, coming up and looking over as I questioned him. " A heap of Union soldiers too, layin' all about yer. I always skip a Union grave when I know it, but sometimes I don't see 'em, and I plough 'em up. Eight or ten thousand lays on this farm. Rebels and Union together." Finding him honest and communicative, I wished him to go over the ground with me. "I would willingly, stranger, but I must keep the team gon. I suggested that the boy was big enough to do that. " Wal, he kin. Plough round onct," — to the boy, — " or let 'em blow, 't ain't go'n' to hurt 'em none." So he concluded to accompany me. We got over into the " cornfield," late a hog-pasture, and presently stopped at a heap of whitening bones. " What 's this ? " I said. " This yer was a grave. The hogs have rooi=;d it up. I tol' the ol' man he ought n't to turn the hogs in yer, but he said he 'd no other place to put 'em, and he had to do it." I picked up a skull lying loose on the ground like a cobble- stone. It was that of a young man ; the teeth were all splendid and sound. How hideously they grinned at me ! and the eye- sockets were filled with dirt. He was a tall man too, if that long thigh-bone was his. Torn rags strewed the ground. The old ploughman picked up a fragment. "This yer was a Union soldier. You may know by the blue cloth. But then that ain't always a sign, for the Rebels got into om- uniform when they had a chance, and got killed in it too." I turned the skull in my hand, half regretting that I could not carry it away with me. My first shuddering aversion to the grim relic was soon past. I felt a strange curiosity to know who had been its hapless owner, carrying it safely 48 THE FIELD OF ANTIETAM. tlirougli twenty or more years of life to lose it here. Perhaps he was even then looking over my shoulder and smiling at it ; no longer a perishable mortal, but a spirit imperishable, having no more use for such clumsy physical mechanism. The fancy came so suddenly, and was for an instant so vivid, that I looked up, half expecting that my eyes would meet the mild benig- nant eyes of the soldier. And these words came into my mind : " It is sown a natural body, it is raised a spiritual body.'' Let him who has never thought seriously of life look at it through the vacant eye-sockets of a human skull. Then let him consider that he himself carries just such a thing around with him, useful here a little while, then to be cast aside. " Every face, however full, Padded round with flesh and fat, Is but modelled on a skull." Take the lesson to heart, O Vanity ! It is but a little time, at the lono-est, that the immortal soul thou art will animate this bone ; but the hour comes quickly when to have been a good soldier of the truth on any field, whether resounding with arms, or silent with the calm strong struggle of love and patience, and to have given thy life to the cause, will be sweeter to thee than the fatness of the earth and length of days. No, heroic soldier ! you I do not pity, though your mortal part lies here neglected and at the mercy of swine. The cornfield, and another field from which it was separated by a fence at the time of the battle, are now thrown together, forming a lot of about fifty acres. The upper part was dotted with little dry brown cocks of seed-clover. No hogs were on it at the time ; they had been turned out, to save the clover- seed, I presume, for that was of some consequence. We found plenty more bones and skulls of Union soldiers rooted up and exposed, as we ascended tlie ridge. Beside some lay their head-boards. I noted the names of a few: ■« Sergt. Mahaffey, Co. C, 9th Regt. P. R. C," for one. " The Rebs had all the fence down 'cept a strip by the pike," said the ploughman. " That was jist like a sifter. Some of the rails have been cut up and carried away for the bullet-holes." THE DUNKERS. 49 He showed me marks still remaining on the fence. Some of our soldiers liad cut their names upon it ; and on one post some pious Roman Catholic had carved the sacred initials : — " I. H. S." " I reckon that was a soldier's name too," said my honest ploughman. And so indeed it was, — Jesus Hominum Salvator. Beyond the pike, between it and the woods, was a narrow belt of newly plouglied ground. " You see them green spots over yon' covered with weeds ? Them are graves that I skipped." In the edge of the woods beyond lay two iinexploded shells which relic-hunters had not yet picked up. Whilst I was exploring the fields with my good-natured ploughman, LcAvy Smith brought his horse around by the roads. He was waiting for me on the pike. " The last time I drove by yer," he said, " there was a nigger ploughing in that field, and every time he came to a grave he would just reach over his plough, jerk up the head-board, and stick it down behind him again as he plouglied along ; and all the time he never stopped whistling his tune." We drove on to the Dunker church, sometimes called " the Schoolhouse," — a square, plain, whitewashed, one-story brick building, without steeple, situated in the edge of the woods. No one, from its appearance, would take it to be a church ; and I find that soldiers who fought here still speak of it as *' the Schoolhouse." " The Dunkers are a sect of plain people," said one of the old Dutch settlers. " They don't believe in any wanities. They don't believe in war and fighting;." But their church had got pretty seriously into the fight on that occasion. " It was well smashed to pieces ; all made like a riddle ; you could just look in and out where you pleased," said Lewy Smith. It had been patched up with brick and •whitewash, however, and the plain people, who " did not believe in wanities," once more held their quiet meetings there. I thought much of them as we rode on. A serious, unshaven 1 60 THE FIELD OF ANTIETAM. thrifty class of citizens, tliey know well how to get a living, and thej bear an excellent reputation for honest industry throughout the country. Their chief fault seems to be that they persist in killing one of man's divinest faculties, — as if the sweet and refining sense of beauty would have been given us but for a beneficent purpose. At the same time they do believe sincerely in solid worldly goods, — as if they too were not, after all, quite as much one of the " wanities " ! Think of it, my solemn long-bearded friend ; you buy land, lay out your dollar in perishable dust, or you expend it in the cultiva- tion of those gifts and graces which, if heaven is what I take it to be, you will find use for when you get there. Now which do you suppose will prove the better investment ? All of re- ligion does not consist in psalm-singing and sedate behavior. But I do wrong to criticise so worthy and unoffending a sect of Christians, who are no doubt nearer the kingdom than the most we call such ; and I merely set out to say this : while we are in the world, all its interests, all its great struggles, concern us. We cannot sit indifferent. Non-intervention is unknown to the awakened soul. Help the good cause we must, and resist the evil ; if we cannot fight, we can pray ; and to think of keeping out of the conflict that is raging around us is the vainest thing of all, as yonder well-riddled plain people's church amply testifies. As it was beginning to rain, Lewy Smith carried me on to Sharpsburg, and there left me. A more lonesome place even than Boonsboro' ; the battle alone renders it in the least inter- esting ; a tossed and broken sort of place, that looks as if the solid ground-swell of the earth had moved on and jostled it since the foundations were laid. As you go up and down the hilly streets, the pavements, composed of fragments of limestone slabs, thrust up such abrupt fangs and angles at you, that it is necessary to tread with exceeding caution. As Sharpsburg was in the thick of the fight, the battle-scars it still carries add to its dilapidated appearance. On the side of the town fronting the Federal line of battle, every house bears its marks ; and indeed I do not know that any altogether SHELTER FROM THE RAIN. 61 escaped. Many were well peppered with bullets, shot and shell. The thousand inhabitants of the place had mostly fled to the river, whei'e they would have been in a sad plight if McCleilan had followed up the Rebels on their defeat, and done his duty by them. Imagine a bent bow, with the string drawn. The bow is the river, and the string is the Confed- erate line after the battle. At the angle of the string is Sharps- burg ; and between the string and the bow were the fugitives. Fortunately for them, as for the enemy, McCleilan did 7iot do his duty. After dinner I started to walk to the bridge, known hence- forth and for all time as " Burnside's Bridge," just as the road his corps cut for itself through the forests over the mountain, on his way hither from the Sunday fight, is known to every- body as " Burnside's Road." A shower coming up by the way, I sought shelter under the porch of a stone house, situated on a rising bank near the edge of the town. I had scarcely mounted the steps when a woman appeared, and with cordial hospitality urged me to enter the sitting-room. Although the porch was the pleasanter place, — overlooking the hills and mountains on the east, and affording a comfortable wooden bench, where I had thought to sit and enjoy the rain, — I accepted her invitation, having found by experience that every dweller on a battle-field has somethino; interestino; to tell. She and her neighbors fled from their homes on Tuesday before the battle, and did not return until Friday. She, like nearly every person I talked with who had acted a similar part, was sorry she did not remain in the cellar of the house. " When we came back, all I could do was jist to set right down and cry." The house had been plundered, their pro- visions, and the household comforts they had been slowly getting together for years, had been swept away by the all- devouring armies. " Them that stayed at home did not lose anything ; but if the soldiers found a house deserted, that they robbed." I inquired which plundered the most, our men or the Rebels. 52 THE FIELD OF ANTIETAM. " That I can't say, stranger. The Rebels took ; but the Yankees took right smart. We left the house full, and wlien we got home we had n't a thing to eat. Some Avounded men had been fetched in, and they had got all the bedding that was left, and all our clothing had been torn up for bandages. It was a right hard time, stranger ! " — spoken earnestly and with tears. " I have n't got well over it yet. It killed my old father ; he overworked getting the fences up again, and it wore on him so he died within a year. We are jist getting things a little to rights again now, but the place a'n't what it was, and never will be again, in my day." She showed me, in an adjoining room, a looking-glass hanging within an inch or two of a large patched space in the wall. " That glass was hanging on that nail, jist as it hangs noAV, when a shell come in yer and smashed a bedstead to pieces for me on that side of the room, and the glass was n't so much as moved." Suspecting that I might be keeping her from lier work, I urged her to return to it, and found she had indeed quitted some important household task, because " it did n't seem right to leave a stranger sitting alone." I arose at once, on making that dis- covery, telling her I would rest under the porch until the rain was over. She appeared for a moment quite distressed, fearing lest the subtle law of politeness should somehow suffer from her neglect. This woman's sense of hospitality was very strong, her whole manner carrying Avith it an earnest desire to make me comfortable and keep me entertained while in her house. Although troubled about her kitchen affairs, she seemed far more anxious about her duty to me, — as if the accident of my being stopped by the rain at her gate had placed her under sacred obligations. At last she thought of a happy solution of . the difficulty. " I '11 get some pears and treat ye ! " I begged her not to take that trouble for me ; but she insisted, repeating with pleased eagerness, " Yes, I '11 get some pears and treat ye ! " She brought a dish of fruit, and afterwards sent two little BURNSIDE'S BRIDGE. 53 girls, her nieces, to keep me company while I ate. They were pretty, intelligent, well-dressed misses of ten and twelve ; the eldest of whom opened the conversation by saying, — " Right smart o' fruit cher." A phrase which I suspect every stranger might not have understood, notwithstanding her prettily persuasive smile. South of the Maryland and Pennsylvania line, and indeed in the southern counties of Pennsylvania, one ceases to hear of a plenty or a good deal; it is always a '''•lieap^^'' or ^'- 7'ight smart.'''' The word here, along the borders, is pronounced in various ways : here, rarely ; yer, commonly ; hyer, which is simply yer with an aspirate before it ; jer, when the preceding word ends with the sound of c?, and cher after a final t. " Rough road jer," is the southern for " Rough road here " ; " out cher," means, similai-ly, " out here " ; the final d and t blending with the y of yer, and forming j and ch, just as we hear " would jew " for " would you," and " can't chew " for " can't you," everywhere. The little girls played their hospitable part very charm- ingly, and I was sorry to leave them ; but the rain ceasing, I felt obliged to walk on. They took me to theii aunt, whom I wished to thank for her kindness. Finding that I had not filled my pockets with the pears, as she had invited me to do, she brought some grapes and gave me. I bore the purple bunches in my hand, and ate them as I walked away from the house. They were sweet as the remembered grace of hospitality. The bridge was a mile farther on. The road strikes the creek, and runs several rods along the right bank before cross- ing it. If the tourist is surprised at the strength of the posi- tions on South Mountain, from which the Rebels were dislodged, he will be no less amazed at the contemplation of Burnside's achievement here. Above the road as it approaches the bridge, and above the creek below the bridge, rises a high steep bank, like a bluff. To approach from the opposite side, exposed to a concentrated infantry and artillery fire flashing all along this crest, — to carry the bridge, and drive back the enemy from 64 THE FIELD OF ANTIETAM. their vantage-ground, — one would say was a feat for the heroes of the age of fable. But the truth is, though men are slow to receive it, there never was any age, called "of fable," or another, better than this, — none that ever produced a more heroic race of men. We have worshipped the past long enough ; it is time now to look a little into the merits of the present. Troy, and Greece, and Rome were admirable in their day, and the men of Israel did some doughty deeds ; but the men of New England, of the great Middle States, and of the vast North- West, what have they done ? The Homeric heroes and demigods are in no way superior, except in brag, to the hilarious lads of Illinois, or the more serious boys of Massa- chusetts. Of materials such as these the poet would have made a more resounding Iliad. That Burnside's command could ever have crossed this bridge, from the high banks on the other side to the steep banks on this, in the face of superior numbers pouring their deadly volleys upon them, that is what astonishes you ; and what grieves you is this : that reinforcements were not sent to enable him to hold what he gained. If Porter, who had the reserves, had been a man of right courage and patriotism, or anything but a pet of the commanding general, he would have gone into the fight when needed, — for reserves were not invented merely to be kept nice and choice, — and the results of that day would have been very different. I spent some hours about the bridge, the Antietam Creek singing all the while its liquid accompaniment to my thoughts. It sang the same song that day, but its peaceful music was drowned by the roar and clash of the conflict. I. sat down on a rock and watched a flock of buzzards perched on the limbs of a dead tree, looking melancholy, — resembling, to my mind, greedy camp-followers and army speculators, who remembered with pensive regret the spoils of the good old war-days. The bridge is narrow, affording space for only one vehicle at a time. It is built of stone, and rests on two solid hutments and two rounded piers. There are woods on both sides of the Stream. On the left bank they stand a Httle back from it ; ANTIETAM NATIONAL BURYING-GROUND. 55 on the right, they cover the side of the bluff below the bridge. The trees all along here were well scarred with shot. Half a mile below the bridge the creek makes a bold turn to the right, and doubles back upon itself, forming a loop, then sweeps away to the south, between a wooded hill on the west and a magnificent growth of willows massing their delicate green and drooping foliage along the low opposite shore. Returning to the village, I visited the spot chosen as a national cemetery for the slain. The ground had been pur- chased, but work upon it had not yet commenced. As Penn- sylvania gave the soil for the Gettysburg Cemetery, so Mary- land gives the soil for this ; while each State will defray its portion of future expenses. In the Antietam cemetery it is understood that the Rebel dead are to be included. Many object to this ; but I do not. Skeletons, rooted up by hogs, and blanching in the open fields, are a sight not becoming a country that calls itself Christian. Be they the bones of Pa- triots or Rebels, let them be carefully gathered up and decently interred without delay. The Antietam National Burying-Ground also adjoins an old town cemetery. It is situated on the right hand, at the sum- mit of the road, as you go up out of Sharpsburg towards Boonsboro'. Here let them rest together, they of the good cause, and they of the evil ; I shall be content. For neither was the one cause altogether good, nor was the other alto- gether bad : the holier being clouded by much ignorance and selfishness, and the darker one brightened here and there with glorious flashes of self-devotion. It was not, rightly speaking, these brothers that were at war. The conflict was waged between two great principles, — one looking towards liberty and human advancement, the other madly drawing the world back to barbarism and the dark ages. America was the chessboard on which the stupendous game was played, and those we name Patriots and Rebels were but as the pawns. Great was the day of Antietam. Three thousand of the enemy were buried on the field. We had two thousand killed, upwards of nine thousand four hundred wounded, and 56 THE FIELD OF ANTIETAM. more tlum a tliousand missing. Between the sweet dawn and tlie bloody dusk of that dread day there fell twenty-five THOUSAND MEN I Can the imagination conceive of such slaughter ? And, after all, the striking fact about Antietam is this, — that it was a great opportunity lost. The premature surren- der of Harper's Ferry, which set free the force besieging it, and enabled the enemy to outnumber us on the field, — for StoncAvall Jackson was as anxious to set into the fioht as Fitz John Porter was to keep out of it, — and the subsequent inertia of the General commanding the United States forces ; these two causes combined to save the Confederate army from an- nihilation. No such opportunity for crushing the Rebellion at a blow had been offered, nor was any such again offered, — not even at Gettysburg, for the enemy there had no coil- ing river in their rear to entangle them, and Ave had no fresh troops to launch upon them, — nor at any period afterwards, tintil Grant consummated that long-desired object ; God's good time having not yet come. BENNERHALLS. 67 CHAPTER VI. DOWN THE RIVER TO HARPER'S FERRY. Sharpsburg is not a promising place to spend the night in, and I determined to leave it that evening. In search of a private conveyance, I entered a confectioner's shop, and asked a young lady behind the counter if she knew any person who would take me to Harper's Ferry. " Yes ; Mr. Bennerhalls," she replied ; " I reckon ye can get him." She gave me particular directions for finding his house, and I went up one of the broken pavements " fanged with murder- ous stones," in search of him. To my surprise I was told that Mr. Bennerhalls did not live on that street ; further, that no person of that name was known in Sharpsburg. I returned to the confectioner's shop. " You said Mr. Bennerhalls ? " "Yes, sir; Mr. Bennerhalls, and Mr. Cra nerhalls, and Mr. Joneshalls ; I should think you might get one of them." I fancy the young lady must have seen a smile on my countenance just then. Bennerhalls, Cramerhalls, Joneshalls, — what outlandish cognomens were these ? Did half the family names in Sharpsburg rejoice in the termination halls ? '•^l^now Mr. Joneshalls," said the young lady, as I stood solving the doubt, probably with an amused expression which she mistook for sarcastic incredulity. " Joneshalls " I had never heard of. But I had heard of Jones. Thanks to that somewhat familiar name, I had found a clue to the mystery. " Jones AawZs," thought I, that is to say, Jones hauls people over the road in his wagon. And the first-mentioned individual was not Bennerhalls at all, but one Benner who hauled. S8 DOWN THE RIVER TO HARPER'S FERRY. I thanked the young lady for her courtesy, — and I am sure she must have thought me a very pleasant man, — and went to find Mr. Benner without the halls. No difficulty this time. He was sitting on a doorstep, wlmre he had perhaps heard me before inquiring up and down for Mr. Bennerhalls, and scratched his head over the odd patronymic. " Yes, I have hosses, and I haul sometimes, but I can't put one on 'em over that road to Harper's Ferry, stranger, no- how ! " I got no more satisfaction out of Cramer, and still less out of Jones, who informed me that not only he would not go, but he did n't believe there was a man in Sharpsburg that would. I returned to the tavern, and appealed to the landlord, a pleasant and very obliging man, although not so well versed as some in the art of keeping a hotel. To my surprise, after what Jones had told me, he said, " if I could find no one else to haul me, he would." At five p. M. we left Sharpsburg in an open buggy under a sky that threatened rain. Black clouds and thunder-gusts were all around us. The mountains were wonderful to behold the nearer slopes lying in shadow, sombre almost to blackness, while beyond, rendered all the more glorious by that contrast, rose the loveliest sun-smitten summits, basking in the peace of paradise. Beyond these still were black-capped peaks, about which played uncertain waves of light, belts and bars of softest indescribable colors, perpetually shifting, brightening, and van- ishing in mist. It was like a momentary glimpse of heaven through the stormy portals of the world. Then down came the deluging rack and enveloped all. f Through occasional spatters of rain, angrily spitting squalls, we whipped on. It was a fleet horse my friend drove. He was pleased to hear rae praise him. " That 's a North-Carolina horse. I brought him home with me." " You have been in the army then ? " And out came the interesting fact that I was riding with Captain Speaker of the First Maryland Cavalry, a man who bad seen service, and had things to tell. CAPTAIN SPEAKER'S NARRATIVE. 59 Everybody remembers, in connection with the shameful surrender of Harper's Ferry just before the battle of Antietam, the brilHant episode of twenty-two hundred Federal cavalry cutting their way out, and capturing a part of one of Long- street's trains on their escape. Captain Speaker was the leader of that expedition. " I was second lieutenant of the First Maryland Cavalry at the time. I knew Colonel Davis very well ; and when I heard Harper's Ferry was to be surrendered, I remarked to him that I would not be surrendered with it alive. He asked what I would do. ' Cut my way out,' said I. When he asked what I meant, I told him I believed I could not only get out myself, but that I could pilot out with safety any number of cavalry that would take the same risk and go with me. I had lived in the country all my hfe, and knew every part of it. Colonel Davis saw that I was in earnest, and knew what I was talking about. The idea just suited him, and he apphed to Colonel Miles for permission to put it into execution. Colonel Miles was not a man to think much of such projects, and he was inclined to laugh at it. ' Who is this Lieutenant Speaker,' said he, ' who is so courageous ? ' Colonel Davis said he knew me, and had confidence in my plan. ' It 's all talk,' said Miles ; ' put him to the test, and he '11 back down.' " ' Just try him,' said Davis. " So Miles wrote on a piece of paper, — " ' Lieutenant Speaker, will you take charge of a cavalry force and lead it through the enemy's lines ? ' " I just wrote under it, on the same piece of paper, ' Yes, with pleasure ; ' signed my name, and sent it back to him." At ten o'clock the same night they started. It was Sun- day, the 14th of September, the day of the battle of South Mountain. The party consisted of twenty-two hundred cavalry and a number of mounted civilians who took advantage of the expedition to escape from the town before it was sur- rendered. Lieutenant Speaker and Colonel Davis rode side by side at the head of the column. They crossed on the pon- toon bridge, which formed the military connection between 60 DOWN THE RIVER TO HARPER'S FERRY. Harper's Ferry and Maryland Heights, and turned up the road which runs between the canal and the Heiglits, riding at full charfje alono; the left bank of the Potomac. It was a Avild road ; the night was dark ; only the camp-fires on the moun- tain were visible ; and there was no sound but the swift clatter of thousands of galloping hoofs, and the solitary rush of the Potomac waters. Near a church, four miles from the Ferry, Speaker and Davis, who were riding ahead of the party, were challenged by the Rebel pickets. " Who goes there ? " " Friends to the guard." " What command ? " " Second Virginia Cavalry," said Colonel Davis, — which was true, the Second Virginia Uyiion Cavalry being of the party, while the Second Virginia Rebel Cavalry was also in the vicinity. " Who are you ? " " Louisiana Tigers." " All rio;ht. We are out scoutino;." " All right," said the pickets. The leaders rode back, formed their party at a short distance, gave the word, and charged. They went through the Rebel line like an express-train. A few shots wei'e fired at them by the astonished pickets, but they got through almost without loss. Three horses were killed and three men dismounted, but the latter escaped up the mountain side, and afterwards made their way safely into the Union lines. They galloped on to Sharpsburg, keeping the same road all the way by which Captain Speaker was now conveying me to the Ferry. The enemy held Sharpsburg. Fortunately in every street and by-road Speaker was at home. He called up a well-known Union citizen, from whom he obtained im- poi taut information. " The Rebels are in strong force on the Hagerstown Road. They have heavy batteries, too, posted on the Williamsport Pike." There was then but one thing to do. " Down with the fences and take to the fields," said the pilot of the party. CAPTAIN SPEAKER'S NARRATIVE. 61 This they accordingly did ; — tramp, tramp, in the darkness, by cross-roads and through fields and woods. " We struck the pike between Hagerstown and Williams- port about two o'clock. We came to a halt pretty quick, though, for there was a Rebel wagon-train several miles in length, passing along the pike. There were no fences ; and the woods were clear and beautiful for our purpose. Our line was formed along by the pike, extending some three-quarters of a mile. Then we charged. The first the guards and drivers knew, there were sabres at their heads ; and all they had to do was to tui'n their wagons right about and go with us. We captured over seventy wagons, all the rear of the train. They had to travel a little faster in the other direction than they had been going, so that some of the wagons broke down by the way; but the rest we got safely off." It was just daylight when they arrived at Greencastle and turned the wagons over to the Federal quartermaster there. " Then you should have seen each fellow tumble himself off his horse ! Remember, we had been fighting at the Ferry, and this was the third night we had had no sleep. Each man just took a turn of the bridle around his wrist, and dropped down on the pavement in the street, anywhere, and in three minutes was fast asleep. " Colonel Davis and I found a cellar-door, softer than stones, to lie on, and there we dropped. I w^as asleep as soon as my head struck the board. But it could n't have been five minutes before I was woke up by somebody pulling the bridle from my wrist. " ' What do you want ? ' " ' Want your horse ; want joxi ; want to give you some breakfast.' " I got my eyes open ; it was broad day then ; and it was a beautiful sight ! Everybody in Greencastle was crowding to see the cavalry fellows that had cut their way through the Rebel lines. The Colonel and I were surrounded with ladies bringing us breakfast. I tell you, it was beautiful ! " And the Captain's eyes glistened at the remembrance. " We were hungry enough ! But I said, ' Just give my horse 62 DOWN THE RIVER TO HARPER'S FERRY.' here soinetliiiig to cat first; then I'll eat.' ' Certainl;y.' And thej were going to take him away from me, to some stable. ' Never mind about that,' said I. ' Just bring your oats and empty them down here anywhere ; he 's xised to eating oti' the ground.' The oats were not slow coming ; and Colonel Davis and I and our horses had breakfast together, with the ladies looking on. I tell you, it was beautiful ! " It is eleven miles from Sharpsburg to Harper's Ferry. After striking the Potomac, we continued on down its left bank, with the canal between us and the river on one side, and jNIaryland Heights, rising even more and more rugged and abrupt, on the other ; until, as we approached the bridge at the Ferry, we looked up through the stormy dusk at mountain crags rising precipitous several hundred feet above our heads. Crossing the new iron bridge, near the ruins of the old one destroyed by the Rebels, Captain Speaker landed me near the end of it on the Virginia side. " Where is the hotel ? " 1 asked, looking round with some dismay at the dismal prospect. "That is it, the only hotel at Harper's Ferry now," — showing me a new, unpainted, four-story wooden building, which looked more like soldiers' barracks than a hotel. There was not a window-blind or shutter to be seen. The main entrance from the street was through a bar-room where merry men were clicking glasses, and sucking dark-colored stuff through straws. And this was a " first-class hotel kept on the European plan." I mention it as one of the results of war, — as an illustration of the mushroom style of building which springs up in the track of desolation, to fill temporarily the place of the old that has been swept away and of the better growth to come. One thing, however, consoled me. The hotel stood on the banks of the Potomac, and I thought if I could get a room overlooking the river and commanding a view of the crags opposite, all would be well ; for often the mere sight of a mountain and a stream proves a solace for saddest things. After supper a " room " was shown me, wdiich turned out to be a mere bin to stow guests in. There was no paper on SLEEP UNDER DIFFICULTIES. 63 tfto walls, no carpet on the rough board floor, and not so much as a nail to hang a hat on. The bed was furnished with sheets which came down just below a man's knees, and a mattress which had the appearance of being stuffed with sliingles. Finding it impossible, by dint of shouting and pounding, (for there was no bell,) or even by visiting the office, to bring a servant to my assistance, I went on a marauding expedition through the unocciapied rooms, and carried off a chair, a dress- ing-table, and another bed entire. This I placed on my mattress, hoping thereby to improve the feeling of it, — a fruit- less experiment, however : it was only adding a few more shingles. Luckily I had a shawl with me. Never, — let me caution thee, O fellow-traveller, — never set out on a long journey without a good stout shawl. Such an appendage answers many purposes : a garment on a raw and gusty day, a blanket by night, a cushion for the seat, a pillow for the head, — to these and many like comfortable uses it is speedily apphed by its grateful possessor. Mine helped to soften the asperi- ties of my bed that night, and the next day served as a window- curtain. Yet no devices availed to render the Shenandoah House a place favorable to sleep. On the river-side, close by the door, ran the track of the Baltimore and Ohio Railroad. How often during the night the trains passed I cannot now compute ; each approaching and departing with clatter and clang, and shouts of men and bell-ringing and sudden glares of light, and the voice of the steam-Avhistle projecting its shrill shi'iek into the ear of horrified night, and setting the giant mountains to tossino; and retossing; the echo like a ball. The next morning I was up at daM-n refreshing my eyesigh.t with the natural beauties of the place. It was hard to believe that those beauties had been lying latent around me during all the long, wearisome night. But so it is ever ; we see so little of God's great plan ! The dull life we live, close and dark and narrow as it seems, is suiTounded by invisible reali- ties, waiting only for the rays of a spiritual dawn to light them np into grandeur and glory. 64 AROUND HARPER'S FERRY. CHAPTER VII. AROUND HARPER'S FERRY. At Harper's Ferry the Potomac and Shenandoah unite their waters and flow tlu'ough an enormous gap in the Blue Ridge. The angle of land thus formed is a sort of promontory ; around the base of which, just where the rivers meet, the curious little old town is built. Higher up the promontory lie Bolivar Heights. On the north, just across the Potomac from the Ferry, rise Maryland Heights ; Avhile on the east, across the Shenandoah, are Loudon Heights, an equally precipitous and lofty crag. With sublime rocky fronts these two mountains stand oazincr at each other across the river which has evi- dently forced its way through them here. Just where the streams are united the once happily wedded mountains are divorced. No doubt there Was once a stupendous cataract here, pouring its shining sheet towards the morning sun, from a vast inland sea ; for the tourist still finds, far up the steep face of the mountains, dimples which in past ages ceaselessly whirling water-eddies made. In some of these scooped places sand and smooth-worn pebbles still remain. But the moun- tain-wall has long since been sundered, and the inland sea drained off; the river forcing a way not only for itself but for the turnpike, railroad, and canal, fore-ordained in the begin- ning to appear in the ripeness of time and follow the river's course. Thus the town, as you perceive, is situated in the midst of scenery which should make it a favorite place of summer re- sort. The cliffs are picturesquely tufted, and tasselled, and draped with foliage, boughs of trees, and festoons of wild vines, through which here and there upshoot the perpendicular col- MARYLAND HEIGHTS. 65 « dmns of some bold crag, softened into beauty by the many- colored lichens that stud its sides. I count an evening walk under Loudon Heights, with the broad, sprawling river hoarsely babbling over its rocky bed on one side, and the still precipices soaring to heaven on the other, — and the narrow stony road cut round their base lying before me, untrodden at that hour by any human foot save my own, — I count that lonely walk amid the cool, dewy scents stealing out of the un- dergrowth, and the colors of the evening sky gilding the chffs, as one of the pleasantest of my life. What is there, as you look up at those soaring summits and the low clouds sailing silently over them, that fills the heart so full ? The morning after my arrival I climbed Maryland Heights by the winding military road which owes its existence to the war. I have seen nothing since the view from Mount Wash- ington to be compared with the panorama which unrolled itself around me as I ascended. Pictures of two States were there, indescribably tinted in the early morning light, — beautiful Maryland, still more beautiful Virginia, with the green Poto- mac valley marking the boundary between. On the Mary- land side were the little valleys of the Monocacy and the Antietam. Opposite lay the valley of the Shenandoah, dotted with trees, its green fields spotted with the darker green of groves, a vast tract stretching away into a realm of hazy light, belted with sun and mist, and bounded by faint outlines of mountains so soft they seemed built of ether but a little more condensed than the blue of the sky. Yet it was war and not beauty which led man to these heights. The timber which once covered them was cut away when the forts were constructed, in order to afford free rano-e for the guns ; and a thick undergrowth now takes its place. There are strong works on the summit, the sight of which kindles anew one's indignation at the imbecihty which sur- rendered them, with Harper's Ferry and a small army, at a time when such an act was sufficient to prolong the war per- haps for years. It is a steep mile and more by the road from the Ferry to 5 66 AROUND HARPER'S FERRY. the top of the cliffs : a mile which richly repays the travel. Yet one need not 2:0 so far nor climb so hio-h to see the beau- ties of the place. Wliichever way you turn, river, or rock, or wild woods charm the eye. The Potomac comes down from its verdant bowers gurgling among its innumerable rocky islets. On one side is the canal, on the other the race which feeds the government works, each tumbling its yeasty super- flux over waste-weir walls into the river. With the noise of those snowy cascades sweetly blends the note of the boatman's bugle approaching the locks. The eye ranges from the river to the crags a thousand feet above, and all along the moun- tain side, gracefully adorned with sparse timber, feathery boughs and trees loaded down with vines, and is never weary of the picture. At evening, you sit watching the sunset colors fade, until the softened gray and dusky-brown tints of the cliffs deepen into darkness, and the moon comes out and silvers them. But while the region presents such features of beauty and grandeur, the town is the reverse of agreeable. It is said to have been a pleasant and picturesque place formerly. The streets were well graded, and the hill-sides above were graced with terraces and trees. But war has changed all. Freshets tear down the centre of the streets, and the dreary hill-sides pre- sent only ragged growths of weeds. The town itself lies half in ruins. The government works were duly destroyed by the Rebels ; of the extensive buildings which comprised the armory, rolhng-mills, foundry, and machine-shops, you see but little more than the burnt-out, empty shells. Of the bridge across the Shenandoah only the ruined piers are left ; still less re- mains of the old bridge over the Potomac. And all about the town are rubbish, and filth, and stench. Almost alone of the government buildings, John Brown's " Engine-house " has escaped destruction. It has come out of the ordeal of war terribly bruised and battered, it is true, its windows blackened and patched like the eyes of a pugilist ; but there it still stands, with its brown brick walls and little wooden belfry, like a monument which no Rebel hands were JOHN BROWN. 07 permitted to demolish. It is now used as a storehouse for arms. The first time I visited this scene of the first blood shed in the great civil war, which, although so few dreamed of it, was even then beginning, — for John Brown's flaming deed was as a torch flung into the ready-heaped combustibles of the rebellion, — while I stood viewing the spot with an interest which must have betrayed itself, a genial old gentleman, com- ing out of the government repair-shop close by, accosted me. We soon fell into conversation, and he told me the story of John Brown at Harper's Ferry. " So they took the old man and hung him ; and all the time the men that did it were plotting treason and murder by the wholesale. They did it in a hurry, because if they delayed, thev would n't have been able to hana; him at all. A stronc: current of public feeling was turning in his favor. Such a sacrifice of himself set many to thinking on the subject who never thought before ; many who had to acknowledge in their hearts that slavery was wrong and that old John Brown was right. I speak what I know, for I was here at the time. I have lived in Harper's Fei'ry fifteen years. I was born and bred in a slave State, but I never let my love of the institu- tion blind me to everything else. Slavery has been the curse of this country, and she is now beginning to bless the day she was delivered from it." " Are there many people here who think as you do ? " " Enough to carry the day at the polls. The most of them are coming round to right views of negro suffrage, too. That is the only justice for the blacks, and it is the only safety for us. The idea of allowing the loyal colored population to be represented by the whites, the most of whom were traitors, — of letting a Rebel just out of the Confederate army vote, and telling a colored man just out of the Union army that he has no vote, — the idea is so perfectly absurd that the Rebels them- selves must acknowledge it." I was hardly less interested in the conversation of an intel- ligent colored waiter at the hotel. He had formerly been held 68 AROUND HARPER'S FERRY. as a slave in the vicinity of Staunton. At the close of the war he came to the Fei'ry to find employment. "There was n't much chance for me up there. Besides, I came near losing my life before I got away. You see, the masters, soon as they found out they could n't keep their slaves, began to treat them about as bad as could be. Then, because I made use of this remark, that I did n't think we colored folks ought to be blamed for what was n't our fault, for we did n't make the war, and neither did we declare ourselves free, — just because I said that, not in a saucy way, but as I say it to you now, one man put a pistol to my head, and was going to shoot me. I got away from him, and left. A great many came away at the same time, for it was n't possible for us to stay there. " Now tell me candidly," said I, " how the colored people I themselves behaved." " Well, just tolerable. They were like a bird let out of a cage. You know how a bird that has been long in a cage will act when the door is opened ; he makes a curious flutter- ing for a little while. It was just so with the colored people. They did n't know at first what to do with themselves. But they got sobered pretty soon, and they are behaving very decent now." Harper's Ferry atfords a striking illustration of the folly of secession. The government works here gave subsistence to several hundred souls, and were the life of the place. The attempt to overturn the government failed ; but the govern- ment works, together with their own prosperity, the mad fa- natics of Harper's Ferry succeeded easily enough in destroying. " The place never will be anything again," said Mr. B., of the repair-shop, " unless the government decides to rebuild the armory, — and it is doubtful if that is ever done." Yet, with the grandeur of its scenery, the tremendous water- power afforded by its two rushing rivers, and the natural ad- vantage it enjoys as the key to the fertile Shenandoah Vafley, Harper's Ferry, redeemed from slavery, and opened to North- ern enterprise, should become a beautiful and busy town. FELLOW-PASSENGERS. 69 CHAPTER VIII. A TRIP TO CHARLESTOWN. Or E morning I took the train up the Valley to Charlestown, distant from Harper's Ferry eight miles. The railroad was still in the hands of the government. 'There were military guards on the platforms, and about an equal mixture of Loyalists and Rebels within the cars. Fur- loughed soldiers, returning to their regiments at Winchester or Staunton, occupied seats with Confederate officers just out of their uniforms. The strong, dark, defiant, self-satisfied face typical of the second-rate " chivalry," and the good-natured, shrewd, inquisitive physiognomy of the Yankee speculator going to look at Southern lands, were to be seen side by side, in curious contrast. There also rode the well-dressed wealthy planter, who had been to Washington to solicit pardon for his treasonable acts, and the humble freedman returning to the home from which he had been driven by violence, when the war closed and left him free. Mothers and daughters of the first families of Virginia sat serene and uncomplaining in the atmosphere of mothers and daughters of the despised race, late their slaves or their neighbors', but now citizens like them- selves, free to go and come, and as clearly entitled to places in the government train as the proudest dames of the land. We passed through a region of country stamped all over by the devastating heel of war. For miles not a fence or cultivated field was visible. " It is just like this all the way up the Shenandoah Valley,'" said a gentleman at my side, a Union man from Winchester. ** The wealthiest people with us are now the poorest. With hundreds of acres they can't raise a dollar. Their slaves have 70 A TRIP TO CHARLESTOWN. left them, and tliey have no money, even if they have the dis- position, to hire the freed people." I suggested that farms, under such circumstances, should be for sale at low rates. " They should be ; but your Southern aristocrat is a mono- maniac on tyhe subject of owning land. He will part with his acres about as willingly as he will part with his life. If the Valley had not been the best part of Virginia, it would long ago have been spoiled by the ruinous system of agriculture in use here. Instead of tilling thoroughly a small farm, a man fancies he is doing a wise thing by half tilling a large one. Slave labor is always slovenly and unprofitable. But everything is being revolutionized now. Northern men and northern methods are coming into this Valley as sure as water runs dowji- liill. It is the greatest corn, wheat, and grass country in tne world. The only objection to it is that in spots the limestone crops out a good deal. There was scarcely anything raised this season except grass ; you could see hundreds of acres of that waving breast-high without a fence," At the end of a long hour's ride we arrived at Charlestown, chiefly interesting to me as the place of John Brown's martyr- dom. We alighted from the train on the edge of boundless unfenced fields, into whose melancholy solitudes the desolate streets emptied themselves — rivers to that ocean of weeds. The town resembled to my eye some unprotected female sitting sorrowful on the wayside, in tattered and faded apparel, with unkempt tresses fallen negligently about features which might once have been attractive. On the steps of a boarding-house I found an acquaintance whose countenance gleamed with pleasure " at sight," as he said, " of a single loyal face in that nest of secession." He had been two or three days in the place, waiting for luggage which had been miscarried. " They are all Rebels here, — all Rebels ! " he exclaimed, as he took his cane and walked with me. " They are a pitiably poverty-stricken set ; there is no money in the place, and ' scarcely anything to eat. We have for breakfast salt-fish. SCENE OF JOHN BROWN'S TRIAL. 71 fried potatoes, and treason. Fried potatoes, treason, and salt- fish for dinner. At supper the fare is slightly varied, and we have treason, salt-fish, fried potatoes, and a little more treason. My landlady's daughter is Southern fire incarnate ; and she illustrates Southern politeness by abusing Northern people and the government from morning till night, for my especial edifi- cation. Sometimes I venture to answer her, when she flies at me, figuratively speaking, like a cat. The women are not the only out-spoken Rebels, although they are the worst. The men don't hesitate to declare their sentiments, in season and out of season." My friend concluded with this figure : " The war-feeling here is like a burning bush wath a wet blanket wrapped around it. Looked at from the outside, the fire seems quenched. But just peep under the blanket, and there it is, all alive, and eating, eating in. The wet blanket is the pres- ent government policy ; and every act of conciliation shown the Rebels is just letting in so much air to feed the fire." A short walk up into the centre of the town took us to the scene of John Brown's trial. It was a consolation to see that the jail had been laid in ashes, and that the court-house, where that mockery of justice was performed, was a rum abandoned to rats and toads. Four massy white brick pillars, still standing, supported a riddled roof, through which God's blue sky and gracious sunshine smiled. The main portion of the building had been literally torn to pieces. In the floorless hall of justice rank weeds were growing. Names of Union soldiers were scrawled along the walls. No torch had been applied to the wood-work, but the work of destruction had been performed by the hands of hilarious soldier-boys ripping up floors and pulling down laths and joists to the tune of " John Brown," — the swelling melody of the song, and the accom- paniment of crashing partitions, reminding the citizens, who thought to have destroyed the old hero, that his soul was marching on. It was also a consolation to know that the court-house and jail would probably never be rebuilt, the county-seat having been removed from Charlestown to Shepherdstown — "for- 72 A TRIP TO CHARLESTOWN. ever," say the resolute loyal citizens of Jefferson County, who refuse to vote it back again. As we were taking comfort, reflecting how unexpectedly at last justice had been done in that court-house, the towns- people passed on the sidewalk, " daughters and sons of beauty," for they were mostly a fine-looking, spirited class ; one of whom, at a question which I put to him, stopped quite willingly and talked with us. I have seldom seen a handsomer young face, a steadier eye, or more decided poise and aplomb; neither have I ever seen the outward garment of courtesy so plumply filled out with the spirit of arrogance. His brief replies, spoken with a pleasant countenance, yet with short, sharp, downward inflections, were like pistol-shots. Very evidently the death of John Brown, and the war that came swooping down in the old man's path to avenge him, and to accomplish the work wherein he failed, were not pleasing subjects to this young southern blood. And no wonder. His coat had an empty sleeve. The arm which should liave been there had been lost fighting against his country. His almost savage answers did not move me : but all the while I looked with compassion at his fine young face, and that pendent idle sleeve. He had fought against his country ; his country had won ; and he was of those who had lost, not arras and legs only, but all they had been madly fighting for, and more, — prosperity, prestige, power. His beautiful South was devas- tated, and her soil drenched with the best blood of her young men. Whether regarded as a crime or a virtue, the folly of making war upon the mighty North was now demonstrated, and the despised Yankees had proved conquerors of the chiv- alry of the South. " Well may your thoughts be bitter," my heart said, as I thanked him for his information. To my surprise he appeared mollified, his answers losing their explosive quality and sharp downward inflection. He even seemed inclined to continue the conversation ; and as we passed on, we left him on the sidewalk looking after us wistfully, as if the spirit working within him had still some word to say different from any he had yet spoken. What his JOHN BROWN. 73 secret thoughts were, standing there with his danghng sleeve, it would be interesting to know. Walking on through the town, we came to other barren and open fields on the farther side. Here we engaged a bright young colored girl to guide us to the spot where John Brown's gallows stood. She led us into the wilderness of weeds, waist- high to her as she tramped on, parting them before her with her hands. The country all around us lay utterly desolate, without enclosures, and without cultivation. We seemed to be striking out into the rolling prairies of the West, except that these fields of ripening and fading weeds had not the sum- mer freshness of the prairie-grass. A few scattering groves skirted them ; and here and there a fenceless road drew its winding, dusty line away over the arid hills. " This is about where it was," said the girl, after searching some time among the tall weeds. " Nobody knows now just where the gallows stood. There was a tree here, but that has been cut down and carried away, stump and roots and all, by folks that wanted something to remember John Brown by. Every soldier took a piece of it, if 't was only a little chip." So widely and deeply had the dying old hero im- pressed his spirit upon his countrymen ; affording the last great illustration of the power of Truth to render even the gallows venerable, and to glorify an ignominious death. I stood long on the spot the girl pointed out to us, amid the gracefully drooping golden-rods, and looked at the same sky old John Brown looked his last upon, and the same groves, and the distant Blue Ridge, the sight of whose cerulean sum- mits, clad in Sabbath tranquillity and softest heavenly light, must have conveyed a sweet assurance to his soul. Then I turned and looked at the town, out of which flocked the curious crowds to witness his death. Over the heads of the spectators, over the heads of the soldiery surrounding him, his eye ranged until arrested by one strangely prominent object. There it still stands on the outskirts of the town, between it and the fields, — a church, pointing its silent finger to heaven, and recalling to the earnest heart those texts of Scripture from 74 A TRIP TO CHARLESTOWN. which John Brown drew his inspiration, and for the truth of which he wilhngly gave his hfe. I had the curiosity to stop at this church on our way back to the town. The hand of ruin had smitten it. Only the Lrick walls and zinc-covered spire remained uninjured. The belfry had been broken open, the windows demolished. The doors were gone. Within, you saw a hollow thing, symbolical. Two huge naked beams extended from end to end of the empty walls, which were scribbled over with soldiers' names, and with patriotic mottoes interesting for proud Virginians to read. The floors had been torn up and consumed in cooking soldiers' rations ; and the foul and trampled interior showed plainly what use it had served. The church, which overlooked John Brown's martyrdom, and under whose roof his execu- tioners assembled afterwards to worship, not the God of the poor and the oppressed, but the God of the slaveholder and the aristocrat, had been converted into a stable. CITY OF WASHINGTON. "5 CHAPTER IX. A SCENE AT THE WHITE HOUSE. Late in the evening of the twenty-ninth of August I reached Washington. Nearly every reader, I suppose, is famihar with descriptions of the national capital; — its superb situation on the left bank of the Potomac ; the broad streets, the still more spacious avenues crossing them diagonally, and the sweeping undula- tions of the plain on which it is built, giving to the city its " magnificent distances " ; and those grand public buildings of which any country might be proud, — the Capitol especially, with its cloudlike whiteness and beauty, which would be as imposing as it is elegant, were it not that its windows are too many and too small. The manner in which the streets are built up, with here and there a fine residence surrounded by buildings of an in- ferior character, often with mere huts adjacent, and many an open space, giving to the metropolis an accidental and heteroge- neous character, — the dust in summer, the mud in winter, the fetor, the rubbish, the garbage ; and the corresponding charac- ter of the population, the most heterogeneous to be found in any American city, comprising all classes strangely mixed and fluctuating, the highest beside the lowest, the grandest and broadest human traits jostled by the meanest and foulest, — one half the people preying upon the other half, which preys upon the government ; — all this has been too often outlined by others to be dwelt upon by me. I noticed one novel feature in the city, however. At the hotel where I stopped, at the Attorney-General's office which I had occasion to visit, and again at the White House, where 76 A SCENE AT THE WHITE HOUSE. I went to call on the President's military secretary, I met, repeatedly, throngs of the same or similar strange faces. It happened to be one of the President's reception days ; and the east room, the staircases, the lower and npper halls of the Wliite House, were crowded. The upper hall especially, and the ladies' parlor adjacent to the President's room, were densely tlu'onged. Some were walking to and fro, singly or in pairs ; some were conversing in groups ; others were loung- mg on chairs, tables, window-seats, or whatever offered a sup- port to limbs weary of long waiting. One was paring his nails ; another was fanning himself with his hat ; a third was asleep, with his head resting much cramped in a corner of the walls ; a fourth was sitting in a window, spitting tobacco-juice at an urn three yards off. When he took pains, he hit the urn with remarkable precision, showing long and careful prac- tice.. But he did not always take pains, for the extreme heat and closeness of the apartments were not favorable to exer- tion ; and, indeed, what was the use of aiming always at the urn, wdien nearly every man was chewing tobacco as indus- triously as he, and generally spitting on the floors, — which had already become the most convincing argument against the habit of tobacco-chewing of which it is possible for the nause- ated imagination to conceive. Faces of old men and young men were there, — some weary and anxious, a few persistently jocose, and nearly all betraying the unmistakable Southern type. It was, on the whole, a well- dressed crowd, for one so abominably filthy. "Nineteen out of twenty of all these people," I was told by the President's secretary, " are pardon-seeking Rebels. The most of them are twenty-thousand-dollar men, anxious to save their estates from confiscation." As the President's doors were expected soon to be opened, and as I wished to observe his manner of dealing with those men, I remained after finishing my business with the secre- tary, and mingled with the crowd. The fumes of heated bodies, in the ill-ventilated lialls, were far from agreeable; and as the time dragged heavily, and the doors of the Presi- PARDON-SEEKERS. 77 dent's room continued closed, except when some favored indi- vidual, who had sent in his card, perhaps hours before, was admitted, I was more than once on the point of abandoning my object for a breath of fresh out-door air. The conversation of my Southern friends, however, proved sufficiently interesting to detain me. One gay and jaunty old man was particularly diverting in his remarks. He laughed at the melancholy ones for their long faces, pretending that he could tell by each man's looks which clause of the excep- tions, in the President's amnesty proclamation, his case came under. " You were a civil officer under the Confederate govern- ment. Am I right ? Of course I am. Your face shows it. My other friend here comes under No. 3, — he was an officer in the army. That sad old gentleman yonder, with a stand- ing collar, looks to me like one of those who left their homes within the jurisdiction of the United States to aid the Rebellion. He 's a number ten-er. And I reckon we are all thirteen-ers," — that is to say, persons of the thirteenth excepted class, the value of whose taxable property exceeded twenty thousand dollars. " Well, which clause do you come under ? " asked one. " I am happy to say, I come under three different clauses. Mine 's a particularly beautiful case. I 've been here every day for a week waiting on the President, and I expect to have the pleasure of standing at this door many a day to come. Take example by me, and never despair." And the merry old man frisked away, with his cap slightly on one side, cov- ering gray hairs. His gay spirits, in that not very hilarious throng, attracted a good deal of attention : but his was not the mirth of an inwardly happy mind. " You are not a Southern man ? " said one, singling me out. " No," said I ; "I am a Yankee." "You are not after a pardon, then. Lucky for you! " " What have you done to be pardoned for ? " I asked. " I am worth over twenty thousand dollars ; that's my dif- ficulty." 78 A SCENE AT THE WHITE HOUSE. "And you aided the Rebellion ? " "Of course," — laughing. "Look here!" — his manner changed, and his bright daik eye looked at me keenly, — " what do you Northerners, you Massachusetts men particularly, ex- pect to do now with the niggers ? " " We intend to make uselul and industrious citizens of them." " You can't ! " " You never can do that ! " " That 's an absurdity ! " exclaimed three or four voices ; and immediately I found myself surrounded by a group eager to discuss that question. " The nigger, once he 's free, won't work ! " " No," said another ; " he '11 steal, but he won't work." " I pity the poor niggers, after what you 've done for him," said a third. " They can't take care of themselves ; they '11 starve before they '11 work, unless driven to it ; and in a little while they '11 be exterminated, just like the Indians." "I don't think so," said I. "The negro is very much like the rest of us, in many respects. He won't work unless he is obliged to. Neither will you. So don't blame him. But when he finds work a necessity, that will drive him to it more surely than any master." " You Northerners know nothing of the negro ; you should see him on our plantations ! " "I intend to do so. In the mean time you should see him in our Northern cities, where he takes care of himself very well, supports his family, and proves an average good citizen. You should look into the affairs of the Freedmen's Bureau, here in Washington. There are in this city and its vicinity upwards of thirty thousand colored people. The majority have been suddenly swept into the department from their homes by the chances of war. You would consequently expect to find a vast number of paupers among them. But, on the contrary, nearly all are industrious and self-supporting ; only about three hundred of the number receiving partial support from the government. Now take my advice : give your negro^ a chance, and see what they will do." APPEARANCE OF THE PRESIDENT. 79 " "We do give them all the chance they can have. And it 's for our interest to induce them to work. We are de- pendent on labor ; we are going to ruin as fast as possible for want of it. In the course of eight or ten years, maybe, they will begin to find out that everything in creation don't be- long to them now they are free, and that they can't live by stealing. But by that time, where will we be ? Where will the negro be ? " Of these men, one was from Georgia, one from North Caro- lina, and others from Florida and Virginia ; yet they all con- curred in the opinion, which no argument could shake, that the freedmen would die, but not work. Our conversation was interrupted by the opening of the President's room. A strong tide instantly set towards it, re- sulting in a violent jam at the door. I was carried in by the crowd, but got out of it as soon as possible, and placed myself in a corner where I could observe the proceedings of the re- ception. President Johnson was standing behind a barrier which ex- tended the whole length of the room, separating him from the crowd. One by one they were admitted to him ; each man presenting his card as he passed the barrier. Those who were Avithout cards were refused admission, until they had pro- vided themselves with those little conveniences at a desk in the hall. I should scarcely have recognized the President from any of his published pictures. He appeared to me a man rather below the medium height, sufficiently stout, with a massy, well-developed head, strong features, dark, iron-gray hair, a thick, dark complexion, deep-sunk eyes, with a peculiarly wrinkled, care-worn look about them, and a weary expression generally. His voice was mild and subdued, and his manner kindly. He shook hands with none. To each applicant for pardon he put a question or two, sometimes only one, and dispatched him, with a word of promise or advice. No one was permitted to occupy more than a minute or two of his time, while some were disposed of in as many seconds. On 80 A SCENE AT THE WHITE HOUSE. the whole, it was an interesting but sad scene ; and I still carry in my memory the President's weary look, and the dis- appointed faces of the applicants, who, after long waiting, and perhaps going through with this same ceremony day after day, received no intimation that the object of their hopes was near its accomplishment. ON TO MANASSAS. 81 CHAPTER X. BULL RUN. Taking the train at Washington, and crossing the long rail- road bridge which spans the Potomac, I entered again a portion of Virginia rendered celebrated and desolate by war. Running down to Alexandria, and making a short stop there, we rattled on towards Manassas. All the names throuorli- out that region are historical, stamped and re-stamped upon the memory of America by the burning brand of war. The brakeman bawls in at the door of the car words which start you with a thrill of recollection. The mind goes back through four fiery years of conflict to the campaign of '61, until it grows bewildered, in doubt whether that contest or this journey is unreal, — for surely one must be a dream I That first season of disaster and dismay, which associated the names of Fairfax Court House, Centreville, Bull Run, Manassas, with something infinitely horrible and fatal, had passed away like a cloud ; the storm of the subsequent year, still more terrible, except that we had grown accustomed to such, had also passed, dissolving in thin vapor of history ; and one would never have guessed that such things had been, but for the marks of the wrath of heaven, which had left the country scathed as with hailstones and coals of fire. Yes, those skirmishes and dire contests were realities ; and now this quiet journey, this commonplace mode of travel into what was then the " enemy's country," with hot-blooded Vir- ginians (now looking cool enough) sitting upon the seats next us, and conversing tamely and even pleasantly with us when we accosted them, — no murderous masked batteries in front, no guerrillas in the woods waiting to attack the train ; in short, 6 82 BULL RUN. no clanger threatening but the vulgar one of railroad disasters, of late become so common ; this too was a reality no less wonderful, contrasted with the late rampant days of Rebel defiance. From Alexandria to Manassas Junction it is twenty-seven miles. Through all that distance we saw no signs of human industry, save here and there a sickly, half-cultivated cornfield, Avhich looked as if it had been put in late, and left to pine in solitude. There were a few wood-lots still left standing ; but the country for the most part consisted of fenceless fields aban- doned to weeds, stump-lots, and undergrowths. " Manassas Junction ! " announced the brakeman ; and we alighted. A more forbidding locality can scarcely be imagined. I believe there were a number of houses and shops there before the war, but they were destroyed, and two or three rum- shanties had lately sprung up in their place. A row of black bottles, ranged on a shelf under a rudely constructed shed, were the first signs I saw of a reviving civilization. Near bv a new tavern was building, of so fragile and thin a shell, it seemed as if the first high wind must blow it down. I also noticed some negroes diggino; a well : for such are the needs of an advancing civilization : first rum, then a little water to put into it. All around was a desolate plain, slightly relieved from its dreary monotony by two or three Rebel forts overgrown with weeds. A tall young member of the Western press accompanied me. I went to a stable to secure a conveyance to the battle-field ; and, returning, found him seated on the steps of one of the " Refreshment Saloons," engaged in lively conversation with a red-faced and excitable young stranger. The latter was speaking boastingly of " our army." " Which army do you mean ? for there were two, you know," said my friend. " I mean the Confederate army, the best and bravest army tliat ever was ! " said he of the red face, emphatically. " It seems to me," remarked my friend, " the best and bravest army that ever was got pretty badly whipped." REBEL TALK. 83 " The Confederate army never was whipped ! We were overpowered." " I see you Southern gentlemen have a new word. With us, when a man goes into a fight and comes out second best, the condition he is in is vulgarly called wMppedJ'^ " We were overpowered by numbers ! " ejaculated the Rebel. " Your army was three times as big as ours." " That 's nothing, for you know one Southerner was equal to five Yankees." " And so he is, and always will be ! But you had to get the niggers to help you." " What are a few niggers ? They would always run, you know, at sight of their masters, while of course such a thincj was never known as their masters running from them ! " The unhappy member of the " overpowered " party flushed and fumed a while, not knowing what answer to make, tlien burst forth, — " It was the foreigners ! You never would have beaten us if it had n't been for the foreigners that made up your armies ! " " What ! " said my friend, " you, an American, acknowledo-e yourself beaten by foreigners ! I am ashamed of you ! " And the wagon arriving, he jumped into it with a laugh, leaving the Southerner, not whipped of course, but decidedly " overpowered " in this little contest of wit. It was quite evident that he was not equal to five Yankees with his tongue. " That young fellow you was talking with," said our driver, " was one of Mosby's guerrillas. There are plenty of them around here. They are terrible at talking, but that is about all." The wagon was an ambulance which had cost the govern- ment two hundred and fifty dollars a few months before. The springs proving inferior, it was condemned, and sold at auction for twenty -four dollars. " I paid a hundred and twenty-five for it the next day," said the driver ; " and it 's well worth the money." It was a strong, heavy, well-built vehicle, well suited to his business. " I was down here with my regiment when 1 got my discharge, and it struck me something might be made by S4 BULL RUN. takincT visitors out to the battle-fields. But I have n't saved a cent at it yet ; passengers are few, and it 's mighty hard busi- ness, the roads are so awful bad." Worse roads arc not often seen in a civilized country. " It makes me mad to see people drive over and around these bad places, month after month, and never think of mending 'cm ! A little work with a shovel would save no end of lost time, and wear and tear, and broken wagons ; but it 's never done." The original country roads had passed into disuse ; and, the fences being destroyed, only the curious parallel lines of stracTfrliiiJX bushes and trees that grew beside them remained to mark their course. Necessity and convenience had struck out new roads winding at will over the fenceless farms. We crossed thinly wooded barrens, skirted old orchards, and passed now and then a standing chimney that marked the site of some ruined homestead ; up-hill and down-hill, rocking, rattling, jolting, and more than once nearly upsetting. I re- member not more than three or four inhabited houses on our route. In a wild field near the shelter of some woods was a village of half-ruined huts, interesting as having served in war- time as Rebel wintei'-quarters. At last, eight miles north from the Junction, we reached the scene of the first battle of Bull Run. This was the plateau, from which our almost victorious forces had driven and re-driven the enemy, when Johnston's reinforcements, arriving by the railroad which runs obliquely towards the Junction on the west, changed what was so nearly a triumph for our arms into a frightful disaster. The ground is well described in Beauregard's official report. " It is en- closed on three sides by small watercourses which empty into Bull Run within a few rods of each other, half a mile to the south of Stone Bridge. Rising to an elevation of quite one iiundred feet above Bull Run at the bridge, it fiills ofi^" on three sides to the level of the enclosing streams in gentle slopes, but which are furrowed by ravines of irregular direction and length, and studded with clumps and patches of young pines and oaks." . . . . " Completely surrounding the two houses WIDOW HENRY. 85 before mentioned are small open fields of irregular outline, and exceeding one hundred and fifty acres in extent. The houses, occupied at the time, the one by Widow Henry, the other by the free negro Robinson, are small wooden buildings densely embowered in trees and environed by a dcmble row of fences on two sides. Around the eastern and southern brow of the plateau an almost unbroken fringe of second growth of ]>ines gave excellent shelter for our marksmen, who availed them- selves of it with the most satisfactory skill. To the west, ad- joining the fields, a broad belt of oaks extends directly across the crest, on both sides of the Sudley road, in which, during the battle, regiments of both armies met and contended for the mastery. From the open ground of this plateau the view em- braces a wide expanse of woods and gently undulating open country of broad grass and grain fields in all directions." Such was the appearance of the battle-field on that memo- rable twenty-first of July, four years before my visit. In its external features I found it greatly changed. Many of the trees had been cut away. Every fence had disappeared. Where had waved the fields of grass and grain, extended one vast, neglected, barren tract of country. The widow's humble abode had been swept away. The widow herself was killed by a chance shot on the day of the battle. A little picket fence surrounding her grave was the only enclosure visible to us in all that region. Close by were the foundations of her house, a small square space run up to tallest weeds. Some of the poor woman's hollyhocks still survived, together with a few scattered and lonesome-looking peach-trees cut with balls. The hollyhocks were in bloom, and the peaches were ripe : a touching sight to me. who could see the haunting figure of the poor widow looking at the favorite blossoms from her door, or returning from the trees to the house with her apnm full of the fruit, which appeared duly year after year to comfort her, until at last she was no longer there needing earthly comfbit. We were not past that material necessity, however ; and the poor woman's peaches comforted us this year. Within a few yards of the spot where her house was, on the 86 BULL RUN. summit of the eminence, stands a pyramidal monument of rough red sand-stone, bearing this inscription : — IX MEMORY OP THE PATRIOTS WHO FELL AT BULL RUN JULY 21ST, 1861. This shaft, another inscription tells us, was erected June 10th, 1865. There it stands on the " sacred soil," recalling to the proud sons of Virginia many things. To them, and to all Americans, it has a grand and deep significance beyond any- thing words can convey. There it stands, a silent preacher, with its breast of stone, and its austere face of stone, preaching inaudible stern lessons. Bull Run may be called the Bunker Hill of the last revolution. It was the prologue of disaster to the far-off final triumph. Well fought at first, we had almost won the day, when, fresh troops pressing us, came the crushing defeat and horrible panic which filled the whole loyal North with dismay and the whole rebel South with exultation. Then how many a patriot heart fell sick with despair, and doubtingly murmured, " Does God still live ? and is there after all an overruling Power ? '' Look at that monument to-day. Where now is the triumph of the dark cause ? Where now is the haughty slave empire whose eternal foundations were deemed established by that victory ? Where is the banner of Freedom trailed so low, all torn and blood-stained, in the dust ? God lives ! There is an overruling Power that never sleeps ; patient, foreseeing what we cannot see, and, in sublime knowledge of the end, tolerating the wrath of the unrighteous and the arrogance of the unjust. The day of victory for freedom had not yet come ; for triumph then would have been but half triumph. Temporary success to the bad cause was necessary to draw it irretrievably into the currents of destruction. Moreover, struggle and long agony were needful to this THE SECOND BULL RUN. 87 nation. Frivolous, worldly, imitating other nations ; nour- ishing in the very bosom of the Republic the serpiiat of a barbarous despotism ; in our heedlessness and hurry giving no ear to the cries of the oppressed ; we needed the baptism of blood and the awful lessons of loss to bring us back to sanity and soberness. The furnace of civil war was indispensable to fuse conflicting elements, and to pour the molten materials of the diverse States into the single mould of one mighty and masterful Nation. In order that it might take the lead of all the proud banners on the globe, our flag must first be humbled, and win its way through dust and battle-smoke to the eminence above all eminences of earthly power, where it is destined at last to float. There seems to have been something fatal to our armies in the mere name of Bull Run. The visitor to the scene of the €rst disaster is already on the field of the second. The battles jf the subsequent year, fought on a more stupendous scale, and sweeping over a vast area, included within their scope the hills on which we were standing. To reach the scene of the principal contest in 1862, how- ever, an advance of a mile or two had to be made. We rode on to a piece of woods, in the shade of which we halted, sur- rounded by marks of shot and shell in the timber, and by soldiers' graves lying lonely among the trees, with many a whitened bone scattered about or protruding. There, it beino- mid-day, we partook of luncheon sauced with Widow Henry's peaches. On the west of us was a large stony field sloping up to a wood-crowned height, — a field strown thick with dead in those sanguinary days of '62. The woods in which we were, extended around the north side of it also, formmo- a connection with the woods beyond. Making the circuit of this shady boundary, we reached the crest, which, strengthened greatly by an unfinished railroad track cut through it, afforded the enemy their most formidable position during the second Bull Run battle. At the summit of the open field stands another monument, 88 BULL RUN. similar to that we had first seen, dedicated to the " Memory of tlie {Patriots \A'ho fell at Groverton, August 28th, 29th, and 30th, 1862." This inscription had been mutilated by some Rebel hand, and made to read "Confederate Patriots "; but my tall friend, arming himself -with a stone, stepped upon the pedestal, amid the black rows of shells surrounding it, and resolutely ground the offensive word out of the tablet. Groverton, which has given the field its name, is a little cluster of three or four buildings lying out west of it on the turnpike. There are two or three points of striking resemblance be- tween the first and second battles of Bull Run. At one time almost a victory, this also proved at last a defeat ; and again the North was filled with consternation at seeing the barrier of its armies broken, and the country laid open to the foe. After the first Bull Run, the Rebels might have entered Washington almost without opposition. After the second, they did invade Maryland, getting as far as Antietam. It is also a circumstance worthy of note, that in each fight the victory might have been rendered complete, but for the failure of an important command to perform the part assigned it. General Patterson remained inert at Winchester, while Johnston, whom it was his business to look after, hastened to reinforce Beauregard and turn the scale of battle. At the second Bull Run, General Porter's neglect to obey the orders of General Pope wrought incalculable mischief, and contributed similarly to change the opening successes into final discomfiture. Lastly the lesson taught by both disasters is the same : that the triumph of a bad cause is but illusory and transient ; while for the cause which moves duly in the divine currents of human progress there can be no failure, for, though tossed and buffeted, and seemingly wrecked, its keel is in the eternal waters, the winds of heaven fill its sails, and the hand of the Great Pilot is at the helm. Returning, we stopped at the " stone house " near the first battle-field, in hopes of getting some personal information from the inhabitants. They were present during the fight, and the NEW METHOD OF MAKING CIDER. 8iJ outer walls show enduring marks of the destructive visits of cannon-shot. The house was formerly a tavern, and the man who kept it was one of those two-faced farmers, Secessionists at heart, but always loyal to the winning side. By working well his political weathercock, he had managed to get his house through the storm, although in a somewhat dismantled condition. The bar-room was as barren as the intellect of the owner. The only thing memorable we obtained there was some most extraordinary cider. This the proprietor was too proud to sell, or else the pretence that it belonged to the " old nigger " was nearer the truth than my tall friend was wilhng to admit. At all events, the " old nigger " brought it in, and received pay for it besides, evidently contrary to his expectations, and to the disappointment of the landlord. " Uncle, what sort of cider is this ? how did you make it ? ' For neither of us had ever tasted anything resembling it before, nor did we wish ever to taste its like again. Uncle, standing in the door, with one foot on the thresh- old, ducking and grinning, one hand holding his old cap, and the other his knee, after earnest urging, told us the secret. " Dat cidah, sah, I made out o' peaches and apples mixed, 'bout half and half. Dat's what makes it taste cur' us." " Oh, but that 's not all, uncle ; you put water in it ! You meant to cheat us, I see, with your miscegenated cider and water ! " Uncle did not exactly understand the nature of this charge, but evidently thought it something serious. " No, no, gentlemen, I did n't do it for roguishness ! 1 put in de peaches 'case dar was n't apples enough. I pounded 'em up wid a pestle in a bai'rel. Den I put a stake under de house corner wid rocks on to it for a press. I put de water in to make de juice come easier, it was so dry ! " Having learned his method of manufacturing cider, we in quired his opinion of the war. " Did n't you think, Uncle, the white folks were great fools to kill each other the way they did ? " said my friend. " 'T would n't do for me to say so ; dey was old enough, and 90 BULL EUN. ageable enough, to know best ; but I could n't help tink'n sah ! " Returning to the Junction, I saw a very different type of the Virginia negro : an old man of seventy, who conversed intelligently, but in a strangely quiet and subdued tone, which bespoke long suffering and great patience. He had been a free man seven j^ears, he told me ; but he had a brother who still served the man he belonged to. " But he, too, is free now," I said. " Don't he receive wages r The old man shook his head sadly. " There 's nothing said about wages to any of our people in this part of the country. They don't dare to ask for them, and their owners will hold them as they used to as long as they can. They, are very sharp with us now. If a man of my color dared to say what he thought, it would be all his life was worth ! " ON THE "WAWASET." 91 CHAPTER XI. A VISIT TO MOUNT VERNON". On a clay of exceeding sultriness (it was the fourth of Sep- tember) I left the dusty, stifled streets of Washington, and went on board the excursion steamer Wawaset, bound for Mount Vernon. Ten o'clock, the hour of starting, had nearly arrived. No breath of air was stirring. The sun beat down with torrid fervor upon the boat's awnings, which seemed scarce a protec- tion against it, and upon the glassy water, which reflected it with equal intensity from below. Then suddenly the bell rang, the boat swung out in the river, the strong paddles rushed, and almost instantly a magical change took place. A delightful breeze ajipeared to have sprung up, increasing as the steamer's speed increased. I sat upon a stool by the wheel- house, di'inking in all the deliciousness of that cooling motion through the aii', and watching compassionately the schooners with heavy and languid sails lying becalmed in the channel, — indolent fellows, drifting with the tide, and dependent on influ- ences from without to push them, — while our steamer, M'ith flashing wake, flag gayly flying, and decks swept by whole- some, animating winds, resembled one of your energetic, orig- inal men, cutting the sluggish current, and overcoming the sultriness and stagnation of life by a refreshing activity. On we sped, leaving far behind the Virginia long-boats, with their pointed sails on great poles swung aslant across the masts, — sails dingy in color and irregular in shape, looking, a little way off, like huge sweet potatoes. Our course was southward, leaving far on our right the Arlington estate em- bowered in foliage on the Virginia shore ; and on our left 92 A VISIT TO MOUNT VERNON. the Navy Yard and Arsenal, and the Insane Asyhim standing like a stern castle, half hidden by trees, on the hi^h baids.s back from the river. As we departed from the -wharves, a view of the city opened behind us, with its two ]n'ominent objects, — the untinished Washington i\[onument, resembling in the dis- tance a tall, square, pallid sail ; and the many-pillared, beau- tiful Capitol, risjng amid masses of foliage, with that marvellous bubble, its white and airy dome, soaring superbly in the sun. Before us, straight in our course, was Alexandria, quaint old citv, with its scanty fringe of straight and slender spars, and its few anchored ships suspended in a glassy atmosphere, as it seemed, where the river reflected the sky. We ran in to the wharves, and took on board a number of passengers ; then steamed on again, down the wide Potomac, until, around a bend, high on a wooded shore, a dim red roof and a portico of slender white pillars appeared visible through the trees. It was Mount Vernon, the home of Washington. The shores here, on both the Maryland and Virginia sides, are picturesquely hilly and green with groves. The river between flows considerably more than a mile wide : a handsome sheet, reflecting the woods and the shining summer clouds sailincr in the azure over them, although broad belts of river-grass, growing between the channel and the banks like strips of inundated prairie, detract from its beauty. As we drew near, the helmsman tolled the boat's bell slowly. " Before the war," said he, " no boat ever passed Mount Vernon without tolling its bell, if it had one. The war kind of broke into that custom, as it did into most everything else ; but it is coming up again now." We did not make directly for the landing, but kept due on down the channel until we had left Mount Vernon half a mile away on our right. Then suddenly the steamer changed her course, steering mto the tract of river-grass, which waved and tossed heavily as the ripple from the bows shook it from its drowsy languor. The tide rises here some four feet. It was low tide then, and the circuit we had made was necessary to avoid grounding on the bar. We were entering shallow water. TOMB OF WASHINGTON. 93 We touched and drew hard for a few minutes over the yield- ing sand. The dense grass seemed almost as serious an im- pediment as the bar itself. Down among its dark heaving masses we had occasional glimpses of the bottom, and saw hundreds of fishes darting away, and sometimes leaping sheer from the surface, in terror of the great, gliding, paddling monster, invading, in that strange fashion, their peaceful do- main. Drawing a well-defined line half a mile lono; throuffh that submerged prairie, we reached the old wooden pier, built out into it from the Mount Vernon shore. I did not land imme- diately, but remained on deck, watching the long line of pil- grims going up from the boat along the climbing path and disappearing in the woods. There were, perhaps, a hundred and fifty in the procession, men and women and children, some carrying baskets, with intent to enjoy a nice little picnic under the old Washington trees. It was a pleasing sio-ht, rendered interesting by the historical associations of the place, but slightly dashed with the ludicrous, it must be owned, by a solemn tipsy wight bringing up the rear, singing, or rather bawling, the good old tune of Greenville, with maudlin nasal twang, and beating time Avith profound gravity and u bio- stick. As the singer, as well as his tune, was tediously sloiv, I passed him on the way, ascended the long slope through the grove, and found my procession halted under the trees on the edge of it. Facing them, with an old decayed orchard be- hind it, was a broad, low brick structure, with an arched en- trance and an iron-grated gate. Two marble shafts flanked the approach to it on the right and left. Passing these, I paused, and read on a marble slab over the Gothic gateway the words, — " WiTHIX THIS ENCLOSURE BEST THE REMAINS OF GeN ERAL George Washington." The throng of pilgrims, awed into silence, were beginning to draw back a little from the tomb. I approached, and lean- ing against the iron bars, looked through into the still, damp 91 A VISIT TO MOUNT VERNON. chamber. Within, a little to the right of the centre of the vault, stands a massive and richly sculptured marble sarcoph- agus, bearing the name of " Washington." By its side, of equal dimensions, but of simpler style, is another, bearing the inscription, " Martha, the consort of Washington." It is a sequestered spot, half enclosed by the trees of the grove on the south side, — cedars, sycamores, and black-wal- nuts, heavily hung with vines, sheltering the entrance from the mid-day sun. Woodpeckers flitted and screamed from trunk to trunk of the ancient orchard beyond. Eager chickens were catching grasshoppers under the honey-locusts, along by the old wooden fence. And, humming harmlessly in and out over the heads of the pilgrims, I noticed a colony of wasps, whose mud-built nests stuccoed profusely the yellowish ceiling of the vault. There rest the ashes of the great chieftain, and of Martha his wife. I did not like the word " consort." It is too fine a term for a tombstone. There is something lofty and ro- mantic about it ; but " wife " is simple, tender, near to the heart, steeped in the divine atmosphere of home, — " A something not too bright and good For human nature's daily food." She was the wife of Washington : a true, deep-hearted woman, the blessing and comfort, not of the Commander-in- chief, not of the first President, but of the man. And Wash- ington, the MAN, was not the cold, majestic, sculptured figure which has been placed on the pedestal of history. There was nothing marble about him but the artistic and spotless finish of his public career. Majestic he truly was, as simple great- ness must be ; and cold he seemed to many ; — nor was it fitting that the sacred chambers of that august personality should be thrown open to the vulgar feet and gaze of the multitude. It is littleness and vanity that are loose of tongue and unseason- ably familiar. " Yet shine forever virgin minds, Beloved by stars and purest winds, LAWN AND OUT-BUILDINGS. 95 "Which, o'er passion throned sedate, HaTe not ha^ard'id their state ; Disconcert the searching spy, Rendering, to the curious eye, The durance of a granite ledge To those who gaze from the sea's edge." Of tliese virgin minds was Washington. The world saw him through a veil of reserve, as habitual to him as the sceptre of self-control. Yet beneath that veil throbbed a fiery nature, which on a few rare occasions is known to have flamed forth into terrible wrath. Anecdotes, recording those instances of ■ volcanic eruption from the core of this serene and lofty char- acter, are refreshing and precious to us, as showing that the ice and snow were only on the summit, while beneath burned those fountains of glowing life which are reservoirs of power to the virtue and will that know how to control them. A man of pure, strong, constant affections, his love of tranquil domestic enjoyments was as remarkable as his self-sacrificing patriotism. I know not Washington's " consort " ; but to me a very sweet, beautiful, and touching name is that of " Martha, Washington's wife." Quitting the tomb, I walked along by the old board fence which bounds the corner of the orchard, and turned up the locust-shaded avenue leading to the mansion. On one side was a wooden shed, on the other an old-fashioned brick barn. Passing these, you seem to be entering a little village. The out-houses are numerous; I noticed the wash-house, the meat- house, and the kitchen, the butler's house, and the gardener'^ house, — neat white buildings, ranged around the end of the lawn, among which the mansion stands the princip/il figure. Looking in at the wash-house, I saw a pretty-looking col- ored girl industriously scrubbing over a tub. She told me that she was twenty years old, that her husband worked on the place, and that a bright little fellow, four years old, running around the door, handsome as polished bronze, was her son. She formerly belonged to John A. Washington, who made haste to carry her off to Richmond, with the money 96 A VISIT TO MOUNT VERNON. the Ladies' Mount Vernon Association had paid him, on the breaking out of the war. She was born on the place, but had never worked for John A. Washington. " He kept me hired out ; for I s'pose he could make more by me that way." She lavighed pleasantly as she spoke, and rubbed away at the wet clothes in the tub. I looked at her, so intelligent and cheerful, a woman and a mother, though so young ; and wondered at the man who could pretend to own such a creature, hire her out to other masters, and live upon her wages ! I have heard people scoff at John A. Wasliino;ton for seinns: the inherited bones of the great, — for surely the two hundred thousand dollars, paid by the Ladies' Association for the Mount Vernon estate, was not the price merely of that old mansion, these out-houses, since repaired, and two hundred acres of land, — but I do not scoff at him for that. Why should not one, who dealt in living human flesh and blood, also traffic a little in the ashes of the dead? " After the war was over, the Ladies' Association sent for me from Richmond, and I work for them now," said the girl, merrily scrubbing. " What wages do you get ? " "I gits seven dollars a month, and that 's a heap better 'n no wages at all ! " laughing again with pleasure. " The sweat I drap into this yer tub is my own ; but befo'e, it be- longed to John A. Washington." As I did not understand her at first, she added, " You know, the Bible says every one must live by the sweat of his own eyebrow. But John A. Washington, he lived by the sweat of my eyebrow. I alluz had a will'n mind to work, and I have now ; but I don't work as I used to ; for then it was work to-day and work to-mor- row, and no stop." Beside the kitchen was a well -house, where I stopped and drank a delicious draught out of an " old oaken bucket," or rather a new one, which came up brimming from its cold depths. This well was dug in General Washington's time, the cook told me ; and as I drank, and looked down, down into the MANSION AND RELICS. 97 dark shaft at the ftilntly glirtimering water, — for the well was deep, — I thought how often the old General had probably come up thither from the field, taken off his hat in tlie shade, and solaced his thirst with a drink from the dripping bucket. Passing between the kitchen and the butler's house, you come upon a small plateau, a level green lawn, nearly sur- rounded by a circle of large shade-trees. The shape of this pleasant esplanade is oblong : at the farther end, away on the left, is the ancient entrance to the grounds ; close by on the right, at the end nearest the river, is the mansion. Among the shade-trees, of which there are a great variety, I noticed a fine sugar-maple, said to be the only individual of the species in all that region. It was planted by General Washington, " who wished to see what trees would grow in chat climate," the gardener told me. It has for neighbors, among many others, a tulip-tree, a Kentucky cofFee-tree, and a magnolia set out by Washington's own hand. I looked at the last with peculiar interest, thinking it a type of our country, the perennial roots of which were about the same time laid carefully in the bosom of the eternal mother, covered and nursed and watered by the same illustrious hand, — a little tree then, feeble, and by no means sure to live ; but now I looked up, thrilling with pride at the glory of its spreading branches, its storm-defying tops, and its mighty trunk which not even the axe of treason could sever. I approached the mansion. It was needless to lift the great brass knocker, for the door was open. The house was full of guests thronging the rooms and examining the relics ; among which were conspicuous these : hanging in a little brass-framed glass case in the hall, the key of the Bastile, presented to Washington by Lafayette ; in the dining-hall, a very old- fashioned harpsichord that had entirely lost its voice, but which is still cherished as a wedding-gift from Washington to his adopted daughter ; in the same room, holsters and a part of the Commander-in-chief's camp-equipage, very dilapidated ; and, in a square bedroom up-stairs, the bedstead on which Washington slept, and on which he died. There is no sight 98 A VISIT TO MOUNT VERNON. more touching than this bedstead, surrounded by its holy associations, to be seen at Mount Vernon. From the house I went out on the side opposite tliat on whicli I had entered, and found myself standing under the portico we had seen when coming down the river. A noble portico, lofty as the eaves of the house, and extending the whole length of the aiansion, — fifteen feet in Avidth and ninety- six in length, says the Guide-Book. The square pillars sup- porting it are not so slender, either ; but it was their height whicli made them appear so when we first saw them miles off up the Potomac. What a portico for a statesman to walk under, — so lofty, so spacious, and affording such views of the river and its shores, and the sky over all ! Once more I saw the venerable figure of him, the first in war and the first in peace, pacing to and fi:o on those pavements of flat stone, solitary, rapt in thought, glancing ever and anon up the Potomac towards the site of the now great capital bearing his name, contemplating the revo- lution accomplished, and dreaming of his country's future. There was one great danger he feared : the separation of the States. But well for him, O, well for the great-hearted and wise chieftain, that the appalling blackness of the storm, des- tined so soon to deluge the land with blood for rain-drops, was hidden from his eyes, or appeared far in the dim horizon no bigger than a man's hand ! Saved from the sordid hands of a degenerate posterity, saved from the desolation of unsparing civil war, Mount Vernon still remains to us with its antique mansion and its delightful shades. I took all the more pleasure in the place, remem- bering how dear it was to its illustrious owner. There is no trait in Washington's character with which I sympathize so strongly as with his love for his home. True, that home was surrounded with all the comforts and elegancies which fortune and taste could command. But had Mount Vernon been as humble as it was beautiful, Washington would have loved it scarcely less. It was dear to him, not as a fine estate, but as the home of his heart. A simply great and truly wise A THUNDER-STORM. 99 man, free from foolish vanity and ambition, he served his country with a willing spirit ; yet he knew well that happiness does not subsist upon worldly honors nor dwell in high places, but tliat her favorite haunt is by the pure waters of domestic tranquillity. There came up a sudden thunder-shower while we were at the house. The dreadful peals rolled and rattled from wing to wing of the black cloud that overshadowed the river, and the rain fell in torrents. Umbrellas were scarce, and I am sorry to say the portico leaked badly. But the storm passed as sud- denly as it came ; the rifted clouds floated away with sun-lit edges glittering like silver fire, and all the wet leafage of the trees twinkled and laughed in the fresh golden light. I did not return to the boat with the crowd by the way we came, but descended the steep banks through the drenched woods in front of the mansion, to the low sandy shore of the Poto- mac, then walked along the water's edge, under the dripping boughs, to the steamer, and so took my leave of Mount Vernon. L.ofC. 100 "STATE PRIDE." CHAPTER XII. "STATE PRIDE." Leaving Washington by steamer again, early on the morn- ing of the twelfth of September, a breezy sail of three hours down the Potomac brought us to Acquia Creek. The creek was still there, debouching broad and placid into the river, for, luckily, destroying armies cannot consume the everlasting streams. The forests, which densely coA^ered all that region before the war, had been cut away. Not a build- ing of any kind was to be seen ; and only the blackened ruins of half-burnt wharves, extending out into the river, remained to indicate that here had been an important depot of supplies. Taking the cars near an extemporized landing, we traversed a country of shaggy hills, completely clad in thick under- growths which had sprung up where the ancient forests stood. At the end of two hours' slow travel, through a tract almost exclusively of this character, we arrived at a hiatus in the railroad. The bridge over the Rappahannock not having been rebuilt since the war, it was necessary to cross to Fred- ericksburg by another conveyance than the cars. A long line of coaches was in Avaiting for the train. I climbed the top- most seat of the foremost coach, which was soon leadino; the rumbling, dusty procession over the hills toward the city. From a barren summit we obtained a view of Fredericks- burg, pleasantly situated on the farther bank of the river, with the high ridge behind it which Burnside endeavored in vain to take. We crossed the brick-colored Rappahannock (not a lovely stream to look upon) by a pontoon bridge, and as- cending the opposite shore, rode through the half-ruined city. Fredericksburg had not yet begun to recover from the effects of Burnside's shells. Scarcely a house in the burnt portions ENTERING FREDERICKSBURG. 101 had been rebuilt. Many houses were entirely destroyed, and only the solitary chimney-stacks remained. Of others, you saw no vestige but broken brick walls, and foundations over- grown with Jamestown-weeds, sumachs, and thistles. Farther up from the river the town had been less badly used ; but we passed even there many a dwelling with a broken chimney, and with great awkward holes in walls and roofs. Some were windowless and deserted ; but others had been patched up and rendered inhabitable again. High over the city soar the church-spires, which, standing between two artillery fires on the day of the battle, received the ironical compliments of both. The zinc sheathing of one of these steeples is well riddled and ripped, and the tipsy vane leans at an angle of forty-five degrees from its original perpendicular. Sitting next me on the stage-top was a vivacious young ex- pressman, who was in the battle, and who volunteered to give me some account of it. No doubt his description was beauti- fully clear, but as he spoke only of " our army," without calling it by name, it was long before I could decide which army was meant. Sometimes it seemed to be one, then it was more likely the other ; so that, before his account of its movements was ended, my mind was in a delightful state of confusion. A certain delicacy on my part, which was quite superfluous, had prevented me from asking him plainly at first on which side he was fighting. At last, by inference and indirection, I got at the fact ; — " our army " was the Rebel army. " I am a son of Virginia ! " he told me afterwards, his whole manner expressing a proud satisfaction. " I was opposed to secession at first, but afterwards I went into it with my whole heart and soul. Do you want to know what carried me in ? State pride, sir ! nothing else in the world. I 'd give more for Virginia than for all the rest of the Union put together ; and I was bound to go with my State." This was spoken with emphasis, and a certain rapture, as a lover might speak of his mistress. I think I never before real- ized so fully what " State pride " was. In New England and the West, you find very little of it. However deep it may 102 "STATE PRIDE." lie in the hearts of the people, it is not theit habit to rant about it. You never hear a Vermonter or an [ndianian ex claim, " I believe my State is worth all the rest ol the Union ! " with excited countenance, lip curved, and eye in fine frenzy rolling. Their patriotism is too large and inclusive to be stopped by narrow State boundaries. Besides, in communi- ties where equality prevails there is little of that peculiar pride which the existence of caste engenders. Accustomed to look down upon slaves and poor whites, the aristocratic classes soon learn to believe that they are the people, and that wisdom will die with them. In the case of Virginians, I think that the mere name of the State has also something to do with their pride in her. To hear one of them enunciate the euphonious syllables when asked to what portion of the Union he belongs, is wonderfully edifying ; it is as good as eating a peach. " V-i-r-g-i-n-i-a,^^ he tells you, dwelling with rich intonations on the luscious vowels and consonants, — in his mind doubtless the choicest in the alphabet; and he seems proudly conscious, as he utters them, of having spoken a charm which enwraps him in an atmosphere of romance. Thenceforth he is unapproachable on that verdurous ground, the envy and despair of all who are so unfortunate as to have been bom elsewhere. Thus a rich word surrounds itself with rich associations. But suppose a different name : instead of Virginia, Stubland, for example. It might indeed be the best State of all, yet, believe me, Stub- land would have in all its borders no soil fertile enough to grow the fine plant of State pride. "I believe," said I, "there is but one State as proud as Virginia, and that is the fiery little State of South Carolina." " I have less respect for South Carolina," said he, " than for any other State in the Union. South Carolina troops were the worst troops in the Confederate army. It was South Carolina's self-conceit and bluster that caused the war." (So, State pride in another State than Virginia was only *' self-conceit.") "Yes," said I, "South Carolina began the war; but Vir- STAGE-COACH CONVERSATION. 103 ghiia carried it on. If Virginia had thrown tlie weight of her very great power in the Union against secession, resort to arms would never have been necessary. She held a position which she has forfeited forever, because she was not true to it. By seceding she lost wealth, influence, slavery, and the blood of her bravest sons ; and what has she gained ? I wonder, sir, how your State pride can hold out so well." " Virginia," he replied, with another gleam, his eyes doing the fine frenzy again, " Virginia made the gallantest fight that ever was ; and I am prouder of her to-day than I ever was in my life ! " "But you are glad she is back in the Union ajrain ? " " To tell the truth, I am. I think more of the Union, too, than I ever did before. It was a square, stand-up fight ; we got beaten, and I suppose it is all for the best. The very hottest Secessionists are now the first to come back and offer support to the government." He tapped a little tin trunk he carried. " I have fifty pardons here, which I am carrying from Washington to Richmond, for men who, a year ago, you would have said would drown themselves sooner than take the oath of allegiance to the United States. It was a rich sight to see these very men crowding to take the oath. It was a bitter pill to some, and they made wry faces at it ; but the rest were glad enough to get back into the old Union. It was like going home." " What astonishes me," said I, " after all the Southern people's violent talk about the last ditch, — about carrying on an endless guerrilla warfare after their armies were broken up, and fighting in swamps and mountains till the last man was exterminated, — what astonishes me is, that they take so sen- sible a view of their situation, and accept it so frankly; and that you, a Rebel, and I, a Yankee, are sitting on this stage talking over the bloody business so good-naturedly ! " " Well, it is astonishing, when you think of it I Southern men and Northern men ride together in the trains, and stop at the same hotels, as if we were all one people, — as indeed we are : one nation now," he added, " as we never were before, and never could have been without the war." 104 "STATE PRIDE." I got down at tlic hotel, wasliecl and brushed away the dust of travel, and went out to the dining-room. There the first thing that met my eye was a pair of large wooden fans, covered with damask cloth which afforded an ample flap to each, sus- pended over the table, and set in motion by means of a rope dro])ped from a pulley by the door. At the end of the rope was a shining negro-boy about ten years old, pulling as if it were the rope of a fire-bell, and the whole town were in flames. The fans swayed to and fro, a fine breeze blew all up and down the table, and not a fly was to be seen. I noticed before long, however, that the little darkey's industry was of an inter- mittent sort ; for at times he would cease pulling altogether, until the landlady passed that way, when he would seem to hear the cries of fire asain, and once more fall to ringino; his silent alarm-bell in the most violent manner. The landlady was the manager-of the house ; and I naturally took her to be a widow until her husband was pointed out to nie, — a mere tavern lounger, of no account any way. It is quite common to find Virginia hotels kept in this manner. The wife does the work ; the husband takes his ease in his inn. The business goes in her name ; — he is the sleeping partner. After dinner I went out to view the town. As I stood looking at the empty walls of the gutted court-house, a sturdy old man approached. He stopped to answer my questions, and pointing at the havoc made by shells, exclaimed, — " You see the result of the vanity of Virginia ! " " Are you a Virginian ! " " I am ; but that is no reason why I should be blind to the faults of my State. It was the vanity of Virginia, and nothing else, that caused all our trouble." (Here was another name for " State pride.") " You were not very much in favor of secession, I take it ? " "In favor of it !" he exclaimed, kindling. "Did n't they have me in jail here nine weeks because I would not vote for it ? If I had n't been an old man, they would have hung me. Ah, I told them how it would be, from the first; but they would n't believe me. Now they see ! Look at this / STATE VANITY. 105 ruined city ! Look at the farms and plantations laid waste ! Look at the complete paralysis of business ; the rich reduced to poverty ; the men and boys with one arm, one leg, or one hand ; the tens of thousands of graves ; the broken families ; — it is all the result of vanity ! vanity ! " He showed me the road to the Heights, and we parted on the corner. 106 THE FIELD OF FREDERICKSBURG. CHAPTER XIII. THE FIELD OF FREDERICKSBURG. Fredericksburg stands upon a ridge on the right bank of the river. Behind the town is a plain, with a still more elevated ridge beyond. From the summit of the last you obtain an excellent view of the battle-field ; the plain below the town where Hooker fought ; the heights on the opposite side of the river manned by our batteries ; the fields on the left ; and the plain between the ridge and the town, where the frightfullest slauo;hter was. Along by the foot of the crest, just where it slopes off to the plain, runs a road with a wall of heavy quarried stones on each side. In this road the Rebels lay concealed when the first attempt was made to storm the Heights. The wall on the lower side, towards the town, is the " stone wall " of history. It was a perfect breastwork, of great strength, and in the very best position that could have been chosen. The earth from the fields is more or less banked up against it; and this, together with the weeds and bushes which grew there, served to conceal it from our men. The sudden cruel volley of flame and lead which poured over it into their very faces, scarce a dozen paces distant, as they charged, was the first intimation they received of any enemy below the crest. No troops could stand that near and deadly fire. They broke, and leaving the ground strown with the fallen, retreated to the " ravine," — a deep ditch with a little stream flowing through it, in the midst of the plain. " Just when they turned to run, that was the worst time for them ! " said a young Rebel I met on the Heights. " Then our men had nothing to fear ; but they just rose right up and STORMING OF FREDERICKSBURG 107 let 'em have it ! Every charge your troops made afterwards, it was the same. The infantry in the road, and the artillery on these Heights, just mowed them down in swaths ! You never saw anything look as that plain did after the battle. Saturday morning, before the fight, it was brown ; Sunday it was all blue ; Monday it was white, and Tuesday it was red." I asked him to explain this seeming riddle. " Don't you see ? Before the fight there was just the field. Next it was covered all over with your fellows in blue clothes. Saturday night the blue clothes were stripped off, and only their white under-clothes left. Monday night these were etripped off, and Tuesday they lay all in their naked skins." " Who stripped the dead in that way ? " " It was mostly done by the North Carolinians. They are the triflin'est set of men ! " " What do you mean by triflin'est? " " They ha'n't got no sense. They '11 stoop to anything. They 're more like savages than civilized men. They say * we ^uns ' and ' t/ou ''uns,^ and all such outlandish phrases. They 've got a great long tone to their voice, like something wild." " Were you in the battle ? '' " Yes, I was in all of Saturday's fight. My regiment was stationed on the hill down on the right there. We could see everything. Your men piled up their dead for breastworks. It was an awful sight when the shells struck them, and ex- ploded ! The air, for a minute, would be just full of legs and arms and pieces of trunks. Down by the road there we dug out a wagon-load of muskets. They had been piled up by your fellows, and dirt thrown over them, for a breastwork. But the worst sight I saw was three days afterwards. I didn't mind the heaps of dead, nor nothing. But just a starving dog sitting by a corpse, which he would n't let anybody come near, and which he never left night nor day ; — by George, that just made me cry ! We finally had to shoot the dog to get at the man to bury him." 108 THE FIELD OF FREDERICKSBURG. The young Rebel thought our army might have been easily destroyed after Saturday's battle, — at least that portion of it which occupied Fredericksburg. " We had guns on that point that could have cut your pontoon bridge in two ; and then our artillery could have blown Burnside all to pieces, or have compelled his surrender." " Why did n't you dolt?" " Because General Lee was too humane. He did n't want to kill so many men." A foolish reason, but it was the best the young man could offer. The truth Is, however, Burnslde's army was In a posi- tion of extreme danger, after Its failure to carry the Heights, and had not Lee been diligently expecting another attack. In- stead of a retreat, he might have subjected It to infinite dis- comfiture. It was to do us more injury, and not less, that he delayed to destroy the pontoon bridge and shell the town while our troops were in it. The young man gloried In that great victory. " But," said I, " what did you gain ? It was all the worse for you that you succeeded then. That victory only prolonged the M^ar, and Involved greater loss. We do not look at those transient triumphs ; we look at the grand result. The Confederacy was finally swept out, and we are perfectly satisfied." " Well, so am I," he replied, looking me frankly In the face. " I tell you. If we had succeeded In establishing a separate government, this would have been the worst country, for a poor man, under the sun." "How so?" " There would have been no chance for white labor. Every rich man would have owned his nigger mason, his nigger car- penter, his nigger blacksmith ; and the white mechanic, as well as the white farm-laborer, would have been crushed out." " You think, then, the South will be better off without slavery ? " " Certainly, I do. So does every white man that has to Work for a living, If he Is n't a fool." NEGRO WHO DIDN'T SEE THE FIGHT. 109 " Then why did you fight for it ? " " We was n't fighting for slavery ; we was fighting for our independence. That 's the way the most of us understood it ; though we soon found out it was the rich man's war, and not the pore man's. We was fighting against our own interests, that 's shore ! " There is a private cemetery on the crest, surrounded by a brick w^alh Burnside's artillery had not spared it. I looked over the wall, which was badly smashed in places, and saw the overthrown monuments and broken tombstones lying on the ground. The heights all around were covered with weeds, and scan-ed by Rebel intrenchments ; here and there was an old apple-tree ; and I marked the ruins of two or three small brick houses. On the brow of the hill, overlooking the town, is the Marye estate, one of the finest about Fredericksburg before the blast of battle struck it. The house was large and elegant, occu- pying a beautiful site, and surrounded by terraces and shady lawns. Now if you would witness the results of artillery and infantry firing, visit that house. The pillars of the porch, built of brick, and covered with a cement of lime and white sand, were speckled with the marks of bullets. Shells and solid shot had made sad havoc with the walls and the wood- work inside. The windows were shivered, the partitions torn to pieces, and the doors perforated. I found a gigantic negro at work at a carpenter's bench in one of the lower rooms. He seemed glad to receive company, and took me from the basement to the zinc-covered roof, show- ing me all the more remarkable shot-holes. " De Rebel sharpshooters was in de house ; dat 's what made de Yankees shell it so." " Where were the people who lived here ? " " Dey all lef ' but me. I stopped to see de fight. I tell ye, I would n't stop to see anoder one ! I thought I was go'n' to have fine fun,^ and tell all about it. I Jieerd de fight, but I did n't see it ! " " Were you frightened ? " 110 THE FIELD OF FREDERICKSBURG. " Hoo ! " flinging up lils hands with a ludicrous expression. " Don't talk about sheered ! I never was so sheered since I was bo'n ! I stood hyer by dis slier winder ; I 'spected to see de whole of it ; I know I was green ! I was look'n' to see de fir'n' down below dar, when a bullet come by me, lit ! quick as dat. ' Time fo' me to be away f om hyer ! ' and I started ; but I 'd no sooner turned about, when de bullets begun to strike de house jes' like dat ! '' drumming with his fingers. " I went down-stars, and out dis sher house, quick- er 'n any man o' my size ever went out a house befo'e ! Come, and I '11 show you whar I was hid." It was in the cellar of a little dairy-house, of which nothing was left but the Avails. " I got in thar wid anoder cullud man. I thought I was as sheered as anybody could be ; but whew ! he was twicet as sheered as I was. B-r-r-r-r ! b-r-r-r-r ! de fir'n' kep' up a reg'lar noise like dat, all day long. Every time a shell struck anywhar near, I knowed de next would kill me. ' Jim,' says I, ' now de next shot will be our own ! ' Dem's de on'y wu'ds I spoke ; but he was so sheered he never spoke at all." " Were you here at the fight the year after ?" " Dat was when Shedwick [Sedgwick] come. I thought if dar was go'n' to be any fight'n', I 'd leave dat time, shore. I hitched up my oxen, think'n' I 'd put out, but waited fo' de mo'nin' to see. Dat was Sunday mo'nin'. I had n't slep' none, so I jest thought I 'd put my head on my hand a minute till it growed light. I had n't mo'e 'n drapped asleep ; I 'd nodded oncet or twicet: so; " illustrating; " no longer 'n dat; when — c-r-r-r-r, — I looked up, — all de wu'ld was fir'n' ! Shedwick's men dey run up de road, got behind de batteries on dis sher hill, captured every one ; and I never knowed how dey done it so quick. Dat was enough fo' me. If dar's go'n' to be any mo'e fight'n', I go whar da' an't no wa' ! " " A big fellow like you tell about being skeered ! " said the young Rebel. " I knowed de bigger a man was, de bigger de mark fo' de balls. I weighs two hundred and fifty-two pounds." SOUTHERN CONSISTENCY. Ill " Where Is your master ? " I asked. "I ha'n't got no master now; Mr. Marye was my master. He 's over de mountain. I was sold at auction in Fredericks- burg oncet, and he bought me fo' twelve hundred dolla's. Now he pays me wages, — thirty dolla's a month. I wo'ked in de mill while de wa' lasted. Men brought me co'n to grind. Some brought a gallon ; some brought two qua'ts ; it was a big load if anybody brought half a bushel. Dat's de way folks lived. Now he 's got anoder man in de mill, and he pays me fo"^ tak'n' keer o' dis sher place and fitt'n' it up a little." " Are you a carpenter ? " " Somethin' of a carpenter ; I kin do whatever I turns my hand to." The young Rebel afterwards corroborated this statement. Altliough he did not like niggers generally, and washed they were all out of the country, he said Charles (for that was the giant's name) was an exception ; and he gave him high praise for the fidelity and sagacity he had shown in saving his master's property from destruction. While we were sitting under the portico, a woman came up the hill, and began to talk and jest in a familiar manner with Charles. I noticed that my Rebel acquaintance looked ex- ceedingly disgusted. " That woman," said he to me, "has got a nigger husband. That 's what makes her talk that way. White folks won't associate with her, and she goes with the darkies. We used to have lynch law for them cases. Such things wa'n't allowed. A nigger had better have been dead than be caught livino- with a white woman. The house would get torn down over their heads some night, and nobody would know who did it." " Are you sure such things were not allowed ? Five out of six of your colored population have white blood in their veins. How do you account for it ? " " O, that comes from white fathers ! " "And slave mothers," said I. "That I suppose was all right ; but to a stranger it does n't look very consistent. You 112 THE FIELD OF FREDERICKSBURG. would lynch a poor black man for living in wedlock with a white woman, and receive into the best society white men who were raising up illegitimate slave children by their colored mistresses." " Yes, that 's just wdiat was done ; there 's no use denying it. I 've seen children sold at auction in Fredericksburg by their own fathers. But nobody ever thought it was just right. It always happened wlien the masters was in debt, and their property had to be taken." The field below the stone wall belonged to this young man's mother. It was now a cornfield ; a sturdy crop was growing where the dead had lain in heaps. " Soon as Richmond fell I came home ; and 'Lijah and I went to work and put in that piece of corn. I didn't wait for Lee's surrender. Thousands did the same. We knew that if Richmond fell, the war would be removed from Virginia, and we had no notion of going to fight in other States. The Con- federate army melted away just like frost in the sun, so that only a small part of it remained to be surrendered." He invited me to go through the cornfield and see where the dead were buried. Near the middle of the piece a strip some fifteen yards long and four wide had been left unculti- vated. " There 's a thousand of your men buried in this hole ; that 's the reason we didn't plant here." Some distance below the cornfield was the cellar of an ice-house, in which five hundred Union soldiers were buried. And yet these were but a portion of the slain ; all the surrounding fields were scarred with graves. Returning to Fredericksburg, I visited the plain north- west of the town, also memorable for much hard fighting on that red day of December. I found a pack of government wagons there, an encampment of teamsters, and a few Yankee soldiers, who told me they were tired of doing nothing, and " three times as fast for going home " as they were before the war closed. In the midst of this plain, shaded by a pleasant grove, stands a broM'n brick mansion said to have been built by LACY HOUSE. 113 George Washington for his mother's family. Not far off" is a monument erected to Mary, the mother of Washington, whose mortal remains rest here. It is of marble, measuring some nine feet square and fifteen in height, unfinished, capped with a mat of weeds, and bearing no inscription but the names of visitors who should have blushed to desecrate the tomb of the venerated dead. The monument has in other ways been sadly misused ; in the first place, by balls which nicked and chipped it during the battle ; and afterwards by relic-hunters, who, in their rage for carrying away some fragment of it, have left scarce a corner of cornice or pilaster unbroken. I had afterwards many walks about Fredericksburg, the most noteworthy of Avhich was a morning-visit to the Lacy House, where Burnside had his headquarters. Crossing the Rappahannock on the pontoon bridge, I climbed the stone steps leading from terrace to terrace, and reached the long- neglected grounds and the old-fashioned Virginia mansion. It was entirely deserted. The doors were wide open, or broken from their hinges, the windows smashed, the floors covered with rubbish, and the walls with the names of soldiers and regi- ments, or pictures cut from the illustrated newspapers. The windows command a view of Fredericksburg and the battle-field ; and there I stood, and saw in imagination the fight reenacted, — the pontoniers at their work in the misty morning, the sharpshooters in rifle-pits and houses opposite driving them from it with their murderous fire, the shelling of the town, the troops crossing, the terrible roaring battle, the spouting flames, the smoke, the charging parties, and the hor- rible slaughter ; — I saw and heard it all again, and fancied for a time that I was the commanding general, whose eyes beheld, and whose wrung heart felt, what he would gladly have given his own life to prevent or retrieve. 8 114 TO CHANCELLORSVILLE. CHAPTER XIV. TO CHANCELLORSVILLE. In conversation with my Rebel acquaintance at the Marye House, I had learned that his friend " 'Lijah " sometimes con- veyed travellers over the more distant battle-fields. Him, therefore, I sent to engage with his horse and buggy for the following day. Breakfast Avas scarcely over the next morning, Avhen, as I chanced to look from my hotel -window, I saw a thin-faced countryman drive up to the door in an old one-horse wagon with two seats, and a box half filled with corn-stalks. I was admiring the anatomy of the horse, every prominent bone of which could be counted through his skin, when I heard the man inquiring for me. It was " 'Lijah," with his " horse and buggy." I was inclined to criticise the establishment, which was not altogether what I had been led to expect. " I allow he a'n't a fust-class hoss," said Elijah. " Only give three dollars for him. Feed is skurce and high. But let him rest this winter, and git some meal in him, and he '11 make a plough crack next spring." " What are vou goingi; to do. with those corn-stalks ? " " Fodder for the hoss. They 're all the fodder he '11 git till night ; for we 're go'n' into a country whar thar 's noth'n' mo'e for an animal to eat than thar is on the palm of my hand." I took a seat beside him, and made use of the stalks by placing a couple of bundles between my back and the sharp board which travellers were expected to lean against. Elijah cracked his wdiip, the horse frisked his tail, and struck into a cow-trot which pleased him. " You see, he '11 snake us over the ground right peart ! " ELIJAH AND HIS MULE. 115 He proceeded to tantalize me by telling what a mule he had, and what a little mare he had, at home. " She certainly goes over the ground ! I believe she can run ekal to anything in this country for about a mile. But she 's got a set of legs under her jest like a sheep's legs." He could not say enough in praise of the mule. " Paid eight hundred dollars for him in Confederate money. He earned a living for the whole family last winter, I used to go reg'lar up to Chancellorsville and the Wilderness, buy up a box of clothing, and go down in Essex and trade it off for corn." " What sort of clothing ? " " Soldiers' clothes from the battle-fields. Some was flung away, and some, I suppose, was stripped off the dead. Any number of families jest lived on what they got from the Union armies in that way. They 'd pick up what garments they could lay hands on, wash 'em up and sell 'em. I 'd take a blanket, and git half a bushel of meal for it down in Essex. Then I 'd bring the meal back, and git maybe two blankets, or a blanket and a coat, for it. All with that little mule. He '11 haul a load for ye ! He '11 stick to the ground go'n' up hill jest like a dry-land tarrapin ! But I take the mare when I 'm in a hurry ; she makes them feet rattle ag'in the ground ! " We took the plank-road to Chancellorsville, passing through a waste country of weeds or undergrowth, like every other part of Virginia which I had yet seen. " All this region through yer," said Elijah, " used to be grow'd up to corn and as beautiful clover as ever you see. But since the wa', it 's all turned out to bushes and briers and hog-weeds. It 's gitt'n' a start ag'in now. I '11 show 'em how to do it. If we git in a crap o' wheat this fall, which I don't know if we sha'n't. we kin start three big teams, and whirl up twenty acres of land directly. That mule," etc. Elijah praised the small farmers. " People in ordinary sarcumstances along yer are a mighty industrious people. It 's the rich that keep this country down. 116 TO CHANCELLORSVILLE. The way it generally is, a few own too mnch, and the rest own noth'n'. I know hundreds of thou.'^ands of acres of land put to no uset, which, if it was cut up into little farms, Avould make the country look thrifty. This is mighty good land ; clay bottom ; holds manure jest like a chany bowl does water. But the rich ones jest scratched over a little on 't with their slave labor, and let the rest go. They would n't sell ; let a young man go to 'em to buy, and they 'd say they did n't want no poo' whites around 'em ; they would n't have one, if they could keep shet of 'em. And what was the result? Young men would go off to the West, if they was enterpris'n', and leave them that wa'n't enterpris'n' hyer to home. Then as the old heads died oflF, the farms would run down. Tlie young women would marry the lazy young men, and raise up families of lazy children." The country all about Fredericksbui"g was very tmhealthy. Elijah, on making inquiries, could hear of scarcely a family on the road exempt from sickness. " It was never so till sence the wa'. Now we have chills and fever, jest like they do in a new country. It 's owin' to the land all comin' up to weeds ; the dew settles in 'em and they rot, and that fills the air with the ager. I 've had the ager myself till about a fortnight ago ; then soon as I got shet of that, the colic took me. Eat too much on a big appetite, I suppose. I like to live well ; like to see plenty of everything on the table, and then I like to see every man eat a heap." I commended Elijah's practical sense ; upon which he re- plied, — " The old man is right ignorant ; can't read the fust letter ; never went to school a day ; but the old man is right sharp ! " He was fond of speaking of himself in this way. He thought education a good tiling, but allowed that all the education in the world could not give a man sense. He was fifty years old, and had got along thus far in hfe very well. " I reckon thar 's go'n' to be a better chance for the poo' man after this. The Union bein' held together was the great- est thing that could have happened for us." ^^IJAH'S ACCOUNT OF SEDGWICK'S RETREAT. 117 " And yet you fought against it." " I was in the Confederate army two year and a half. I was opposed to secession ; but I got my head a Httle turned after the State went out, and I enHsted. Then, when I had time to reconsider it all over, I diskivered we was wrong. I told the boys so. " ' Boys,' says I, ' when my time 's up, I 'm go'n' out of the army, and you won't see me in ag'in.' " ' You can't help that, old man,' says they ; ' fo' by that time the conscript law '11 be changed so 's to go over the heads of older men than you.' " ' Then,' says I, ' the fust chance presents itself, I fling down my musket and go spang No'th.' " They had me put under arrest for that, and kep' me in the guard-house seven months. I liked that well enough. I was saved a deal of hard march'n' and lav'n' out in the cold, that winter. " ' Why don't ye come in boys,' says I, ' and have a warm ? ' " I knowed what I was about ! The old man Avas right ignorant, but the old man was right sharp ! " We passed the line of Sedgwick's retreat a few miles from Fredericksburg. " Shedrick's mer Avas in line acrost the road hyer, extendin' into the woods on both sides ; they had jest butchered their meat, and was ishyin' rations and beginnin' to cook their suppers, when Magruder struck 'em on the left flank." (Elijah was wrong; it was not Magruder, but McLaws. These local guides make many such mistakes, and it is neces- sary to be on one's guard against them.) " They jest o-ot right up and skedaddled ! The whole line jest faced to the right, and put for Banks's Ford. Thar 's the road they went. They left it piled so full of wagons, Magruder could n't follah, but his artillery jest run around by another road I '11 show ye, hard as ever they could lay their feet to the ground, wheeled their guns in position on the bluffs by the time Shedrick got cleverly to crossin', and played away. The way they heaped up Shedrick's men was awful ! " 118 TO CHANCELLORS VILLE. Every mile or two we came to a small farm-house, com monly of logs, near which there was usually a small crop of corn growing. " Every man after he got home, after the fxll of Richmond, put in to raise a little somethin' to eat. Some o' the corn looks poo'ly, but it beats no corn at all, all to pieces." We came to one field which Elijah pronounced a " mon- strous fine crap." But he added, — " I 've got thirty acres to home not a bit sorrier 'n that. Ye Bee, that mule of mine," etc. I noticed — what I never saw in the latitude of New Eng- land — that the fodder had been pulled below the ears and tied in little bundles on the stalks to cure. Ingenious shifts for fences had been resorted to by the farmers. In some places the planks of the worn-out plank-road had been staked and lashed together to form a temporary enclosure. But the most common fence was what Elijah called " bresh wattlin'." Stakes were first driven into the ground, then pine or cedar brush bent in between them and beaten down with a maul. " Ye kin build a wattlin' fence that way so tight a rabbit can't git through." On making inquiries, I found that farms of fine land could be had all through this region for ten dollars an acre. Elijah hoped that men from the North would come in and settle. " But," said he, " 't would be dangerous for any one to take possession of a confiscated farm. He would n't live a month." The larger land-owners are now more willing to sell. " Right smart o' their property was in niggei's ; they 're pore now, and have to raise money. "The emancipation of slavery," added Elijah, "is wo'kin' right for the country mo'e ways 'an one. The' a'n't two men in twenty, in middlin' sarctimstances, but that 's beginnin' to see it. I 'm no friend to the niggers, though. They ought all to be druv out of the countrv. They won't wo'k as loner as they can steal. I have my little crap o' corn, and wheat, ELIJAH ON THE NEGROES. 119 and po'k. When night comes, I must sleep ; then the niggers come and steal all I 've got." I pressed him to give an instance of the negroes' stealing his property. He could not say that they had taken anything from him lately, but they " used to " rob his cornfields and hen-roosts, and " they would again." Had he ever caught them at it ? No, he could not say that he ever had. Then how did he know that the thieves were negroes ? He knew it, because " niggers would steal." " Won't white folks steal too, sometimes ? " " Yes," said Elijah, " some o' the poo' whites are a durned sight wus 'n the niggers ! " " Then why not drive them out of the country too ? You see," said I, "your charges against the negroes are vague, and amount to nothing." " I own," he replied, " thar 's now and then one that 's ekal to any white man. Thar 's one a-comin' thar." A load of wood was approaching, drawn by two horses abreast and a mule for leader. A white-haired old negro was riding the mule. " He is the greatest man ! " said EHjah, after we had passed. " He 's been the support of his master's family for twenty year and over. He kin manage a heap better 'n his master kin. The' a'n't a farmer in the country kin beat him. He keeps right on jest the same now he 's free ; though I suppose he gits wages." " You acknowledge, then, that some of the negroes are superior men ? " " Yes, thar 's about ten in a hundred, honest and smart as anybody." " That," said I, " is a good many. Do you suppose you could say more of the white race, if it had just come out of slavery ? " " I don't believe," said Elijah, " that ye could say as much ! " We passed the remains of the house " whar Harrow was shot." It had been burned to the ground. 120 TO CHANCELLORSVILLE. " You 've lieercl about Harrow ; he was Confederate com- missary ; he stole mo'e hosses f 'om the people, and po'ed the money down his own throat, than would have paid fo' fo'ty men like him, if he was black." A mile or two farther on, we ca,me to another house. " Hyer's whar the man lives that killed Harrow. He was in the army, and because he objected to some of Harrow's doin's, Harrow had him arrested, and treated him very much amiss. That ground into his conscience and feelin's, and he deserted fo' no other puppose than to shoot him. He 's a mighty smart fellah ! He '11 strike a man side the head, and soon 's his fist leaves it, his foot 's thar. He shot Harrow in that house you see burnt to the ground, and then went spang to Washington. O, he was sharp ! " On our return we met the slayer of Harrow riding home "from Fredericksburg on a mule, — a fine-looking young fel- low, of blonde complexion, a pleasant countenance, finely chis- elled nose and lips, and an eye full of sunshine. " Jest the best-hearted, nicest young fellah in the wo'kl, till ye git him mad ; then look out ! " I think it is often the most attractive persons, of fine temperaments, who are capable of the most terrible wrath when roused. The plank-road was in such a mined condition that nobody thought of driving on it, although the dirt road beside it was in places scarcely better. The back of the seat was cruel, notwithstanding the corn-stalks. But by means of much persuasion, enforced by a good whip, Elijah kept the old horse jogging on. Oak-trees, loaded with acorns, grew beside the road. Black-walnuts, already beginning to lose their leaves^ huno; their delicate balls in the clear lifrht over our heads. Poke-weeds, dark with ripening berries, wild grapes festoon- ing bush and tree, sumachs thrusting up through the foliage their sanguinary spears, persimmon-trees, gum-trees, red cedars, with their bluish-green clusters, chestnut-oaks, and chincapins, adorned the wild wayside. So we approached Chancellorsville, twelve miles from Fred- ericksburg. Elyah was raised in that region, and knew every- body. CHANCELLORSVILLE FARM. 121 *' Many a frolic have I had runnin' the deer tlirough these woods ! Soon as the dogs started one, he 'd put fo' the river, cross, take a turn on t' other side, and it would n't be an hour 'fo'e he 'd be back ag'in. Man I lived with used to have a mare that was trained to hvmt ; if she was in the field and heard the dogs, she 'd whirl her tail up on her back, lope the fences, and go spang to the United States Ford, git thar 'fo'e the dogs would, and hunt as well without a rider as with one." But since then a far different kind of hunting, a richer blood than the deer's, and other sounds than the exciting yelp of the dogs, had rendered that region famous. " Hyer we come to the Chancellorsville farm. Many a poo' soldier's knapsack was emptied of his clothes, after the battle, along this road ! " said Elijah, remembering last winter's business with his mule. The road runs through a large open field bounded by woods. The marks of hard fighting were visible fi'om afar off. A growth of saplings edging the woods on the south had been killed by volleys of musketry : they looked like thickets of bean-poles. The ground everywhere, in the field and in the woods, was strewed with mementos of the battle, — rotting knapsacks and haversacks, battered canteens and tin cups, and fragments of clothing which Elijah's customers had not deemed it M^orth the while to pick up. On each side of the road were breastworks and rifle-pits extending into the woods. The clearing, once a well-fenced farm of g»siin-fields and clover- lots, was now a dreary and deserted common. Of the Chan- cellorsville House, formerly a large brick tavern, only the half-fallen walls and chimney-stacks remained. Here General Hooker had his headquarters until the wave of battle on Sunday morning rolled so hot and so near that he was com- pelled to withdraw. The house was soon after fired by a Rebel shell, when full of wounded men, and burned. " Every place ye see these big bunches of weeds, that 's whar tha' was bosses or men buried," said Elijah. " These holes are whar the bones have been dug up for the bone-factory at Fredericksburg." 122 TO CHANCELLORSVILLE. It was easy for the bone-seekers to determine where to dig. The common was comparatively barren, except where grew those gigantic clumps of weeds. I asked Elijah if he thought many human bones went to the factory. " Not unless by mistake. But people a'n't always very par- tic'lar about mistakes thar 's money to be made by." Seeing a small enclosure midway between the road and the woods on the south, we walked to it, and found it a burying- ground ridged with unknown graves. Not a head-board, not an inscription, indicated who were the tenants of that little lonely field. And Elijah knew nothing of its history ; it had been set apart, and the scattered dead had been gathered to- gether and buried there, since he passed that way. We found breastworks thrown up all along by the plank- road west of the farm, — the old worn planks having been put to good service in their construction. The tree-trunks pierced by balls, the boughs lopped off by shells, the strips of timber cut to pieces by artillery and musketry fire, showed how des- perate the struggle on that side had been. The endeavors of the Confederates to follow up with an overwhelming victory Jackson's swift and telling blows on our right, and the equally determined efforts of our men to retrieve that disaster, rendered this the scene of a furious encounter. Elijah thought that if Jackson had not been killed by his own men after delivering that thunderstroke. Hooker would have been annihilated. "Stonewall" was undoubtedly the enemy's best fighting^General. His death was to them equal to the loss of many brigades. With regard to the manner of his death there can be no longer any doubt. I have conversed with Confederate officers who were in the battle, all of whom agree as to the main fact. General Jackson, after shattering our right wing, posted his pickets at night with directions to fire upon any man or body of men that might approach. He after- wards rode forward to I'econnoitre, returned inadvertently by the same road, and was shot by his own orders. DAYS OF ANXIETY. 123 CHAPTER XV. THE WILDEKNESS. The Battle of Bull Run in 1861, Pope's campaign, and Burnsicle's defeat at Fredericksburg in 1862, and, lastly, Hooker's unsuccessful attempt at Chancellorsville in the spring of 1863, had shown how hard a road to Richmond this was to travel. Repeatedly, as we tried it and failed, the hopes of the Confederacy rose exultant ; the heart of the North sank as often, heavy with despair. McClellan's Peninsular route had resulted still more fatally. We all remember the anguish and anxiety of those days. But the heart of the North shook off its despair, listened to no timid counsels ; it was growing fierce and obdurate. We no longer received the news of defeat with cries of dismay, but with teeth close-set, a smile upon the quiver- ing lips, and a burning fire within. Had the Rebels triumphed again ? Then so much the worse for them ! Had we been once more repulsed with slaughter from their strong line of defences ? Was the precious blood poured out before them all in vain ? At last it should not be in vain ! Though it should cost a new thirty years' war and a generation of lives, the red work we had begun must be completed ; ultimate failure was impossible, ultimate triumph certain. This inflexible spirit found its embodiment in the leader of the final campaigns against the Rebel capital. It was the deep spirit of humanity itself, ready to make the richest sacrifices, calm, determined, inexorable, moving steadily towards the great object to be achieved. It has been said that General Grant did not consider the lives of his men. Then the people did not consider them. But the truth lies here : precious as w.Te those lives, something lay beyond far more precious, and 124 THE WILDEEINESS. tliey were the needful price paid for it. We had learned the dread price, we had duly weighed the worth of the object to be purchased ; what then was the use of hesitating and higgling ? We were approaching the scene of Grant's first great blow aimed at the gates of the Rebel capital. On the field of Chancellorsville you already tread the borders of the field of the Wilderness, — if that can be called a field which is a mere interminable forest, slashed here and there with roads. Passing straight along the plank-road, we came to a large farm-house, which had been gutted by soldiers, and but re- cently reoccupied. It was still in a scarcely habitable condi- tion. However, we managed to obtain, what we stood greatly in need of, a cup of cold water. I observed that it tasted strongly of iron. " The reason of that is, we took twelve camp-kettles out of the well," said the man of the house, " and nobody knows how many more there are down there." The place is known as Locust Grove. In the edge of the forest, but a little farther on, is the Wilderness Church, — a Bquare-framed building, which showed marks of such usage as every uninhabited house receives at the hands of a wild soldiery. Red Mars has little respect for the temples of the Prince of Peace. " Many a time have I been to meet'n' in that shell, and sot on hard benches, and heard long sermons ! " said Elijah. " But I reckon it '11 be a long while befo'e them doo's are darkened by a congregation ag'in. Thar a'n't the population through hyer thar used to be. Oncet we 'd have met a hun- dred wagons on this road go'n' to market ; but I count we ha'n't met mo'e 'n a dozen to-day." Not far beyond the church we approached two tall guide- posts erected where the road forks. The one on the right pointed the way to the " Wilderness National Cemetery, No. 1, 4 miles," by the Orange Court-House turnpike. The other indicated the " Wilderness National Cemetery, No. 2," by the plank-road. " All this has been done sence I was this way," said Elijah. SCENES IN THE WILDERNESS. 125 We kept the plank-road, — or ratlier the clay road beside it, which stretched before us dim in the hollows, and red as brick on the hillsides. We passed some old fields, and entered the great W^ilderness, — a high and dry country, thickly over- grown with dwarfish timber, chiefly scrub oaks, pines, and cedars. Poles lashed to trees for tent-supports indicated where our regiments had encamped ; and soon we came upon abundant evidences of a great battle. Heavy breastworks thrown up on Brock's cross-road, planks from the plank-road piled up and lashed against trees in the woods, to form a shelter for our pickets, knapsacks, haversacks, pieces of clothing, frag- ments of harness, tin plates, cajiteens, some pierced with balls, fragments of shells, with here and there a round-shot, or a shell unexploded, straps, buckles, cartridge-boxes, socks, old shoes, rotting letters, desolate tracts of perforated and broken trees, — all these signs, and others sadder still, remained to tell their silent story of the great fight of the Wilderness. A cloud passed over the sun : all the scene became sombre, and hushed with a strange brooding stillness, broken only by the noise of twigs crackling under my feet, and distant growls of thunder. A shadow fell upon my heart also, as from the wing of the Death- Angel, as I wandered through the woods, meditating upon what I saw. Where were the feet that wore those empty shoes ? Where was he whose proud waist was buckled in that belt ? Some soldier's heart was made happy by that poor, soiled, tattered, illegible letter, which rain and mildew have not spared ; some mother's, sister's, wife's, or sweetheart's hand, doubtless, penned it ; it is the broken end of a thread which unwinds a whole life-history, could we but follow it rightly. Where is that soldier now ? Did he fall jn the fight, and does his home know him no more ? Has the poor wife or stricken mother waited long for the answer to that letter, which never came, and will never come ? And this cap, cut in two by a shot, and stiff with a strange incrustation, — a small cap, a mere boy's, it seems, — where now the fair head and wavy hair that wore it ? Oh, mother and sisters at home, do you still mourn for your drummer-boy ? Has the 126 THE WILDERNESS. story readied you, — how he went into the figlit to carry oft* his wounded comrades, and so lost his Hfe for their sakes? — for so I imagine the tale which will never be told. And what more appalling spectacle is this ? In the cover of thick woods, the unburied remains of two soldiers, — two skeletons side by side, two skulls almost touching each other, like the cheeks of sleepers ! I came upon them unawares as I picked my way among the scrub oaks. I knew that scores of such sights could be seen here a few weeks before ; but the United States Government had sent to have its unburied dead collected together in the two national cemeteries of the Wilder- ness ; and I had hoped the work was fiiithfully done. " They was No'th-Carolinians ; that 's why they did n't bury 'em," said Elijah, after a careful examination of the buttons fallen from the rotted clothing. The ground where they lay had been fought over repeat- edly, and the dead of both sides had fallen there. The buttons may, therefore, have told a true story : North-Carolinians they mav have been ; yet I could not believe that the true reason why they had not been decently interred. It must have been that these bodies, and others we found afterwards, were over- looked by the party sent to construct the cemeteries. It was shameful negligence, to say the least. The cemetery was near by, — a little clearing in the woods by the roadside, thirty yards square, surrounded by a picket fence, and comprising seventy trenches, each containing the remains of I know not how many dead. Each trench was marked with a headboard inscribed with the invariable words : " Unknown United States soldiers, killed Ma/, 1864." Elijah, to whom I read the inscription, said, ])ertinently, that the words United States soldiers indicated plainly that it had not been the intention to bury Rebels there. No doubt : but these might at least have been buried in the woods where they fell. As a grim sarcasm on this negiect, somebody hiad flung thres human skulls, picked up in the woods, over the paling into the cemetery, where they lay blanching among the graves. THE FIRE IN THE WOODS. 127 Close by the southeast corner of the fence were three or four Rebel graves with old headboards. Elijah called my attention to them, and wished me to read what the headboards said. The main fact indicated was, that those buried there were North-Carolinians. Elijah considered this soinehow corroborative of his theory derived from the buttons. The graves were shallow, and the settling of the earth over the bodies had left the feet of one of the poor fellows sticking out. The shadows which darkened the woods, and the ominous thunder-growls, culminated in a shower. Elijah crawled under his wagon ; I sought the shelter of a tree ; the horse champed his fodder, and Ave ate our luncheon. How quietly upon the leaves, how softly upon the graves of the cemetery, fell the perpendicular rain ! The clouds parted, and a burst of sun- light smote the Wilderness ; the rain still poured, but every drop was illumined, and I seemed standing in a shower of silver meteors. The rain over, and luncheon finished, I looked about for some solace to my palate after the dry sandwiches moistened only by the drippings from the tree, — seeking a dessert in the Wilderness. Summer grapes hung their just ripened clusters from the vine-laden saplings, and the chincapin bushes were starred with opening burrs. I followed a woodland path embowered with the glistening boughs, and plucked, and ate, and mused. The ground was level, and singularly free from the accumulations of twigs, branches, and old leaves with tvhich forests usually abound. I noticed, however, many charred sticks and half-burnt roots and logs. Then the terrible recollection overtook me : these were the woods that were on fire during the battle. I called Elijah. " Yes, all this was a flame of fire while the fight was go'n' on. It was full of dead and wounded men. Cook and Ste- vens, farmers over hyer, men I know, heard the screams of the poor fellahs burnin' up, and come and dragged many a one out of the fire, and laid 'em in the road." The woods were full of Rebel graves, with here and there a heap of half-covered bones, where several of the dead had been hurriedly buried together. 128 THE WILDERNESS. I had seen enough. We returned to the cemetery. Elijah hitched up his horse, and we drove back along the plank-road, cheered by a rainbow which spanned the Wilderness and moved its bright arch onward over Chancellorsville towards Fredericksburg, brightening and fading, and brightening still again, like the hope which gladdened the nation's eye after Grant's victory. ELIJAH «CUT.» 129 CHAPTER XVI. SPOTTSYLVANIA COURT-HOUSE. Elijah wished to drive me the next day to Spottsylvania Court-House, and, as an inducement for me to employ him, promised to tackle up his mare. He also proposed various devices for softening the seats of his wagon. No ingenuity of plan, however, sufficed to cajole me. There was a livery- stable in Fredericksburg, and I had conceived a strong preju- dice in its favor. The next morning, accordingly, there might have been seen wheeling up to the tavern-door a shining vehicle, — a bran- new buggy with the virgin gloss upon it, — drawn by a prancing iron-gray in a splendid new harness. The sarcastic stable-man had witnessed my yesterday's departure and return, and had evidently exhausted the resources of his establishment to furnish forth a dazzling contrast to Elijah's sorry outfit. The driver was a youth who wore his cap rakishly over his left eyebrow. I took a seat by his side on a cushion of the softest, and presently might have been seen riding out of Fred- ericksburg in that brilliant style, — nay, was seen, by one certainly, who was cut to the heart. We drove by the " stone- wall " road under the Heights, and passed a house by the corner of which a thin-visaged " old man " of fifty was watering a sad little beast at a well. The beast was " that mare " ; and the old man was Elijah. I shall never forget the look he gave me. I bade him a cheerful good-morning ; but his voice stuck in his throat ; he could not say " good-morning." Our twin- kling wheels almost grazed the hubs of the old wagon standing in the road as we passed. That I might have nothing to regret, the stable-keeper had given me a driver who was in the Spottsylvania battle. 9 130 SPOTTSYLVANIA COURT-HOUSE. *' You cannot have seen mueli service, at your age," I said, examining liis boyish features. " I was four year in de army, anyhow," he rephed, spitting tobacco-juice with an air of old experience. " I enhsted when I was thirteen. I was under de quartermaster at fust ; but de last two year I was in de artillery." I observed that he used de for the almost invariably, with many other peculiarities of expression which betrayed early association with negroes. " What is your name ? " " Richard H. Hicks." " What is your middle name ? " " I ha'n't got no middle name." " What does the H stand for ? " " H stands for Hicks : Richard H. Hicks ; dat 's what diej tell me." " Can't you read ? " " No, I can't read. 1 never went to school, and never had no chance to learn." Somehow this confession touched me with a sadness I had not felt even at the sight of the dead men in the woods. He, young, active, naturally intelligent, was dead to a world with- out which this world would seem to us a blank, — the world of literature. To him the page of a book, the column of a newspaper, was meaningless. Had he been an old man, or black, or stupid, I should not have been so much sui-prised. I thought of Shakspeare, David, the prophets, the poets, the romancers ; and as my mind glanced from name to name on the glittering entablatures, I seemed to be standing in a glorious temple, with a blind youth at my side. " Did you ever hear of Sir Walter Scott? " " Nq, I never heerd of that Scott. But I know a William Scott." " Did you ever hear of Longfellow ? " " No, I never heerd of him ? " " Did you never hear of a great English poet called Lord Byron?" DEAD MEN'S CLOTHES. 181 " No, sir, I never knowed dar was sucli a man." What a giilf betwixt his mind and mine ! Sitting side by- side there, we were yet as far apart as the great globe's poles. " Do you mean to go through life in such ignorance ? " " I don't know ; I 'd learn to read if I had de chance." " Find a chance ! make a chance ! Even the little negro boys are getting the start of you," "I reckon I '11 go to school some dis winter," said he. " Dar 's go'n' to be a better chance fo' schools now ; dat 's what dey say." " Why now ? " I asked. " I don't know ; on'y dey say so." " You think, then, it was a good thing that the Confederacy got used up and slavery abolished ? " " It mought be a good thing. All I know is, it 's so, and it can't be ho'ped " (helped). " It suits me well enough. I 've been gitt'n' thii'ty dollars a month dis summer, and that 's twicet mo'e 'n I ever got befo'e." I could not discover that this youth of seventeen had ever given the great questions involving the welfare of his country a serious thought. However, the vague belief he had imbibed regarding better times coming in consequence of emancipation, interested me as a still further evidence of the convictions entertained by the poorer classes on tliis subject. As we rode over the hills behind Fredericksburg, a young fellow came galloping after us on a mule. " Whar ye go'n', Dick ? " " I 'm go'n' to de battle-field wi' dis gentleman." " He 's from the No'th, then," said the young fellow. " How do you know that ? " I asked. " Because no South'n man ever goes to the battle-fields : we 've seen enough of 'em." He became very sociable as we rode along. " Ye see that apple-tree ? I got a right good pair o' pants off one o' your soldier's under that tree once." "Was he dead?" " Yes. He was one of Sedgwick's men ; he was killed when Sedgwick took the Heights. Shot through the head. The 132 SPOTTSYLVANIA COURT-HOUSE. pants wa'n't hurt none." And putting spurs to his mule, he galloped ahead. I noticed that he and Richard, like many of the young men, white and black, I had seen about Fredericksburg, wore United States army trousers. " Dey was all we could git one while," said Richard. " I reckon half our boys 'u'd have had to go widout pants if it had n't been for de Union army. Dar was right smart o' trad'n' done in Yankee clothes, last years o' de wa'." " Did you rob a dead soldier of those you have on ? " " No ; I bought dese in Fredericksburg. I never robbed a dead man." " But how did you know they were not taken from a corpse ? " " Mought be ; but it could n't be ho'ped. A poo' man can't be choice." Richard expressed great contempt — inspired by envy, I thought — of the young chap riding the mule. " United States gov'ment give away a hundred and fifty- old wore-out mules in Fredericksburg, not long ago ; so now every lazy fellow ye see can straddle his mule ! He a'n't no- body, though he thinks he 's a heavy coon-dog ! " " What do you mean by a heavy coon-dog ? " " Why, ye see, when a man owns a big plantation, and a heap o' darkeys, and carries a heavy pocket, or if he 's do'n' a big thing, den we call him a heavy coon-dog. Jeff Davis was a heavy coon-dog ; but he 's a light coon-dog now ! " Our route lay through a rough, hilly country, never more than very thinly inhabited, and now scarcely that. About every two miles we passed a poor log house in the woods, or on the edge of overgrown fields, — sometimes tenantless, but oftener occupied by a pale, poverty-smitten family afBicted with the chills. I do not remember more than two or three framed houses on the road, and they looked scarcely less disconsolate than their log neighbors. It is twelve miles from Fredericksburg to Spottsylvania Oourt-House. At the end of nine or ten miles w^e began to COUNTY CLERK. 133 meet with signs of military operations, — skirmish-lines, rifle- pits, and graves by the roadside. Rising a gentle ascent, we had a view of the Court-House, and of the surrounding country, — barren, hilly fields, with here and there a scattered tree, or clump of trees, commonly pines, and boundaries of heavier timber beyond. There were breastworks running in various directions, — along by the road, across the road, and diagonally over the crests. The country w^as all cut up with them ; and I found the Rebel works strangely mixed up with our own. As our army advanced, it had pos- sessed itself of the enemy's rifle-pits, skirmish-line, and still more important intrenchments, and converted them to its own use. Grant's main line of breastworks, very heavy, constructed of rails and stakes and earth, crosses the road at nearly right angles, and stretches away out of sight on either side over the hills and into the woods. I was reminded of what Elijah had told me the day before at Brock's Road, in the Wilderness. *' Grant's breastworks run thirty miles through the comitry, from near Ely's Ford on the Rapidan, spang past Spottsyl- vany Court-House and the Mattapony River." The road to the Court-House runs south. On the left was Beverly's house, and a shattered empty house on the right Richard pointed out the hill on which his battery was stationed early in the battle. " We had to git away f 'om dar, though. Your batteries drove us." We rode on to the Court-House : a goodlybrick building, with heavy pillars in front, one of which had been broken off by a shell, leaving a corner of the portico hanging in the air. There were but six other buildings of any importance in the place, one jail, one tavern, (no school-house,) one private dwelling, and three churches ; all of brick, and all more or less battered by artillery. Entering the Court-House amid heaps of rubbish which lit- tered the yard about the doors, I had the good fortune to find the county clerk at his desk. He received me politely, and offered to show me about the building. It had been well 134 SPOTTSYLVANIA COURT-HOUSE. riddled by shot and shell ; but masons and carpenters were at work repairing damages ; so that tliere was a prospect of the county, in a few months, having a court-house again. " What is most to be regretted," the clerk said, " is the destruction of documents which can't be restored. All the records and papers of the court were destroyed by the Union soldiers after they got possession." And he showed me a room heaped with the ft-agments. It looked like a room in a rag-man's warehouse. Returninj^- to his office, he invited me to sit down, and com- menced talkiiig freely of the condition and prospects of the country. The area of corn-land planted was small ; but the soil had been resting two or three years, the season had been favorable, and the result was an excellent crop. " We shall probably have a surplus to dispose of for other neces- saries." The county had not one third the number of horses, nor one tenth the amount of stock, it had before the war. Many families were utterly destitute. They had nothing whatever to live upon until the corn-harvest ; and many would have nothing then. The government had been feeding as many as fifteen hundred persons at one time. " How many of these were blacks?" " Perhaps one fifth." " How large a proportion of the population of the county are blacks ? " " Not quite one half." " The colored population require proportionately less assist- ance, then, than the white?" He admitted the fact. "Plow happens it?" I inquired; for he had previously told me the old hackneyed tale, that the negroes would uot work, and that in consequence they were destined to perish like the Indians. " They '11 steal," said he ; and he made use of this expres- sion, which he said was proverbial : " An honest nigger is as rare as a lock of har on the palm of my hand." "But," I objected, "it seems hardly possible for one class of people to hve by stealing in a country you describe as so destitute." IGNORANCE OF THE LOWER CLASSES. 135 *' A nigger will live on almost nothing," he replied. " It is n't to be denied, however, but that some of them work." He criticised severely the government's system of feeding the destitute. " Hundreds are obtaining assistance who are not entitled to any. They have only to go to the overseers of the poor appointed by government, put up a poor mug, and ask for a certificate in a weak voice ; they get it, and come and draw their rations. Some draw rations both here and at Fredericksburg, thus obtaining a double support, while they are well able to work and earn their living, if left to themselves. The system encourages idleness, and does more harm than good. All these evils could be remedied, and more than half the ex- pense saved the government, if it would intrust the entire man- agement of the matter in the hands of citizens." "Is it the whites, or the blacks, who abuse the government's bounty?" " The whites." " It appears, then, that they have the same faults you ascribe to the blacks : they are not over-honest, and they will not work unless oblig-ed to." " Yes, there are shiftless whites to be sure. There 's a place eight miles west from here, known as Texas, inhabited by a class of poor whites steeped in vice, ignorance, and crime of every description. They have no comforts, and no energy to work and obtain them. They have no books, no morality, no religion ; they go clothed like savages, half sheltered, and half fed, — except that government is now supporting them." " Do the whites we are feeding come mostly from that region ? '' " O, no ; they come from all over the county. Some walk as far as twenty miles to draw their fortnight's or three weeks' rations. Some were in good circumstances before the war; and some are tolerably well off now. A general impression prevails that this support comes from a tax on the county; so every man, whether he needs it or not, rushes in for a share. It is impossible to convince the country people that it is the United States government that is feeding them. Why, 136 SPOTTSYLVANIA COURT-HOUSE. sir, there are men in the back districts who will not yet believe that the war is over, and slavery at an end ! " " It appears," said I, " that ignorance is not confined to the region yon call Texas ; and that, considering all things, the whites are even more degraded than the blacks. Why doesn't some prophet of evil arise and predict that the white race, too, will die out because it is vicious and Avill not work?" " The whites are a different race, sir, — a different race," was the emphatic, but not very satisfactory reply. " The negro cannot live witliout the care and protection of a mas- ter." " You think, then, the abolition of slavery a great misfor- tune?" " A great misfortune to the negroes, certainly ; but not to the whites : we shall be better off without them." " It is singular that the negroes have no fear of the fate you predict for them. They say, on the contrary, ' We have been supporting our masters and their families all our lives, and now It is a pity if we cannot earn a living for ourselves.' " " Well, I hope they will succeed ! " This is the reply the emancipated slave-owners almost in- variably make to the above argument ; sometimes sarcastically, sometimes gravely, sometimes commiseratingly, but always in- credulously. " The negro is fated ; " this is the real or pre- tended belief; and this they repeat, often with an ill-concealed spirit of vindictiveness, an " I-told-you-so ! " air of triumph, until one is forced to the conclusion that their prophecy is their desire. POLICY OF SLAVE-OWNERS. 137 CHAPTER XVII. THE FIELD OF SPOTTSYLVANIA. I WALKED on to the tavern where Richard H. Hicks was baiting his horse. The landlord took me to a lumber- room where he kept, carefully locked up, a very remarkable curiosity. It was the stump of a tree, eleven inches in diam- eter, which had been cut off by bullets — not by cannon-shot, but by leaden bullets — in the Spottsylvania fight. It looked like a colossal scrub-broom. " I had a stump twice as big as this, cut off by bullets in the same way, only much smoother; but some Federal officers took it from me and sent it to the War Department at Washington." He liad many battle-scars about his house to show ; one of which I remember : " A shell come in through the wall thar, wrapped itself up in a bed that stood hyer, and busted in five pieces." In one of the rooms I found a Union officer lying on a lounge, sick with the prevailing fever. He seemed glad to see a Northern face, and urged me to be seated. " It is fearfully lonesome here ; and just now I have no companion but the ague." Learning that he had been some time in command of the post, I inquired the reason why the citizens appeared so eao-er to save the government expense in feeding their poor. " It is very simple : they wish to get control of the business in order to cut off the negroes. They had rather have the assistance the government affords withdrawn altogether, than that the freedmen should come in for a share. It is their policy to keep the blacks entirely dependent upon their former masters, and consequently as much slaves as before." 138 THE FIELD OF SPOTTSYLVANIA. " You of course hear many complaints that the blacks will not work ? " " Yes, and they are true in certain cases : they will not work for such wages as their late owners are willing to give ; in other words, they will not work for less than nothing. Rut when they have encouragement they work very well, in their fasliion, — which is not the Yankee fashion, certainly, but the fashion which slavery has bred them up to. They have not yet learned to appreciate, however, the binding character of a contract. It is a new thing to them. Besides, the master too often sets them bad examples by failing to keep his own engagements. He has been in the habit of breaking his promises to them at his convenience ; and now he finds fault that they do not keep theirs any better. The masters have not yet learned how to treat their old servants under the new conditions. They cannot learn that they are no longer slaves. That is one great source of trouble. On the other hand, where the freedman receives rational, just, and kind treatment, he behaves well and Avorks well, almost without exception. I expect a good deal of diffi- culty soon. The negroes have in many places made contracts to work for a part of the crop ; now when the corn comes to be divided, their ideas and their master's, with regard to what ' a part ' of the crop is, will be found to differ considerably. I was not an anti-slavery man at home," he added ; "and I give you simply the results of my observation since I have been in the South." " What do you think would be the effect if our troops were withdrawn ? " " I hardly know ; but I should expect one of two things : either that the freedmen would be reduced to a worse condition than they were ever in before, or that they would rise in in- surrection." The landlord wished me to go and look at his corn. It was certainly a noble crop. The tops of the monstrous ears towered six or eight feet from the ground ; the tops of the stalks at least twelve or fourteen feet. He maintained that it would average fifty bushels (of shelled corn) to the acre. I thought the estimate too high. SCENE OF THE DECISIVE CONFLICT. 139 " Good corn," said he, " measures finely ; sorry corn porely. And consider, not a spoonful of manure has been put on this ground fo' fou' years." " But the ground has been resting ; and that is as good as manure." " Yes ; but it 's mighty good soil that will do as well as this. Now tell your people, if they want to buy good land cheap, hyer 's their chance. I 've got a thousand acres ; and I '11 sell off seven hundred acres, claired or timber land, to suit pur- chasers. It 's well wo'th twenty dollars an acre ; I '11 sell for ten. It a'n't fur from market ; and thar 's noth'n' ye can't raise on this yer land." Of all his thousand acres he had only about fifteen under cultivation. His cornfield was not as large as it appeared ; for, running through the centre of it, like a titanic furrow, were Lee's tremendous intrenchments. These few acres were all the old man had been able to enclose. There was not another fence on his farm. " I had over ten thousand panels of fence burnt up for me during the wa' ; over eighty thousand rails." " By which army ? " " Both : fust one, and then the other. Our own troops were as bad as the Yankees." Afterwards, as we rode away from the tavern, Richard H. Hicks o;ave me the following succinct account of the landlord : " He used to be a heavy coon-dog. He had fifty head o' darkeys. He would n't hire 'em, and dey lef. Now he has nobody to wo'k de land, he 's got a light pocket, and so he 's a mind to sell." Ridino; west from the Court-House, and strikino; across the fields on the right, we passed McCool's house, in a pleasant sliady place, and reached the scene where the eight days' fight- ing culminated. Of the woods, thinned and despoiled by the storm of iron and lead, only a ghostly grove of dead trunks and dreary dry limbs remained. Keeping around the western edge of these, we came to a strange medley of intrenchments, which it would have required an engineer to unravel and 140 THE FIELD OF SPOTTSYLVANIA. understand. Here Grant's works had been pushed up against Lee's, swallowing them as one wave swallows another. No- where else have I seen evidences of such close and desperate fighting. For eight days Grant had been thundering at the gates of the Confederacy ; slowly, with fearful loss, he had been pressing back the enemy and breaking through the obstruc- tions ; until here at last he concentrated all his strength. Each army fought as if the gods had decreed that the issue of the war depended upon that struggle. And so indeed they had : the way to Richmond by this route, so long attempted in vain, was here opened. The grand result proclaimed that the eight days' battles were victories ; that the enemy, for the fii'st time on his own chosen ground, had met with ominous defeat. In- conceivable was the slaughter. Here two red rivers met and spilled themselves into the ground. Swift currents from the great West, tributaries from the Atlantic States and from the Lake States, priceless rills, precious drops, from almost every community and family in the Union, swelled the northern stream which burst its living banks and perished here. Every state, every community, every family mourned. But behind this curtain of woe was the chiselled awful form, the terrible front and sviblime eyes, of the statue of Fate, the na- tion's unalterable Will. Contemplating that, we were silenced, if not consoled. Every breast — that of the father going to search for the body of his dead son, that of the mother reading the brief despatch that pierced her as the bullet pierced her dear boy, that of the pale wife hastening to the cot-side of her dying husband, nay, the bleeding breasts of the wounded and dying, while yet they felt a throb of life — thrilled responsive to Grant's simple, significant announcement — " I propose to fight it out on this line, if it takes all summer." It took all summer, indeed, and all winter too ; but the re- sult had been decided at Spottsylvania. The Rebel armies had invaded the North and been driven ingloriously back. Many times we had started for Rich- mond and been repulsed. But at length we were not repulsed: the overwhelming wave poured over the embankments. « CHINCAPINNIN'." 141 Such thoughts — or rather deep emotions, of which such thoughts are but the feeble expression — possess the serious tourist, who stands upon that field furrowed and ridged with earthworks and with graves, — beside that grove of shattered and shrivelled trees. A conscious solemnity seems brooding in the air. If the intrenchments could speak, Mdiat a history could they disclose ! But those sphinx-like lips of the earth are rigid and still. Even the winds seem to hush their whispers about that scene of desolation. All is silence ; and the heart of the visitor is constrained to silence also. Upon a hacked and barkless trunk at the angle of the woods, in the midst of the graves, was nailed aloft a board bearing these lines : " On Fame's eternal camping-ground Their silent tents are spread, And glory guards -with solemn round The bivouac of the dead." A thick undergrowth had sprung up in the woods. I noticed, stooping among the bushes along by the breastworks, an old woman and two young girls. " Dey 're chincapinnin'," said Richard. But I observed that they gathered the nuts, not from the bushes, but from the ground. Curiosity impelled me to follow them. The woman had a haversack slung at her side ; one of the girls carried an open pail. They passed along the intrench- ments, searching intently, and occasionally picking something out of the dirt. Pressing into the bushes, I accosted them. They scarcely deigned to look at me, but continued their strange occupation. I questioned them about the battle ; but their answers were as vague and stupid as if they then heard of it for the first time. Meanwhile I obtained a glance at the open mouth of the heavily freighted haversack and the half- filled pail, and saw not chincapins, but several quarts of old bullets. Wandering along by the intrenchments, I observed the half- rotted fragments of a book on the ground. They were leaves from a German pocket Testament, which doubtless some soldier 142 THE FIELD OF SPOTTSYLVANIA. had carried into tlie figlit. I picked them up, and glanced my eye over the mildewed pages. By whom were they last perused ? What poor immigrant's heart, fighting here the battles of his adopted country, had drawn consolation from those words of life, which lose not their vitality in any lan- guage ? What was the fate of that soldier ? Was he now telling the story of his campaigns to his bearded comrades, wife and children ; or was that tongue forever silent in the dust of the graves that surrounded me ? While I pondered, these words caught my eye : — " Die du mir gegeben hast, die habe ich bewahret, und ist keiner von ihnen verloren," — " Those that thou gavest me I have kept, and none of them is lost." I looked round upon the graves ; I thought of the patriot hosts that had fallen on these fearful battle-fields, — of the households bereft, of the husbands, fathers, brothers, and sons, who went down to the Wilderness and were never heard of more ; and peace and solace, sweet as the winds of Paradise, came to me in these words, as I repeated them, — " None of them is lost, none of them is lost ! " l^^^ DESOLATE SCENERY. 143 CHAPTER XVIII. " ON TO RICHMOND." At mid-day, on the fifteenth of September, I took the train at Fredericksburg for Richmond, expecting to make in three hours the journey which our armies were more than as many years in accompHshing. " On to Richmond ! On to Richmond ! " clattered the cars ; while my mind recalled the horrors and anxieties of those years, so strangely in contrast with the swiftness and safety of our present speed. Where now were the opposing Rebel hosts ? Where the long lines of bristling musketry, the swarms of cavalry, and the terrible artillery ? Where the great Slave Empire, the defiant Confederacy itself? " The earth hath bubbles as the water has, And these were of them." We passed amid the same desolate scenes which I had every- where observed since I set foot upon the soil of Virginia, old fields and undergrowths, with signs of human life so feeble and so few, that one began to wonder where the country population of the Old Dominion was to be found. All the region between Fredericksburg and Richmond seems not only almost uninhabited now, but always to have been so, at least to the eye familiar with New-England farms and vil- lages. But one must forget the thriving and energetic North when he enters a country stamped with the dark seal of slavery. Large and fertile Virginia, with- eight times the area of Massachusetts, scarcely equals in population that barren little State. The result is, that, where Southern State pride sees prosperous settlements, the travelling Yankee discovers little more than uncultivated wastes. 144 " ON TO laCHMOND." Asliton, sixteen miles from Richmond, was the first really civilized-looking place we passed. Farther on I looked for the suburbs of the capital. But Richmond has no suburbs. The pleasant villages and market-gardens that spread smil- ingly for miles around our large Northern towns, are alto- gether wanting here. Suddenly the melancholy waste of the country disappears, and you enter the outskirts of the city. And is this indeed Richmond into which the train glides so. smoothly along its polished rails ? Is this the fort-encircled capital whose gates refused so long to open to our loudly knock- ing armies ? — and have we entered with so little ado ? Is the " Rome of the Confederacy " sitting proudly on her seven hills, aware that here are detestable Yankees within her walls ? Will she cast us into Libby ? or starve us on Belle Island ? or forward us to Wirtz at Andersonville ? — for such we know was the fate of Northern men who did get into Richmond during the past four years ! You think of what they suffered, as you walk unmolested the pavements of the conquered capi- tal ; and something swells within you, which is not exultation, nor rage, nor grief, but a strange mingling of all these. " Time the Avenger ! unto thee I lift My hands and eyes and heart ! " for what a change has been wrought since those days of horror and crime ! Noav no Rebel guard is at hand to march you quickly and silently through the streets ; but friendly faces throng to welcome you, to offer you seats in carriages, and to invite you to the hospitalities of hotels. And these people, meeting or passing you, or seated before their doors in the warm September afternoon, are no longer enemies, but tamed complacent citizens of the United States like yourself. I was surprised to find that the storm of war had lefl Rich- mond so beautiful a city ; although she appeared to be mourn- ing for her sins at the time in dust and ashes, — dust which every Y^ind whirled up from the unwatered streets, and the ashes of the Burnt District. RICHMOND. 145 Here are no such palatial residences as dazzle the eye in New York, Chicago, and other Northern cities ; but in their' place you see handsome rows of houses, mostly of brick, shaded by trees, and with a certain air of comfort and elegance about them which is very inviting. The streets are sufficiently spa- cious, and regularly laid out, many of them being thrown up into long, sweeping lines of beauty by the hills on which they are built. The hills indeed are the charm of Richmond, over- looking the falls of the James, on the left bank of which it stands ; giving you shining ghmpses of the winding river up and down, — commanding views of the verdant valley and of the hilly country around, — and here, at the end of some pleasant street, falling oiF abruptly into the wild slopes of some romantic ravine. In size, Richmond strikes one as very insignificant, after all the noise it has made in the world. Although the largest city of Virginia, and ranking among Southern cities of the second magnitude, either of our great Northern towns could swallow it, as one pickerel swallows a lesser, and scarcely feel the morsel in its belly. In 1860 it had a population of not quite thirty- eight thousand, — less than that of Troy or New Haven, and but a little larger than that of Lowell. I had already secured a not very satisfactory room at a crowded hotel, when, going out for an afternoon ramble, I came by chance to Capitol Square. Although a small park, containing only about eight acres, I found in its shady walks and by its twinkling fountains a delightful retirement after the heat and dust of the streets. It is situated on the side of a hill sloping down to the burnt district which lies be- tween it and the river. On the brow of the slope, at an im- posing elevation, its pillared front looking towards the west- ern sun, stands the State Capitol, which was also the capitol of the Confederacy. Near by is Crawford's equestrian statue of Washington, which first astonishes the beholder by its vast proportions, and does not soon cease to be a wonder to his eyes. Coming out of the Park, at the comer nearest the monu- 10 146 «0N TO RICHMOND." ment, I noticed, on the street-corner opposite, a hotel, whose range of front rooms overlooking the square, made me think ruefully of the lodgings I had engaged elsewhere. To ex- change a view of l^ack yards and kitchen-roofs from an upper story^'for a sight from those commanding windows, entered my brain as an exciting possibility. I went in. Tbe clerk had two or three back rooms to show, but no front room, until he saw that nothing else would suffice, when he obligingly sent me to the very room I wished. Throwing open the shutters, I looked out upon the Park, the Capitol, the colossal Wash- ington soaring above the trees, and the far-off shining James. I caught glimpses, through the foliage, of the spray of one of the fo^'untalns, and could hear its ceaseless murmur mnigle with the noise of the streets. I took possession at once, sent for my luggage, slept that night in my new lodgings, and was awakened at dawn the next morning by a sound as of a dish of beans dashed into a ringing brass kettle. This was repeated at irregular inter- vals, "an^d with increasing frequency, as the day advanced, breaking in upon the plashy monotone of the fountain, and the rising hum of the city, with its resounding rattle. Stung with curiosity, I arose and looked from my open window. Few white citizens were astir, but I saw a thin, ceaseless stream of negroes, who "would not work," going cheerfully to then- daily tasks. The most of them took their way towards the burnt district ; some crossed Capitol Square to shorten their route ; and the sounds I had heard were occasioned by the slamming of the iron gates of the Park. WHY THE REBELS BUKNED THE CITY. 147 CHAPTER XIX. THE BURNT DISTRICT. Again that morning I visited the burnt district, of which I had taken but a cursory view the evening before. All up and down, as far as the eye could reach, the business portion of the city bordering on the river lay in ruins. Beds of cinders, cellars half filled with bricks and rubbish, broken and blackened walls, impassable streets deluged with debris^ here a granite front still standing, and there the iron fragments of crushed machinery, — such was the scene which extended over thirty entire squares and parts of other squares. I was reminded of Charabersburg ; but here -vvas ruin on a more tremendous scale. Instead of small one- and two-story buildings, like those of the modest Pennsylvania town, tall blocks, great flictories, flour -mills, rolling-mills, foundries, machine- shops, w^arehouses, banks, railroad, freight, and engine houses, two railroad bridges, and one other bridge spanning on hio-h piers the broad river, were destroyed by the desperate Rebel leaders on the morning of the evacuation. " They meant to burn us all out of our homes," said a citizen whom I met on the butment of the Petersburg railroad bridge. " It was the wickedest thing that ever was done in this world ! You are a stranger ; you don't know ; but the people of Rich- mond know, if they will only speak their minds." " But," said I, " what was their object in burning their own city, the city of their friends? " " The devil only knows, for he set 'em on to do it ! It was spite, I reckon. If they could n't hold the city, they deter- mined nobody else should. They kept us here four years under the worst tyranny under the sun ; then when they found they could n't keep us any longer, they just meant to 148 THE BURNT DISTRICT burn us up. That 's the principle they -went on from the be- ginning." I had ah'eaclv conversed ivith other citizens on the subject of the fire, some of whom maintained tliat it was neAcr tlie desio-n of tlie Confederate leaders to burn anvthino- but the railroad bridges and public stores. But this man laughed at the idea. " Tliat 's what they pretend ; but I know better. What was the water stopped from the reservoirs for ? So that we should have none to put out the fire with ! " " But they say the water was shut off in order to make repairs." " It 's all a lie ! I tell ye, stranger, it was the intention to burn Richmond, and it 's a miracle that any part of it was saved. As luck would have it, there was no wind to spread the fire ; then the Federals came in, let on the water, and went to work with the engines, and put it out." " Why did n't tlie citizens do that ? " " I don't know. Everybody was paralyzed. It was a per- fect panic. The Yankees coming ! the city burning ! our army on a retreat ! — you 've no idea of what it w\^s. Nobody seemed to know what to do. God save us from another such time ! It was bad enough Sunday. If the world had been coming to an end, there could n't have been more fright and confusion. I was watchman on this railroad bridge, — when there was a bridge here. I was oflp duty at midnight, and I went home and went to bed. But along towards morning my daughter woke me. ' Father,' says she, 'the city 's afire ! ' I knew right away what was the matter. The night was all liti up, and I could hear the roar of something besides the river. I run out and started for the bridge, but I 'd got quite near! enough, when the ammunition in the tobacco- warehouses begun to go off. Crack! — crack! — crack, crack, crack! One piece of shell whirred past my head like a pa'tridge. I didn't want to hear another. I put home and went to getting my truck together, such as I could tote, ready to leave if my housa went." CONFLICTING OPINIONS. 149 Subsequently I conversed with citizens of every grade upon tills exciting tojDic, and found opinions regarding ir as various as the political views of their authors. Those aristocrats who went ni for the war but kept out of the fight, and who favored the Davis government because it favored them, had no word of censure for the incendiaries. " The burning of the city was purely accidental," one blandly informed me. ''No considerable portion of it would have been destroyed if It had n t been for private marauding parties," said another. " ihe city was full of such desperate characters. They set fires for the purpose of plundering. It was they, and nobody else, who shut off the water from the reservoirs." The laboring class, on the other hand, generally denounced the Confederate leaders as the sole authors of the calamity It was true that desperadoes aided in the work, but it was after the fugitive government had set them the example. Here is the opinion of a Confederate officer, Colonel D whom I saw daily at the table of the hotel, and with whom I had many interesting conversations. " It is not fair to lay the whole blame on the Confederate government, although. Heaven knows, it was bad enouoh to do anything ! The plan of burning the city had been discussed beforehand : Lee and the more humane of his officers opposed It; Early and others favored it; and Breckinridge took the responsibility of putting it into execution." Amid all these conflicting opinions there was one thino- cer- taui— the fact of the fire ; although, had it not been wTitten out there before our eyes in black characters and lines of deso- lation, I should have expected to hear some unblushing apolo- gist of the Davis despotism deny even that. And, whoever may have been personally responsible for the crime, there is also a truth concerning it"' which I hold to be undeniable. Like the assassination of Lincoln, like the sys- tematic murder of Union prisoners at Andersonville and else- where, — like these and countless other barbarous acts which have bonded the Rebel cause with infamy, - this too was in- ;150 THE BURNT DISTRICT. spired by the s,mit of slavery, and performed in the Interest of s Iven-. That spirit, destrnctive of liberty and Uuv, and self-dest/uctive at last, was the father of the rebe hon and of I th erst crimes of its adherents. As I walked among the ruins, pondering these thoughts, I must own that my heart swelled with pride when I remembered how the fire was ex- ,ng«ished. it was by no mere chanee that the P-ie-stneken inhabitants were found powerless to save their own cty Tlia task was reserved for the Union army, that a great truth m,gl>t be symbolized. The war, on the part of the North, was waged neither for ambition nor revenge ; its design was not destruc- tive, but conservative. Through all our cloudy mistakes and misdeeds shone the spirit of Liberty ; and tbe work she gave us to do was to quench the national flames wh.ch anarchy had kindled, and to save a rebellious people from the consequences of their own folly. ^ . c c, ^ Richmond had already one terrible remniiscence of a hre. On the night of the 26th of December, 1811, its theatre was burned, with an appalling catastrophe: upward of seventy spectators, including the Governor of the State, penslnng n. the flames. The fire of the 3d of April, I860, will be as long remembered. ,. . , i i The work of rebuilding the burnt district had commenced and was progressing in places quite vigorously. Hei-e I had the satisfaction of seeing the negroes, who " would not work actually at their tasks. Here, as everywhere else m Rich- tnond,and indeed in every part of Virginia I visited, colored laborers were largely in the majority. They drove the teams, made the mortar, carried the hods, excavated the old ce lars or du- new ones, and, sitting down amid the rums, broke the mo" tar from the old bricks and put them up in neat piles ready for use There were also colored masons and carpenters em- ployed on the new buildings. I could not see but that these people worked just as industriously as the white laborers. And yet, with this scene before our very eyes, I was once more m- formed by a cynical citizen that the negro, now that he was free, would rob, steal, or starve, before he would work. CHAT WITH A COLORED LABORER. 151 I conversed with one of the laborers going home to his dinner. He was a stalwart young black, twenty-one years old, married, and the father of two children. He was earning a dollar and a half a day. " Can you manage to live on that, and support your family ? " " It 's right hard, these times, — everything costs so high. I have to pay fifteen dollars a month rent, and only two little rooms. But my wife takes in washing and goes out to work ; and so we get along." " But," said I, " were not your people better off in slavery ? " " Oh no, sir ! " he replied, with a bright smile. " We 're a heap better off now. We have n't got our rights yet, but I expect we 're go'n' to have 'em soon." " What rights ? " '*"!, don't know, sir. But I reckon government will do some- thing for us. My master has had me ever since I was seven years old, and never give me nothing. I worked for him twelve years, and I think something is due me." He was waiting to see what the government would do for his people. He rather expected the lands of their Rebel masters would be given them, insisting that they ought to have some reward for all their years of unrequited toil. Of course I endeavored to dissuade him from cherishing any such hope. " What you ask for may be nothing but justice ; but we must not expect justice even in this world. We must be thank- ful for what we can get. You have your freedom, and you ought to consider youi'self lucky." His features shone with satisfoction as he rephed, — " That ought to be enough, if we don't get no mo'e. We 're men now, but when our masters had us we was only change in their pockets." Unlike what I saAv in Chambersburg, the new blocks spring- ing up in the burnt district did not promise to be an improve- ment on the old ones. Everywhere were visible the results 152 THE BURNT DISTRICT. of -want of capital and of the huny of rebuilding. The thin ness of the walls was alarming ; and I was not surprised to learn that some of them had recently been blown down on a windy night. Heaven save our country, thought I, from such hasty and imperfect reconstruction I INTERIOR OF LIBBY PRISON. 163 CHAPTER XX. LIBBY, CASTLE THUNDER, AND BELLE ISLE. Strolling along a street near the river, below the burnt (listrict, I looked up from the dirty pavements, and from the little ink-colored stream creeping along the g'utter, (for Rich- mond abounds in these villanous rills,) and saw before me a sign nailed to the corner of a large, gloomy brick building, and bearing in great black letters the inscription, — LIBBY PRISON. Passing the sentinel at the door, I entered. The ground- floor was partitioned off into offices and store-rooms, and pre- sented few objects of interest. A large cellai room below, paved with cobble-stones, was used as a cook-house by our soldiers then occupying the building. Adjoining this, but separated from it by a wall, was the cellar which is said to have been mined for the purpose of blowing up Libby ■with its inmates, in case the city had at one time been taken. Ascending a flight of stairs from the ground-floor, I found myself in a single, large, oblong, Avhitewashed, barren room. Two rows of stout wooden posts supported the ceiling. The windows were iron-grated, those of the front looking out upon the street, and those of the rear commanding a view of the canal close by, the river just beyond it, and the opposite shore. There was an immense garret above, likewise embracing the entire area of the floor. These were the prison-rooms of the infamous Libby. I found them occupied by a regiment of colored troops, some sitting in Turkish fashion on the floor, (for there was not a stool or bench,) some resting their backs against the posts or whitewashed walls, and others lying at length on the hard planks, with their heads pillowed on their knapsacks. 154 LIBBY, CASTLE THUNDER, AND BELLE ISLE. But the comfortable colored regiment faded from sight as I ascended and descended the stairs, and walked from end to end of the dreary chambers. A far different picture rose before me, — the diseased and haggard men crowded to- gether there, dragging out their weary days, deeming them- selves oftentimes forgotten by their country and their friends, — men wlio mounted those dungeon-stairs, not as I mounted them, but to enter a den of misery, starvation, and death. On the opposite side of the same street, a little farther up, was Castle Tlmnder, — a very commonplace brick block, con- siderina: its formidable name. It was still used as a prison ; but it had passed into the hands of the United States military authorities. At the iron-barred windows of the lower story, and behmd tht wooden -barred windows above, could be seen the faces of soldiers and citizens imprisoned for various offences. Belle Island I had already seen from the heights of Rich- mond, — a pleasant hill rising out of the river above the town, near the farther shore. The river itself is very beautiful there, with its many green islets, its tumbling rapids sweeping down among rocks and foaming over ledges, and its side-dams thrown out like arms to draw the waters into their tranquil embrace. My eye, ranging over this scene, rested on that fair hill ; and I thought that, surely, no pleasanter or more healthful spot could have been selected for an encampment of prisoners. But it is unsafe to trust the enchantment of distance ; and after seeing Libby and Castle Thunder, I set out to visit Belle Island. I crossed over to Manchester by a bridge Avhich had been constructed since the fire. As both the Richmond and Dan- ville, and the Richmond and Petersburg railroad bridges were destroyed, an extraordinary amount of business and travel was thrown upon this bridge. It was shaken with omnibuses and freight-wagons, and enveloped in clouds of dust. Loads of cotton and tobacco, the former in bales, the latter in hogs- heads, were coming into the city, and throngs of pedestrians w^ere passing to and fro. Among these I noticed a number HARD-HEARTED PLANTER. 155 of negroes with little bundles on their backs. One of them, a very old man, was leaning against the railing to rest. " Well, uncle, how are you getting along? " "Tolerable, mahster ; only tolerable." And he lifted his tattered cap from his white old head with a grace of politeness which a courtier might have envied. " Where are you uoing ? " " I 's go'n' to Eichmond, mahster." " What do you expect to do in Richmond ? " " I don't know right well. I thought I could n't be no wu3 off than whar I was ; and I had n't no place to go." " How so, uncle ? " " You see, mahster, thar a'n't no chance fo' people o' my color in the country I come from." "Where is that?" " Dinwiddle County." " You have walked all the way from Dinwiddle County? " " Yes, mahster ; I 'se Avalked over fo'ty mile. But I don't mind that." " You 're very old, uncle." " Yes, I 've a right good age, mahster. It 's hard fo' a man o' my years to be turned out of his home. I don't know wdiat I shall do ; but I reckon the Lord will take keer of me." The tone of patience and cheerfulness in which he spoke was very touching. I leaned on the bridge beside him, and drew out from him by degrees his story. His late master refused to give wages to the freedmen on his lands, and the result was that all the able-bodied men and women left him. Enraged at this, he had sworn that the rest should go too, and had accordingly driven off the aged and the sick, this old man among them. " He said he 'd no use fo' old wore-out niggers. I knowed I was old and wore-out, but I growed so in his service. I served him and his father befo'e nigh on to sixty year ; and he never give me a dollar. He 's had my life, and now I 'm old and wore-out I must leave. It 's right hard, mahster ! " " Not all the planters in your county are like him, I hope ? " 156 LIBBY, CASTLE THUNDER, AND BELLE ISLE. " Some of 'em is very good to their people, I believe. Bu* none of 'em is wiU'n' to pay wages a man can live by. Them that pays at all, offers only five dollars a month, and we must pay fo' ou' own clothes and doctor's bills, and suppo't ou' fam- ilies.' " It seems you were better off when in slavery," I suggested. " I don't say that, mahster. I 'd sooner be as I is to-day." And cheerfully shouldering his bundle, the old African tramped on towards Richmond. What was to become of him there ? I kept on to Manchester, passed the great humming mills by the river-side, and turning to the right, up the Danville rail- road, reached Belle Island bridge after a brisk fifteen minutes' walk. Crossing over, I entered the yard of a nail-factory, where some men were breaking up heavy old iron, cannons, mortars, and car-wheels, by means of a four-hundred pound shot dropped from a derrick forty feet high. Beyond the fac- tory rose the pleasant hill I had viewed from the city. I climbed its southern side, and found myself in the midst of a scene not less fair than I had anticipated. Behind me was a cornfield, covering the summit ; below rushed the river among its green and rocky islands ; while Richmond rose beyond, pict- uresqiaely beautiful on its hills, and rosy in the flush of sunset. But where had been the prisoners' camp ? I saw no trace of it on that slope. Alas, that slope was never trodden by their feet, and its air they never breathed. At the foot of it is a flat, spreading ovit into the sti-eam, and almost level with it at high water. Already the night-fog was beginning to creep over it. This flat, which was described to me as a marsh in the rainy season, and covered with snow and slush and ice in winter, was the " Belle Isle " of our prisoners. Yet they were not allowed the range even of that. A trench and em- bankment enclosing an oblong space of less than six acres formed the dead-line which it was fatal to pass. Within this as many as twelve thousand men were at times crowded, with no shelter but a few tattered tents. As I was ejiamining the spot, a throng of begrimed laborers EXPRESSIONS OF THE COxMMON PEOPLE. 157 rrossed tlie flat, carrying oars, and embarking in boats on the low shore looking towards the city. They were workmen from the nail-factory returning to their homes. One of them, passing alone after his companions, stopped to talk with me at the dead-line, and afterwards offered me a place in his boat. It was a leaky little skiff: I perched myself upon a seat in the bow ; and he, standing in the stern, propelled it across with a pole. " Where were the dead buried? " I asked. " The dead Yankees ? They buried a good many thar in the sand-bar. But they might about as well have flung 'em into the river. A freshet washed out a hundred and twenty bodies at one time." " Did you see the prisoners when they were here ? " " I was n't on the Island. But from Richmond anybody could see their tents hyer, and see them walking around. I was away most of the time." " In the army ? " " Yes, sir ; I was in the army. I enlisted fo' three months, and they kept me in fou' years," he said, as men speak of deep and unforgiven wrongs. " The wa' was the crudest thing, and the wust thing fo' the South that could have betm. What do you think they '11 do with Jeff Davis?" " I don't know," I replied ; " what do you think ? " " I know what I 'd like to do Avith him : I 'd hano- him as quick as I would a mad dog I Him and about fo'ty others : old Buchanan along with 'em." " Why, what has Buchanan done ? " " He Avas in cohoot with 'em, and as bad as the baddest. If we had had an honest President in his place, thar never 'd have been wa'." From the day I entered Virginia it was a matter of con- tinual astonishment to me to hear the common people express views similar to those, and denounce the Davis despotism. They were all the more bitter against it because it had deceived them with lies and false promises so long. Throughout the loyal North, the feeling against the secession leaders was natu- 158 LIBBY, CASTLE THUNDER, AND BELLE ISLE. rally strong ; but it was mild as candle-liglit compared with the fierce furnace-heat of hatred which I found kindled in many a Southern breast. The passage of the river was delightful, in the fading sunset light. On a bluff' opposite Belie Island was Hollywood, the fashionable cemetery of Richmond, green- wooded, and beauti- ful at that hour in its cool and tranquil tints. As we glided down the river, and I took my last view of the Island, I thought how often our sick and weary soldiers there must have cast longing eyes across at that lovely hill, and wished them- selves quietly laid away in its still shades. Nor could I help thinking of the good people of Richmond, the Christian citizens of Richmond, taking their pleasant walks and drives to that verdant height, and looking down on the camp of prisoners dying from exposure and starvation under their A'ery eyes. How did these good people, these Christian citizens, feel about it, I wonder? Avoiding the currents sweeping towards the Falls, my man pushed into the smooth waters of a dam that fed a race, and landed me close under the walls of his own house. " This yer is Brown's Island," he told me. " You 've heerd of the laboratory, whar they made ammunition fo' the army?" He showed me the deserted buildings, and described an explo- sion which took place there, blowing up the works, and killing, scalding, and maiming many of the operatives. Passino- over a bridge to the main land, and crossins: the canal which winds along the river-bank, I was hastening towards- the city, when I met, emerging from the sombi'e ruins of the burnt district, a man who resembled more a wild creature than a human being. His hands, arms, and face were blackened with cinders, his clothes hung vipon him in tatters, and the expres- sion of his countenance was fierce and haggard. He looked so much like a brigand that I was not a little startled when, with a sweeping gesture of his long lean arm and claw-like fingers, he clutched my shoulder. " Come back with me," said he, " and I '11 tell ye all about it J I '11 tell ye all about it, stranger." "SLOWED ALL TO PIECES." 159 •' About Avhat ? " " The explosion, — the explosion of the laboratory thar ! " Dragging me towards Brown's Island with one hand, and gesticulating violently with the other, he proceeded to jabber incoherently about that dire event. " Wait, wait," said he, " till I tell you ! " — like the Ancient Mariner with skinny hand holding his unwilling auditor. *' My daughter was work'n' thar at the time ; and she was blowed all to pieces ! all to pieces ! My God, my God, it was horrible ! Come to my house, and you shall see her ; if you don't believe me, you shall see her ! Blowed all to pieces, all to pieces, my God ! " His house was close by, and the daughter, who was " blowed all to pieces," was to be seen standing miraculously at the door, in a remarkable state of preservation, considering the circum- stances. She seemed to be looking anxiously at the old man and the stranger he was bringing home with him. She came to the wicket to meet us ; and then I saw that her hands and face were covered with cruel scars. " Look ! " said he, clutching her with one hand, while he still held me Avitli the other. " All to pieces, as I told you ! " " Don't, don't, pa ! " said the girl, coaxingly. " You must n't mind him," she whispered to me. "He is a little out of his head. Oh, pa ! don't act so ! " " He has been telling me how you were blown up in the laboratory. You must have suffered fearfully from those wounds ! " " Oh, yes ; there was five weeks nobody thought I Avould live. But I did n't mind it," she added with a smile, " for it was in a good cause." " A good cause ! " almost shrieked the old man ; and he burst forth with a stream of execrations against the Confed- erate government which made my blood chill. But the daughter smilingly repeated, " It was a good cause, and I don't regret it. You must n't mind what he says." I helped her get him inside the wicket, and made my escape, wondering, as I left them, which was the more insane of the two. 160 LIBBY, CASTLE THUNDER, AND BELLE ISLE. But she was not insane ; she was a woman. A man may be reasoned and beaten out of a false opinion, but a woman never. She will not yield to logic, not even to the logic of events. Thus it happens that, while the male secessionists at the South have frankly given up their cause, the female seces- sionists still cling to it with provoking tenacity. To appeal to their intelligence is idle ; but they are vulnerable on the side of the sentiments ; and many a one has been authentically con- verted from the heresy of state rights by some handsome Federal officer, who judiciously mingled love with loyalty in his speech, and pleaded for the union of hands as well as the union of States. "DESTITUTE RATIOjST" TICKETS. 161 CHAPTER XXI. FEEDING THE DESTITUTE. As I was passing Castle Thunder, I observed, besieging ine doors of the United States Commissary, on the opposite side of the street, a hungry-looking, haggard crowd, — sickly- faced women, jaundiced old men, and children in rags ; with here and there a seedy gentleman who had seen better days, or a stately female in faded apparel, which, like her refined manners, betrayed the aristocratic lady whom the war had reduced to w^ant. These were the destitute of the city, thronging to receive alms from the government. The regular rations, issued at a counter to which each was admitted in his or her turn, consisted of salt-fish and hard-tack ; but I noticed that to some tea and sugar were dealt out. All were provided with tickets previously issued to them by the Relief Commission. One tall, sallow woman requested me to read her ticket, and tell her if it was a " No, 2." " They telled me it w^as, whar I got it, but I like to be shore." I assured her that it was truly a " No. 2," and asked why it was preferable to another. " This is the kind they ishy to sick folks ; it allows tea and sugar," she replied, wrapping it around her skinny finger. Colored people were not permitted to draw " destitute ra- tions " for themselves at the same place with the whites. There were a good many colored servants in the crowd, however, drawing for their mistresses, who remained at home, too ill or too proud to come in person and present their tickets. 31 162 FEEDING THE DESTITUTE. At the place where " destitute rations " were issued to the Llacks, business appeared very dull. I inquired the reason of it, and learned this astonishing fact. The colored population crowded into Richmond at that time equalled the white population ; being estimated by some as high as twenty-five thousand. Of the whites, over two THOUSAND were at that time receiving support from the gov- ernment. The number of blacks receiving such support was less than two hundred. How is this discrepancy to be accounted for ? Of the freedmen's willincrness to work under right condi- tions there can ' be no question. It is true, they do not show a disposition to continue to serve their former masters for nothing, or at starvation prices. And many of them had a notion that lands were to be given them ; for lands had been promised them. At the same time, where they have a show of a chance for themselves, they generally go to work, and mani- fest a commendable pride in supporting themselves and their families. Until he does that, the negro does not consider that he is fully free. He has no prejudice against labor, as so many of the whites have. We must give slavery the credit of having done thus much for him : it has bred him up to habits of temperance and industry. Notwithstanding the example of the superior race, which he naturally emulates, he has not yet taken to drink ; and his industry, instead of being checked, has I'eceived an impulse by emancipation. Now that he has inducements to exert himself, he proceeds to his ta?k with an alacrity which he never showed when driven to it by the whip. Another thino; must be taken into account. His feeling for those who have liberated him is that of unbounded grati- ' tude. He is ashamed to ask alms of the government which has already done so much for him. No case was known in Richmond of his obtaining destitute rations under false pre- tences ; but in many instances, as I learned, he had preferred to suffer want rather than apply for aid. The reverse of all this may be said of a large class of whites. our THEIR RAPACITY. 163 Many, despising labor, would not work if they could. Others, reared amid the influences of wealth, which had now been stripped from them, could not work if they would. Towards the United States Government they entertained no such feel- ing- of gratitude as animated the freedmen. On the contrary, they seemed to think that they were entitled to support from it during the remainder of their lives. " You ought to do something for us, for you 've took away ir niggers," whined a well-dressed woman one day in my hearing. To the force of the objection, that the South owed the loss of its slaves to its own folly, she appeared singularly insensible ; and she showed marked resentment because noth- ing was done for her, although obliged to confess that she owned the house she lived in, and another for which two col- ored families were paying rent. 1 was sitting in one of the tents of the Rehef Commission one morning, when a woman came to complain that a ticket issued to her there had drawn but fifteen rations, instead of twenty-one, as she had expected. " I did n't think it was you all's fault," she said, with an apologetic grimace; "but I knowed I 'd been powerfully cheated." This Avas the spirit manifested by very many, both of the rich and the poor. They felt that they had a sacred right to prey upon the government, and any curtailment of that privi- lege they regarded as a wrong and a fraud. So notorious was their rapacity, that they were satirically represented as saying to the government, — " We have done our best to break you up, and now we are doing our best to eat you up." Where such a spirit existed, it was not possible to prevent hundreds from obtaining government aid who were not en- titled to it. It was the design of the Relief Commission to feed only indigent women and children. No rations were issued by the Commissary except to those presenting tickets ; and tickets were issued for the benefit only of those whose destitute condi- tion was attested by certificates signed by a clergyman or phy- 164 FEEDING THE DESTITUTE. sician.i To secure these certificates, however, was not diffi- cult, even for those who stood in no need of government charity. Clergymen and physicians were not all honest. Many of them believed with the people that the government was a fit object for good secessionists to prey upon. Some were faithful in the performance of their duty ; but if one physician refused to sign a false statement, it was easy to dis- miss him, and call in another less scrupulous. *' I have just exposed two spurious cases of destitution," said an officer of the Relief Commission, one day as I en- tered his tent. " Mrs. A — — , on Fourth Sti'eet, has been doing a thriving business all summer, by selling the rations she has drawn for a fictitious family. Mrs. B has been getting support for herself, and two sick daughters, that turn out to be two great lazy sons, who take her hard-tack and salt- fish, and exchange them for whiskey, get drunk every night, and lie abed till noon every day." " What do you do with such cases ? " " Cut them off: that is all we can do. This whole business of feeding the poor of Richmond," he added, "is a humbug. Richmond is a wealthy city still ; it is very well able to take care of its own poor, and should be taxed for the purpose." I found this to be the opinion cf many intelligent unbiased observers. Besides the Relief Commission, and the Freedmen's Com- mission, both maintained by the government, I found an agency of the American Union Commission established in Richmond. This Commission, supported by private benevo- lence, was organized for the pui^pose of aiding the people of i Form of certificate : — Richmond, Va., 1866. I CEKTiFT, on honor, that I am well acquainted with Mrs. Jane Smith, and that she is the owner of no real estate or personal property, or effects of any kind ; and that she has no male member of her family who is the O'o'ner of real estate or personal property or effects of any kind, upon which there can be reali^^^d siiiEcieaf money for the main- tenance of her family; and that she has no means of support, and is a proper object of charity ; and that her family consists of four females and live children. Given under my hand, this 17th tlay of September, xS65. WOEK or THE UiTIOK COMMISSION 16;^ the South, " hi the restoration of tlieir civil and social condi- tion, ujDon the basis of industry, education, freedom, and Christian morahty." In Richmond, it was doing a useful work. To the small farmers about the city it issued plou-dis, spades, shovels, and other much needed implements, -^for the war had beaten pitcliforks into bayonets, and cast jilough- shares into cannon. Earlier in the season it had distributed many thousand papers of garden-seeds to applicants from all parts of the State, —a still greater benefit to the impoverished people, with whom it was a common saying, that " good seed ran out under the Confederacy." It had established a free school for poor whites. I also found Mr. C. the Commission's Richmond agent, indefatigable in assisting other associations in the establishment of schools for the Freedmen. The Union Commission performed likewise an indispensa- ble part in feeding the poor. Those clergymen and physicians who were so prompt to grant certificates to secessionists not entitled to them, were equally prompt to refuse them to per- sons known as entertaining Union sentiments. To the few genuine Union people of Richmond, therefore, the Commis- sion came, and was welcomed as an angel of mercy. But it did not confine its fiivors to them ; having divided the city into twelve districts, and appointed inspectors for each, it ex- tended its aid to such of the needy as the Relief Commission had been unable to reach. 166 THE UNI0:N' MEjS" of RICHMOND. CHAPTER XXII. THE UNION MEN OF RICHMOND. At tlie tent of the Union Commission, pitched near a foun- tain on Capitol Square, I met a quiet httle man in laborer's clothes, whom the agent introduced to me as " Mr. H ,^' adding, " There were two votes cast against the ordinance of secession in this city : one of those votes was cast by Mr. H . He is one of the twenty-one Union men of Rich- mond." He looked to be near fifty years of age ; but he told me he was only thirty-two. " I 've been through such things as make a man look old ! " He showed me his gray hair, which he said was raven black, without a silver streak, before the war. " I was four times taken to the consci'ipt camp, but never sent off to fight. I worked in a foundery, and my employer got out exemption papers for me. The Confederates, when they wanted more men, would declare any time that all the exemp- tion papers then out were void, and o;o to picking us up in the street and sending us off to camp before we knew it. Some would buy themselves off, and a few would get off as I did, — because they could do work nobody else could do." He was a man of intuitive ideas and originality of char- acter. Although bred up under the influence of the peculiar institution, poor, and uneducated, he had early formed clear and strong convictions on the subject of slavery. " I was an Abolitionist before I ever heard the word abolitionist." He believed in true religion, but not in the religion of traitors. " I never hesitated to tell 'em what I thought. ' God has no more to do with you all,' says I, ' than he has with last year's rain. I 'd as lieves go to a gambhng-house, as to go and FAITHFUL "TWENTY-ONE." 167 hear a minister pray that God would drive back the armies of the North. You are on your knees mocking at God, and He laughs at you ! ' Events proved that what I said was true. After every Fast, the Rebels lost some important point. There was a Fast-day just before Fort Donelson ; another before New Orleans was taken ; another before Gettysburg and Vicks- burg ; another before Atlanta fell ; and another before the evacuation of Richmond. That was the way God answered their prayers." He corroborated the worst accounts I had heard concernincr the state of society in Richmond during the war. " It seemed as thouo;h there was nothing but thievins: and robbery going on. The worst robbers were Hood's men, set to guard the city. They 'd halt a man, and shoot him right down if he would n't stop. They 'd ask a man the time, and snatch his watch. They went to steal some chickens of a man I knew, and as he tried to prevent them, they killed him. At last the women got to stealing. We had an insur- rection of women here, you know. I never saw such a sight. They looked like flocks of old buzzards, picked geese, and cranes ; dressed in all sorts of odd rigs ; armed with hatchets, knives, axes, — anything they could lay their hands on. They collected together on the Square, and Governor Letcher made 'em a speech from the Monument. They hooted at him. Then Jeff Davis made a speech ; they hooted at him too ; they did n't want speeches, they said ; they wanted bread. Then they begun to plunder the stores. They 'd just go in and carry off what they pleased. I saw three women put a bag of potatoes, and a barrel of flour, and a firkin of butter in a dray ; then they ordered the darkey to drive off, with two women for a guard." Another of the faithful twenty-one was Mr. L , whom I found at a restaurant kept by him near the old market. It was he who carried off Col. Dahlgren's body, after it had been buried by the Rebels at Oak Wood. "I found a negro who knew the spot, and hired him to go with me one dark night, and dig up the body. We carried 168 THE UKION MEX OF EICHMO:?^^. it to Mr. Rowlett's house [Mr, Rowlett was another of the faithful], and afterwards took it through the Confederate lines, in broad duyhglit, hid under a load of peach-trees, and buried it in a metallic case. It lay there until after the evacuation, when it was dug up and sent home to Admiral Dahlgren's family." Mr. L devoted much of his time and means during the war to feeding Union pi'isoners, and helping Union men through the lines. " I was usually at work that way all night ; so the next day I 'd be looking sick and sleepy ; and that way, — with a little money to bribe the doctors, — I kept out of the Rebel army." In January, 1865, he was arrested for sending information through the lines to General Butler, and lay in prison until the evacuation. One of the most interesting evenings in my Richmond experience I passed at the house of Mr. W , on Twenty- fifth Street. A Northern man by birth and education, he had remained true to his nativity at a time when so many from the Free States living at the South had proved renegades and apostates. Arrested early in the war for " disloyalty," he had suffered six months in Salisbury Prison because he would not take the oath of allegiance to the Confederate Government. " I could have got my liberty any day by taking that oath. But I never would, and never did. As good and true men as ever trod the earth died there because they would not take it. Mr. Buck, of Kentucky, was one. Almost his last words were, ' Tell my wife I would be glad to go home, but I 'd rather die here than take an oath that will perjure my soul.' He was happy ; he died. Dying was not the worst part of it, by any means ; our sufferings every day were worse than death." Liberated at last, through the intercession of his wife, Mr. W came home, and devoted himself to feeding and res- cuing Union prisoners, and to serving his country in other perilous ways. He corroborated what had been told me with regard to the number of Union men in Richmond. RICHMOI^D BARBAEITIES. 169 " You will find men enough now, who claim to have been Union men from the first. But of those whose loyalty stood the test of persecution in every shape, there are just twenty- one, — no more, and no less. I 've watched them all through, and if there 's a Union man I don't know, I should like to see him. Those men of influence, who opposed secession in the beginning, and afterwards voted for it, but who pretend now to have been in favor of the Union all the while, were the most mischievous traitors of all, for they carried the lukewarm with them." There were Union women, however, who worked and suf- fered as heroically for the cause as the men. " One lady was nine months in prison here for sending information through the lines to our armies. She was very ill at one time, and wished to see a minister. They sent her Jeff Davis's min- ister. ' Miserable wretch ! ' said he, ' I suppose I must pray with you, but I don't see how I can ! ' " " When my husband was in prison," said Mrs. W , " we suffered greatly for the necessaries of life. We had a little money in the savings-bank ; and he sent us an order for it : ' Please pay to my little son,' and so forth. Payment was refused, because he had not taken the oath of alle-amp, tramp — the guard marched by the windows." " But there was a guard inside the prison-yard ; how then had the Yankees managed to eet out? " "I'm coming to that now. I told you the dead were borne out every morning and evening. That evening there was an extra body. It was the Yankee Doctor. He had bribed the prisoners, who carried out the dead, to carry him out. The dead-house was outside of the guard. They laid him with the corpses, and returned to the prison. Poor fel- lows ! there were four of them ; they were sent to Anderson- ville for their share in the transaction, and there every one of them died. " A little while after, as some prisoners were goino- in from the yard, they got into a fight near the door. The guard ran to interfere ; and the Captain, who was waiting for this 174 THE UNION" MEK OF KICHMOND. very chance, — for the scuffle was got up by his friends ex. pressly for his benefit, — darted into the negro woman's house, and ran up-stairs. From a M'indow he jumped down into my garden. In the mean time the Doctor came to hfe, crawled out from among the dead men, pushed a board from the back side of the dead house, chmbed the fence, and joined his friend the Captain, under our kitchen windows. " Not a move Avas made by any of us. We kept on chat- ting, yawning, or pretending to read the newspaper ; and all the while the guard in the street was going his rounds and peeping in. Everything — the freedom of these men, and my life — was hanging by a cobweb. One mistake, a single false step, would ruin us. But everything had been prear- ranged. They found the clothes ready for them, and we were waiting only to give them time to disguise themselves. So far, it could not be proved that I had anything to do with the business, but the time was coming for me to take it into my own hands. " I showed you the alley running from the street to my back-yard, and now you '11 see why I took you around there. Tlie Captain and the Doctor after getting on their disguise, were to keep watch by the corner of the house at the end of the alley, and wait for the signal, — a gentleman going out of the house with a lady on his arm and a white handkercliief in his hand. They were to come out of the alley immediately, and follow at a respectful distance. " Having given them plenty of time, — not very many min- utes, however, though they seemed hours to us, — Miss H put on her bonnet, and I took my hat ; I watched my opportu- nity, and just as the guard had passed, gave her my arm, and set out to escort her home. As we went out, I had occasion to use my handkerchief, Mdiich I flirted, and put back into my pocket. We did n't look behind us once, but walked on, never knowing whether our men were following or not, until, after we had passed several corners, Miss H ventured to peep over her shoulder. Sure enough, there were two men coming along after us. A HALTER CASE. 175 "We walked past JefF Davis's house, and stopped at her father's door. There I took leave of her, and walked on alone. I had made up my mind what to do. G having failed us, I must try E, ; an odd old man, but true as steel. It was a long walk to his house, and it was late when I got there. I hid my men in a barn, and knocked at the door. " ' Anything the matter ? ' says Mrs. R , from the win- dow. " ' I want to speak with Mr. R a moment,' I said. I saw she was frightened, when she found out who I was ; but she made haste to let me in. Serious as my business was, I could n't help laughing when I found R . He sleeps on a mattress, his wife sleeps on feathers ; and both occupy the same bed. They compromise their difference of taste in this way : they double up the feather-bed for Mrs. R — — ; that gives her a double portion, and makes room for R on the mattress. She sleeps on a mountain in the foreground ; he, in the valley behind her. " ' W ,' says he, looking up over the mountain, ' there 's mischief ahead ! You would n't be coming here at this hour if there was n't. Is it a Castle Thunder case ? ' " ' No,' I said, quietly as I could, for he was very much agitated. " ' I 'm afraid of Castle Thunder ! ' says he. ' I 'm afraid of you ! If it is n't a Castle Thunder case, I demand to know what it is.' " ' It 's a halter case,' I said. And then I told him. He got up and pulled on his clothes. I took out fifty dollars in Rebel money, and offered him, for the feeding of the men till they could be got away. . "'You can't get any of that 'stuff on to me!' says he. ' I 'm afraid of it. We shall all lose our lives, this time, I 'm sure. Why did you bring 'em here ? ' " But though fully convinced he was to die fcr it, he finally consented to take in the fugitives. So I delivered them into his hands ; but my work did n't end there. They were nine 176 THE UXION MEN" OF KICHMOND. days at his house. Meantime, through secret sources, by means of bribes, I got passes to take them through the Hnes. These cost me a hundred dollars in greenbacks ; then, when everything was ready, all passes were revoked, and they were good for nothing. Finally Dennis Shane took the job of run- nino; them through the lines for five hundred dollars in Rebel money. " He got them safely through ; and just a month from that time one of those men came back for me. General Butler sent him : he wanted to talk with me about affairs in Richmond. I went out with a party of seven ; and when near Williams- burg we were all captured by a band of Confederate soldiers. " I determined not to be taken back to Richmond and identified, if I could help it. I got down at a spring to drink, crawled along under the bank a little way, as fast as I could, then jumped up, and ran for my life. I was shot at, and chased ; they put dogs on my track ; I was four days and nights without food ; but I escaped, while all the rest were carried back. After that I ran the lines to Butler whenever he wanted to see me, until it was n't safe for me to go back to Richmond, where my operations had become known. " After the war was over, and our troops had possession," added Mr. W , " then I came back, and saw what I had never expected to see in this world. I saw the very men who had robbed, persecuted, and imprisoned me, rewarded by our government. I came back to find that under the administration of our own generals, Ord and Patrick, it was in a man's favor to be known as a secessionist, and against him to be knoAvn as a Union man. The Union men were insulted and bullied by them, the colored people were treated worse imder their rule than they had ever been by the Rebels themselves, and the secessionists were coaxed and petted. A Rebel could obtain from government whatever he asked for ; but a Union man could obtain nothing. When we were feeding and flattering them at a rate that made every loyal man sick at heart, I sent a request in writing for a little hay for my horse. I got a refusal in writing : I could n't have any hay. At the same PARTIALITY TO TRAITORS. 177 time the government was feeding in its stables thirty horses for General Lee and his staff." A hmidred similar instances of partiality shown to the Rebels by the Ord and Patrick administration were related to me by eye-witnesses ; coupled with accounts of insults and outrages heaped upon loyal men and Freedmen. Happily Ord and Patrick and their pro-slavery rule had passed away ; but there were still com])laints that it was not the true Union men who had the ear of the government, but those whose unionism had been put on as a matter of policy and convenience. This was no fault of General Terry, although he was blamed for It. When I told him what I had heard, he said warmly, — " Why don't these men come to me ? They are the very men I wish to see." " The truth is, General, they were snubbed so often by your predecessors that they have not the heart to come." " But I have not snubbed them. I have not shown par- tiality to traitors. Everybody that knows me knows that I have no love for slavery or treason, and that every pulse of my heart throbs with sympathy for these men and the cause in which they have suffered." One evening I met by appointment, at the tent of the Union Commission, a number of the dauntless twenty-one and accompanied them to a meeting of the Union League. It was a beautiful night, and as we walked by the rainy fountain, under the still trees, one remarked, " Many an evening, when there was as pretty a moon as this, I have wished that I might die and be out of my misery That was when I was in prison for being loyal to my country."* At the rooms of the League I was surrounded by these men, nearly every one of whom had been exiled or impris- oned for that cause. I witnessed the initiation of new-comers ; but in the midst of the impressive solemnities I could not but reflect, « How faint a symbol is this of the real League to which the twenty-one were sworn in their hearts ! To belono- to this is now safe and easy enough ; but to have been a true member of that, under the reign of terror, — how very different ! " 178 MARKETS AND FARMING. CHAPTER XXIII. MARKETS AND FARMING. The negro population of Richmond gives to its streets a peculiarly picturesque and animated appearance. Colored faces predominate ; but of these not more than one in five or six shows unmixed African blood ; and you are reminded less of an American city than of some town of Southern Europe. More than once I could have fancied myself in Naples, but that I looked in vain for the crowds of importunate beggars, and the dark-skinned lazzaroni lying all day in the sunshine on the street corners. I saw no cases of mendicancy among the colored people of Richmond, and very little idleness. The people found at work everywhere belonged to the despised race ; while the frequenters of bar-rooms, and loungers on tavern-steps, were white of skin. To get drunk, especially, appeared to be a prerogative of the chivalry. The mules and curious vehicles one sees add to the pict- uresqueness of the streets. The market-carts are character- istically droll. A little way off you might fancy them dog- carts. Under their little ribbed canvas covers are carried little jags of such produce as the proprietor may have to sell, — a few cabbages, a few pecks of sweet potatoes, a pair of live chickens, tied together by the legs ; a goose or a duck in a box, its head sticking out ; with perhaps a few eggs and egg- plants. These little carts, drawn by a mule or the poorest of ponies, have been driven perhaps a dozen or fifteen miles, brino-incT to market loads, a dozen of which would scarcely equal what a New- York farmer, or a New-England market- gardener often heaps upon a single wagon. In the markets, business is transacted on the same petty scale. You see a great number of dealers, and extraordinary SCENE IN THE MARKET. 179 tlirongs of purchasers, considering tlie little that appears to be sold. Not every producer has so much even as an antiquated nuile-cart. Many come to market with what they can carry on their backs or in their hands. Yonder is an old neoro with a turkey, which he has walked five miles to dispose of here. That woman with a basket of eggs, whose rags and sallow complexion show her to be one of the poor whites whom respectable colored people look down upon, has travelled, it may be, quite as far. Here comes a mulatto boy, with a string of rock-fish caught in the James. This old man has hard peaches in his bag ; and that other woman contributes a box of wild grapes. People of all coloi-s and all classes surround the sheds or press in throngs through the passages between the stalls. The fine lady, followed by her servant bearing a basket, has but little money ; and although she endeavors to make it go as far as possible, it must be a small family that can subsist until Mon- day upon what she carries away. There is little money to be seen anywhere ; in which respect these scenes are very different from those witnessed during the last years of Confed- erate rule, when it was said that people went to market with baskets to carry their money, and wallets to bring home what it would buy. The markets are not kept open during the evening, and as the hour for closing them arrives, the bar- gaining and loud talking grow more and more vivacious, while prices decline. I remember one fellow who jumped upon his table, and made a speech, designed to attract the patronage of the freedmen. " Walk up hyer, and buy cheap ! " he shouted. " I don't say niggers ; I say ladies and gentlemen. Niggers is played out ; they 're colored people now, and as good as anybody." The markets indicate the agricultural enterprise of a com- munity. Yet, even after seeing those of Richmond, I was amazed at the petty and shiftless system of farming I witnessed around the city. I was told that it was not much better before the war. The thrifty vegetable gardens of the North, pro- ducing two or three crops a year ; the long rows of hot-beds 180 MAEKETS AND FARMING. by the fences, starting cucumbers and supplying the market with greens sometimes before the snow is gone, — such things are scarcely known in the capital of Virginia. " We have lettuce but a month or two in the year," said a lady, who was surprised to learn how Northern gardeners managed to pro- duce it in and out of season. In one of my rides I passed the place of a Jersey farmer, about three miles from the city. It looked like an oasis in the desert. I took pains to make the proprietor's acquaintance, and learn his experience. " I came here and bought in '59 one hundred and twenty- seven acres for four thousand dollars. The first thing I did was to build that barn. Everybody laughed at me. The most of the farms have no barns at all ; and such a large one was a wonder, — it must have been built by a fool or a crazy man. This year I have that barn full to the rafters. " I found the land worn out, like nearly all the land in the country. The way Virginia folks have spoilt their farms looks a good deal more like fools or crazy men than my barn. First, if there was timber, they burnt it off and put a good coat of ashes on the soil. Then they raised tobacco three or four years. Then corn, till the soil got run out and they could n't raise anything. Then they went to putting on guano, which was like giving rum to an exhausted man ; it just stimulated the soil till all the strength there was left was burnt out. That was the condition of my flirm when I came here. " The first thing I did, I went to hauling out manure from Richmond. I was laughed at for that too. The way people do here, they throw away their manure. They like to have their farm-yards high and dry ; so they place them on the side of a hill, where every rain washes them, and carries off into the streams the juices that ought to be saved for the land. They left their straws-tacks any number of years, then drew the straw out on the farms dry. I made my barn-yard in a hollow, and rotted the straw in it. Now I go to market every day with a big Jersey fai'm-wagon loaded down with stuff." He had been getting rich, notwithstanding the war. I asked what labor he employed. FARMS FOR SALE. 181 " Negro labor mostly. It was hard to get any other here. I did n't own slaves, but hired them of their masters. Only the poorest hands were usually hired out in that way ; I could seldom get first-class hands ; yet I always found that by kind treatment and encouragement I could make veiy good laborers of those I had. I get along still better with them now they are free." " Do you use horses ? " " No ; mules altogether. Two mules are equal to three horses. Mules are not subject to half the diseases horses are. They eat less, and wear twice as long." I found farms of every description for sale, around Rich- mond. The best land on the James River Bottom could be bought at prices varying from forty to one hundred dollars an acre. I remember one very desirable estate, of eight hundred acres, lying on the river, three miles from the city, Avhich was offered for sixty dollars. There were good buildings on it ; and the owner was making fences of old telegraph wire, to replace those destroyed during the war. 182 IK AKD ABOUND EICHMOKD. CHAPTER XXIV. m AND AROUND RICHMOND. If temples are a token of godliness, Richmond should he a holy city. It has great pride in its churches ; two of which are noteworthy. The first is St. John's Church, on Church Hill, — a large, square-looking wooden meeting-house, whose ancient walls and rafters once witnessed a famous scene, and reechoed words that have become historical. Here was delivered Patrick Henry's celebrated speech, since spouted by every schoolboy, — " Give me liberty or give me death ! " Those shining sentences still hang like a necklace on the breast of American Liberty. The old meeting-house stands where it stood, overlooking the same earth and the same beautiful stream. But the men of that age lie buried in the dust of these old crowded church-yards ; and of late one miglit almost have said that the wisdom of Virginia lay buried with them. On the corner of Grace Street, opposite my hotel, I looked out every morning upon the composite columns and pilasters, and spire clean as a stiletto, of St. Paul's Church, Avith which are connected very different associations. This is the church, and (if you enter) yonder is the pew, in which Jeff Davis sat on Sundays, and heard the gospel of Christ interpreted from the slave-owners' point of view. Here he sat on that memorable Sabbath when Lee's dispatch was handed in to him, saying that Richmond was lost. The same preacher who preached on that day, still propounds his doctrines from the desk. The same sexton who handed in the dispatch glances at you, and, if you are well dressed, offers you a seat in a good place. The same white congregation that arose then in confusion and dismay, on seeing the President go out, sit HOLLYWOOD AND OAKWOOD CEMETERIES. 183 quietly once more in their seats ; and the same colored con- gregation looks down from the nigger gallery. The seats are still bare, — the cushions that were carried to the Rebel hos- pitals, to serve as mattresses, having not yet been returned. Within an arrow's shot from St. Paul's, in the State Capitol, on Capitol Square, were the halls of the late Confed- erate Congress. I visited them only once, and found them a scene of dust and confusion, — emblematical. The desks and seats had been ripped up, and workmen were engaged in sweeping out the last vestiges of Confederate rule. The fur- niture, as I learned, was already at an auction-room on Main Street, selling under the hammer. I reported the fact to Mr. C , of the Union Commission, who was looking for furni- ture to be used in the freedmen's schools ; and he made haste to bid for the relics. I hope he got them ; for I can fancy no finer stroke of poetical justice than the conversion of the seats on which sat the legislators of the great slave empire, and the desks on which they wrote, into seats and desks for little negro children learning to read. It was interesting, by the light of recent events, and in company with one who knew Richmond of yore, to make the tour of the old negro auction-rooms. Davis & Co.'s Negro Bazaar was fitting up for a concert hall. We entered a grocery store, — a broad basement room, with a low, dark ceiling, supported by two stout wooden pillars. " I 've seen many a black Samson sold, standing between those posts ; and many a woman too, as white as you or I." Now sugar and rice were sold there, but no more htiman flesh and blood. The store was. kept by a Northern man, who did not even know what use the room had served in foi'mer years. A short ride from the city are two cemeteries worth vis- iting. On one side, Hollywood, where lie buried President Monroe and his doctrine. On the other side, Oak Wood, a wild, uncultivated hill, half covered with timber and brush, shading numerous Confederate soldiers' graves. Here, set apart from the rest by a rude fence, is the " Yankee Cem- etery," crowded with the graves of patriot soldiers, who fell 184 IN AND AROUND RICHMOND. in battle, or died of slow starvation and disease in Richmond prisons ; a melancholy field, which I remember as I saw it one gnsty September day, when wild winds swept it, and shook down over it whirling leaves from the reeling and roaring trees. Lieijit. M ', of the Freedmen's Commission, having invited me to visit Camp Lee, about two miles from the city, came for me one afternoon in a fine large carryall, comfort- ably covered, cushioned, and carpeted. " Perhaps you will not feel honored," he remarked, as we rattled up Broad Street, " but you will be interested to know- that this is General Robert E. Lee's head-quarters' wagon. You are riding on the seat he rode on through the campaigns of the last two years. Your feet are on a piece of carpet which one of the devoted secessionists of Richmond took up from his hall-floor expressly to line the General's wagon- bottom, — little thinking Yankee boot-soles would ever dese- crate it ! After Lee's surrender, this wagon was turned over to the quartermaster's department, and the quartermaster turned it over to us." I was interested, indeed ; I was car- ried back to those sanguinary campaigns ; and I fancied I could see the face of him sitting there where 1 sat, and read the thoughts of his mind, and the emotions of his heart, in those momentous nights and days. I imagined the plans he revolved in his brain, shut in by those dark curtains ; what he felt after victory, and what after defeat ; the weariness of body and soul ; the misgivings, the remorse, when he remem- bered his treason and the folly of Virginia, — for he cer- tainly remembered them in the latter gloomy periods, when he saw the black cloud of doom settling down upon a bad and failing cavise. Camp Lee, formerly a fair ground, was the conscript camp of the Confederacy. I had been told many sad stories of young men, and men of middle age, some of them loyal, seized by the conscript officers and sent thither, as it were to a reservoir of the people's blood, whose stream was necessary to keep the machinery of despotism in motion. I paced the grounds THE CONSCRIPT CAMP. 185 where, with despamng hearts, they took theb first lessons in the art by which they were to slay and be slain. I stood by the tree under which deserters were shot. Then 1 turned to a very different scene. The old barrack buildings were now the happy homes of a village of freedmen. Groups of barefooted and woolly-headed negro children were at play before the doors, filling the air with their laughter, and showing all their ivory with grins of delight as I passed among them. The old men took off their caps to me, the wise old aunties welcomed me with dignified smiles, and the younger women looked up brightly from their ironing or cooking as I went by. The young men were all away at their work. It was, with few exceptions, a self-sup- porting community, only about a dozen old or infirm persons, out of three hundred, receiving aid from the government. A little removed from the negro village was a cottage for- merly occupied by Confederate officers. " In that house," said the Lieutenant, " is living a very re- markable character. You know him "by reputation, , for- merly one of the ablest writers on ' De Bow's Review,' and considered the great champion of slavery in the South." " What ! the author of ? " a somewhat celebrated book in its day, and in the latitude for which it was written ; designed to set forth the corrupt and perishable nature of free societies and progressive ideas, and to show that slavery was the one divine and enduring institution. " The very man. He is now a pauper, living on the bounty of the government. The rent of that cottage is given him, and he draws rations of the Relief Commission. He will be glad to see you ; and he has two accomplished daughters you will be glad to see." Accordingly we called upon him ; but, declining to enter the house, we sat under the stoop, where we could look across the desolate country at the sunset sky. Mr. , an emaciated, sallow, feeble old man, received us aflfably, and talked with us freely on his favorite topics. He had lived to see the one divine and enduring institution 186 IN AND AROUND RICHMOND die ; but civilization still survived ; and the race that found its welfare and happiness only in bondage seemed pretty well off, and tolerably happy, — witness the negro village close by : and the world of progressive ideas still moved on. Yet this great champion of slavery did not appear to have learned the first lesson of the times. All his arguments were the old argu- ments ; he knew nothing but the past, which was gone for- ever ; and the future to him was chaos. His two daughters, young and accomplished, came and sat with us in the twilight, together with a vivacious young lady from Richmond. On our return to the city. Miss accom- accompanied us, with their visitor. The latter proved to be an audacious and incorrigible little Rebel, and regaled us with ii onnn-ci. I remember a few lines. *' You can never win us back, Never, never, Though we perish in the track Of your endeavor ! " " You have no such noble blood For the shedding : In the veins of Cavaliers Was its heading ! You have no such noble men In your abolition den, To march through fire and fen, Nothing dreading ! " DOUBTFUL UKION SENTIMENT. 187 CHAPTER XXV. PEOPLE AND POLITICS. One Jay I dined at the house of a Union man of a differ- ent stamp from the twenty-one I have mentioned. He was one of the wealthy citizens of Richmond, — a man of timid disposition and conservative views, who had managed admi- rably to conceal his Union sentiments during the war. He had been on excellent terms with Jeff Davis and members of his cabinet ; and he was now on excellent terms with the United States authorities. A prudent citizen, not wanting in kindness of heart ; yet he could say of the Emancipation Act, — " It will prove a good thing for the slave-owners ; for it will be quite as cheap to hire our labor as to own it, and we shall now be rid of supporting the old and decrepit servants, such as were formerly left to die on our hands." On being asked if he considered that he owed nothing to those aged servants, he smoothed his chin, and looked thoughtful, but made no reply. An anecdote will show of what stuff the Unionism of this class is composed. His name happened to be the same as that of one of our generals. During the war, a Confederate officer, visiting his house, said to him, — "I am told you are a near relative of General , of the Federal army." " It 's a slander ! " was the indignant reply. " He is no kin of mine, and I would disown him if he was." After the occupation by our troops, Union officers were welcomed at his house ; one of whom said to him, — " Are you related to our famous General ?" " Very likely, very likely," was the complacent answer ; " the 's are all connected." 188 PEOPLE AJ^B POLITICS. Next to the uncompromising Union men, the most sin- cerely loyal Virginians I saw in Richmond, or elsewhere, were those w^ho had been lately fighting against us. Only now and then a Confederate soldier had much of the spirit of the Rebellion leTt in him. " The truth is," said Colonel D , " we have had the devil whipped out of us. It is only those who kept out of the fight that are in favor of continuing it. I fought you with all my might until we got whipped ; then I gave it up as a bad job ; and now there 's not a more loyal man in the United States than I am." He had become thoroughly converted from the heresy of secession. " No nation can live that toler- ates such a doctrine ; and, if we had succeeded, the first thing we should have done would have been to repudiate it." I became acquainted with several oflScers of this class, Avho inspired me with confidence and sympathy. Yet Avhen one of them told me he had been awarded a government place, with four thousand a year, I could not help saying, — " What right have you to such a place ? How many capa- ble and worthy men, who have been all the while fighting for the government you have been fighting against, would be thankful for a situation with one half or one quarter the salary ! " The animus of the secessionists who kept out of the war, and especially of the women, still manifested itself spitefully on occasions. " It is amusing," said Mrs. W , " to see the pains some of them take to avoid walking under the flag we keep flying over our door." Two female teachers of the freed people had, after much trouble, obtained board and lodgings in a private family, where the treatment they received was such as no sensitive person could endure. They were obliged to leave, and ac- cept quarters in a Confederate government building not much better than a barn. Many Richmond families were glad enough to board army officers for their money ; but few were prepared to receive and treat decently " nigger teach- ers," at any price. CONFEDERATE PATRIOTISM. 189 " Yet the people of Richmond are not what they were five years ago," said General S , who knew them well, being himself a Virginian. " Their faces have changed. They have a dazed look, like owls in a sudden light. To any one who used to see them in the old days of their pride and spirit, this is very striking. There never was such a downfall, and they have not yet recovered from the shock. They seem to be groping about, as if they had lost something, or were wait- ing for something. Whatever may be said of them, or what- ever they may say of themselves, they feel that they are a conquered people." " They ivere a conquered people," said the radical Union men. " There never was a rebellious class more thoroughly subdued. They expected no mercy from the government, for they deserved none. They were prepared to submit to every- thing, even to negro suffrage; for they supposed nothing less would be required of them. But the more lenient the gov- ernment, the more arrogant they become." Of Confederate patriotism I did not hear very favorable accounts. It burst forth in a beautiful tall flame at the begin- ning of the war. There were soldiers' aid societies, patron- ized by ladies whose hands were never before soiled by labor. Stockings were knit, shirts cut and sewed, and carpets con- verted into blankets, by these lovely hands. If a fine fellow appeared among them, more inclined to gallantry in the parlor than to gallantry in the field, these same lovely hands thrust him out, and he was told that " only ' the brave deserve the fair.' " But Southern heat is flashy and intense; it does not hold out like the slow, deep fire of the north. The soldiers' aid societies soon grew to be an old story, and the lovely ones contented themselves with cheering and waving their hand- kerchiefs when the " noble defenders of the south " marched through the streets. The " noble defenders of the south " did not, I regret to say, appreciate the cheers and the handkerchiefs as they did the shirts and the blankets. "Many a time," said Mrs. H , "I have heard them 190 PEOPLE AND POLITICS. yell back at the ladies who cheered them, ' Go to ! If you care for us, come out of your fine clothes and help us ! ' After the people stopped giving, the soldiers began to help themselves. I 've seen them rush into stores as they passed, snatch whatever they wanted, and march on again, hooting, with loaves of bread and pieces of meat stuck on the points of their bayonets." The sons and brothers of influential families were kept out of the war by an ingenious system of details. Every man was conscripted ; but, while the poor and friendless were hurried away to fight the battles of slavery, the favored aristocrat would get "detailed" to fill some "bomb-proof" situation, as it was called. " These ' bomb-proofs ' finally got to be a very great nui- sance. Men were ' detailed ' to fill every comfortable berth the government, directly or indirectly, had anything to do Avith ; and as the government usurped, in one way or another, nearly all kinds of business, it soon became difficult for an old or infirm person to get any sort of light employment. A friend of mine, whom the war had ruined, came down from the country, thinking he could get something to do here. He saw able-bodied young men oiling the wheels of the cars. He was old and lame, but he felt himself well able to do that kind of work. So he applied for a situation, and found that the young men he saw were ' detailed ' from the army. Others were ' detailed ' to carry lanterns for them when they had occasion to oil the car-wheels at night. It was so with every situation the poor man could have filled." This was the testimony of a candid old gentleman, himself an aristocrat, at whose house I passed an evening. I took an early opportunity to make the acquaintance of Governor Pierpoint, whom I found to be a plain, somewhat burly, exceedingly good-humored and sociable person. The executive mansion occupies pleasant grounds, enclosed from a corner of Capitol Square ; and as it was not more than three minutes' walk from my hotel, I found it often very agreeable to go over and spend a leisure hour or two in his library. ADVANTAGES TO NORTHERN BUSINESS MEN. 191 Once I remarked to him : " What Virginia needs is an in- Aux of Northern ideas, Northern energy, Northern capital ; what other way of salvation is open to her? " " None ; and she knows it. It is a mistake to suppose that Northern men and Nortliern capital are not welcome here. They are most heartily welcome ; they are invited. Look at this."" He showed me a beautiful piece of white clay, and a hand- some pitcher made from it. " Within eighty miles of Richmond, by railroad, there are beds of this clay fi'om which might be manufactured pottery and porcelain sufficient to supply the entire South. Yet they have never been worked ; and Virginia has imported all her fine crockery-ware. Now Northern energy will come in and coin fortunes out of that clay. Under the old labor system, Virginia never had any enterprise ; and now she has no money. The advantages she offers to active business men were never surpassed. Richmond is surrounded with iron mines and coal-fields, wood-lands and farm-lands of excellent quality ; and is destined from its very position, under the new order of things, to run up a population of two or three hundred thousand, within not many years." I inquired about the state finances. " The Rebel State debt will, of course, never be paid. The old State debt, amounting to forty millions, will eventually be paid, although the present is a dark day for it. There is no live stock to eat the grass ; the mills are destroyed ; business is at a stand-still ; there is no bank-stock to tax, — nothing to tax, I might almost say, but the bare land. We shall pay no interest on the debt this year ; and it will probably be three years before the back interest is paid. We have twenty-two millions invested in railroads, and these will all be put in a living condition in a short time. Then I count upon the development of our natural resources. In mineral wealth and agricultural advantages Virginia is inconceivably rich, as a few years will amply testify." As an illustration of native enterprise, he told me that there 192 PEOPLE AND POLITICS. was but one village containing fifty inhabitants on the canal between Richmond and Lynchburg, a distance of one hundred and fifty miles ; and land lying upon it was worth no more to-day than it was before the canal was constructed. " Neither is there a village of any size on the James River, between Rich- mond and Norfolk. How lon^ would it be before brick villa- ges and manufacturing towns would spring up on such a canal and river in one of the free States ? Was n't it about time," he added, " for the old machine to break to pieces ? " At the hotel I used to meet a prosperous looking, liberal faced, wide-awake person, whom I at once set down as a Yan- kee. On making his acquaintance, I learned that he was at the head of a company of Northern men who had recently purchased extensive coal-fields near the James River, twelve miles above Richmond. "The mines," he said, "had been exhausted once, and abandoned, so we bought them cheap. These Virginians would dig a little pit and take out coal until water came in and interfered with their work ; then they would go some- where else and dig another little pit. So they worked over the surface of the fields, but left the great body of the coal undisturbed. They baled with a mule. Now we have come in with a few steam -pumps which will keep the shafts free from water as fast as we sink them ; and we are taking out car- goes of as good anthracite as ever you saw. Here is some of it now," pointing to a line of loaded carts coming up from the wharf, where the coal was landed. I asked what labor he employed. " Negro labor. There is none better. I have worked negroes all my life, and prefer them in my business to any other class of laborers. Treat a negro like a man, and you make a man of him." I also made the acquaintance of a New Yorker, who was work- ing a gold mine in Orange County, Va., and whose testimony was the same with regard to native methods and negro labor. In short, wherever I went, I became, every day, more strongly convinced that the vast, beautiful, rich, torpid state of Vir- SPEECH OF A PLAYED-OUT POLITICIAN. 193 ginia was to owe her regeneration to Northern ideas and free institutions. Hearing loud laughter in the court-house one evening, I looked in, and saw a round, ruddy, white-haired, hale old man making a humorous speech to a mixed crowd of respectable citizens arid rowdies. It was the Honorable Mr. P , bidding for their votes. A played-out politician, he had dis- appeared from public view a quarter of a century before, but had now come up again, thinking there was once more a chance for himself in the paucity of able men, whom the barrier of the test-oath left eligible to Congress. "As for that oath," said he, with a solemn countenance, " I confess it is a bitter cup ; and I have prayed that it miglit pass from me." Here he paused, and took a sip of brandy froni a glass on the desk before him. Evidently that cup was n't so bitter, for he smacked his lips, and looked up with a decidedly re- freshed expression. " Fellow-citizens," said he, " I am going to tell you a little story," — clapping his cane under his arm, and peering under his gray eyebrows. " It will show you my position with re- gard to that abominable oath. In the good old Revolutionary times, there lived somewhere on the borders a pious Scotch- man, whose farm was run over one day by the red-coats, and the next by the Continentals ; so that it required the most delicate manoeuvering on his part to keep so much as a pig or a sheep (to say nothing of his own valuable neck) safe from the two armies. Now what did this pious Scotchman do ? In my opinion he did very wisely. When the red-coats caught him, he took the oath of allegiance to the Crown. The next day, when the Continentals picked him up, he took the same oath to the Continental Congress. Now, being a deacon of the Presbyterian Church, in good and regular standing, cer- tain narrow-minded brethren saw fit to remonstrate with him, asking how he could reconcile his conscience to such a course. " ' My friends,' said he, ' I have thought over the matter, and I have prayed over it ; and I have concluded that it is 13 194 PEOPLE AND POLITICS. safer to trust my soul in the hands of a merciful God, than my property in the hands of tliose thieving rascals.' " Fellow-citizens," resumed the candidate, after a storm of laughter on the part of the crowd, and another a sip of the cup not bitter, on his part, " I have thouglit over it, and prayed over it, and I have concluded that I can conscientiously take that ahominable test-oath ; in other words, tliat it is safer to trust my soul in the hands of a merciful God, than my country in the hands of the Black Republicans." He then proceeded to malign the people of the North, and to misrepresent their motives, in a spirit of buffoonery and shameless mendacity, which amazed me. The more out- rageous the lies he told, the louder the screams of applause from his delighted audience. I could not have helped laugh- ing at the ludicrousness of his caricatures, had I not seen that they passed for true pictures with a majority of his hearers ; or had I not remembered that it was such reckless political lying as this, which had so lately misled to their ruin the ignorant masses of the South. Having finished his speech and his brandy, he sat down ; and a rival candidate mounted the platform. " B ! B ! " shrieked the ungrateful crowd, clap- ping and stamping as frantically for the new speaker as for him who had labored so long for their amusement. There- upon, the Honorable Mr. P , pitching his hat over his eyes, and brandishing his cane, advanced upon his rival. B , a much younger and more slender man, quietly stripped up his coat-sleeves, exposing his linen to the elbows, and showing himself prepared for emergencies ; whereat the yells became deafening. A few words passed between the rival candidates ; after which B folded his arms and per- mitted P- to make an explanation. It appeared from this that P had written to B , inviting him to become a candidate for Congress. B had declined. Then P came forward as a candidate ; and then B , changing his mind, said he would be a candidate too. Hence their quarrel. Calmly, with his sleeves still up, or ready to come up, • CONGRESSIONAL CANDIDATES. 195 for P was continually advancing upon him with cane lifted and hat set fiercely on his head, — B replied, giv- ino; his version of the misunderstandino;. He admitted that P had written him such a letter. " But his sussestion with regard to my becoming a candidate was very feeble, while the intimation which accompanied it, that he meant to run if I did n't, was very strong ; reminding me of the boarder at the hotel-table, who coveted a certain dish of cakes. ' Here, waiter,' said he, ' see if any of the gentle- men will have these cakes, for if they won't, I will.' Of course I declined the cakes. But they have been passed to me by others in a very different spirit, and now I mean to have them if I can get them, — with all deference to the appetite of my venerable friend." The crowd hooted, shrieked, roared. " Venerable friend " grasped his glass savagely, but, finding it empty, dashed it down again, and sprang to his feet. Desperately puffed, red in the face, once more whirling his cane aloft and knocking his hat over his brows, I thought, if he did not first get a stroke of apoplexy, B would this time surely get a stroke of the stick. But B grimly stood his ground ; and, after glaring at him a moment as if about to burst, P muttered, " Go to the devil, then ! " buttoned his coat, gave his hat another knock, and stalked out of the house amid a tumult of merriment and derision. Nearly always, on such occasions, the disputant who loses his temper, loses his cause. B now had everything his own way ; and a very good speech he made. He was one of those original Union men who had at first opposed secession, but afterwards yielded to the storm that swept over the State. Sent to the Convention to oppose it there, he had ended by vot- ing for it, under instructions from his constituency. He had kept aloof from war and politics during the Rebellion, and could take the test oath ; that was no such bitter cup to him. He spoke verj^ feelingly of the return of Virginia to her place in the Union ; praised the government for its clemency and moderation, and advocated a forbearing policy towards the 196 PEOPLE AND POLITICS. freedmen, whom the previous speaker wished to see driven out of the State ; seasoning his speech for the vulgar with timely panegyrics on the heroism of the Confederate soldiers. The election took place a few days later ; and I thought it creditable to the good sense of the district that the younger candidate was chosen. Of the political views of the people, or of the real senti- ments of the speakers themselves, not much was to be learned at such a meetino;. The heart of the South was boilino; with thoughts and emotions which did not come openly to the sur- face. On the subject of the national debt, for example. Pub- lic speakers and public prints were ominously silent about it ; and seldom could a discreet citizen be induced to speak of it with any degree of frankness. I was plainly told, however, by a gentleman of Richmond, that the question w^as often privately discussed, and that the secessionists would never, if they could help it, submit to be taxed to pay the expenses of their own subjugation. " But how is it proposed to help it ? " " The first step is to resume their place in the Union. Until that is accomplished, they will remain silent on this and some other delicate subjects. They hope gradually to regain their old power in the nation, when they will unite with the Democratic party of the North, and repudiate the debt." If I could have been seriously alarmed by such a prospect, what I witnessed at political meetings and elsewhere, would have done much to dispel my apprehensions. I was strongly impressed by this important fact. The old trained politicians, — whom a common interest, slavery, banded together, and whom no consideration of reason or justice could turn from their purpose, — that formidable phalanx had been broken : nearly every man of them had taken an active part in the Re- bellion, and could not therefore, without shameful recreancy and voluntary humiliation on the part of the North, be read- mitted to the councils of the nation they had attempted to destroy. In their place we may for some years hope to see a l^EW MEN". 197 very different class of men, whose youth, or modesty, or good fortune, or good sense, before kept them aloof from political life ; men new to the Congressional arena, and there- fore more susceptible to the regenerating influence of national ideas and institutions. 198 fortificatio:n's. CHAPTER XXVL FORTIFICATIONS. — DUTCH GAP. — FAIR OAKS. At nine o'clock one fine morning, Major K , the young Judge-Advocate of the Department of Virginia, called for me bj appointment,' accompanied by an orderly bringing a tall war-horse General Terry was so kind as to furnish for my use. I was soon mounted, and riding out of the city by the Major's side, — down the long, hilly street, past the Rocketts, by the left bank of the river, taking the New-Market Road. First we came to a circle of detached forts surroundins the city ; a few minutes' ride farther on brought us to a heavy continuous line of earthworks surrounding the first line. These were the original fortifications of Richmond. Crossing a desolate undulating country of weeds and undergrowth, we reached the works below Laurel Hill, of more recent construc- tion, and of a more formidable character. The embankments were eighteen feet high from the bottom of the ditch. This was some six feet deep and twelve broad. There were two lines of bristling abatis. Thesfe, together with the wooden revetments of the works, had been levied upon by the inhab- itants in search of firewood. Three quarters of a mile beyond we came to the heavy intrenchments of the Army of the James. Between the two lines were the picket-lines of the opposing forces, in places no more than three hundred yards apart. Here the two armies, lay and watched each other through the last weary Autumn and Winter of the war. The earth was blotched with " gopher holes," — hasty excavations in which the veteran videttes pro- ceeded at once to intrench themselves, on being sent out to a new post. " It was astonishing," said the Major, " to see 200 FORTIFICATIONS. — DUTCH GAP. ■what a breastwork they would throw up in a few minutes, with no other tools than a bayonet and a tin-plate. The mo- ment they were at their station, down they went, scratching and digmno;." We had previously stopped at Laurel Hill, to look across the broken country on the south, at Fort Gilmer, which the troops of General Foster's division charged Avith such unfortu- nate results. The Major, then serving on Foster's staff, par- ticipated in that affair. " I never can look upon this field," said he, " without emotion. I lost some of my dearest friends in that assault." So it is in every battle : somebody loses his dearest friends. We rode on past the Federal works into the winter-quarters of the army, — a city of huts, with streets regularly laid out, now deserted and in ruins. Here and there I noted an old- fashioned New-England well-sweep still standing. The line of works was semicircular, both ends resting on the river. Within that ox-bow was the encampment of the Army of the James. We next visited New-Market Heights, where Butler's col- ored regiments formed unflinchingly under fire, and made their gallant charge, wiping out with their own blood the insults that had been heaped upon them by the white troops. " The army saw that charge, and it never insulted a colored soldier after that," said the Major. We then galloped across the country, intending to strike Dutch Gap Canal. Not a habitation was in sight. Vast fields spread before us, and we rode through forests of weeds that overtopped our horses' heads. We became entangled in earth- works, and had to retrace our course. More than once we were compelled to dismount and tear our way through abatis and chevaux-de-frize. The result was, we lost our bearings, and, after riding several miles quite blindly, struck the James at Deep Bottom. Then up the river we galloped, traversing pine woods and weedy plains, avoiding marsh and gully, and leaping ditches, past Aiken's Landing, to a yellow elevation of earth across a narrow peninsula, which proved to be Dutch Gap. ORIGIN OF DUTCH GAP. 201 The canal ^^'as there, — a short, deep channel connecting the river with the river again. The James here describes a lono; loop, seven miles in extent, doubling back upon itself, so that you may stand on this high bank, and throw a stone either into the south ward-flo win o; or the northward-returninn; stream. The canal, which cuts off these seven miles, is four hundred and eighty-six feet in length and fifty in deptli from the sum- mit of the bank. It is one hundred and twenty-two feet broad at the top, forty at the bottom, and sixty-five at the high- water level. On the lower side the channel is deep enough for ships. Not so at the upper end, — the head that was blown out having fallen back and filled up the canal. At high water, however, small vessels sometimes get through. The tide had just turned, and we found a considerable body of water pouring through the Gap. Different accounts are given of the origin of the name of Dutch Gap. It is said that a- Dutch company was once formed for digging a ship-canal at that place. But a better story is told of a Dutchman who made a bet with a Virginian, that he could beat him in a skiff-race between Richmond and City Point. The Virginian was ahead when they reached the Gap ; what then was his astonishment, on arriving at City Point, to find the Dutchman there before him. The latter had saved the roundabout seven miles by dragging his canoe across the peninsula and launching it on the other side. Riding up the Richmond road, we stopped at the first human habitation we had seen since leaving Laurel Hill. We had been several hours in the saddle, and stood greatly in need of refreshments. The sight of a calf and a churn gave us a promise of milk, and we tied our horses at the door. The house had beeji a goodly mansion in its day, but now every- thing about it showed the ruin and dilapidation of war. The windows were broken, and the garden, out-houses, and fences destroyed. This proved to be Cox's house, and belonged to a plantation of twenty-three hundred acres which included Dutch Gap. Looking at the desolation which surrounded it, I could hardly believe that this had formerly been one of the 202 FOKTIFIC ATI 0:^S. — FORT HARRISOX finest farms in Virginia, worked by a hundred negroes, and furnished with reapers, threshers, a grist-mill, and saw-mill, — all of which had been swept away as if they had never been. We found lying on a bed in a dilapidated room a poor man sick with the prevailing chills. He had some bread and milk brouo'ht for us, and gave us some useful hints about avoidino; the torpedoes when we should reach Fort Harrison. He de- scribed to us the depredations committed on the place by " Old Butler " ; and related how he himself was once taken prisoner by the Yankee marines on the river. " They gave me my choice, — to be carried before the admiral, or robbed of my horse and all the money I had about me. I preferred the robbing ; so they cleared me out and set me free." I said, " If you had been taken before the admiral, you would have got your liberty and saved your property." His voice became deep and tremulous as he replied : " But I did n't consider horse nor money ; I considered my wife. I 'd sooner anything than that she should be distressed. She knew I was a pi'isoner, and all I thought of Avas to hurry home to her with the news that I was safe." Thus in every human breast, even though wrapped in rags, and guilty of crimes against country and kindred, abides the eternal spark of ten- derness which atones in the sight of God for all. Taking leave of the sick man, we paid a brief visit to the casemates of Fort Harrison, then spurred back to Richmond, which we reached at sunset, having been nine hours in the saddle and ridden vipwards of forty miles. Another morning, with two gentlemen of General Terry's staff, and an orderly to take care of our horses, I rode out of the city on the Nine Mile Road, which crosses the Chicka- hominy at New Bridge ; purposing to visit some of the scenes of McClellan's Richmond campaign. Passing the fortifications, and traversing a level, scarcely inhabited country, shorn of its forests by the sickle of war, we reached, by a cross-road, the line of the Richmond and York River Railroad. But no railroad was there ; the iron of tlie track having been taken up to be used elsewhere. FAIR OAKS. 203 Near by was Fair Oaks Station, surrounded by old fields, woods, and tracts of underbrush. Here was formerly a yard, in which stood a group of oaks, the lower trunks of which had been rendered conspicuous, if not beautiful, by whitewash : hence, '■'■fair oaks." It was a wild, windy, dusty day. A tempest was roaring through the pines over our heads as we rode on to the scene of General Casey's disaster. I asked an inhabitant why the place was called " Seven Pines." " I don't know, unless it 's because there 's about seven hundred." He was living in a little wooden house, close by a negro hut. " The Yankees took me up, and carried me away, and destroyed all I had. My place don't look like it did before, and never will, I reckon. They come again last October; Old Butler's devils ; all colors ; heap of black troops ; they did n't leave me anything." He spoke with no more respect of the Confederates. " We had in our own army some of the dui-n'dest scapegalluses ! The difference 'twixt them and the Yankees was, the Yankees would steal before our eyes, and laugh at us ; but the Rebels would steal behind our backs," On the south, we found the woods on fire, with a furious north wind fanning the flames. The only human being we saw was a man digging sweet potatoes. We rode eastward, along the lines of intrenchments thrown up by our troops after the battle ; passed through a low, level tract of woods, on the borders of the Chickahominy swamps ; and, pressing northward, struck the Williamsburg Road. Colonel G , of our party, was in the Fair Oaks' fight. He came up with the victorious columns that turned back the tide of defeat. " I never saw a handsomer sight than Sickles's brigade ad- vancing up that road, Sunday morning, the second day of the battle. The enemy fired upon them from, these woods, but never a man flinched. They came up in column, magnifi- cently, to that house yonder ; then formed in line of battle across these fields, and went in with flags flying and bayonets 204 FORTIFICATIONS. shining, and drove the Rebels. After that we might have walked straight into Richmond, but McClellan had to stop and go to digging." We dismounted in a sheltered spot, to examine our maps, then passed through the woods by a cross-road to Savage's Station, coming out upon a large undulating field. Of Sav- age's house only the foundations were left, surrounded by a grove of locust-trees. My companions described to me the scene of McClellan's retreat from this place, — the hurry, the confusion, the flames of government property abandoned and destroyed. Sutlers forsook their goods. Even the officers' baggage was devoted to the torch. A single pile of hard tack, measuring forty cubic feet, was set on fire, and burned. Then came the battle of Savage's Station, in which the corps of Franklin and Sumner, by determined fighting, saved our army from being overwhelmed by the entire Rebel force. This was Sunday again, the twenty-ninth of June : so great had been the change wrought by four short weeks ! On that other Sunday the Rebels were routed, and the campaign, as some aver, might have been gloriously ended by the capture of Richmond. Now nothing was left for us but ignominious retreat and failure, which proved all the more humiliating, falling so suddenly upon the hopes with which real or fancied successes had inspired the nation. PETERSBURG. 205 CHAPTER XXVII. IN AND ABOUT PETEESBURG. On Wednesday, September 27th, I left Richmond for Pe- tersburg. The raih'oad bridge having been burned, I crossed the river in a coach, and took the cars at Manchester. A ride of twenty miles through tracts of weeds and undergrowth, pine barrens and oaken woods, passing occasionally a dreary- looking house and field of " sorry " corn, brought us within sight of the " Cockade City." ^ It was evening when I arrived. Havino; a letter fi*om Governor Pierpoint to a prominent citizen, I sallied out by moonlight from my hotel, and picked my way, along the streets sloping up from the river bank, to his house. Judge received me in his library, and kept me until a late hour listenino; to him. His conversation was of the war, and the condition in which it had left the country. He portrayed the ruin of the once proud and prosperous State, and the sufferings of the people. " Yet, when all is told," said he, " you cannot realize their sufferings, more than if you had never heard of them." His remarks touching the freedmen were refreshing, after the abundance of cant on the subject to which I had been treated. He thought they were destined to be crowded out of Virginia, which was adapted to white labor, but that they would occupy the more southern States, and become a useful class of citizens. Many were leaving their homes, with the idea that they must do so in order fully to assert their freedom ; but the majority of them were still at work for their old masters. He was already convinced that the new system would prove more profitable to employers 1 The title given to it by President Madison, in speaking of the gallantry of the Petersburg Volunteers, in the war of 1812. 206 m AND ABOUT PETERSBURG. than the old one. Formerly he kept eight family servants ; now he had but three, who, stimulated by wages, did tho work of all. One of his former servants, to whom he had granted many privileges, came to him, after the war closed, and said, " You a'n't going to turn me away, I hope, master." " No, William," said the Judge. " As long as I have a home.^ you have one. But I have no money to hire you." William replied that he would like to stay, and work right along just as he had done hitherto. " And as for money, master, I reckon we can manage that." " How so, William ? " " You see, master, you 've been so kind to me these past years I 've done a good deal outside, and if you have no inoney now, I reckon I must lend you some." The faithful fellow brought out his little treasure, and offered it to his old master, who, however, had not the heart to ac- cept it. The Judge also told a story of a free negro to whom he had often loaned money without security before the war. Recently this negro had come to him again, and asked the old question, " Have you plenty of money, master? " " Ah, James," said the Judge, " I used to have plenty, and I always gave you what you wanted, but you must go to some- body else now, for I have n't a dollar," " That 's what I was thinking," said James. " I have n't come to borrow this time, but to lend." And, taking out a fifty - dollar note, with tears in his eyes he entreated the Judge to take it. I noticed that the library had a new door, and that the walls around it were spotted with marks of repairs. " These are the effects of a shell that paid us a flying visit one morning, during the bombardment. Fortunately, no one was hurt." He accepted the results of the war in such a candid and loyal spirit as I had rarely seen manifested by the late govern- ing class in Virginia. If such men could be placed in power, the sooner the State were fully restored to its place in the Union, the better ; but, alas ! — BOMBARDMENT OF PETERSBURG. 207 Returning to the hotel, I missed my way, and seeing a hght in a httle grocery store, went in to make inquiries. I found two negroes talkino- over the bombardment. Finding me a stranger, and interested, they invited me to stop, and rehearsed the story for my benefit. The shelhng began on the first of July, 1864. It was most rapid on the third. Roofs and chimneys and walls were knocked to pieces. All the lower part of the town was de- serted. Many of the inhabitants fled to the country ; some remained there in camps, others got over their fright and re- turned. " We went up on Market Street, and got into a bomb-proof we made of cotton bales." The bombardment was kept up until the first of October, and afterwards resumed at intervals. " Finally people got so they did n't care anything about it. I saw two men killed by picking up shells and look- ing at them ; they exploded in their hands." At the time of the evacuation the negroes "had to keep right dark " to avoid being carried away by their masters. Some went across the Appomattox, and had to swim back, the brido-es beino; burned. They described to me the beauty of the scene when the mortars were playing in the night, and the heavens were spanned with arches of fire. " It was a right glad day for us when the Rebels went out and the Federals came in ; and I don't believe any of the people could say with conscientiousness they were sorry, — they had all suffered so much. The Rebels set all the tobacco- warehouses afire, and burned up the foundery and commissary stores. That was Sunday. Monday morning they went out, and the Federals came in, track after track, without an hour between them." These two negroes were brothers, and men of decided char- acter and intelligence, although they had been slaves all their lives. They learned to read in a spelling-book when children by the firelight of their hut. " I noticed how white children called their letters ; and afterwards I learned to write without any showing, by copying the writing-letters in the spelhng- 208 IN AND ABOUT PETERSBURG. Look. I learned to read in such a silent manner, it was a long time before I could make any head reading loud. I learned arithmetic by myself in the same way." If any person of white skin, who has risen to eminence, is known to have acquired the rudiments of education under such difficulties, much is made of the circumstance. But in the case of a poor black man, a slave, I suppose it is different. The two addressed each other with great respect and affec- tion. Their feeling of kinship and of family worth was very strong. " There were four brothers of us," said the elder ; " and I am the only one of them that ever went to the prison- house. After my old, kind master died, I had a difficulty with my mistress ; she was very exasperating in her language to me, till I lost my temper, and said I could live in torment, but I could n't live with her, and wished she would sell me. She sent for an officer ; and I said, ' I am as willing to go to jail as I am to take a drink of water.' When the sheriff saw me, he was very much surprised, and he said, ' Why, John, why are you here ? ' I told him I had parted with my temper, and said what no man ought to have said to a woman. He said, ' What a pity ! such a name as your master gave you, John ! ' He interceded with my mistress, and the fourth day she had me taken ovit. I told her I had acknowledged my fault to my Maker, and I was willing to acknowledge it to her. She said she was wrong too ; and we agreed very well after that. I was a very valuable servant to her. I could whitewash, mend a fence, put in glass, use tools, serve up a dinner, and then wait on it as gracefully as any man that ever walked around a table. Then I would hitch up the carriage, and drive her out. And I have never seen the day yet when she has g-iven me five dollars." He had always thought deeply on the subject of his condition. " But I never felt at liberty to speak my mind until they passed an act to put colored men into the army. That wrought upon my feelings so I could n't but cry ; " and the tears were ill his eyes again at the recollection. " They asked me if I would fight for my country. I said, ' I have no country. PETERSBURG. 209 They said I should fight for my freedom. I said, ' To gain my freedom, I must fight to keep my wife and children slaves.' Then, after the war was over, they told us they had no more use for niggers. I said I thought it hard, after they'd lived by the sweat of our faces all our days, that now we must be banished from the country, because we were free." He spoke hopefully of his race. " If we can induce them to be united, and to feel the responsibility that rests upon them, they will get along very well. Many liave bought themselves, and paid every dollar to their masters, and then been sold again, and been treated in this way till they have no longer any confidence in the promises a white man makes them. They won't stay with their old masters on any terms. Then there are some that expect to live without work. There are some colored men, just as there are white men, that won't work to save their lives. Others won't stay, for this reason : The master takes their old daddy, and old mammy, and little children, and casts them out on the forks of the road, and tells them to go to the Court House, where the Yankees are, for he don't want 'em ; then of course the young men and young women go too." Early next morning, I went out to view the town. In size and importance Petersburg ranks as the second city in the State. In 1860 it had 18,275 inhabitants. It had fifty man- ufacturing establishments in operation, employing three thou- sand operatives, and consuming annually $2,000,000 worth of raw material. Twenty factories manufactured yearly 12,000,000 pounds of tobacco. The falls of the Appomattox afford an extensive water-power, and the river is navigable to this place. I found the city changed greatly from its old prosperous condition. Its business w^as shattered. Its well-built, pleasant streets, rising upon the south bank of the Appomattox, were dirty and dilapidated. All the lower part of the town showed the ruinous effect of the shelling it had received. Tenantless and uninhabitable houses, with broken walls, roofless, or with roofs smashed and torn by missiles, bear silent witness to the 14 210 IN AND ABOUT PETERSBUKG. havoc of war. In the ends of some buildings I counted more than twenty sliot-holes. Many battered houses had been re- paired, — bright spots of new bricks in the old walls showing where projectiles had entered. The city was thronged by a superfluous black population crowding in from the country. I talked with some, and tried to persuade them to go back and remain at their old homes. But they assured me that they could not remain : their very lives had been in danger ; and they told me of several murders perpetrated upon freedmen by the whites, in their neighbor- hoods, besides other atrocities. Yet it ^vas evident many had come to town in the vague hope of finding happy adventures and bettering their condition. I remember a gang of men, employed by the government, waiting for orders, with their teams, on the sunny side of a ruined street. Several, sitting on the ground, had spelling- books : one was teaching another his letters ; a third was read- ing aloud to a wondering little audience ; an old man, in spec- tacles, with gray hair, was slowly and painfully spelling words of two letters, which he followed closely with his heavy dark finger along the sunlit page, — altogether a singular and affect- ins; sight. Having letters to General Gibbon commanding the military district, I called on him at his head-quarters in a fine modern Virginia mansion, and through his courtesy obtained a valu- able guide to the fortifications, in the person of Colonel E , of his staff. We drove out on the Jerusalem plank-road, leaving on our right the reservoir, which Kautz's cavalry in their dash at the city mistook for a fort, and retired from with commendable discretion. Leaving the plank-road, and striking across the open country, we found, in the midst of weedy fields, the famous " crater," — scene of one of the most fearful tragedies of the war. It was a huge irregular oblong pit, perhaps a hundred feet in length and twenty in depth. From this spot, spouted like a vast black fountain, from the earth, rose the garrison. WILD SPOKT OF WARFAKE. 211 and guns, and breastworks, of one of the strongest Rebel forts, mined by our troops, and blown into the air on the morning of July 30th, 1864. There was a deep ravine in front, up in the side of which the mine had been worked. The mouth was still visible, half hidden by rank weeds. In spots the surface earth had caved, leaving chasms opening into the mine along its course. The mouth of the Rebel counter-mine was also visible, — a deep, dark, narrow cavern, supported by framework, in the lower side of the crater. Lying around were relics of the battle, — bent and rusted bayonets, canteens, and fragments of shells. In fi'ont were the remains of wooden chevauz-de-fiHse, which had been literally shot to pieces. And all around were graves. In the earthworks near by I saw a negro man and woman digging out bullets. They told me they got four cents a pound for them in Petersburg. It was hard work, but they made a living at it. Riding southward along the Confederate line of works, we came to Fort Damnation, where the Rebels used to set up a flag-staff for our boys to fire at with a six-pound Parrott gun, making a wild sport of warfare. Opposite was Fort Hell, built by our troops, and named in compliment to its profane neighbor. The intrenched picket-lines between the two were not more than seventy-five yards apart ; each connected with its fort by a covered way. These works were in an excellent state of preservation. Fort Hell especially, constructed with bomb-proofs and galleries which itForded the most ample pro- tection to its garrison, was in as perfect a condition as when first completed. With a lighted torch I explored its magazine, a Tartarean cave, with deep dark chambers, and walls covered with a cold sweat. All along in front of the Rebel defences extended the Federal breastworks, and it was interesting to trace the zig- zag lines by which our troops had, slowly and persistently, by scientific steps, pushed their position ever nearer and nearer to the enemy's. Running round all, covered by an embank- ment, was Grant's army railroad. 212 m a:n'd about eetersbukg. Havino; driven southward alono; the Rebel lines to Fort Damnation, and there crossed over to Fort Hell, we now returned northward, riding along the Federal lines. A very good corduroy road, built by our army, took us through de- serted villages of hvits, where had been its recent winter- quarters ; past abandoned plantations and ruined dwellings ; over a plain which had been covered with forests before the war, but wliere not a tree was now standing ; and across the line of the Norfolk Railroad, of which not a sleeper or rail re- mained. We passed Fort Morton, confronting the " crater " ; and halted on a hill, in a pleasant little grove of broken and dismantled oaks. Here were the earthworks and bomb-proofs of Fort Stedman, the possession of which had cost more lives than any other point along the lines, not excepting the "crater." Captured originally from the Rebels, retaken by them, and recaptured by us, it was the subject of incessant warfare. At the Friend House, farther on, stationed on an eminence overlooking Petersburg, was the celebrated " Petersburg Ex- press," — the great gun which used to send its iron messengers regularly into the city. On the Friend Estate I saw, for the first time, evidences of reviving agriculture in this war-blasted region. A good crop of corn had been raised, and some five and thirty negro men and women were beginning the harvest. There was no white man about the place ; but they told me they were working on their own account for a portion of the crop. Returning to town by the City-Point Road, we set out again, in the afternoon, to visit the more distant fortifications beyond Forts Hell and Damnation. Driving out on the Boydton Plank Road to the Lead Works, we there left it on our right, and proceeded along a sandy track beside the Weldon Railroad where wagon-loads of North Carolina cotton, laboring through the sand, attested that the damage done to this railroad, in December of the previous year, by Warren's Corps, — which destroyed with conscien- A BEAUTIFUL BUT SILENT CITY. 213 tious thoroughness fifteen miles of the track, — had not yet been repau'ed.^ Passing the Rebel forts, I was struck with the pecuhar con- struction of the Federal works. As we pushed farther and farther our advanced lines around the city, they became so extended that, to prevent raids on our rear, it was neces- sary to construct i^ear lines of defence. Our intrenchments accordingly took the form of a hook, doubled backward, and terminating in something like a barbed point. Cities of deserted huts, built in the midst of a vast level plain, despoiled of its forests, showed where the winter-quarters of our .more advanced corps had been, during this last great campaign. Passing the whiter-quarters of the Sixth Corps, we ap- proached one of the most beautiful villages that ever were seen. It was sheltered by a grove of murmuring pines. An arched gateway admitted us to its silent streets. It was constructed entirely of pine saplings and logs. Even the neat sidewalks were composed of the same material. The huts — if those little dwellings, built in a unique and perfect style of architec- ture, may be called by that humble name — were furnished with bedrooms and mantel-pieces Avithin, and plain columns and fluted pilasters without, all of rough pine. The plain columns were formed of single trunks, the fluted ones of clusters of saplings, — all with the bark on, of course. The walls were similarly constructed. The village was deserted, with the exception of a safeguard, consisting of half a dozen United States soldiers, stationed there to protect it from van- dalism. The gem of the place was the church. Its walls, pillars, pointed arches, and spire, one hundred feet high, were com- posed entirely of pines selected and arranged with surprising taste and skill. The pulpit was in keeping with the rest. Above it was the following inscription : — " Presented to the members of the Poplar Spring Church, 1 Four months later I returned northward from the Carolinas by this road, and found that the beut rails had been straightened and replaced, in an exceedingly scaly condition. 214 IK AND ABOUT PETERSBUKG. by the 50tli N. Y. V. Engineers. Capt. M. H. McGrath, architect." The Poplar Spring Church, which formerly stood some- where in that vicinity, had been destroyed during the war ; and this church had been left as a fitting legacy to its congre- gation by the soldiers who built it. The village had been the winter-quarters of the engineer corps. Driving westward along the track of the army railroad, and past its termination, we struck across the open fields to the Federal signal-tower, lifting skyward its lofty open framework and dizzy platforms, in the midst of an extensive plain. To ascend a few stages of this breezy observatory, and see the sun go down behind the distant dim line of forests, while the evening shadows thickened upon the landscape, was a fit termination to the day's experience ; and we returned with rapid wheels to the city. LANDMARKS OF RECEi^T FAMOUS EVENTS. 215 CHAPTER XXVIII. JAMES RIVER AND FORTRESS MONROE. The next day I proceeded to City Point by railroad, — riding in an old patched-up ear marked outside " U. S. Military JR. ^.," and furnished inside with pine benches for seats and boards nailed up in place of windows. There was nothing of interest on the road, which passed through a region of stumps and undergrowth, with scarce an inhabitant, save the few ne- gro families that had taken up their abode in abandoned army huts. City Point itself was no less dull. Built on high and rolling ground, at the confluence of the Appomattox and the James, — a fine site for a village, — it had nothing to show but an ugly cluster of rough wooden buildings, such as spring up like fungus in the track of an army, and a long line of gov- ernment warehouses by the river. I took the first steamer for Richmond ; returning; thence, in a few days, down the James to Norfolk and Fortress Monroe. This voyage possesses an interest which can merely be hinted at in a description. You are gliding between shores rich with historical associations old and new. The mind soes back to the time when Captain John Smith, with the expedition of 1607, sailed up this stream, which they named in honor of their king. But you are diverted from those recollections by the landmarks of recent famous events : — the ruins of iron- clads below Richmond ; the wrecks of gunboats ; obstructions in the channel; Fort Darling, on a high blufi'; every com- manding eminence crowned by a redoubt ; Dutch Gap Canal ; Deep Bottom ; Butler's tower of observation ; Malvern Hill, where the last battle of McCIellan's retreat was fought, — a gen- tle elevation on the north bank, marked by a small house and clumps of trees ; Harrison's Landing, — a long pier extending 216 JAMES KIVEK AKD FOKTRESS MOKROE. out into the river ; Jamestown, the first settlement in Virginia, — now an island with a few huts only, and two or three chimney-stacks of burnt houses, — looking as desolate as when first destroyed, at the time of Bacon's rebellion, near two hundred years ago ; Newport News below, a place with a few shanties, and a row of grinning batteries ; Hampton Roads, bristling and animated with shipping, — the scene of the fight between the " Merrimac " and the " Monitor," initiating a new era in naval warfare ; Hampton away on the north, with its conspicuous square white hospital ; Norfolk on the south, up the Elizabeth River ; the Rip- Raps, and Sewall's Point ; and, most astonishing object of all, that huge finger of the military power, placed here to hold these shores, — Fortress Monroe. It was a wild, windy day ; the anchored ships were tossing on the white-capped waves ; but the Fortress presented a beau- tiftil calm picture, as we approached it, with its proud flag careering in the breeze, its white light-house on the beach, and the afternoon sunshine on its broad walls and grassv ram- parts. Before the war, there was a large hotel between the Fortress and the w^harves, capable of accommodating a thousand per- sons. This was torn down, because it obstructed tlie range of the guns ; and a miserable one-and-a-half story dining- saloon had been erected in its place. Here, after much per- suasion, I managed to secure a lodging under the low, unfin- ished roof. The proprietor told me that the government, which owns the land on which his house stands, exacted no payment for it, under General Dix's administration ; but that General Butler, on coming into power, immediately clapped on a smart rent of five hundred dollars a month, which the landlord could pay, or take his house elsewhere. I thought the circumstance characteristic. The next morning, having a letter to General Miles, in command at the Fortress, I obtained admission within the massy walls. I crossed the moat on the drawbridge, and entered the gate opening under the heavy bastions. I found AHKOLD'S PURPOSE. 217 myself in the midst of a village, on a level plain, shaded by- trees. A guard was given me, with orders to show me what- ever I wished to see, with one exception, — the interior of Mr. Jefferson Davis's private residence. This retired Rebel chief had been removed from the casemate in which he was orio-i- nally confined, and was occupying CaiTol Hall, a plain, three- story, yellow-painted building, built for officers' quarters. I walked past the doors, and looked up at the modest window- curtains, wondering what his thoughts were, sitting there, meditating his fallen fortunes, with the flag of the nation he had attempted to overthrow floating above his head, and its cannon frowning on the ramparts around him. Did he enjoy his cigar, and read the morning newspaper with interest? The strength and vastness of Fortress Monroe astonishes one. It is the most expensive fortress in the United States, having cost nearly two and a half million dollars. It is a mile around the ramparts. The walls are fifty feet thick. The stone masonry which forms their outward face rises twenty feet above high-water mark in the moat ; and the grassy par- apets are built ten feet higher. There were only seven hun- dred men in the fort, — a small garrison. I was shown the great magazine which Arnold, one of the Booth conspirators, proposed to blow up. His plan was to get a clerkship in the ordnance office, which would afford him facilities for carrying out his scheme. Had this succeeded, the terrible explosion that would have ensued would not only have destroyed the Fortress, but not a building on the Point would have been left standing;. I made the circuit of the ramparts, overlooking Hampton Roads on one side, and the broad bay on the other. The sun was shining ; the waves were breaking on the shore ; the band was playing proud martial airs ; the nation's flag rolled voluptuously in the wind ; steamers and white-sailed ships were going and coming ; the sky above was of deep blue, full of peace. It was hard to realize that the immense structure on which I walked, amid such a scene, was merely an engine of war. 218 JAMES KIVER AND FORTRESS MONROE. While 1 was at General Mlles's head-quarters an interesting case of pardoned rebellion was developed. Mr. Y , a noted secessionist of "Warwick County, was one of those who had early pledged his life, his fortune, and his sacred honor to the Confederate cause. He had commenced his patriotic service by seizing at his wharf on the Warwick River a pri- vate vessel which happened to be loading with lumber at the time when the State seceded, and sending her as a prize up to Richmond ; and he had crowned his career by assisting Wirz in his official M'ork at Anderson ville. During the war the government against which he was fighting had taken the liberty of cutting a little lumber on this gentleman's abandoned lands. He had since become professedly loyal, paid a visit to the good President at Washington, and returned to his estates with his pardon in his pocket. The first thing he did was to drive off the government contractor's employees with threats of violence. He would not even allow them to take away tlie government property he found on his place, but threatened to shoot every man who approached for that purpose. An officer came to head-quarters, when I was there, requesting a guard of soldiers to protect the lives of the laborers during the re- moval of this property. VILLAGE or HAMPTON. 219 CHAPTER XXIX. ABOUT HAMPTON. As it was my intention to visit some of the freedmen's settlements in the vicinity, the General kindly placed a horse at my disposal, and I took leave of him. A short gallop brought me to the village of Hampton, distant from the Fortress something; over two miles. " The village of Hampton," says a copy of the " Richmond Examiner " for 1861, " is beautifully situated on an arm of the sea setting in from the adjacent roadstead which bears its name. The late census showed that the aggregate white and black population was nearly two thousand." Some of the residences were of brick, erected at a heavy cost, and having large gardens, out-houses, and other valuable improvements. The oldest building, and the second oldest church in the State, was the Episcopal Church, made of imported brick, and surrounded by a cemetery of ancient graves. " Here repose the remains of many a cavalier and gentleman, whose names are borne by numerous families all over the Southern States." On the night of August 7th, 1861, the Rebels, under General Magruder, initiated what has been termed the " Avar- fare against women and children and private property," which has marked the war of the Rebellion, by laying this old aristo- cratic town in ashes. It had been mostly abandoned by the secessionist inhabitants on its occupation by our troops, and only a few white families, with between one and two hundred negroes, remained. Many of the former residents came back with the Rebel troops and set fire to their own and their neighbors' houses. Less than a dozen buildings remained standing ; the place being reduced to a wilderness of naked chimneys, burnt-out shells, and heaps of ashes. 220 ABOUT HAMPTON. I found it a thrifty village, occupied chiefly by freedmen. The former aristocratic residences had been replaced by negro huts. These were very generally built of split boards, called pales, overlapping each other like clapboards or shingles. There was an air of neatness and comfort about them which surprised me, no less than the rapidity with which they were constructed. One man had just completed his house. He told me that it took him a week to make the pales for it and bring them from the woods, and four days more to build it. A sash-factory and blacksmith's shop, shoemakers' shops and stores, enlivened the streets. The business of the place was carried on chiefly by freedmen, many of whom were becoming wealthy, and paying heavy taxes to the govern- ment. Every house had its wood-pile, poultry and pigs, and little garden devoted to corn and vegetables. Many a one had its stable and cow, and horse and cart. The village was sur rounded by freedmen's farms, occupying the abandoned plan- tations of recent Rebels. The crops looked well, though the soil was said to be poor. Indeed, this was by far the thriftiest portion of Virginia I had seen. In company with a gentleman who was in search of laborers, I made an extensive tour of these farms, anxious to see with my own eyes what the emancipated blacks were doing for themselves. I found no idleness anywhere. Happiness and industry were the universal rule. I conversed with many of the people, and heard their simple stories. They had but one trouble : the owners of the lands they occupied were coming back with their pardons and demanding the restoration of their estates. Here they had settled on abandoned Rebel lands, under the direction of the government, and with the government's pledge, given through its officers, and secured by act of Congress, that they should be protected in the use and enjoyment of those lands for a term of three years, each freed- man occupying no more than forty acres, and paying an annual rent to government not exceeding six per cent, of their value. Here, under the shelter of that promise, they had built their INJUSTICE TO FREEDMEN. 221 little houses and established their humble homes. What was to become of them ? On one estate of six hundred acres there was a thriving community of eight hundred freedmen. The owner had been pardoned unconditionally by the Presi- dent, who, in his mercy to one class, seemed to forget what justice was due to another. The tei'ms which some of these returning Rebels proposed to the freedmen they found in possession of their lands, in- terested me. One man, whose estate was worth sixteen dollars an acre, •offered to rent it to the families living on it for eight dollars an acre, provided that the houses, which they had themselves built, should revert to him at the end of the year. My friend broke a bolt in his buggy, and we stopped at a blacksmith-shop to get another. While the smith, a neoro, was making a new bolt, and fitting it neatly to its place, I questioned him. He had a little lot of half an acre ; upon which he had built his own house and shop and shed. He had a family, which he was supporting without any aid from the government. He was doing very well until the owner of the soil appeared, with the President's pardon, and orders to have • his property restored to him. The land was worth twenty dollars an acre. He told the blacksmith that he could remain where he was, by paying twenty-four dollars a year rent for his half acre. " I am going to leave," said the poor man, quietly, and without uttering a complaint. Except on the government farm, where old and infirm per- sons and orphan children were placed, I did not find anybody wdio was receiving aid from the government. Said one, " I have a famdy of seven children. Four are my own, and three are my brother's. I have twenty acres. I get no help from government, and do not want any as long as I can have land." I stopped at another little farm-house, beside which was a large pile of wood, and a still larger heap of unhusked corn, two farm wagons, a market wagon, and a pair of mules. The occupant of this place also had but twenty acres, and he was "getting rich," 222 ABOUT HAMPTON. " Has government helped you any this year ? " I asked a young fellow we met on the road. " Grovernment helped me ? " he retorted proudly. " No ; I am helping government." We stopped at a little cobbler's shop, the proprietor of which was supporting not only his own wife and children, but his aged mother and widowed sister. " Has government helped you any ? " we inquired. " Nary lick in the world ! " he replied, hammering away at his shoe. Driving across a farm, we saw an old negro without legs hitching along on his stumps in a cornfield, pulling out grass between the rows, and making it up into bundles to sell. He hailed lis, and wished to know if we wanted to buy any hay. He seemed delighted when my companion told him he would take all he had, at his own price. He said he froze his legs one winter when he was a slave, and had to have them taken off in consequence. Formerly he had received rations from the government, but now he was earning his own support, ex- cept what little he received from his friends. It was very common to hear of families that were helping 'not only their own relatives, but others who had no such claim of kindred upon them. And here I may add that the account which these people gave of themselves was fully corroborated by officers of the government and others who knew them. My friend did not succeed very well in obtaining laborers for his mills. The height of the freedmen's ambition was to have little homes of their own and to work for themselves. And who could blame this simple, strong instinct, since it was not only pointing them the way of their own prosperity, but serving also the needs of the country ? ^ Notwithstanding the pending difficulty with the land- owners, those who had had their lots assigned them were going on to put up new houses, from which they might be ^ For example: the freedmen on the Jones Place, with one hundred and twenty acres under cultivation, where they had commenced work with nothing for which they did not have to run in debt, were now the owners of both stock and farming implements; and, besides supporting their families, they were paying to the United States a large annual rent. PROTECTIOK OF THE FREEDMEN. 223 driven at any day, — so great was their faith in the honor of the government which had already done so mnch for them. Revisiting Virginia some months later, I learned that the Freedmen's Bureau had interposed to protect these people in their rights, showing that their faith had not been in vain. 224 A GENERAL VIEW OF VIRGINIA. CHAPTER XXX. A GENEKAL VIEW OF VIRGINIA. Called home from Fortress Monroe by an affair of business requiring my attention, I resumed my Southern tour later in the fall, passing through Central and Southwestern Virginia, and returning from the Carolinas through Eastern Virginia in the following February. I am warned by a want of space to omit the details of these transient journeys, and to compress my I'emaining notes on the State into as narrow a compass as possible.-^ Virginia was long a synonym for beauty and fertility. In the richness of her resources, she stood unrivalled among the earlier States. In wealth and population, she led them all. She was foremost also in political power ; and the names she gave to our Revolutionary history still sparkle as stars of the first magnitude. This halo about her name has been slow to fade ; although, like a proud and indolent school-girl, once at the head of her class, she has been making steady progress towards the foot. Five of the original States have gone above her, and one by one new-comers are fast overtaking her. Little Massachusetts excels her in wealth, and Ohio in both wealth and population. The causes of this gradual falling back are other than phys- ical causes. Her natural advantages have not been overrated. The Giver of good gifts has been munificent in his bounties to her. She is rich in rivers, forests, mines, soils. That broad avenue to the sea, the Chesapeake, and its affluents, solicit commerce. Her supply of water-power is limitless and ■•■ West Virginia, which seceded from the State after the State seceded from the Union, and which now forms a separate sovereignty mider the National Government, I can scarcely say that I visited. I saw but the edges of it; it is touched upon, there- fore, only in the general remarks which follow. FERTILITY OF THE STATE. 225 well distributed. She possesses a variety of climate, which is, with few exceptions, healthful and delightful. The fertilit}^ of the State is perha^DS hardly equal to its fine reputation, which, like that of some old authors, was acquired in the freshness of her youth, and before her powerful youno- competitors appeared to challenge the world's attention. Such reputations acquire a sanctity from nge, which the spirit of conservatism permits not to be questioned. The State has many rich valleys, river bottoms, and alluvial tracts bordering on lesser streams, which go far towards sus- taining this venerable reputation. But between these valleys occur intervals of quite ordinary fertility, if not absolute steril- ity, and these compose the larger portion of the State. Add the fact that the best lands of Eastern and Southeastern Vir- ginia have been very generally worn out by improper cultiva- tion, and what is the conclusion ? A striking feature of the country is its " old fields." Tht. more recent of these are usually found covered with briers^ weeds, and broom-sedge, — often with a thick growth of in- fant pines coming up like grass. Much of the land devastated by the war lies in this condition. In two or three years, these young pines shoot up their gi-een plumes live or six feet hio-h. In ten years there is a young forest. In some of the oldest of the old fields, now heavily timbered, the ridges of the an- cient tobacco lands are traceable amono; the trees. Tobacco has been the devouring enemy of the country. In travelling through it one is amazed at the thought of the re- gions which have been burned and chewed up by the smokers and spitters of the world. East Virginia is hilly. The southeast portion of the State is undulating, with occasional plains, and swamps of formidable extent. The soil of the tide-water districts is generally a light sandy loam. A belt of mountain ranges, a hundred miles in breadth, runs in a northeast and southwest direction across the State, enclosing some of its richest and loveliest portions. The Valley of Virginia, — as that fertile stripe is called lying west of the Blue Ridge, drained by the Shenandoah and the head- 15 226 A GEJq-EKAL VIEW OF VIRGINIA. waters of the James, — is fitly called the granary of the State. It is a limestone region, admirably adapted for grains and grazing. The virginity of its soil has not been polluted by tobacco. In 1860 there were in the State less than eleven and a half million acres of improved land, out of an area of near forty millions. Over thirteen million bushels of wheat were pro- duced ; one million of rye, Indian corn, and oats ; one hun- dred and twenty-four million pounds of tobacco ; twelve thou- sand seven hundred and twenty-seven bales of cotton ; and two and a half million pounds of wool (in round numbers). There Avere four thousand nine hundred manufacturing estab- lishments, the value of whose manufactures was fifty-one million three hundred thousand dollars. There were thirteen cotton factories, running twenty-eight thousand seven hundred spin- dles. The most important article of export before the war was negi'oes. There were sold out of the State annually twenty thousand.^ With the exception of the last-named staple, these annual productions are destined to be multiplied indefinitely by a vigorous system of free labor and the introduction of Northern capital. The worn-out lands can be easily restored by the application of marl and gypsum, with which the State abounds, and of other natural fertilizers. The average value of land, in 1850, was eight dollars an acre ; while that of New Jersey, which never bragged of its fertility, was forty-four dollars. The former price will now buy lands in almost any section of Virginia except the Shenandoah Valley ; while there is no question but that they can be raised to the latter price, and beyond, in a very few years, by judicious cultivation, united with such internal improvements as are indispensable to make the wealth of any region available. Still greater inducements are presented to manufacturers than 1 In 1850, the number of slave-owners in the State was 55,063. Of these 11,385 owned one slave each ; 15,550, more than one and less than 5 ; 13,030, more than 5 and less than 10; 9,456, more than 10 and less than 20; 4,880, more than 20 and less than 50; 646, more than 50 and less than 100; 107, over 100 and less than 200; 8 over 200 and less than 300 ; and 1, over 300. PKODUCTS OF VIRGINIA. 227 to farmers. To large capitalists, looking to establish extensive cotton-mills, I do not feel myself competent to offer any sug- gestions. But of small manufactures I can speak with confi- dence. Take the Shenandoah Valley for example. The wool that is raised there is sent North to be manufactured, and brought back in the shape of clothing, having incurred the expense of transportation both ways, and paid the usual tariff to traders through whose hands it has passed. The Valley abounds in iron ore of the best quality ; and it imports its kettles and stoves. The same may be said of nearly all agri- cultural implements. The freight on many of these imports is equal to their original cost. It was said before the war tliat scarce a wagon, clock, broom, boot, shoe, coat, rake or spade, or piece of earthen ware, was used in the South, that was not manufactured at the North ; and the same is substantially true to-day, notwithstanding the change in this particular which the war was supposed to have effected. Let any enter- prising man, or company of men, with sufficient experience for the work and capital to invest, go into Virginia, make use of the natural water-power which is so copious that no special price is put upon it, and manufacture,' of the materials that abound on the spot, articles that are in demand there, estab- lishing a judicious system of exchange, and who can doubt the result, now that the great obstacle in the way of such under- takings, slavery, has been removed ? In speaking of the products of Virginia, we should not forget its oysters ; of which near fourteen and a half million bushels, valued at four million eight hundred thousand dollars, were sent from Chesapeake Bay in one year, previous to the war. Virginia never had any common-school system. One third of her adult population can neither read nor write. There was a literary fund, established to promote the interests of education, which amounted, in 1861, to something over two millions of dollars ; but it was swallowed by the war. At the present time the prospect for white common schools in the State is discouraging. The only one I heard of in anything 223 A GENERAL VIEW OF VIKCIXIA like a flourishing condition was a school for poor M'hitcs, estal)- lished by the Union Commission in tlie buildings of tlie Confcc!- erate naval laboratory, at Richmond. It niunbers five hun- dred pupils, and is taught by experienced teachers from the North. The prospect is better for the education of the freed- men. There were in the State last winter ninety freedmen's schools, witli an aggregate of eleven thousand five hundred pupils. There were two hundred teachers ; twenty-five of whom were colored men and women at tlie head of self-sup- porting schools of their own race. The remaining schools, tauglit by experienced individuals from the North, w^ere sup- ported mainly by the following benevolent associations : The New-York National Freedmen's Relief; American IMission- aiy ; Pennsylvania Freedmen's Relief; Baptist Home Mis- sion ; New-England Freedmen's Aid ; and Philadelphia Friends' Freedmen's Relief. The opposition manifested by a large class of whites to the establishment of these schools was at first intense and bitter. It had nearly ceased, — together with the outrages on freed- nien, which had been frequent, — when, on the removal of the troops from certain localities,^ it recommenced, and w^^s, at my last A'isit, fearfully on the increase. Teachers Avere threat- ened and insulted, and school-houses broken into or burned. The better class of citizens, — many of whom see the neces- sity of educating the negro now that he is free, — while they have nothing to do with these acts of barbarism, are powerless to prevent them. The negro-haters are so strong an element in every society that they completely shield the wrong-doers from the reach of civil law. The great subject of discussion among the people ever}'-- where was the " niggers." Only a minority of the more en- lightened class, out of their large hearts and clear heads, spoke of them kindly and dispassionately. The mass of the people^ includino- alike the well-educated and the illiterate, generally detested the negroes, and wished every one of them driven out of the State. The black man was well enough as a slave ; 1 In February, 1866, there were but 2500 troops left in the State. PRIVATE LEAGUES AGAINST THE FREEDMEN. 229 but even those who rejoiced that slavery was no more, desired to get rid of him along with it. When he was a chattel, like a horse or dog, he was commonly cherished, and sometimes even loved like a favorite horse or dog, and there was not a particle of prejudice against him on account of color ; but the master-i'ace could not forgive him for being free ; and that he should assume to be a man, self-owning and self-directing, was intolerable. I simply state the fact ; I do not condemn any- body. That such a feeling should exist is, I know, the most natural thing in the world ; and I make all allowances for habit and education. It is this feeling which makes some protection on the part of the government necessary to the negro in his new condi- tion. The Freedmen's Bureau stands as a mediator between him and the race from whose absolute control he has been too recently emancipated to expect from it absolute justice. The belief inheres in the minds of the late masters, that they have still a right to appropriate his labor. Although we may acquit them of intentional wrong, it is impossible not to see how far their conduct is from right. Before the war, it was customary to pay for ordinary able- bodied plantation slaves, hired of their masters, at rates vary- ing from one hundred and ten to one hundred and forty dollars a year for each man, together with food, clothing, and medical attendance. After the war, the farmers in many counties of Virginia entered into combinations, pledging themselves to pay the freed slave only sixty dollars a year, exclusive of clothing and medical attendance, with which he was to fur- nish himself out of such meagre wages. They also engaged not to hire any freedman who had left a former employer without his consent. These were private leagues instituting measures similar to those which South Carolina and some other States afterwards enacted as laws, and having in view the same end, namely, — to hold the negro in the condition of abject de- pendence from which he was thought to have been emancipated. That the freedman's supposed unwillingness to work, and the employer's poverty occasioned by the war, were not the 230 A GENERAL VIEW OF VIRGINIA. reasons wliy lie was to be paid less than half the wages hti earned when hired out as a slave, I had abundant evidence. One illustration will suffice. Visiting the tobacco factories of Richmond, I found them worked entirely bj freedmen under white superintendents. I never saw more rapid labor performed with hands than the doing up of the tobacco in rolls for the presses ; nor harder labor with the muscles of the whole body than the working of the presses. The superin- tendents told me they had difficulty in procuring operatives. I inquired if the freedmen were well paid ; and was informed that good workmen earned a dollar and a half a day. " If the negroes will not engage in the business, why not employ white labor ? " " We tried that years ago, and it would n't answer. White men can't stand it ; they can't do the work. This press- work is a dead strain ; only the strongest niggers are up to it." Those putting up the tobacco in rolls, — three ounces in each, though they rarely stopped to place one on the scales, ■: — showed a skill which could have resulted oidy from yeai"s of practice. I learned, from conversing Avith them, that they were dissatisfied with their pay ; and the superintendents ad- mitted that, while the negroes worked as well as ever, labor was much cheaper than formerly. On further investigation I ascertained that a combination between the manufacturers kept the wages down ; that each workman had to employ a " stemmer," who made the tobacco ready for his hands ; and that his earnings were thus reduced to less than five dollars a week, out of which he had himself and his family to support.^ 1 After my visit to the tobacco factories, the following statement, drawn up for the colored workmen by one of their number, was placed in my hands by a gentleman who vouched for its truthfulness. I print it verbatim: — Richmond September 18, 1865 Dear Sirs We the Tobacco meehanicks of this city and Manchester is worked to great disadvantage In 1858 and 1859 our masters hiered us to the Tobacconist at a prices ranging from $150 to 180. The Tobacconist fur- nished us lodging food & clothing. They gave us tasks to perfbrme. all we made over this task they payed us for. We worked faithful and they paid us ftiithful. They Then gave us $2 to 2.50 cts, and we made double the amount we now make. The Tobacconist held a meeting, and resolved not give more than $1.50 cts per hundred, which is about one days work — in a week we may make 600 lbs apece with a sterner. The weeks work then at $1.50 amounts to $9 — the stemers wages is from $4 to $4.50 THE WORK OF THE FREEDMEN S BUREAU. 231 The Bureau labored to break up these combinations, and to secure for the freedmen all the rights of freemen. Colonel Brown, the Assistant-Commissioner for Virginia, divided the State into districts, and assigned a superintendent to each. The districts were subdivided into sub-districts, for which assistant superintendents were appointed. Thus the Bureau's influence was felt more or less throughout the State, It as- sisted the freedmen in obtaining employment, regulated con- tracts, and secured to them fair wages. It had a general superintendence of freedmen's schools. It used such powers as It possessed to scatter the negroes, whom the exigencies of the war had collected together in great numbers at places wlt a single ghttering line of steel six miles in length. The Rebels were driven from their lower works by the bayonet. The army rushed forward without firing a shot, and pausing only to take breath for a moment in the depressions of the hill ; then on- ward again, storming the heights, from which burst upon them a whistling and howling storm of iron and lead. General Thomas says the Ridge was carried simultaneously at six dif- ferent points. The attack commenced at three o'clock in the afternoon ; at four the crests Avere taken, and Bragg's army in flight. The first captured gun was turned upon the enemy by Corporal Kramer of the Forty-first Ohio regiment, belonging to Hazen's brigade of Wood's division. He discharged it by 264 MISSIOJT RIDGE AKD CIIICKAMAUGA. firing bis musket over the vent. It took six men to carry the colors of the First Ohio to the summit, five falling by tbe way in the attempt. Corporal Angelbeck, finding a Rebel caisson on fire, cut it loose from the horses and run it off down the hill before it exploded. These instances of personal intrepid- ity (which I give on the authority of Major-General Hazen, whom I saw afterwards at Murfreesboro') are but illustrations of the gallantry shown by our troops along the Avhole line. The plain we were crossing was the Sv^me which General Hooker's forces swept over in their pursuit of the enemy. We passed the Georgia State-line ; and, amid hilly woods filled with a bushy undergrowth, entered the mountain soli- tudes ; crossing Missionary Ridge by the Rossville Gap. Ross- ville, which consisted of a blacksmith-shop and dwelhng in the Gap, had been burned to the ground. Beyond this point the road forked : the left-hand track leadino; to Rino;old, the rioht to Lafayette. Driving southw^ard along the Lafayette Road we soon reached the site of Cloud Spring Hospital, in the rear of the battle-field. A desolate, dreary scene : the day was cold and wet ; dead leaves strewed the ground ; the wind whistled in the trees. There were indications that here the work of dis- interment was about to begin. Shovels and picks were ready on the ground ; and beside the long, low trenches of tiie dead waited piles of yellow pine coffins spattered with rain. A little further on we came to traces of the conflict, — boughs broken and trees cut off by shells. We rode south- ward along the line of battle, over an undulating plain, with sparse timber on one side, and on the other a field of girdled trees, which had been a cotton-field at the time of the battle. These ghostly groves, called " deadenings," sometimes seen in other parts of the countiy, are an especial feature of the Southern landscape. When timbered land is to be put under cultivation, the trees, instead of being cut away, are often merely deadened with the axe, which encircles them with a line severing the bark, and there left to stand and decay slowly through a series of years. First tlie sapless bark flakes and THE " DEADEOTNGS." 265 falls piecemeal, and the wind breaks off the brittle twigs and small boughs. Next the larger branches come down ; and the naked trunk, covered in the course of time by a dry-rot, and perforated by worms and the bills of woodpeckers, stands witli the stumps of two or three of its largest topmost limbs upstretched in stern and sullen gloom to heaven. There is something awful and sublime in the aspect of a whole forest of such. The tempest roars among them, but not a limb sways. Spring comes, and all around the woods are green and glad, but not a leaf or tender bud puts forth upon the spectral trunks. The sun rises, and the field is ruled by the shadoAVS of these pillars, which sweep slowly around, shortening as noon approaches, and lengthening again at the approacli of night. Corn and cotton flourish well ; the powdery rot and half- decayed fragments which fldl serving as a continual nourish- ment to the soil. It takes from ten to twenty years for these corpses standing over their graves to crumble and disappear ben-eath them. Sometimes they rot to the roots ; or, when all is ready, a hurricane hurls his crashing balls, and the whole grove goes down in a night-time, like ten-pins. Dismal enough looked the " deadening," in the cold and drizzlino; rain that mornino; on the battle-field. Scarcelv less so seemed the woods beyond, all shattered and torn by shot and shell, as if a tornado had swept them. On the northern side of these was Kelly's house. The Dyer Farm was beyond ; upon which we found two hundred colored soldiers encamped, in a muddy village of Avinter huts near the ruins of the burned farm-house. The Dyer family Avere said to be excellent Rebels. Dyer served as a guerilla ; and it was his wife who burned her feather-bed in order that it might not be used by our wounded soldiers. After that patriotic act she wandered off in the woods and died. Her husband had since returned, and was now living in a new log-hut within sight of the camp. The camp was a strange spectacle. The men were cooking their dinners or drying their clothes around out-door fires of logs which filled the air with smoke. Near by were piles of coffins, — some empty, some containing the remains of soldiers 266 MISSION RIDGE AND CHICKAMAUGA. that had just been disinterred. The camp was surrounded by fields of stumps and piny undergrowth. Here and there were scatte,red trees, hitched at some of which were mules munch- ing their dinners of wet hay. There were two hundred and seventeen soldiers in camp. At first they had a horror of the work for which they were detailed. All the superstition of the African was roused within them at sight of the mouldering dead. They declared that the '(kulls moved, and started back with shrieks. An officer, to encourage them, unconcernedly took out the bones from a grave and placed them carefully in a coffin. They were induced to imitate his example. In a few hours they chatted or whistled and sang at their work ; and in a few days it was common to see them perform their labor and eat their luncheons at the same time, — lay bones into the coffin with one hand, and hold with the other the hard-tack they were nibbling. More than nine tenths of the bodies taken from Chicka- mauga were unknown. Some had been buried in trenches ; some singly ; some laid side by side, and covered with a little earth, perhaps not more than six inches deep, leaving feet and skull exposed ; and many had not been buried at all. Through- out the woods were scattered these lonely graves. The method of finding them was simple. A hundred men were deployed in a line, a yard apart, each examining half a yard of ground on both sides of him, as they proceeded. Thus was swept a space five hundred yards in breadth. Trees were blazed or stakes set along the edge of this space, to guide the company on its return. In this manner the entire battle-field had been or was to be searched. When a grave was found, the entire line was halted until the teams came up and the body was re- moved. Many graves were marked with stakes, but some were to be discovered only by the raised or disturbed appear- ance of the ground. Those bodies which had been buried in trenches were but little decomposed ; while of those buried singly in boxes not much was left but the bones and a handful of dust. BLUNDEE AT CHICKAMAUGA. 267 We had diverged from the Lafayette Road in order to ride along the line of battle east of it, — passing the positions occu- pied on Sunday, the second day, by Baird, Johnson, and Pal- mer's divisions, respectively. Next to Palmer was Reynolds ; then came Brannan, then Wood, then Davis, then Sheridan, on the extreme right. The line, which on Saturday ran due north and south, east of the road, — the left resting at Kelly's house and the right at Gordon's Mills, — was on Sunday curved, the right being drawn in and lying diagonally across and behind the road. In front (on the east) was Chickamauga Creek. Missionary Ridge was in the rear ; on a spur of which the yight rested. I recapitulate these positions, because news- paper accounts of the battle, and historical accounts based upon them, are on two or three points confusv^d and contra- dictory : and because an understanding of them is important to what I am about to say. Quitting the camp, we approached the scene of the great blunder which lost us the battle of Chickamauga. At half- past nine in the morning the attack commenced, the Rebels hurling masses of troops with their accustomed vigor against Rosecrans's left and centre. Not a division gave way : the whole line stood firm and unmoved : all was going well ; when Rosecrans sent the following imperative order to General Wood : — " Close up as fast as possible on Creneral Reynolds^ and sup- port him.'''' General Brannan's division, as you have noticed, was be- tween Wood and Reynolds. How then could Wood close up on Reynolds without taking out his division and marching by the left flank in Brannan's rear? In military parlance, to close up may mean two quite different things. It may mean to move by the flank in order to close a gap which occurs be- tween one body of troops and another body. Or it may mean to make a similar movement to that by which a rank of sol- diers is said to close up on the rank in front of it. To close to the right or left^ is one thing ; to close up on^ another. To Gen- eral Wood, situated as he was, the order could have no other 208 missio:n" ridge and chickamauga. meaning than the latter. He could not close itp on General Reynolds and support him without taking a position in his rear. Yet the order seemed to him very extraordinary. To General McCook, who was present when it was received, he remarked, — " This is very singular ! What am I to do ? " For to take out his division was to make a gap in the army which might prove fatal to it. " The order is so positive," replied McCook, " that you must obey it at once. Move your division out, and I will move Davis's in to fill the gap. Move quick, or you won't be out of the way before I bring in his division." General Wood saw no alternative but to obey the order. He would have been justified in disobeying it, only on the supposition that the commanding general was ignorant of the position of his forces. Had Rosecrans been absent from the field, such a supposition would have been reasonable, and such disobedience duty. But Rosecrans was on the field ; and he was supposed to know infinitely more than could be known to any division commander concerning the exigencies of the battle. Had Wood kept his place, and Reynolds been over- whelmed and the field lost in consequence of that act of insubordination, he would have deserved to be court-mar- tialled and shot. On the contrary, he moved his division out, and in consequence of his strict obedience to orders the field was lost. He had scarcely opened the gap between Brannan and Davis, when the Rebels rushed in and cut the army to pieces. General Rosecrans, in his official report, sought to shift the responsibility of this fatal movement from his own shoulders to those of General Wood. This was manifestly unjust. It appears to me that the true explanation of it lies in the fact that Rosecrans, although a man of brilliant parts, had not the steady balance of mind necessary to a great general. He could organize an army, or plan a campaign in his tent ; but he had no self-possession on the field of battle. In great emergencies he became confused and forgetful. It was prob- GEITERAL THOMAS'S FIGHT. 269 ably this nervousness and paralysis of memory which caused the disaster at Chickamauga. He had forgotten the position of his forces. He intended to order General Wood to close to the left on Brannan ; or on Reynolds, forgetting that Bran- nan was between tliem. But the order was to close up on and support Reynolds ; whereas Reynolds, like Brannan, was doing very well, and did not particularly need support. The routed divisions of the army fled to Chattanooga, — the commanding general among the foremost ; where he has- tened to telegraph to the War Department and the dismayed nation that all was lost ; while General Garfield, his chief of staff, extricating himself from the rabble, rode back to the part of the field where firing was still heard, — running the gauntlet of the enemy's lines, — and joined General Thomas, who, rallying fragments of corps on a spur of Missionary Ridge, was stemming the tide of the foe, and saving the army from destruction. Through woods dotted all over with the graves of soldiers buried where they fell, we di'ove to the scene of that final fight. Bones of dead horses strewed the ground. At the foot of the wooded hill were trenches full of Lono-street's slauchtered men. That was to them a most tragical termination to what had seemed a victory. Inspired by their recent success, they charged again and again up those fatal slopes, only to be cut down like ripe grain by the deadly volleys which poured from a crescent of flame and smoke, where the heroic remnant of the army had taken up its position, and was not to be dislodged. 270 FEOM CHATTAKOOGA TO MURFKEESBORO'. CHAPTER XXXVII. FROM CHATTANOOGA TO MURFKEESBORO'. The military operations, of which Chattanooga was so long the centre, have left their mark upon all the surrounding country. Travel which way you will, you are sure to follow in their track. There are fortifications at every commanding point. Every railroad bridge is defended by redoubts and block-houses ; and many important bridges have been burned. The entire route to Atlanta is a scene of conflict and desola- tion : earthworks, like the foot-prints of a Titan on the march ; rifle-pits extending for miles along the railroad track ; hills all dug up into forts and entrenchments ; the town of Marietta in ruins ; farms swept clean of their fences and buildings ; every- where, along the blackened war-path, solitary standing chim- neys left, " like exclamation points," to emphasize the silent story of destruction. I saw a few " Union men " at Chattanooga. But their loyalty was generally of a qualified sort. One, who was well known for his daring opposition to the secession leaders, and for his many narrow escapes from death, told me how he lived during the war. Once when the Rebels came to kill him, they took his brother instead. His residence was on a hill, and three times subsequently he saved his life by taking a canoe and crossing the river in it when he saw his assassins coming. Yet this man hated the free negro worse than he hated the Rebels ; and he said to me, " If the government attempts now to force negro-suffrage upon the South, it will have to wade throuffh a sea of blood to which all that has been shed was only a drop ! " Another, who claimed also to be a Union man, said, " Before the South will ever consent to help pay the National debt, there will be another rebellion bigger than STOEY OF TWO BROTHERS. 271 the last. You would make her repudiate her own war-debt, and then pay the expenses of her own whipping. I tell you, this can't be done." The threats of another rebelhon, and of an extraordinarily large sea of blood, were not, I suppose, to be understood literally. This is the fiery Southron's metaphorical manner of expressing himself. Yet these men were perfectly sincere in their profession of sentiments which one would have expected to hear only from the lips of Rebels. On the morning of Thursday, December 14th, I bid ajoyfal farewell to Chattanooga, which is by no means a delightful place to sojourn in, and took the train for Murfreesboro'. The weather Avas cold, and growing colder. Winter had come suddenly, and very much in earnest. Huge icicles hung from the water-tanks by the railroad. The frost, pushing its crystal shoots up out of the porous ground, looked hke thick growths of fungus stalks. The rain and mist of the previous night were congealed upon the trees ; and the Cumberland Moun- tains, as Ave passed them, appeared covered with forests of silver. The country was uninteresting. Well-built farm-houses were not common ; but log-huts, many of them without windows, predominated. These were inhabited by negroes and poor whites. I remember one family living in a box-car that had been run off the track. Another occupied a gro- tesque cabin having for a door the door of a car, set up endwise, marked conspicuously in letters reading from the zenith to the nadir, « U. S. MILITARY R. R." We passed occasionally cotton-fields, resembling at that season and in that climate fields of low black weeds, with here and there a bunch of cotton sticking to the dry leafy stalks. Next me sat a gentleman from Iowa, whose history was a striking illustration of the difference between a slave State and a free State. He had just been to visit a brother living in Georgia. They were natives of North Carolina, from which State they emigrated in early manhood. He chose the North- west ; his brother chose the South ; and they had now met for the first time since their separation. 272 FROM CHATTANOOGA TO MUEFREESBORO'. *' To me," said he, " it was a very sad meeting. Georgia is a hundred years behind Iowa. My brother has always been poor, and always will be poor. If I had to live as he does, I should think I had not the bare necessaries of life, not to speak of comforts. His children are growing up in ignorance. WHen I looked at them, and thought of my own children, — intelligent, cultivated, with their schools, their books, and magazines, and piano, — I was so much affected I could n't speak, and for a minute I 'd have given anything if I had n't seen how he was situated. It is n't my merit, nor liis fault, that there is so great a difference now, between us, who were so much alike when boys. If he had gone to Iowa, he would have done as well as I have. If I had gone to Georgia, I should have done as poorly as he has." He was the only Northern man in the car besides myself, — as was to be seen not only by the countenances of the other passengers, but also by the spirit of their conversation. Be- hind us sat an ignorant brute, with his shirt bosom streaked with tobacco drizzle, who was saying in a loud, fierce tone, that " we 'd better kill off the balance of the niggers," for he had " no use for 'em now they were free." Others were talking about Congress and the President. One little boy four years old amused us all. He enjoyed the range of the car, and had made several acquaintances, some of whom, to plague him, called him Billy Yank. Great was the little fel- low's indignation at this insult. " I a'n't Billy Yank ! I 'm Johnny Reb ! '' he insisted. As the teasing continued, he flew to his mother, who received him in her arms. " Yes, he is Johnny Reb ! so he is ! " And his little heart was comforted. At half-past three we reached Murfreesboro', having been nine hours travellino; one hundred and nine miles. This I found about the average rate of speed on Southern roads. The trains run slow, and a great deal of time is lost at stopping-places. Once, when we were wooding up, I went out to learn what was keeping us so long, and saw two of the hands engaged in a scuffle, which the rest were watching with human interest. On another occasion the men had to brirg A TENNESSEE MANSIOi^'. 273 wood out of the forest, none having been provided for the engine near the track. Murfreesboro' is situated very near the centre of the State. It had in 1860 three thousand inhabitants. It has six churches, and not a decent hoteh Before the war it enjoyed the blessing of a University, a mihtary institute, two female colleges, and two high-schools ; all of which had been discon- tinued. It was also described to me as " a pretty, shady village, before the war." But the trees had been cut away, leaving ugly stump-lots ; and the country all around was laid desolate. Knowing how wretched must be my accommodations at the only tavern then open to the public. General Hazen hospitably insisted on my removal to his head-quarters on the evening of my arrival. I found him occupying a first-class Tennessee mansion on a hill just outside the town. The house was cru- ciform, with a spacious hall and staircase in the centre, open- ing into lofty wainscoted rooms above and below. The rich- ness of the dark panels, and the structural elegance of the apartments, were unexceptionable. But the occupants of these could never have known comfort in wintry weather. The house was built, like all southern houses, for a climate reputed mild, but liable to surprises of cruel and treacherous cold, against which the inhabitants make no provision. The General and I sat that evening talking over war times, with a huge fire roaring before us in the chimney, and roasting our faces, while the freezing blast blew upon our backs from irre- mediable crevices in the ill-jointed wainscots and casements. I slept that night in a particularly airy chamber, with a good fire striving faithfully to master the enemy, and found in the morning the contents of the water-pitcher, that stood in the room, fast frozen. I was amused by the grimaces of the negro servant who came in to replenish the fire before I was up. He inquired if we had any colder weather than that in the North, and when I told him how I had seen iron pump-handles stick to a wet hand on a fine wintry morning, involving sometimes the sacri- 13 274 FKOM CHATTANOOGA TO MUEFREESBOKO'. fice of epidermis before the teeth of the frost could be made to let go, he remarked excitedly, — " I would n't let de iron git holt o' my hand ! I hain't no skin to spar', mornin' like dis sher ! " As I sat at breakfast with the General, he told me of his official intercourse with the inhabitants, since he had been in command of the post. " The most I have to do," said he, " is to adjust difficulties between Union men and Rebels. There are many men living in this country who acted as scouts for our army, and who, when they wanted a horse to use in the service of the government, took it without much ceremony where they could find it. For acts of this kind the law-loving Rebels are now suing them for damages before the civil courts, and persecuting them in various ways, so that the military power has to interfere to protect them." ROSECRAKS'S FOETRESS. 275 CHAPTER XXXVIII. STONE RIVER. After breakfast in a large dining-room which no fuel could heat, we went and stood by the hearth, turning ourselves on our heels, as the earth turns on its axis, warming a hemisphere at a time, until the wintry condition of our bodies gave place to a feeling of spring, half sunshine and half chill; then Ave clapped on our overcoats and mufflers ; then two powerful war-horses of the General's came prancing to the door, ready bridled and saddled ; and we mounted. A vigorous gallop across the outskirts of the town and out on the Nashville Pike set the sympathetic blood also on a gallop, and did for us what fire in a Tennessee mansion could not do. In ten minutes we were thoroughly warm, with the exception of one thumb in a glove which I wore, and an ear on the windward side of the General's rosy face. Riding amid stump-fields, where beautiful forests had cast their broad shades before the war, we entered the area of the vast fortress constructed by the army of Rosecrans, lying at Murfreesboro' after the battle. This is the largest work of the kind in the United States. A parapet of earth three miles in circumference encloses a number of detached redoubts on commanding eminences. The encircled space is a mile in diameter. It contained all Rosecrans's store- houses, and was large enough to take in his entire army. It would require at least ten thousand troops to man its breast- works. The converging lines of the railroad and turnpike running to Nashville pass through it ; and across the north front sweeps a bend of Stone River. We found the stream partly frozen, chafing between abrupt rocky shores sheathed in ice. 276 STONE EIVER. ^ A mile beyond, the converging lines above mentioned cut each other at a sharp angle ; the railroad, vs^hich goes out of Murfreesboro' on the left, shifting over to the right of the turnpike. Crossing them at nearly right angles, a short dis- tance on the Murfreesboro' side of their point of intersection, was the Rebel line of battle, on the morning of the thirty- first of December. Half a mile beyond this point, on the Nashville side, was the Union line. The railroad here runs through a cut, with a considerable embankment, — a circumstance of vital importance to our army, saving it, probably, from utter rout and destruction, on that first day of disaster. The right wing, thrown out two miles and more to the west of the railroad, rested on nothing. It was left hanging in the air, as the French say. An attack was expected, yet no precautions wei-e taken to provide against an attack. General Wood, who had posted scouts in trees to observe the movements of the Rebels, reported to the commanding general that they were rapidly moving troops over and massing them on their left. Rosecrans says he sent the information to McCook ; McCook says he never received it. When the attack came, it was a /pei'fect surprise. It was made with the suddenness and impetuosity for which the enemy was distinguished, and everything gave way before it. Division after division was pushed back, until the line, which was projected nearly perpendicular to the .railroad in the morning, lay pai^allel to it, — that providential cut affording an opportune cover for the rallying and re-forming of the troops. Another feature of the field is eminently noticeable. The bold river banks, curving in and out, along by the east side of the railroad, made a strong position for the Union left to rest upon. Here, in a little grove called by the Rebels the " Round Forest," between the river and the railroad, was General Wood's division, planted like a post. On his right, like a bolt of iron in that post, was Hazen's brigade, serving as a pivot on which the whole army line swung round like a gate. The pivot itself was inmiovable. In vain the enemy concentrated SOLDIERS' CEMETERY A:N"D MOITUMENT. 277 his utmost efforts against it. Terribly smitten and battered, but seemingly insensible as iron itself, there it stuck.^ It was extremely interesting to visit this portion of the field in company with one who played so important a part in the events enacted there. We rode through a cotton-field of black leafy stalks, with little white bunches clinging to them like feathers or snow. It was across that field, between Round Forest and the railroad, that Hazen's line was foi'med. On the edge of it, by the forest, still lay the bones of a horse shot under him during the battle. Near by was a little cemetery, within wliicli the dead of Hazen's brigade were buried. A well-built stone wall encloses an oblong space one hundred feet in length by forty in breadth. Within are thirty-one limestone tablets marking the graves of the common soldiers. In the midst of these stands a mon- ument, on which are inscribed the names of officers whose remains are deposited beneath it. This is also of limestone, massy, well formed, ten feet square on the ground and eleven feet in height. It is interesting as being the only monument of importance and durability erected by soldiers during the war. On the south side, facing the railroad and turnpike, is the following legend : — "HAZEN'S BEIGADE TO THE MEMORY OF ITS SOLDIERS WHO FELL AT STONE RIVER, DEC. 31, 1862. ' Their faces toward heaven, their feet to the foe.'' " 1 The right brigade of Palmer's division had been the last to yield. The left bri- gade, in command of Hazen, was thus exposed to fire in flank and rear, and to the attempts of the enemy to charge in front. It required terrible fighting to beat back tlie enemy's double lines: it cost a third of the brave brigade; but every moment the enemy was held back was worth a thousand men to the main line. General Rosecrans improved the time so well, in hurrying troops to the new position, that, when the enemy assailed that line, the fresh divisions of Van Cleve, Wood, and Rousseau, and the artillery massed on a commanding point, not only repulsed them, but they ■were charged while retiring by one of Crittenden's brigades. . . . The enemy had miscalculated the temper of Hazen's brigade; and Bragg was obliged to report, as he did in his first despatch, that he " had driven the whole Federal line, except his Jeft, which stubbornly resisted." — Annals of the Army of the CumberUmd. 278 STONE RIVER. On tlie east side is the following : — " The Veterans of Shiloh have left a deathless HERITAGE OF FAME UPON THE FIELD OF StONE RiVER." On the north side : — " Erected 1863, upon the ground where they fell, by their comrades of the Nineteenth Brigade, Buell's Army of the Ohio, Col. W. B. Hazen 41st Infantry O. Vols, commanding." On the west side : — " The blood of one third its soldiers twice spilled in Ten- nessee crimsons the battle-flag of the brigade and inspires to great deeds." From the soldiers' cemetery at Round Forest we rode on to the new National Cemetery of Stone River, then in process of construction. It lies between the railroad and the turn- pike, in full view from both. A massy square-cornered stone •wall encloses a space of modest size, sufficiently elevated, and covered with neatly heaped mounds, side by side, and row be- hind row, in such precise order, that one might imagine the dead who sleep beneath them to have formed their ghostly ranks there after the battle, and carefully laid themselves down to rest beneath those small green tents. The tents were not green when I visited the spot, but I trust they are green to-day, and that the birds are singing over them. COIklMEKCE OF i^ASHVILLE. 279 CHAPTER XXXIX. THE HEART OF TENNESSEE. Having spent the remainder of the forenoon in riding over other portions of the field, we returned to Murfreesboro' ; and at half-past three o'clock I took the train for Nashville. At Nashville I remained four days, — four eminently dis- agreeable days of snow, and rain, and fog, and slush, and mud. Yet I formed a not unfavorable impression of the city. I could feel the influence of Northern ideas and enterprise pulsating through it. Its population, which was less than twenty-four thousand at the last census, nearly doubled during the war. Its position gives it activity and importance. It is a nostril through which the State has long breathed the Northern air of free institutions. It is a port of entry on the Cumberland, which affords it steamboat communication with the great rivei's. It is a node from which radiate five impor- tant railroads connecting it with the South and North. The turnpikes leading out of it in every direction are the best sys- tem of roads I met with anywhere in the South. Middle Tennessee is the largest of the three natural divis- ions of the State, It is sepai'ated from the West division by the Tennessee River, and from East Tennessee by the Cumber- land Mountains. It is a fine stock-raising country ; and the valley of the Cumberland River affords an extensive tract of excellent cotton and tobacco lands. Nashville is the great commercial emporium of this division. The largest annual shipment of cotton from this port was fifty thousand bales ; the average, before the war, was about half as many : during 1865, it was fully up to this average, con- sisting mostly of old cotton going to market. Six thousand hogsheads of tobacco, two million bushels of com, and twenty- 280 THE HEART OF TENNESSEE. five thousand liogs, — besides ten thousand casks of bacon and twenty-five hundred tierces of lard, — were yearly shipped from this port. The manufacturing interest of the place is in- significant. The prospects of the country for the present year seemed to me favorable. The freedmen were making contracts, and going to work. Returned Rebels were generally settling down to a quiet life, and turning their attention to business. The people were much disposed to plant cotton, and every effort was making to put their desolated farms into a tillable condi- tion. Yet Middle Tennessee is but an indifferent cotton-growing region. It is inferior to West Tennessee, and can scarcely be called a cotton country, when compared with the rich valleys of the more Southern States. Eight hundred pounds of seed cotton^ to the acre are considered a good crop on the best lands. The quality of Middle Tennessee cotton never rates above " low middling," but generally below it, (the different qualities of cotton being classed as follows : inferior, ordinaiy, good ordinary, low middling, middling, good middling, mid- dlmg fair, good fair, and fine.) I found considerable business doing with an article which never before had any money-value. Cotton seed, which used to be cast out from the gin-houses and left to rot in heaps, the planter reserving but a small portion for the ensuing crop, was now in great demand, prices varying from one to three dollars a bushel. In some portions of the Rebel States it had nearly run out during the war, and those sections which, like Tennessee, had continued the culture of the plant, were sup- plying the deficiency. The seed, I may here mention, resem- bles, after the fibre is removed by the gin, a small-sized pea covered with fine white wool. It is very oily, and is consid- ered the best known fertilizer for cotton lands. Nashville is built on the slopes of a hill rising from the 1 That is, of cotton and seed: the gin takes out fifty or sixty per cent, of the gross weight. BATTLE OF NASHVILLE. 281 soutli bank of the Cumberland. Near the summit, one hundred and seventy-five feet above the river, stands the Capitol, said to be the finest State capitol in the United States. The view it commands of the surrounding country is superb ; and seen from afar off, it seems, with its cupola and Ionic porticoes, to rest upon the city like a crown. It is constructed of fine fossiliferous limestone, three stories in height ; with a central tower lifting the cupola two hundred feet from the OT'ound. This tower is the one bad feature about the buildino;. It is not imposing. The site is a lofty crest of rock, which was fortified during the war, converting the capitol into a citadel. The parapets thrown up around the edifice still remain. My visit happened on the first anniversary of the battle of Nashville, which took place on the fifteenth and sixteenth days of December, 1864; — a battle which, occurring after many great and sanguinary conflicts, did not rise to highest fame ; and which has not yet had ample justice done it. It is to be distinguished as the only immediately decisive battle of the war, — the only one in wliich an army was destroyed. By it the army of Hood was annihilated, and a period put to Rebel power in the States which Sherman had left behind him on his n-reat march. The scene of the battle, the sweeping undulations of the plain, the fields, the clumps of woods, and the range of hills beyond, are distinctly visible in fair weather from the house- tops of the city, and especially from the capitol. The fight took place under the eyes of the citizens. Every " coigne of vantage " was black with spectators. Patriots and Rebel sympathizers were commingled : the friends and relatives of both armies crowding together to witness the deadly struggle ; a drama of fearfully intense reality ! The wife of a noted general officer who was in the thickest of the fight, told me something of her experience, watching from the capitol with a glass the movements of his troops, the swift gallop of couriers, the charge, the repulse, the successful assault, the ground dotted with the slain, and the awful battle cloud, rolling over 282 THE HEART OE TENNESSEE. all, enfolding, as she at one time believed, his dead form with the rest. But he lived ; he was present when she told me the story ; — and shall I ever forget the emotion with which he listened to the recital ? The battle was no such terrible thing to the soldier in the midst of it, as to the loved one look- ing on. The State legislature adjourned for the Christmas holidays on the morning of my visit to the capitol ; but I was in time to meet and converse with members from various parts of the State. They were generally a plain, candid, earnest class of men. They were the loyal salt of the State. Some of them were from districts in which there were no Union men to elect them; to meet which contingency the names of the candidates for both houses had been placed on a general ticket. Thus members from West and Middle Tennessee, where the Rebel element was paramount, were elected by votes in East Tennessee, which was loyal. With Mr. Frierson, Speaker of the Senate, I had a long conversation. He was from Maury County, and a liberal- minded, progressive man, for that intensely pro-slavery and Rebel district. We talked on the exciting topic of the hour, — negro suffrage, and the admission of negro testimony in the courts. " My freedmen," he said, " are far more intelligent and better prepared to vote, than the white population around us." Yet as a class he did not think the negroes prepared to exercise the right of suffrage, and he was in favor of granting it only to such as had served in the Union army. To the ne- groes' loj^alty and good behavior he gave the highest praise. " It is said they would have fought for the Confederacy, if the opportunity had been given them in season. But I know the nesro, and I know that his heart was true to the Union from the first, and throughout ; and I do not believe he Avould have fought for the Rebellion, even on the promise of his liberty." He thought the blacks competent to give testimony in the courts ; but for this step society in Tennessee was not pre- pared. Both the right of voting and of testifying must be given them before long, however. CONVERSATIOK WITH GOVEENOR BROWNLOW. "ZS'd There were two classes of Union men in Tennessee. One class bad manifested their loyalty by their uncompromising acts and sacrifices. The other class were merely le^al Union men, professing loyalty to the government and friendliness to the negro. " These are not to be trusted," said Mr. Frierson. " Their animosity against the government and the freedmen, and more particularly against heart Union men, is all the more dangerous because it is secret." And it was necessary in his opinion to retain the Freedmen's Bureau in the State, and to keep both Rebels and rebel sympathizers excluded from power, for some years. I have given so much of this conversation to illustrate the views entertained by the average, moderate, common-sense Union men of Tennessee. Far behind them, on the question of human rights, were some of the negro-haters and Rebel- persecutors of East Tennessee ; while there was a handful of leading men as far in advance of them. A good sample of these was the honorable John Trimble, of Nashville, also a member of the legislature, whom I had the satisfaction of meeting on two or three occasions : a man of liberal and culti- vated mind, singularly emancipated from cant and prejudice. He had just introduced into the General Assembly a bill ex- tending the elective franchise to the freedmen, with certain restrictions ; for the passage of which there was of course little chance. I was just in time to catch Governor Brownlow as he was about going home for the holidays. I should have been sorry to miss seeing this remarkable type of native Southern- West- ern wit. As an outspoken convert from the pro-slavery doc- trines he used to advocate, to the radical ideas which the agita- tions of the times had shaken to the surface of society, he wsls also interesting to me. I found him a tall, quiet individual, of a nervous temperament, intellectual forehead, and a gift of language, — with nothing of the blackguard in his manners, as readers of his writings might sometimes be led to expect. His conversation was characteristic. He believed a Rebel had no rights except to be hung in this world, and damned after 28-4 THE HEAET OF TENNESSEE. death. But this and otliei' similar expressions did not proceed so much from a vindictive nature, as from that tendency to a strong, extravagant style of statement, for which Western and Soutliern people, and especially the people of Tennessee, are noted. Of his compatriots, the Union-loving East Tennesseeans, he said, " It is hard to tell which they hate most, the Rebels, or the negroes." He did not sympathize with them in the ill- feelino- they bestowed upon the latter. He was in fevor of the Negro Testimony Bill, which had just been defeated in the legislature by East Tennessee members ; and as for negro suffrage, he thought it was sure to come in a few years. " The Rebels," said he, " are as rebellious now as ever. If Thomas and his bayonets were withdrawn, in ten days a Rebel mob would drive this legislature out. Congress," he added, " will have to legislate for all the Rebel States, Tennessee with the rest." From the Governor's I went over to the division head- quarters to call on Major-General Thomas, — a very different type of native Southern men. Born and bred a Virginian, his patriotism was national, knowing no State boundaries. In appearance, he is the most lion-like of all the Union generals I have seen. An imperturbable, strong soul, never betrayed into weakness or excess by any excitement, his opinions pos- sessed for me great value. We spoke of the national soldiers' cemeteries in his division ; and he informed me that besides those I had visited at Chat- tanooga and Murfreesboro', others proposed by him had been sanctioned by the War Department. " We shall have one here at Nashville ; and I have already selected the site for t," — a fortified hill in the suburbs. " There will be one at Franklin ; also one at Memphis ; another at Shiloh ; and an- other large one at Atlanta ; " for he did not favor the plan of burying the dead of the Atlanta campaign at Chattanooga. The military division, called the " Division of the Tennes- see," which General Thomas commands, comprises the States of Kentucky, Tennessee, Georgia, Alabama, and Mississippi. GENERAL THOMAS'S 0PINI02TS. 285 He did not think that in either of those States there was any love for the Union, except in the hearts of a small minoritj. Tennessee was perhaps an exception. It was the only one of the Southern States that had reorganized on a strictly Union basis. It had disfranchised the Rebels. The governor, the legislature, and the recently elected members of Congress, were unquestionably loyal men. The Rebel State debt had been repudiated, and the Constitutional Amendment abolishing slavery adopted. East Tennessee could take care of itself; but in Middle and West Tennessee, where the Rebel senti- ment predominated, personal and partisan animosities were so strong that Union men must for some time to come have the protection of the government. There were then in Ten- nessee about six thousand troops, stationed chiefly at Chatta- nooga, Memphis, and Nashville, with smaller garrisons scat- tered throughout the State, sufficient to remind the people that the cfovernment still lived. As for the freedman. General Thomas thought the respec- table classes, and especially the intelligent large planters, were inclined to treat him with justice ; but habit and prejudice were so strong even with them, that the kind of justice he might expect would be largely mixed with wrong and outrage, if the Bureau was withdrawn. The General was in the receipt of information, from entirely distinct and reliable sources, concerning secret organizations in the Southern States, the design of which was to embarrass the Federal Government and destroy its credit, to keep alive the fires of Rebel animosity, and to revive the cause of the Confederacy whenever there should occur a favorable oppor- tunity, such as a political division of the North, or a war with some foreign power. As his testimony on this subject has been made public, I shall say nothing further of it here, except to express my sense of the weight to be attached to the conclu- sions of so calm and unprejudiced a man. He had great faith in the negro. " I may be supposed to know something about him, for I was raised in a slave State ; and I have certainly seen enough of him during and since the 286 THE HEART OF TENNESSEE. war. There is no doubt about his disposition to work and take care of himself, now he is free." When I spoke of the great difference existing between different African races, he repHed, " There is more abihty and fidehty in these apish- looking negroes than you suppose " ; and he proceeded to re- late the following story : — " I had a servant of the kind you speak of during the war. I saw him first at a hotel in Danville, Kentucky ; he waited on me a good deal, and attracted my attention because he looked so much like a baboon. He took a liking to me, from some cause, and in order to be near me, engaged in the service of one of my staff-officers. I saw him occasionally afterwards, but gave him little attention, and had no suspicion of the roman- tic attachment with wdiich I had inspired him. At length I had the misfortune to lose a very valuable servant, and did not know how I should replace him : servants Avere plenty enough, but I wanted one who could understand what I wished to have done without even being told my wishes, and who would have it done almost before I was aware of the necessity. I happened to name these qualities of a perfect valet in the presence of one of my aides, who said to me, ' I have just the man you want ; and though I would n't part with him for any other cause, you shall have him.' I accepted his offer ; and what was my surprise when he introduced to me the baboon. I at first thought it a jest ; but soon learned that he had conferred upon me a great favor. I never had such a servant. In a week's time he understood perfectly all my habits and requirements, and it was very rare I ever had to give him a verbal oi'der. We had difficulty in getting our washing and ironing properly done, in the army ; but one day I noticed my linen was looking better than usual. The fellow had anticipated my want in that respect, and learned to wash and iron expressly to please me. He soon became one of the best washers and ironers I ever saw ; I don't think a woman in America could beat him. As soon as his newly acquired art became known, it was in demand ; and he asked permis- «;ion to do the linen of some of my officers, which I granted. GENERAL FISKE'S ACCOUNT. 287 He was industrious and provident ; he supported a family, and, during the three years he was with me, laid by two thousand dollars." Among other prominent men I saw was General Fiske, of the Freedmen's Bureau, Assistant-Commissioner for the States of Tennessee and Kentucky. There were in his district six hundred thousand freedmen. He was issuing eight hundred rations daily to colored women and children, and three times as many to white refugees. " During the past four years," said he, " between Louisville and Atlanta, we have fed with government charity rations sixty-four white to one colored person." The local poor he refused to feed. " I told the Mayor of Nashville the other day that if he did not take care of his poor, I would assess the whiskey shops for their benefit. There are four hundred and eighteen shops of that kind in this city ; and eighteen thousand dollars a day are poured down the throats of the people." The colored people of Nashville had organized a provident association managed exclusively by themselves, the object of which was the systematic relief of the poor, irrespective of color. Speaking of the differences arising between the freedmen and the whites, General Fiske said, "In thirteen cases out of fifteen, the violation of contracts originates with the whites." Since the defeat of the Negro Testimony Bill in the legislature, he had taken all cases, in which freedmen were concerned, out of the civil courts, and turned them over to freedmen's courts, where alone justice could be done them. " In my work of elevating the colored race," said he, " I get more hearty cooperation from intelligent and influential Rebel slave-holders, than from the rabid Unionists of East Tennessee." Speaking of the laziness with which the negroes were charged, he said, " They are more industrious than the whites. You see young men standing on street corners with cigars in their mouths and hands in their pockets, swearing the negroes won't work ; while they themselves are supported by their 288 THE HEART OF TENNESSEE. own mothers, who keep boarding-houses. The idle colored families complained of are usually the wives and children of soldiers serving in the Federal army ; and they have as good a right to be idle as the wives and children of any other men who are able and willing to support their families. In this city, it is the negroes who do the hard work. They handle goods on the levee and at the railroad ; drive drays and hacks ; lay gas-pipes ; and work on new buildings. In the country they are leasing farms : some are buying farms ; oth- ers are at work for wages. Able-bodied plantation hands earn fifteen and twenty dollars a month ; women, ten and twelve dollars ; the oldest boy and girl in a family, five and nine dol- lars. Hundreds of colored families are earning forty dollars a month, besides their rations, quarters, medical attendance, and the support of the younger children." The schools of General Fiske's district, under the superin- tendence of Professor Ogden, wei'e in a promising condition. There were near fifteen thousand pupils, and two hundred and sixty-four teachers. Many summer schools, which for want of school - houses were kept under trees, had been discontinued at the coming on of winter. Rebels returning home with their pardons were also turning the freedmen out of buildings used as school-houses. The consequence was a falling off of nearly one third in the number of pupils since September. In Nashville there was a school supported by the United Presbyterian Mission, numbering eight hundred pupils ; and another by the Pennsylvania Freedmen's Relief Association, numbering three hundred and fifty. The American Mission- ary Association and Western Freedmen's Aid had united in purchasing, for sixteen thousand dollars, land on which had been erected twenty-three government hospital buildings, worth fifty thousand dollars, which, " by the superior man- agement of General Fiske," said Professor Ogden, " have been secured for our schools." It was proposed to establish in them a school, having all grades, from the primary up to the normal. There was a great need of properly qualified PLANTATION" SCHOOLS. 289 colored teachers to send into by-places ; which this school was designed to supply. General Fiske had introduced a system of plantation schools, which was working well. Benevolent societies furnished the teachers, and planters were required to furnish the school- houses. A plantation of one hundred and fifty hands and forty or fifty children would have its own school-house. Smaller plantations would unite and build a school-house in some central location. These conditions were generally put into the contracts with the planters, who were beginning to learn that there was nothing so encouraging and harmonizing to till' freedmen as the establishment of schools for their chil- dren. 19 290 BY RAILROAD TO CORIKTH. CHAPTER XL. BY RAILROAD TO CORINTH. I LEFT Nashville for Decatur on a morning of dismal rain The cars were crowded and uncomfortable, with many pas- sengers standing. The railroad was sadly short of rolling- stock, having (like most Southern roads) only such as happened to be on it when it was turned over to the directors by the government. It owned but three first-class cars, only one of which we had with us. The rest of the passenger train was composed of box-cars supplied with rude seats. We passed the forts of the city ; passed the battle-ground of Franklin, with its fine rolling fields, marked by entrench- ments ; and speeding on through a well-wooded handsome section of country, entered Northern Alabama. As my obser- vations of that portion of the State will be of a general character, I postpone them until I shall come to speak of the State at large. It was raining again when I left Decatur, ferried across the Tennessee in a barge manned by negroes. Of the railroad bridge burned by General Mitchell, only the high stone piers remained ; and freight and passengers had to be conveyed over the river in that way. I remember a black ferryman whose stalwart form and honest speech interested me, and whose testimony with regard to his condition I thought worth noting down. " I works for my old master. He raised me. He 's a right kind master. I gits twenty dollars a month, and he finds me. Some of the masters about hyere is right tight on our people. Then thar 's a heap of us that won't work, and that steal from the rest. They 're my own color, but I can't help saying what 's true. They just set right down, thinking they 're CONVEESATIOK WITH A SOUTH CAKOLINIAN. 291 free, and waitino- for luck to come to 'em." But he assured me that the most of his people were at work, and doing well. From the miserable little ferry-boat we were landed on the other side in the midst of a drenchiftg rain. To reach the cars there was a steep muddy bank to climb. The baggage was brought up in wagons and pitched down into mud several inches deep, where passengers had to stand in the pouring shower and see to getting their checks. On the road to Tuscumbia I made the acquaintance of a young South Carolinian, whose character enlisted my sym- pathy, and whose candid conversation offers some points worth heeding. " I think it was in the decrees of God Almighty that slavery was to be abolished in this way ; and I don't murmur. We have lost our property, and we have been subjugated, but we brought it all on ourselves. Nobody that has n't experienced it knows anything about our suffering. We are discouraged : we have nothing left to begin new with. I never did a day's work in my life, and don't know how to begin. You see me in these coarse old clothes ; well, I never wore coarse clothes in my life before the war." Speaking of the negroes : " We can't feel towards them as you do ; I suppose we ought to, but 't is n't possible for us. They 've always been our owned servants, and we 've been used to having them mind us Avithout a word of objection, and we can't bear anything else from them now. If that 's wrong, we 're to be pitied sooner than blamed, for it 's something we can't help. I was always kind to my slaves. I never whipped but two boys in my life, and one of them I whipped three weeks ago." " When he was a free man ? " *' Yes ; for I tell you that makes no difference in our feeling towai'ds them. I sent a boy across the country for some goods. He came back with half the goods he ought to have got for the money. I may as well be frank, — it was a gallon of whiskey. There were five gentlemen at the house, and I wanted the whiskey for them. I told Bob he stole it. 292 BY RAILEOAD TO CORINTH. Afterwards he came into the room and stood by the door, — a big, strong fellow, twenty-three years old. I said, ' Bob, what do you want ? ' He said, ' I want satisfaction about the whiskey.' He told me afterwards, he meant that he was n't satisfied I should think he had stolen it, and wanted to come to a good understanding about it. But I thought he wanted satisfaction gentlemen's fashion. I rushed for my gun. I 'd have shot him dead on the spot if my friends had n't held me. They said I 'd best not kill him, but that he ought to be whipped. I sent to the stable for a trace, and gave him a hundred and thirty with it, hard as I could lay on. I confess I did whip him unmercifully." " Did he make no resistance ? " " Oh, he knew better than that ; my friends stood by to see me through. I was wrong, I know, but I was in a passion. That 's the way we treat our servants, and shall treat them, until we can get used to the new order of things, — if we ever can." " In the mean while, according to your own showing, it would seem that some restraint is necessary for you, and some protection for the negroes. On the whole, the Freednien's Bureau is a good thing, is n't it ? " He smiled : " May be it is ; yes, if the nigger is to be free, I reckon it is ; but it 's a mighty bitter thing for us." Then, speaking of secession : " I had never thought much about politics, though I believed our State was right when she went out. But when the bells were ringing, and everybody was rejoicing that she had seceded, a solemn feeling came over me, like I had never had in my life, and I could n't help feel- ing there was something wrong. I went through the war; there were thousands like me. In our hearts we thought more of the Stars and Stripes than we did of the old rag we were ficrhting; under." He was going to Mississippi to look after some property left there before the war. But what he wished to do was to go North : " only I know I would n't be tolerated, — I know a man could n't succeed in business there, who was pointed out as a Rebel." THE CORINTHIAN STYLE. 293 The same wish, qualified by the same apprehension, was frequently expressed to me by the better class of young South- ern men ; and I always took pains to convince them that they would be welcomed and encouraged by all enlightened commu- nities in the Northern States. It was a dismal nio-ht in the cars. The weather chanfred, and it grew suddenly very cold. Now the stove was red hot ; and now the fire was out, with both car-doors wide open at some stopping -place. At two in the morning we reached Corinth. A driver put me into his hack, and drove about town, through the freez- ing mud, to find me a lodging. The hotels were full. The boarding-houses were full, — all but one, in which, with a fellow-traveller, I was fortunate enough at last to find a room with two beds. It was a large, lofty room, the door fifteen feet high from the floor, the walls eighteen feet. It had been an elegant apartment once ; but now the windows were broken, the plastering and stucco-work disfigured, the laths smashed in places, there were bullet-holes through the walls, and laro-e apertures in the wainscots. The walls were covered with de- vices, showing that Federal soldiers had been at home there ; such as a shield, admirably executed, bearing the motto : " The Union, it must be preserved " ; " Heaven Bless our Native Land " ; " God of Battles, speed the Right " ; and so forth. The beds were tumbled, some travellers having just got out of them to take the train. A black woman came in to make them. The lady of the house also came in, — a fashionably bred Southern woman, who had been reduced, by the fortunes of the Rebellion, from the condition of a helpless mistress of many servants, to that of a boarding-house keeper. I asked for a single room, which I was somewhat curtly told I could n't have. I then asked for more bedclothes, — for the weather continued to grow cold, and the walls of the room offered little protection against it. She said, " I reckon you 're mighty particular ! " I replied that she was quite correct in 291 BY RAILROAD TO CORINTH. her reckoning, and insisted on the additional clothing. A* last I got it, very fortunately ; for my room-mate, who did not make the same demand, nearly froze in the other bed be- fore daylight. In the morning a black man came in and made a fire. Then, before I was up, a black girl came in to bring a towel, and to break the ice in the wash-basin. That the water might not freeze again before I could use it, (for the fire, as some one has said, " could n't get a purchase on the cold,") I requested her to place the basin on the hearth ; also to shut the door ; for every person who passed in or out left all doors wide, afford- ing a free passage from my bed to the street. " You 're cold-natered, an't ye ? " said the girl, to whose experience my modest requests appeared unprecedented. Afterwards I went out to breakfast in a room that showed no chimney, and no place for a stove. The outer door w^as open much of the time, and when it was shut the wind came in through a great round hole cut for the accommodation of cats and dogs. This, be it understood, was a fashionable Southern residence ; and this had always been the dining- room, in winter the same as in summer, though no fire had ever been built in it. The evening before, the lady had said to me, " The Yankees are the cause that we have no better accommodations to offer you," and I had cheerfully forgiven her. But the Yankees were not the cause of our breakfasting in such a bleak apartment. Everybody at table was pinched and blue. The lady, white and delicate, sat wrapped in shawls. She was very bitter against the Yankees, until I smilingly informed her that her remarks were particularly interesting to me, as I was a Yankee myself. " From what State are you, Sir ? " " From Massachusetts." " Oh ! " — with a shudder, — " they 're bad Yankees ! " " Bad enough. Heaven knows," I pleasantly replied ; " though, in truth. Madam, I have seen almost as bad people in other parts of the world." WASTEFUL HABITS OF SLAVERY. 295 The lady's husband changed the conversation by offering me a piece of venison which he had killed the day before. Deer were plenty in that region. As in Tennessee and Ala- bama, game of all kinds — deer, foxes, wild turkeys, wolves, — had increased greatly in Mississippi during the war ; the inhabi- tants having had something more formidable to hunt, or been hunted themselves. Mr. M owned two abandoned plantations : this was his town residence. He left it just before the battle of Shiloh, and it was occupied either by the Rebels or Yankees till the end of the war. He was originally opposed to the secession- leaders, but he afterwards went into the war, and lost every- thing, while they kept out of it and made money. The bullet-holes in the house were made by the Rebels firing at the Federals when they attacked the town. The family consisted of three persons, — Mr. M , his wife, and their little boy. Notwithstanding their poverty, they kept four black servants to wait upon them. They were paying a man fifteen dollars a month, a cook-woman the same, another woman six, and a girl six : total, forty-two dollars. It w^as mainly to obtain money to pay and feed these people that they had been compelled to take in lodgers. The possibility of getting along with fewer servants seemed never to have occurred to them. Before the war they used to keep seven or eight. It was the old wasteful habit of slavery : masters were accustomed to have many servants about them, and each servant must have two or three to help him. The freedmen, I was told, were behaving very well. But the citizens were bitterly hostile to the negro garrison which then occupied Corinth. A respectable white man had recently been killed by a colored soldier, and the excitement occasioned by the circumstance was intense. It was called " a cold-blooded murder." Visiting head-quarters, I took pains to ascertain the facts in the case. They ai'e in brief as follows : — The said respectable citizen was drunk. Going down the street, he staggered against a colored orderly. Cursing him, he said, " Why don't you get out of the way when you see a 296 BY RAILROAD TO CORINTH. white man coming?" The orderly replied, " There 's room for you to pass." The respectable citizen then drew his re- volver, threatenins: to " shoot his damned black heart out." This occasioned an order for his arrest. He drew his revolver, with a similar threat, upon another soldier sent to take him, and was promptly shot down by him. Exit respectable citizen. Corinth is a bruised and battered village surrounded by stumpy fields, forts, earthworks, and graves. The stumpy fields are the sites of woods and groves cut away by the grea^- armies. The graves are those of soldiers slain upon these hills. Beautiful woody boundaries sweep round all. There is nothing about the town especially worth visiting ; and my object in stopping there was to make an excursion into the country and visit the battle-field of Shiloh. I went to a livery-stable to engage a horse. I was told of frequent rob- beries that had been committed on that road, and urged by the stable-keeper to take a man with me ; but I wished to make the acquaintance of the country people, and thought I could do better without a companion. SCENE IN THE WOODS. 297 CHAPTER XLI. ON HORSEBACK FROM CORINTH. Mounting a sober little iron-gray, I cantered out of Cor- inth, in a northeasterly direction, past the angles of an old fort overgrown with weeds, and entered the solitary wooded coun- try beyond. A short ride brought me to a broken bridge, hanging its shaky rim over a stream breast-high to my horse. I paused on its brink, dubious ; until I saw two ladies, coming to town on horseback to do their shopping (the fashion of the country), rein boldly down the muddy bank, gather their skirts together, hold up their heels, and take like ducks to the water. I held up my heels and did likewise. This was the route of the great armies ; which whoso follows will find many a ruined bridge and muddy stream to ford. It was a clear, crisp winter's morning. The air was elastic and sparkling. The road wound among lofty trunks of oak, poplar, hickory, and gum, striped and gilded with the slanting early sunshine. Quails (called partridges in the South) flew up from the wayside ; turtle-doves flitted from the limbs above my head ; the woodpeckers screamed and tapped, greeting my approach with merry fife and drum. Cattle were grazing on the wild grass of the woods, and a solitary cow-bell rang. Two and a half miles from town I came to a steam saw-mill , all about which the forest resounded with the noise of axes, the voices of negroes shouting to their teams, the flapping of boards thrown down, and the vehement buzz of the saw. This mill had but recently gone into operation ; being one of hundreds that had already been brought from the North, and set to work supplying the demand for lumber, and repairing the damages of war. 298 ON HORSEBACK FROM CORINTH. Near by was a new house of rough logs with the usual great opening through it. It was situated in the midst of ruins which told too plain a story. Tying my horse to a bush, I entered, and found one division of the house occupied by ne- gro servants, the other by two lonely white women. One of these was young ; the other aged, and bent with grief and years. She sat by the fire, knitting, wrapped in an ancient shawl, and having a white handkerchief tied over her head. The walls and roof were full of chinks, the wind blew through the room, and she crouched shivering over the hearth. She offered me a chair, and a negro woman, from the other part of the house, brought in wood, which she heaped in the great open fireplace. " Sit up, stranger," said the old lady. " I have n't the accommodations for guests I had once ; but you 're welcome to what I have. I owned a beautiful place here before the war, — a fine house, negro quarters, an orchard, and garden, and everything comfortable. The Yankees came along and destroyed it. They did n't leave me a fence, — not a rail nor a pale. If I had stayed here, they would n't have injured me, and I should have saved my house ; but I was advised to leave. I have come back here to spend my days in this cabin. I lost 'everything, even my clothes ; and I 'm too old to be^in life a2;ain." Myself a Yankee, what could I say to console her ? A mile and a half farther on, I came to another log-house, and stopped to inquire my way of an old man standing by the gate. His countenance was hard and stern, and he eyed me, as I thought, with a sinister expression. " You are a stranger in this country ? " I told him I was. "I allow you 're from the North?" — eying me still more suspiciously. " Yes," I replied ; " I am from New England." " I 'm glad to see ye. Alight. It 's a right cool morning : come into the house and warm." I confess to a strong feeling of distrust, as I looked at him. I resolved, however, to accept his invitation. He showed me "OLD LEE'S" ADVEIiTURES. 299 Into a room, which appeared to be the kitchen and sleeping- room of a large family. Two yomig women and several chil- dren were crowded around the fireplace, while the door of the house was left wide open, after the fashion of doors in the South country. There was something stewing in a skillet on the hearth ; which I noticed, because the old man, as he sat and talked with me, spat his tobacco-juice over it (not always with accuracy) at the back-log. I remarked that the country appeared very quiet. " Quiet, to what it was," said the old man, with a wicked twinkle of the eye. " You 've probably heard of some of the murders and robberies through here." I said I had heard of some such irregularities. " I 've been robbed time and again. I 've had nine horses and mules stole." " By whom ? " " The bushwhackers. They 've been here to kill me three or four times ; but, as it happened, the kilHng was on t' other side." " Who were these men ? " " Some on 'em belonged in Massissippi, and some on 'em in Tennessy. They come to my house of a Tuesday night, last Feb'uary. They rode up to the house, and surrounded it, a dozen or fifteen of 'em. ' Old Lee ! ' they shouted, ' we want ye ! ' It had been cloudy 'arly in the evening, but it had fa'red up, and as I looked out thro' the chinks in the logs, I could see 'em moving around. " ' Come out. Old Lee ! we 've business with ye ! ' " ' You 've no honest business this hour o' the night,' I says. " ' Come out, or we '11 fire your house.' " ' Stand back, then,' I says, ' while I open the doo'.' " I opened it a crack, but instead of going out, I just put out the muzzle of my gun, and let have at the fust man. " ' Boys ! I 'm shot ! ' he says. I 'd sent a slug plumb thro' his body. Whilst the others was getting him away, I loaded up again. In a little while they come back, mad as SOO ON HORSEBACK FROM CORINTH. devils. I did n't wait for 'em to order me out, but fired as they come up to the doo'. I liit one of em in the thigh. After that they went oif, and I did n't hear any more of 'em that night." " What became of the wounded men ? " " The one I shot thro' the body got well The other died." " How did you learn ? " " They was all neighbors of mine. They hved only a few miles from here, over the Tennessy line. That was Tuesday night ; and the next Sunday night the gang come again. I was prepared for 'em. I had cut a trap through the floo' ; and I had my grandson with me, a boy about twelve year old ; and he had a gun. We 'd just got 'comfortably to bed, when some men rode up to the gate, and hollah'd, ' Hello ! ' several times. I told my wife to ask 'em what they wanted. They said they was strangers, and had lost their road and wanted the man of the house to come out. I drapped thro' the hole in the floo', and told my wife to tell 'em I wa'n't in the house, and they must go somewhar else. " ' We '11 see if he 's in the house,' they said. The house is all open vinderneath, and I reckoned I 'd a good position ; but befo'e I got a chance at ary one, they 'd bust in. They went to rummaging, and threatening my wife, and skeering the children. I could hear 'em tramping over my head ; till bime- by the clock struck ; and I heerd one of 'em sw'ar, ' Ten o'clock, and nary dollar yet ! ' After that, I could see 'em outside the house ; hunting around for me, as I allowed. I fired on one. ' My God ! ' I heered him say, ' he 's killed me ! ' I then took my grandson's gun, and fired again. Such a rushing and scampering you never heered. They run off, leaving one of their men lying dead right out here before the doo'. We found him thar the next morning. He laid thar nigh on to two days, when some of his friends come and took him and buried him.'' " Why did those men wish to murder you ? " " They had a spite agin me, because they said I was a Union man." A ROADSIDE ENCOUNTEE. 301 " They called him a Yankee," said one of the youncr women, " But you are not a Yankee." " I was born in Tennessy, and have lived either in Tenne.ssy or Massissippi all my days. But I never was a secessioner ; I went agin the war ; and I had two son-in-law's in the Federal army. Both these girls' husbands was fighting the Rebels, and that 's what made 'em hate me, The}^ was determined to kill me ; and after that last attempt on my life, I refugeed. I went to the Yankees, and did n't come back till the war wound up. There 's scoundrels watchitig for a chance to bushwhack me now." " Old Lee 'd go up mighty quick, if they wa'n't afeared," remarked one of the daughters. "I'm on hand for 'em," said the old man, — and now I understood that wicked sparkle of his eye, " Killing is good for 'em. A lead bullet is better for getting rid of 'em than any amount of silver or gold, and a heap cheaper ! " Two miles north of Old Lee's I came to the State boundary. "While I was still in Mississippi, I saw, just over the line, in Tennessee, a wild figure of a man riding on before me. He was mounted on a raw-boned mule, and wore a flapping gray blanket which gave him a fantastic appearance. The old hero's story had set me thinking of bushwhackers, and I half fancied this solitary horseman — or rather mule-man — to be one of that amiable gentry. He had pursued me from Corinth, and passed me unwittingly while I was sitting in Old Lee's kitchen. He was riding fast to overtake me. Or perhaps he was only an innocent country fellow returning from town. 1 switched on, and soon came near enough to notice that the mule's tail was fancifully clipped and trimmed to resemble a rope with a tassel at the end of it ; also that the rider's face was mysteriously muffled in a red handkerchief, I was almost at his* side, when hearing voices in the woods behind me, I looked around, and saw two more mounted men coming after us at a swift gallop. The thought flashed through my mind that those were the fellow's accomplices. One to 302 OK HORSEBACK FROM CORINTH. one had not seemed to me very formidable ; but three to one would not be so pleasant. I pressed my iron-gray immediately alongside the tassel-tailed mule, and accosted the rider, deter- mined to learn what manner of man he was before the others arrived. The startled look he gave me, and the blue nose, with its lucid pendent drop, that peered out of the sanguinary handkerchief, showed me that he was as harmless a traveller as myself. He was a lad about eighteen years of age. He had tied up his ears, to defend them from the cold, and the bandage over them had prevented him from hearing my ap- proach until I was close upon him. " It 's a kule day," he remarked, with numb lips, as he reined his mule aside to let me pass at a respectful distance, — for it was evident he regarded me with quite as much dis- trust as I had him. At the same time the two other mounted men came rush- ing upon us, through the half-frozen puddles, with splash and clatter and loud boisterous oaths ; and one of them drew from his pocket, and brandished over the tossing mane of his horse, something so like a pistol that I half expected a shot. " How are ye ? " said he, halting his horse, and spattering me all over with muddy water. " Right cold morning ! Hello, Zeek!" to the rider of the tassel-tailed mule. "I did n't know ye, with yer face tied up that fashion. Take a drink ? ' Zeek declined. " Take a drink, stranger ? " And he offered me the pistol, which proved to be a flask of whiskey. I de- clined also. Upon which the fellow held the flask unsteadily to his own lips for some seconds, then passed it to his com- panion. After drinking freely, they spurred on again, witli splash and laughter and oaths, leaving Zeek and me riding alone together. ZEEK'S ACCOUNT 308- CHAPTER XLII. ZEEK. " Did n't I see your horse tied to Old Lee's gate ? " said Zeek. And that led to a discussion of the old hero's char- acter. " Is he a Union man ? " " I kain't say ; but that 's the story they tell on him. One of the men he killed was one of our neighbors ; a man we used to consider right respectable ; but he tuke to thieving during the wa', and got to be of no account. That was the way with a many I know. You may stop at a house now whur they '11 steal vour horse, and like as not rob and murder ye." Zeek told me he lived on the edge of the battle-field ; and T engaged him to guide me to it. He thought I must be going to search for the body of some friend who fell there. When I told him I was from the North, and that my object was simply to visit the battle-field, he looked at me with amaze- ment. " I should think you 'd be afraid to be riding alone in this country ! If 't was known you was a Yankee, and had money about you, I allow you 'd get a shot from behind some bush." " I think the men who would serve me such a trick are very few." " Thar was right smart of 'em befo'e the wa' closed. They 'd just go about robbing, — hang an old gray-haired man right up, till he 'd tell whur his money was. They called them- selves Confederates, but they was just robbers. They 've got killed off, or have gone off, or run out, till, as you say, there an't but few left." 304 ZEEK. With these exceptions, Zeek praised highly the middhng class of people who inhabited tliat region. " Some countries, a pore man ain't I'espected no mo'e 'n a dog. 'Tan't so hyere. Man may be plumb pore, but if he 's honest, he 's thought as much of as anybody. Mo'e 'n two thirds of 'em can read and write." Before the war, they used to have what they called " neighborhood schools." The teacher was supported by the pupils, receiving two dollars a month for each : he taught only in' winter, and was fortunate if he could secure forty pupils. Flocks of sparrows flew up from the bushes or hopped along the ground. There were bluebirds also ; and I noticed one or two robins. " We never see robins hyere only in winter," said Zeek. Green bunches of mistletoe grew on the leafless brown trees, — a striking feature of Southern woods in winter. " It 's a curiosity, the way it grows," said Zeek. " It just grows on the tops of trees, without no rute, nor nothing. It 's a rare chance you find it on the hills ; it grows mostly on the bottoms whur thar 's mo'e moisture in the air." It was a beautiful sight to me, riding under its verdant tufts, sometimes so low on the boughs that, by rising in the stirrups, I could pluck sprigs of it, with their translucent pearly berries, as I passed. But Zeek was wrong in saying it had no root. It is supposed to be propagated by birds wiping their bills upon the limbs of trees, after eating the berries. A stray seed thus deposited germinates, and the penetrating root feeds upon the juices that flow between the bark and the wood of the tree. We passed but few farm-houses, and those were mostly built of logs. We crossed heavy lines of Beauregard's breastworks ; and could have traced the route of the great armies by the bones of horses, horned cattle, and mules we saw whitening in the woods and by the roadside. A crest of hilly fields showed us a magnificent sweep of level wooded country on the west and south, like a brown wavy sea, with tossed tree-tops for breakers. " Mighty pore soil along hyere," observed Zeek. When I ACROSS OWL CREEK. 305 told liini that it was as good as much of the soil of New England, winch farmers never thought of cultivating without using manures, he said, " When our land gits as pore as that, we just turn it right out, and cle'r again. We don't allow we can afford to manui-e. But No'th Car'linians come in hyere, and take up the land turned out so, and go to manuring it, and raise right smart truck on it." As I was inclined to ride faster than Zeek, he looked criti- cally at my horse, and remarked, " I don't reckon you give less 'n a dollar a day for that beast." I said I gave more than that. " I ride my beasts hard enough," he replied, " but I reckon if I paid a dollar a day for one, I 'd ride him a heap harder ! " He had been down to the saw-mill, to get pay for a yoke of oxen his father had sold. " I started by sun-up, and got thar agin nine o'clock." It was now afternoon, and he was hungry and cold. He therefore proposed to me to go home with him and get warm, before visiting the battle-field. It was after two o'clock when we came to a hilly field cov- ered with rotting clothes. " Beauregard's troops come plumb up this road, and slept hyere the night befo'e the battle. They left their blankets and knapsacks, and after they got brushed out by the Yankees, the second day, they did n't wait to pick 'em up again." We entered the woods beyond, directing our course towards the western edge of the battle-field ; and, after riding some distance, forded Owl Creek, — a narrow, but deep and muddy stream. Zeek's home was in view from the farther bank ; a log-house, with the usual great opening through the middle ; situated on the edge of a pleasant oak-grove strewn with rus- tling leaves, and enclosed, with its yard and out-houses, by a Virginia rail-fence. 80 306 ZEEK'S FAAIILY, CHAPTER XLIII. ZEEK'S FAMILY. " Alight ! " said Zeek, dismounting at the gate. I remonstrated against leaving the animals uncovered in the cold, but he said it was the way people did in that country ; and it was not until an hour later that he found it convenient to ffive them shelter and food. We were met inside the gate by a sister of the young man's, a girl of fifteen, in a native Bloomer dress that fell just below the knees. As I entered the space between the two divisions of the house, I noticed that doors on both sides were open, one leading to the kitchen, where there was a great fire, and the other to the sitting-room, where there was another great fire, in large old-fashioned fireplaces. Zeek took me into the sitting-room, and introduced me to his mother. There were two beds in the back corners of the room. The uncovered floor was of oak ; the naked walls were of plain hewn logs ; the sleepers and rough boards of the chamber floor constituted the ceiling. There were clothes drying on a pole stretched across the room, and hanks of dyed cotton thread on a bayonet thrust into a chink of the chimney. Cold as the day was, the door by which we entered was never shut, and sometimes another door was open, letting the wintry wind sweep through the house. Zeek^'s, mother went to see about getting us some dinner ; and his father came in from the woods, where he had been chopping, and sat in the chimney-corner and talked with me : a lean, bent, good-humored, hard-working, sensible sort of man. He told me he had five hundred acres of land, but only thirty-six under cultivation. He and Zeek did the work ; they had never owned negroes. TENXESSEE METHODS. SOT *' Three or four niggers is too much money for a pore man to invest in that way : they may he down and die, and then whur's yer money ? Thar was five niggers owned in Mid- dle Tennessy," he added, " to oixp in this part of the State." Speaking of his farm, he said it was mighty good land till it wore out. He had raised two bales of cotton on three and a half acres, the past season. It was equally good for other crops. " I make some corn, some pork, some cotton, and a mule or two, every year : I never resk all on one thing." Looking at the open outside doors and the great roaring fires, I said I should think wood must be a very important item with Tennessee farmers. " Yes, I reckon we burn two cords a week, such weather as this, just for fire, and as much more in the kitchen. We 've wood enough. As we turn out old land, we must cle'r new ; then we have the advantage of the ashes for ley and soap." " But the labor of chopping so much wood must be consid- erable." " Oh, I can chop enough in a day, or a day and a half, to last a week. Winters, farmers don't do much else but feed and get wood." I said I thought they would some day regret not having kept up their cleared fields by proper cultivation, and pre- served their forests. " I allow we shall. I 've just returned from a trip up into Middle Tennessy " (accented on the first syllable), " whur I used to live ; they burnt up their timber thar, just as we 're doing hyere, and now they 're setting down and grieving be- cause they 've no wood. They save everything thar, to the trunks and crotches. We just leave them to rot, or log 'em up in heaps and burn 'em, whur the land 's to be cle'red ; and use only the clean limbs, that chop easy and don't require much splitting." He broke forth in praise of a good warm fire. " Put on a big green back-log and build agin it, — that 's our fashion." Zeek's mother came to announce our dinner. I crossed the open space, pausing only to wash my hands and face in a tin 808 ZEEK'S FAMILY. basin half filled with Avater and pieces of ice, and entered the kitchen. It was a less pretentious apartment than the sitting- room. There was no window in it ; but wide chinks between the logs, and two open doors, let in a sufficiency of daylight, and more than a sufficiency of cold wind. There was a bed in one corner, and a little square pine table set in the centre of the room. A gourd of salt hung by the chimney, and a home- made broom leaned beside it. I noticed a scanty supply of crockery and kitchen utensils on pegs and shelves. The table was neatly set, with a goodly variety of dishes for a late dinner in a back-country ftirm-house. I remember a plate of fried pork ; fricaseed gray squirrel (cold) ; boiled "back of hog" (warmed up) ; a pitcher of milk; cold ^bis- cuit, cold corn bread, and " sweet bread " (a name given to a plain sort of cake). We could have dined very comfortably but for the open doors. Blowing in at one and out at the other, and circu- latins; throu£i;h numberless cracks between the loo;s, the calo frisked at will about our legs, and made our very hands numb and noses cold while we ate. The fire was of no more use to us than one built out-of-doors. The victuals that had come upon the table warm were cold before they reached our mouths. The river of poi'k-fat which the kind lady poured over my plate, congealed at once into a brownish-gray deposit, like a spreading sand-bar. I enjoyed an advantage over Zeek, for I had taken the precaution to put on my overcoat and to secure a back seat. He sat opposite me, with his back to- wards the windward door, where the blast, pouncing in upon him, pierced and pinched him without mercy. He had not yet recovered from the chill of his long winter-day's ride ; and his lank, shivering frame, and blue, narrow, puckered face under its thin thatch of tow (combed straight down, and cut square and short across his forehead from ear to ear), pre- sented a picture at once astonishing and ludicrous. " Have you got warm yet, Zeek ? " I cheerfully inquired. " No ! " — shuddering. " I 'm plumb chilly ! I 'm so kule I kain't eat." FARM AXD STOCK. 309 *' I should think you would be more comfortable with that door closed," I mildly suggested. He slowly turned his head half round, and as slowly turned it back again, with another shiver. The possibility of actually shutting the door seemed scarcely to penetrate the tow-thatch. I suppose such an act would have been unprecedented in that country, — one which all conservative persons would have shaken their heads at as a dangerous innovation. Zeek begged to be excused, he was so kule ; and taking a piece of squirrel in one hand, and a biscuit in the other, went and stood bv the fire. I found that he was averse to froino* out again that day : it was now late in the afternoon, and our poor animals had not yet been fed, or even taken in from where they stood curled up with the cold by the gate : I accordino-]y proposed to the old folks to spend the night with them, and to take Zeek with me over the battle-field in the mornino-. This being agreed upon, the father invited me to go out and see his stock, and his two bags of cotton. In the yard near the house was the smoke-house, or meat- house, a blind hut built of small logs, answering the purpose of a cellar, — for in that country cellars are unknown. In it the family provisions were stored. Under an improvised shelter at one corner was the cotton, neatly packed in two bales of five hundred pounds each, and looking handsome as a lady in its brown sacking and new hoops. The hoops were a sort of experiment, which it was thought would prove successful. Usually the sacking and ropes about a bale of cotton cost as much by the pound as the cotton itself; and, to economize that expense, planters were beginning to substitute hickory hoops for ropes. The owner was very proud of those two bales, picked by his own hands and his children's, and pre- pared for market at a gin and press in the neighborhood ; and he hoped to realize five hundred dollars for them when thrown upon the market. A planter of a thousand bales, made by the hands of slaves he was supposed to own, and ginned and pressed on his own plantation, could not have contemplated his crop with greater satisfaction, in King Cotton's haughtiest days. 310 ZEEK'S FAMILY. Near the meat-house was a huge ash-leach. Then there was a simple horse-mill for crushing sorghum, — for Mr. , like most Southern farmers, made sufficient syrup for home con- sumption, besides a little for market. Under a beech-tree was a beautiful spring of water. A rail-fence separated the door- yard from the cattle-yard, where were flocks of hens, geese, ducks, and turkeys, cackling, quacking, and gobbling in such old familiar fashion that I was made to feel strangely at home in tlieir company. There were bleating, hungry calves, and good-natured surly bulls, and patient cows waiting to be milked and fed, and a family of uncurried colts and young mules, and beautiful spotted goats, with their kids, and near by a hog-lot full of lean and squealing swine. Speaking of the goats, Mr. said there was no money in them, but that he kept them for the curiosity of the thing. Thei'e was no barn on the place. The nearest approach to it was the stable, or " mule-pen," constructed of logs with hb- eral openings between them, through one of which my lone- some iron-gray put his nose as I came near, and whinnied his humble petition for fodder. There he was, stabled with mules, unblanketed, and scarcely better off than when tied to the gate-post, — for the wind circulated almost as freely through the rude enclosure as it did in Mrs. .'s kitchen. Such hos- pitalities were scarcely calculated to soothe the feelings of a proud and well-bred horse ; but the iron-gray accepted them philosophically. " Where is your hay ? " I inquired. " We make no hay in this country. Our stock feeds out on the hills, or browses in the woods or cane-brakes, all winter. When we have to feed 'em, we throw out a little com, fodder, and shucks." A loft over the mule-pen was filled with stalks and unhuskecl corn. Zeek went up into it, and threw down bimdles of the former, and filled baskets of the latter, for his father to feed out to the multitude of waiting mouths. I inquii-ed particularly regarding the large quantities of nat- ural manures which ought to accumulate in svich a farm-yard. MANURES. 3U " We just throw them out, and let them get trampled and washed away. We can't haul out and spread. It 's the hard- est work we ever did, and Tennesseans can't get used to it." The yard was on a side hill, where every rain must wash it, and the mule-pen was conveniently situated near the brink of a gully, from which every freshet would sweep what was thrown into it. In vain I remonstrated against this system of farming : Mr. replied that he was brought up to it, and could not learn another. ai2 A NIGHT IN A TENNESSEE FAKM-HOUSE. CHAPTER XLIV. A NIGHT IN A TENNESSEE FARM-HOUSE "We went into the house, and gathered around tlie sitting- room fire for a social evening's talk. As it grew dark, the doors were closed, and we sat in the beautiful firelight. And now I learned a fact, and formed a theory, concerning doors. The fact was this : not a door on the premises had either lock or bolt. Mule-pen, meat-hoase, and both divisions of the dwelling-house, were left every night without other fastening than the rude wooden latches of the country. This was a very common practice among the small farmers of that region. " It was a rare chance we ever used to hear of anything being stolen. My house w^as never robbed, and I never lost a mule or piece of meat till after war broke out." The closing of the doors at dark, not because the weather had grown colder, but apparently because there Avas no longer any daylight to admit, suggested to my mind the origin of the universal Southern custom of leaving doors open during the severest winter weather. The poor whites and negroes live very generally in huts and cabins without windows. Even the houses of the well-to-do small farmers are scantily supplied with these modern luxuries. The ancestors of the wealthier middle class dwelt not many years ago in similar habitations. Such is the strength of habit, and so strong the conser- vatism of imitative mankind, that I suppose a public statute would be necessaiy to compel now the shutting of doors of windowed houses against the piercing winds of the cold sea- son ; just as, according to Charles Lamb, the Chinese people's method of obtaining roast pig by burning their dwellings over a tender suckling — that ravishing delicacy having been acci- dentally discovered to the world by the conflagration of a COMMON PREJUDICE AGAINST NEGEOES. 313 house with its adjoining pig-sty — had to be stopped by an imperial edict. We sat without lamp or candle in the red gleaming fire- light ; and the faces of the little girls, who had been shrinking and shivering with the cold all day, took on a glow of comfort and pleasure, now that the house was shut. However, I could still feel gusts of the wintry air blowing upon me from open- ings between the logs. I have been in many Southern farm- houses ;. and I have heard the custom of open doors com- mended as necessary to give plenty of air and to toughen the inmates by wholesome exposure ; but I do not now remember the habitation that was not more than sufficiently supplied with air, both for ventilating and toughening purposes, with every door closed. Mr. talked quite sensibly of the origin and results of the war. He and the majority of the farmers in that region were originally Union men, and remained so to the last. " Some of the hottest secesh, too, got to be right good Union before the wa' was over, — they found the Yankees treated 'em so much better 'n they expected, and the Rebs so much wuss." He accepted emancipation. " The way I look at it, the thing had groAved up till it got ripe, and it fell on us in this age. It was the universal opinion before the wa', that the country would be a heap better off without niggers. But we could n't go with the Abolitionists of the No'th, nor with the secesh fire-eaters. We stood as it were between two fires. That was what made it so hard." But he shared the common prejudice against permitting the negroes to remain and enjoy the land. " 'T won't do to have 'em settled among us. 'T would, if everybody was honest. But the whites, I 'm ashamed to say it, will just prey upon them. They 're bound to be the poorest set of vagabonds that ever walked the earth. O yes, they '11 work. It 's just this way, — they '11 work if they have encouragement ; and no man will without, unless he 's driven. All around hyere, and up in Middle Tennessy, whur I 've been, they 're doing right smart. But it has seemed to bear on their minds that they 314 A KIGHT IIT A TENNESSEE FARM-HOUSE. wanted to rent land, and have a little place of their own. They get treated right rough by some unprincipled men, and hy some that ought to know how to give 'em Christian treat- ment, now they 're free. But the truth is, a white man can't take impudence from 'em. It may be a long ways removed from what you or I would think impudence, but these pas- sionate men call it that, and pitch in." " Blair, an old nigger down to the saw-mill whur I went to-day," said Zeek, "got his head split open with an axe by a man two days ago. He said Old Blair sassed him. He fell plumb crossways of the fire, and they had to roll him off." " That 's the way," said Mr. . " Befo'e the wa' the owner of the nigger 'd have had the man arrested. He was so much property. It was as if you should kill or maim my horse. But now the nigger has no protection." " That 's very true, if the government does not protect him." We talked of the depredations of the two armies. " I never feared one party more than the other," said Mrs. . " If anything, the Rebels was worst." " Both took bosses and mules," said Mr. . " At fust, I used to try to get my property back. I 'd go to head- quarters and get authority to take it whur I could find it ; but always by that time 't would be hocus-pocussed out of the way. It was all an understood thing. Aside from that, the regular armies, neither of them, did n't steal from us. But as soon as they 'd passed, then the thieves would come in. They 'd take what we had, and cus us for not having mo'e. Sheep, chickens, geese, corn, watches, and money, — whatever they could lay hands on suffered. Men never thought of carrying money about them, them times, but always give it to the wee- mun to hide. Thar was scouts belonging to both armies, but which was mo'e robbers than scouts, that was the scourge of the country. If a man had anything, they 'd be sure to h'ist it. They 'd pretend to come with an order to search for gov'ment arms. It was only an excuse for robbing. They 'd search for gov'ment arms in a tin-cup. They had what CRUELTY OF SCOUTS. 315 they called a cash rope. That was a rope to slip about a man's neck, and swing him up with, till he 'd tell wliur his money was. They had a gimblet, which they said was for boring for treasures ; and they always knew just whur to bore to find 'em. That was right hyere " (in a man's tem- ples). " They 'd bore into him, till he could n't stand the pain, then if he had any money he 'd be only too glad to give it up. These was generally Confederates. We was pestered powerful by 'em. But Harrison's scouts was as bad as any. They pretended to be acting on the Union side. They was made up of Southern men, mostly from Mississippi, Alabama, and Tennessy. They was a torn-down bad set of men ; bad as the Rebs. They 'd no respect for anybody or anything. One Sunday a neighbor of mine met them coming up the road. He knew them very well ; and he said to them, it was Sunday, and he hoped thar 'd be no disturbances that day ; the people, he said, had all gone to preaching. That 's right, they said : they believed in means of grace ; and they asked whur the preaching was to be, and who was going to preach. He told them, and said he was going thar himself. They said they believed a man did right to go to preaching, though they was deprived of that privilege themselves. He told 'em he hoped they 'd look more after their eternal interest in futur', and they said they intended to, and inquired mo'e particular whur the preaching Avas to be, and thanked him, and rode on. They then just went to plund'ring, cl'aring out his house about the fust one. Then they said they thought they 'd take his advice, and look a little after their eternal interests, and go and hunt up the preaching. Then they just went over and robbed the meeting. There was seventeen horses with side- saddles on 'em ; the men generally went on foot, but the weemun rode. They tuke every horse, and left the weemun to walk home, and carry their saddles, or leave 'em." " Some Rebel bushwhackers," said Mrs. , " went to the house of a woman I know as well as I know my own sisters, and because she would n't give 'em her money — she had it in a belt under her dress tied around her M^aist — they knocked her 316 A NIGHT m A TENJJESSEE EAEM-HOUSE. eye out ; then they took their knives, and cut right through to her flesh, cutting her money out." Both Zeek and his father kept out of the war. The latter was too old, and the former too young, to be swept in by the conscription act. " Zeek escaped well ! " said the mother, with a gleam of exultation. " But I was just in dread he 'd be taken ! " And I gathered that a little innocent maternal fiction, as to his years, had been employed to shield him. " Some of the hardest times we saw, hyere in the Union parts of Tennessy, was when they come hunting conscripts. They got up some dogs now that would track a man. One of my neighbors turned and shot a hound that was after him, and got away. The men come up, and they was torn-down mad when they saw the dog killed. They pressed a man and his wagon to take the carcase back to town ; they lived in Adamsville, eight miles from hyere. They stopped to my house over night, going back." " They just bemoaned the loss of that dog," said Mrs. . " They said they 'd sooner have lost one of their company." " They got back to town, and they buried that dog now with great solemnity. They put a monument over his grave, with an epitaph on it. But some of the conscripts they 'd been hunting, dug him up, and hung him to a tree, and shot him full of bullets, and made a writing which they pinned to the tree, with these words on it : ' We Hi serve the oivners of the dogs the same way nexf " " Was Owl Crick swimming to-day, Zeek ? " Mrs. asked ; meaning, was it so high that our beasts had to swim. And that led to a remark as to the origin of the name. " Thar 's right smart of owls on this Crick," said Mr. ; " sometimes we 're pestered powerful by 'em ; they steal our chickens so." Just then we heard a wild squawking in the direction of the hen-roost. " Thar 's one catching a chicken now," quietly observed the farmer. I certainly expected to see either him or Zeek run out to the poor thing's rescue. But they sat un- concernedly in their chairs. It was the chicken's business, not A PIT TO HIDE IN. 317 theirs. The squawking grew fainter and fainter, and then ceased. " The people all through this section I allow will never forget the battle," said Mr. . " Friday night Johnson's left wing was at Brooks's, — the last house you passed to-day befo'e you fo'ded Owl Crick. The woods was just full of men. They took Brooks, to make him show 'em the way. He said he did n't know the woods, and that was the fact ; but they swo'e he lied, and he must go with 'em, and they 'd shoot him if he led 'em amiss. He was in a powerful bad fix ; but, lucky for him they had n't gone fur when they met Dammern, an old hunter, that knew every branch and thicket in the country. So they swapped off Brooks for Dammern. " The Federals was on the other side of us, and I allowed there was going to be a battle. And it looked to me as if it was going to be right on my farm." " That was the awfulest night I ever had in my life," said Mrs. . '' My husband was for leaving at once. But it did n't appear like I could bear the idea of it. Though what to do with ourselves if we staid ? We 've no cellar, and if we 'd had one, and got into it, a shell might have set the house afire, and buried us under it. So I proposed we should dig a hole to get into. He allowed that might be the best thing. So the next morning I got off betimes, and went over and counselled with our neighbors through the grove, and told 'em I thought it would be a grand idee to dig a pit for both our families, and so they came over hyere and went to digging." " You never see men work so earnest as we did till about 'leven o'clock," said Mr. . " Finally we got the pit dug, between the house and the spring. But when it was done it looked so much like a grave the weemun dreaded to get into it, and so much like a breastwork we men was afraid both armies would just play their artilleries onto it. So my wife give her consent we should take to the swamps. But what to do with the pit ? for if it got shelled, the house would be de- stroyed ; and then thar was danger the armies would use the hole to bury their dead in, and the bodies would spoil our 818 A NIGHT IN A TENNESSEE FARM-HOUSE. spring. And as we could n't take the pit with us, it appeared like tliar was but one thing to do. So we put in and worked right earnest till we 'd filled it up again. A rain had come on Friday night, and bogged down some of Johnson's artillery be tween hyere and Corinth, and that 's my understanding why the ficr-ht did n't come off Saturday. That give us time to git off. I took my family three miles back to a cabin in the s\Vamp, and thar they staid till it was all over ; only Zeek and me come back for some loads of goods. We took one load Saturday, and come for another Monday. That was the second day of the fight. We found the place covered with Rebel soldiers. The battle was going on then. The roar of artillery was so loud you could n't converse at one end of the house, whur the echo was. The musketry sounded like a roaring wind ; the artillery was like peals of thunder. " Thar was one family caught on the battle-field. They had staid, because the man was laying dangerously sick, and they dreaded to move him. After the fighting begun, they started to get away. The little boy was shot through the head, and the horse killed. The weemun then just took up the sick man and run with him down into the swamp." " We had a nepheAv living on the battle-field," said Mi's. . " The family was down with the measles at the time/ But when they see thar was to be a fight, they just moved a plank in the ceiling over head, and hid up all their bacon, and lard, and corn-meal, and everything to eat they could n't take with 'em. Then they tuke up a child apiece and come on for us ; we 'd done gone when they got hyere, and they come tearing through the swampy ground after us, toting their babes. They staid with us in the cabin till after the battle. But by that time his house was occupied by soldiers. He 'd been right ingenious hiding his provisions, so nobody could find 'em ; but the soldiers went to tearing off ceilings to get planks to make boxes, and down come the corn-meal and bacon ; so they had a pretty rich supply." " After that," said Mr. , " his house got burnt. Nearly all the houses and fenoes for miles, on the battle-field, was MAGGIE'S HUSBAN^D. 319 burnt ; so that It was just one common. Thar was nobody left. You never see such desolation. Then the armies moved off, leaving a rich pasture. I had my cattle pastured thar all that summer." Mrs. proposed that the children should sing for me a little piece called " The Drummer Boy of Shiloh." Her husband favored the suggestion, saying it was " a right nice composed little song." " I 've plumb forgotten it," said Zeek. And the little girls, who blushingly undertook it after much solicitation, could re- member only a few lines here and there, greatly to the parents' chagrin. Mrs. was at times very thoughtful ; and she told me a newly married elder daughter had that day left home with her husband. " We '11 go by their house in the morning, and I '11 show it to you," said Zeek. I congratulated the parents on having their child settled so near them ; yet Mrs. could scarcely speak of the separa- tion without rising tears. All were eloquent in their praises of the young husband. He was doing right well, when the war, the cruel, wasteful war, swept him in, and he fought for the slave despotism four years, without a dollar of pay. That left him plumb flat. But he was a right smart worker. He was a splendid hand to make rails. He could write also. After the surrender, he just let in to work, and made a crop ; and after the crop was laid by, (i. e., when the corn was hoed for the last time,) he pitched into writing. He employed himself as a teacher of that art. He had already taught nine schools, of ten successive lessons each, at two dollars a scholar. He had had as many as sixty pupils of an evening. I sym- pathized sincerely with the satisfaction they all felt in having their Maggie married to so smart a man. Indeed, I was begin- ning greatly to like this little family, and to feel a personal interest in all their affairs. It delights me now to recall that December evening, spent in the red firelight of that humble farm-house ; and if I record their peculiarities of speech and 320 A mOHT m A TENNESSEE FARM-HOUSE. manners, it is because they were characteristic and pleas- ing- At eight o'clock, Zeek, weary with his long ride that day, said, " I believe I '11 lie down," and, without further ceremony, took off his clothes and got into one of the beds in the room. Mrs. thought I also must be tired, and said I could go to bed when I pleased. Thinking it possible I might be assigned to the same apartment, I concluded to sit up until the audience became somewhat smaller. The girls presently went up-stairs, lighted to their beds by the fire, which shone up the stairway and through the cracks in the chamber floor. I took courage then to say that I was ready to retire ; and, to my gratifica- tion, saw a candle lighted to show me to my chamber, — though I marvelled where that could be, for 1 supposed I had seen every room in the house, except the loft to which the eirls had eone, when I had seen the sitting-room and kitchen. too' ~ Mr. took me first out-doors, to a stoop on the side of the house opposite the great opening. Thence a door opened into a little framed box of a room built up against the log- house, as an addition. There was scarcely space to turn in it. The walls consisted of the naked, rough boards. There was not even a latch to the door, which opened into the universal night, and which the Avind kept pushing in. Mr. advised me to place the chair against it, which I did. I set the candle in the chair, and blew it out after I had got into bed. Then looking up, I saw with calm joy a star through the roof. It was interesting to know that this was the bridal chamber. The bed was deep and comfortable, and I did not suffer from cold, although I could feel the fingers of the wind toying with my hair. The night was full of noises, like the reports of pistols. It was the old house cracking its joints. DEPARTURE. 321 CHAPTER XLV. THE FIELD OF SHILOH. Daylight next morning shone in througli the chinks of the bridal chamber (for window it had none), and I awoke re- freshed, after sound sleep. The dawn was enlivened by pleas- ing old-time sounds, — the farmer chopping wood at the door, crowing cocks, gossiping geese, and the new-made fire snap- ping and crackling in the next room. The morning was very cold. The earth was covered with white frost, like snow. We had breakfast at the usual hour. "Farmers commonly get their breakfases by sun-up," said mine host. At table (both doors open, and everybody shiver- ing) Mrs. remarked that if it was any colder in my country she would not like to live there. I said to her, — " We should' call this cold weather, though we have some much colder. But, allow me to tell you, I have suffered more from the cold since I have been in Tennessee, than I have for ten years in the North. There, when we go out of doors in winter, we go clad to meet the inclemencies of the season ; and we know how to make ourselves comfortable in our houses. Here your houses are open. The wind comes in through the cracks, and you do not even think of shutting the doors. My people at home would think they would perish, if they had to breakfast with the wind blowing on them, as you have it blowing on you here." In short, I said so much that I got one of the doors closed, which I considered a great triumph. Zeek brought our animals to the gate ; and I called for my bill. Mr. said it appeared like he ought not to charge me anything ; he had been very glad of my company. As I 21 822 THE FIELD OF SHILOH. insisted on discharging my indebtedness, he named a sura so modest that I smiled. " You have n't heard of the rage for high prices, nor learned the art of fleecing the Yankees." I gave him twice the sura, but it was with difficulty I could prevail upon hira to accept it, for he said it would trouble his conscience. A simple, thoroughly good and upright man, — would there were more like him ! I mounted my horse at the gate, and in company with Zeek and his mule, set out for the battle-field. We struck Owl Creek, but instead of crossing immediately, followed a cattle- path along its bank. On our right were woods, their tops just flushing with the new-risen sun ; on our left, corn-fields, in some of which the corn had not yet been gathered, while in others I noticed winter wheat, (ploughed in between the rows of stalks, still standing,) covering the ground with its green mat, now hoary with frost. Fording the creek at a safe place, and pushing in an easterly direction through the woods, we came to an army road, made by Wallace's division raoving on towards Corinth, after the battle. It was a pleasant, still raorning, such as always brings to the susceptible spirit a sense of exhilaration. Leisurely we rode araong the wooded hills, which I could scarcely believe were ever shaken by the roar of battle. Only the blue jay and the woodpecker made the brown vistas of the trees echo Avith their druraming and screaraing, where had been heard the shriek and whiz of raissiles and bullets tapping the trunks. A little back frora the cleared fields we came to a nice-look- ing new log-hut. It had no window, and but one door. This was closed ; by which token Zeek knew the folks were away. This was the abode of his sister and her interesting husband ; this the bridal home. Something tender and grateful swelled up in my heart as I looked at the little windowless log-cabin, and thought of the divine gift of love, and of happiness, which dwells in hurable places as well as in the highest. Quitting Wallace's road at its junction with a neighborhood road, we struck another cow-path, which led in a northeasterly direction through the woods. We soon came upon evidences SHILOH CHURCH. 323 of a vast encampment. Here our right wing had intrenched itself after the battle. In this place I may remark that the astonishing fact about this 'field is, that our army did not in- trench itself before the battle. Three weeks it lay at Shiloh, menaced by the enemy ; Grant himself pronounced an attack probable, and the sagacious Sherman expected it ; yet when it came, it proved a perfect surprise ; it found our lines badly arranged, weak, and undefended by a single breastwork. Beyond was a magnificent field, swept of its fences, but stuck all over with abandoned tent-supports, showing where our finally victorious legions had lain. " This field was just like a city after the fight," said Zeek. I noticed that the trees in the surrounding groves were killed. " The Yankees skinned 'em for bark to lay on," Zeek explained. Crossing Shiloh Branch, — a sluggish little stream, with low, flat shores, covered with yellow sedge and sentinelled by solemn dead trees, — we ascended a woody hill, along the crest of which a row of graves showed where Hildebrand's picket line was attacked, on that disastrous Sunday morning. Each soldier had been buried where he fell. The boughs, so fresh and green that April morning, waving over their heads in the sweet light of dawn, though dismantled now by the blasts of winter, had still a tranquil beauty of their own, gilded and sparkling with sunshine and frost. Fires in the woods had burned the bottoms of the head-boards. I stopped at one grave within a rude log-rail enclosure. " In memory of L. G. INIiller," said the tablet ; but the remainder of the inscription had been obliterated by fire. I counted eighteen graves in this little row. We rode on to Shiloh Church, — formerly a mere log-cabin in the woods, and by no means the neat white-steepled structure on some village green, which the name of country church sug- gests to the imagination. There Beauregard had his head- quarters after Sunday's battle. It was afterwards torn down for its timbers, and now noticing remained of it but half-burnt logs and rubbish. Below the hill, a few rods south of the church, Zeek showed me some Rebel graves. There many a poor fellow's 824 THE FIELD OF SHILOH. bones lay scattered about, rooted up by swine. I saw an old half-rotted shoe, containing a skeleton foot. But the most hideous sight of all, was a grinning skull pushed out of a hole in the ground, exposing the neck-bone, with a silk cravat still tied about it in a fashionable knot, A short distance southeast of the church we visited the ruins of the Widow Ray house, burned to the ground in the midst of its blasted orchard and desolated fields. " A girl that lived hyere fell mightily in love with a Yankee soldier. Saturday night, he allowed there was going to be a battle, and come to bid her good-bye. He got killed ; and she went plumb distracted. She 's married now to a mighty clever feller." Zeek had another romantic story to tell, as we returned to the church. " Hyere 's whur the bale of hay was. When the Rebs was brushing out the Yankees, an old Reb found a Yankee soldier nigh about this spot, that had been wounded, and was perishing for a drink of water. He just took him, and got him behind a bale of hay that was hyere, and give him drink out of his canteen, just like he 'd been his own brother. Some of the time he 'd be nussing him behind the hay, and the rest he 'd be shooting the Yankees over it. Some one asked him why he took such a heap of pains to save one Yankee life, while he was killing as many mo'e as he could. " They 're fighting enemies," he said ; " but a wounded man is no longer an enemy, he 's a feller being." Members of one family after all, though at war. Some were so in a literal sense. I recall the story of two Kentucky regiments that fought on this field, one for the bad cause and one for the good. Two brothers met, and the Federal ca|> tured the Rebel. The former recommenced firing, when the latter said, " Don't shoot there ; that 's daddy behind that tree." Cantering over the hills towards the northeast, we came to the scene of a severe infantry fight in the woods. There was a wild burial-place, containing some fifty patriot graves, origi- nally surrounded by a fence of stakes wattled with sapfings PITTSBURG LANDING. 325 Both the fence and the head-boards had been broken down and partly burned. All around us were sheep feeding in the open woods ; and withdi'awn to the seclusion of the little burial- ground was a solitary ewe and a pair of new-born lambs. " All these hills are just lined with graves," said Zeek. Not far away was a fence surrounding the resting-places of " two officers and seventeen private Rebels," as an inscription cut in the side of a black-jack informed us. There was a story connected with these graves. A Federal soldier found on the dead body of one of the officers, a watch, his likeness, his wife's likeness, a letter from his wife, and a letter written by himself requesting that, in case he should fall, these relics might be sent to her. The soldier faithfully fulfilled this duty ; and at the close of the war the wife, following the directions he forwarded to her with them, came and found his grave. We rode a mile due north through what Zeek termed " the long avenue," a broad, level opening through the woods, at the farther end of which, " on the elevatedest part," a Yankee battery had been posted, doing terrible execution, if one mioht judge by the trunks and boughs of trees lopped off by shot and shell. The Rebels charged this battery repeatedly, and it was captured and recaptured. Leaving the sedgy hills, and pursuing our course towards the Landing, we were stopped by a trench in the woods. It was one hundred and fifty feet long, and four deep. For some reason both ends had been left open. Two feet from the bot- tom, planks were laid across, the trench being filled with earth over them. Beneath the planks the dead were buried. Their bones could be seen at one of the open ends of the trench. A row of head-boards indicated the graves of Illinois volun- teers. We rode on to the spot which has given the battle its north- ern name. Under high bluffs, on what Zeek called a " bench," — a shelf of land on the river bank, — approached from the land side by a road running down through a narrow ravine, stood the two log-huts, a dwelling and a grocery, which consti- tuted the town of "Pittsburgh." There was not so much as 326 THE FIELD OF SHILOH. a wharf there, but steamers made their landing against the natural bank. There was absolutely nothing there now, the two huts having been burned. Wild ducks sat afloat on the broad smooth breast of the river. It was not easy looking down from those heights upon the tranquil picture, to call up that other scene of battle-panic and dismay, — the routed Fed- eral troops pouring through the woods, disorganized, beaten, seeking the shelter of the bluffs and the protection of the gun- boats ; the great conflict roaring behind them ; the victorious Rebels in wild pursuit ; God's solemn Sabbath changed to a horrible carnival of mad passions and bloodshed. " The Rebels just fanned 'em out," said Zeek. " The Yankees put up white flags under the bluff", but the Rebels did n't come near enough to see 'em ; they tuke a skeer, — the Federals fell back so easy, they was afraid of some trick. Thar was such a vast amount of 'em they could n't all get to the Landing. Some got drowned trying to swim Snake Creek. Numbers and numbers tried to swim the river. A Fedei'al officer told me he saw his men swim out a little ways, get cold, then wind up together, and go to hugging each other, and sink." Such are the traditions of the flght Avhich have passed into the memory of the country people ; but they should be taken Avith considerable allowance. On the level river bottom opposite the Landing we found an extensive corn-field, bounded by heavy timber beyond. Un- der that shore the gunboats lay where they shelled the ad- vancing Rebels. It was there, emerging from the timber into the open field, that our defeated army saw, that Sunday even- ing, first the advanced cavalry, then a whole division of BuelTs army coming to the rescue, — banners flying and bayonets glittering among the trees. Glad sight ! No wonder the run- aways under the bluffs made the welkin ring with their cheers ! If Buell did not arrive in time to save that day, he was in time to save the next, and turn defeat into victory. Taking the Hamburg Road up the river, we reached the scene of General Pi-entiss's disaster. The Rebels were in our camps that Sunday morning almost before the alarm of attack THE SURPEISE. 327 was given. First came the wild cries of the pickets rushing in, accompanied by the scattering shots of the enemy, and fol- lowed instantly by shells hurtling through the tents, in which the inmates were just rousing from sleep ; then, sweeping like an avalanche through the woods, the terrible resistless battle- front of the enemy. " Into the just-aroused camps thronged the Rebel regiments, firing sharp volleys as they came, and springing towards our laggards with the bayonet. Some were shot down as they were running, without weapons, hatless, coatless, toward the river. Others fell as they were disentangling themselves from the flaps that formed the doors to their tents ; others as they were buckling on their accoutrements ; a few, it was even said, as they were vainly trying to impress on the cruelly-exultant enemy their readiness to surrender. Officers were wounded in their beds, and left for dead, who, through the whole two days' struggle, lay there gasping in their agony, and on Mon- day evening were found in their gore, inside their tents, and still able to tell the tale." ^ The houses all along the road were burned. In Prentiss's front was a farm, all laid waste, the orchard shot to pieces and destroyed by balls. The woods all around were killed, per- forated with countless holes, as by the bills of woodpeckers. Striking the Hamburg and Purdy road, we went west to the spot where the Rebel General Sydney A. Johnston fell, pierced by a mortal wound. Zeek then piloted me through the woods to the Corinth Road, where, time pressing, I took leave of him, sorry I could not accept his invitation to go home with him to dinner. It was five miles to his father's house ; it was twenty miles to Corinth ; and the day was al- ready half spent. 1 "Agate," in the Cincinnati Gazette, who furnished the best contemporaneous account of this battle. 328 WAITING FOR THE TRAIN AT IVnDNIGHT. CHAPTER XLVI. WAITING FOR THE TRAIN AT MIDNIGHT. Stopping occasionally to talk with the people along the road, and dining at a farm-house, I did not reach Corinth until sunset. The first thing I noticed, in passing the fortifications, was that the huts of the negro garrison were dismantled ; and I found the citizens rejoicing over the removal of the troops. I returned to Mr. M 's house, and was welcomed by Mrs. M , who seemed almost to have forgotten that I was not only a Yankee, but a " bad Yankee " from Massachusetts. And here I may remark that, whatever hostility was shown me by the Southern people on account of my Northern origin, it usually wore off on a short acquaintance. Mrs. M had a private room for me this time ; and she caused a great, glow- ing fire to be made in it for my comfort. After supper she invited me into her sitting-room, where we talked freely about the bad Yankees, the war, and emancipation. Both her husband and father claimed to be Union men : but their Unionism was of a kind too common in the South. They hated the secession leaders almost as bitterly as they hated the Yankee government. Mrs. M : " Slavery was bad economy, I know ; but oh, it was glorious!" — spoken with a kind of romantic enthusi- asm. " I 'd give a mint of money right now for servants like I once had, — to have one all my own ! " — clasping her hands in the ardor of that passionate wish. " Ladies at the North," she went on, " if they lose their ser- vants, can do theu- own work ; but we can't, we can't ! " She bemoaned the loss of a girl she formerly owned ; a bright mulattress, very pretty and intelligent. "She could read and write as well as I could. There was no kind of work A PRACTICE OF SOUTHERI^ LADIES. 329 that girl could n't do. And so faithful ! — I trusted every- thing to her, and was never deceived." I asked if she could feel in her heart that it was ricrht to own such a creature. " I believed in it as much as I believed in the Bible. We were taught it from our infancy, — we were taught it with our religion. I still think it was right ; but I think it was because we abused slavery that it was taken from us. Emancipation is a worse thing for our servants than for us. They can't take care of themselves." " What has become of that favorite girl of yours ? " " She is in St. Louis. She works at her trade there ; she 's a splendid dressmaker. Oh, if I only had her to make my dresses now, like she used to ! She owns the house and lot where she lives ; she has bought it with the money she has earned. She 's married to a very fine mulatto man." " It seems she can take care of herself a good deal better than you can," I remarked. " It is she who is independent ; it is you whom slavery has left helpless." " Well, some of them have made money, and know how to keep it. But they are very few." " Yet do not those few indicate what the race may become ? And, when we consider the bondage from which they have just broken, and the childish improvidence which was natural to them in that condition, is it not a matter of surprise that so many know how to take care of themselves ? " She candidly confessed that it was. As an illustration of a practice Southern ladies too com- monly indulge in, I may state that, while we were conversing, she sat in the chimney-corner, chewing a dainty little quid, and spitting into the fire something that looked marvellously like tobacco juice. As I was to take the train for Memphis at two o'clock in the morning, I engaged a hackman to come to the house for me at one. Relying upon his fidelity, I went to bed, slept soundly, and awoke providentially at a quarter past the hour agreed upon. I waited half an hour for him, and he did not appear. 330 WAITING FOR THE TRAIK AT mCNIGHT. Opening the door to listen for coming Avheels, I heard the train whistle. Catching up my luggage, which luckily was not heavy, I rushed out to search, at dead of night, in a strange town, lampless, soundless, and fast asleep, for a railroad depot, which I should scarce have thought of finding even by day- light without inquiring my Avay. Not a living creature was abroad ; not a light was visible in any house ; I could not see the ground I was treading upon. Fortunately I knew the general direction in which the railroad lav ; I struck it at last ; then I saw a light, which guided me to the depot. But where was the train ? It was already over-due. I could hear it whistling occasionally down the track, where some accident had happened to it. The depot consisted of a little framed box just large enough for a ticket-office. You stood outside and bought your ticket through a hole. This box contained a stove, a railroad lantern, and two men. The door, contrary to the custom of the country, was kept scru- pulously shut. In vain were all appeals to the two men within to open it. They were talking and laughing by their comfortable fire, while the waiting passengers outside were freezing. Two hours we waited, that cold winter's night, for the train which did not come. There was an express-office lighted up near by, but there was no admittance for strangers there either. Seeing a red flame a short distance up the railroad track, and human forms passing at times before it, I went stumbling out through the darkness towards it. I found it an encamp- ment of negroes. Twelve men, women, and children were grouped in gypsy fashion about a smoky fire. They were in a miserable condition, wretchedly clad, hungry, weary, and sleepy, but unable to sleep. One woman held in her arms a sick babe, that kept up its perpetual sad wail through the night. The wind seemed to be in every direction, blowing the smoke into everybody's eyes. Yet these suffering and oppressed creat- ures did for me what men of my own color had refused to do, — they made room for me at their fire, and hospitably invited me to share such poor comforts as they had. The incident A K^EGRO ENCAMPMENT. 331 was humiliating and touching. One man gave me an apple, for Avhich I Avas but too glad to return him many times its cost. They told me their story. They had been working all sum- mer for a planter in Tishemingo County, who had refused to pay them, and they were now hunting for new homes. Two or three had a little money ; the rest had none. It made my heart sick to look at them, and feel that it was out of my power to do them any real, permanent service. But they were not discouraged. Said the spokesman of the party, cheerfully, — an old gray-haired man in tatters, — "I '11 drap my feet into de road in de mornin' ; I '11 go till I find somefin' ! " Hearing the train again, whistling in earnest this time, I took leave of them, and reached the depot just as it arrived. 332 FROM CORINTH TO ISIEMPHIS. CHAPTER XLVII. FROM CORINTH TO MEMPHIS. At daylight we were running through the level lower coun- ties of West Tennessee. This is by far the most fertile divis- ion of the State. Its soil is a rich black mould, adapted to the culture of cotton, tobacco, and grains, which are produced in great abundance. Occasionally in the dim dawn, and later in the forenoon, we passed out-door fires about which homeless negroes had passed the night, and around which they still sat or stood, in wretched plight, but picturesque and cheerful, — old men and women, young children, and tall girls in tattered frocks, warming their hands, and watching with vacant curiosity the train as it shot by. " That 's freedom ! that 's what the Yankees have done for 'em ! " was the frequent exclamation that fell from the lips of Southern ladies and gentlemen looking out on these miserable groups from the car windows. " They '11 all be dead before spring." "Niffgers can't take care of themselves." " The Southern people were always their best friends. How I pity them ! don't you ? " " Oh, yes, of course I pity them ! How much better off they were when they were slaves ! " With scarcely one exception there was to be detected in these expressions a grim exultation. The slave-owners, hav- ing foretold that freedom would prove fatal to the bondman, experienced a satisfaction in seeing their predictions come true. The usual words of sympathy his condition suggested had all the hardness and hollowness of cant. Those who really felt COISIMERCE OF MEIMPHIS. 838 commiseration for liis sufferings spoke of tliem in very differ- ent tones of voice. But there was another side to the picture. At every stop- ping-place, throngs of well-dressed blacks crowded upon the train. They were going to Memphis to " buy Christmas," — as the purchase of gifts for that gay season is termed. Hap- pier faces I have never seen. There was not a drunken or disorderly person among them, — which would have been a remarkable circumstance had the occasion been St. Patrick's day, or the Fourth of July, and had these been Irish or white American laborers. They were all comfortably clad, — many of them elegantly, — in clothes they had purchased with money earned out of bondage. They paid Avith pride the full fares exacted of free people, instead of the half fares formerly de- manded for slaves. They had still left in their purses ample means to " buy Christmas " for their friends and relatives left at home. They occupied cars by themselves which they filled with the noise of cheerful conversation and laughter. And nobody said of them, " That is freedom ! That is what the Yankees have done for them ! " Past cotton-fields and handsome mansions in the pleasant suburbs, we ran into Memphis, — a city which surprised me by its beautiful situation and commercial activity. Memphis stands on a high bluff overlooking the Mississippi River. It is the emporium of West Tennessee, Eastern Ar- kansas, and Northern Mississippi, and is the most important town between New Orleans and St. Louis. Its growth has been rapid. Laid out in 1820, its population in 1840 was 8,839 ; in 1850, 16,000 ; in 1860, 50,000. Its present popu- lation is not known ; but it has immensely increased since the last census, and is still increasing. I was told that, at the time of my visit, the building of nineteen hundred new houses had been contracted for, and that only labor was wanted to com- plete them. In the year ending September 1st, 1860, 400,000 bales of cotton were shipped from this port. During seven months of the year 1864, — May to November inclusive, — the shipments 834 FEOM CORINTH TO MEMPHIS. amounted to only 34,316 bales. In 1865, from May, the month when the cotton released by the fall of the Confederacy began to pour ir., to December 22d, the date of my visit, the shipments were 138,615 bales. These last figures, furnished me by the government assessors, do not include the government cotton, which passed untaxed, and a considerable quantity which came to Memphis after being taxed in interior districts.^ The view of the commerce of Memphis from the esplanade overlooking the landing is one of the most animated imagina- ble. You stand on the brow of the bluft', with the city behind you, and the river below, — its broad, sweeping current sever- ing the States. From the foot of the bluff projects an exten- sive shelving bank, with an understratum of sandstone ; form- ing a natural landing, commonly called a " levee," althougii no levee is here, — the celebrated levee at New Orleans having impressed its name upon all landings of any importance up the river. You look down upon a superb array of steamers, lying along the shore ; their elegantly ornamented pilot-houses and lofty tiers of decks supported by slender pillars fully entitling them to be named floating palaces. From the tower-like pipes issue black clouds of smoke, with here and there rising white pufts of steam. The levee is crowded with casks and cotton bales, covering acres of ground. Up and down the steep way cut through the brow of the bluff", affording access to the land- ing from the town, a stream of drays is passing and repassing. Freights are going aboard, or coming ashore. Drays are load- ing and unloading. Bales of cotton and hay, casks, boxes, sacks of grain, lumber, household furniture, supplies for plan - tations, mules, ploughs, wagons, are tumbled, rolled, carried, tossed, driven, pushed, and dragged, by an army of la])orers, from the levee along the broad wooden stages to the steamers' decks. The movement, the seeming confusion, the rattling of drays, the ringing of boats' bells, the horrible snort of the steam-whistle, the singing calls of the deck hands heaving at a 1 Since March 15th, 1864, the government tax on cotton had been two cents a pound. The average weight of a bale, which was latterly 400 or 465 pounds, is now BOO pounds. The tax on a bale was accordingly about ten dollars. There were ia Memphis at that time 30,000 bales. SCE^q^E ON THE LEVEE. 335 rope or lifting some heavy weight, the multitudinous shouts, and wild, fantastic gesticulations of gangs of negroes driving on board a drove of frightened mules, the voices of the team- sters, the arriving and departing packets, drift-wood going down stream, and skiffs paddling up, — the whole forms an aston- ishincr and amusino; scene. Then over the immense brown sand-bar of the Arkansas shore, and behind its interminable line of dark forest boundaries, the sun goes down in a tranquil sea of fire, reflected in the river, — a wonderfully contrasting picture. Here all is life and animation ; there all is softness and peace. Evening comes, and adds picturesque effect to the scene. The levee is lighted by great smoking and flaring flambeaux. A grate swinging in a socket on the end of a pole is filled with bituminous coal and wood, the blaze of which is enlivened by flakes of oil-soaked cotton, resembling fat, laid on from a bucket. The far-illuminating flame shoots up in the night, while the ignited oil from the grate falls in little streams of dripping blue fire into the river. Until late at night, and often all night, amid darkness and fog and rain, the loading of freight goes on by this lurid illumination. The laborers are chiefly negroes, whose ebon, dusky, sallow and tawny faces, lithe attitudes, and sublime carelessness of attire, heighten the pic- torial effect of the scene. Bale after bale is tumbled from the drays, and rolled down the levee, — a negro at each end of it holding and guiding it with cotton-hooks. At the foot of the landing it is seized by two other negroes, who roll it along the plank to its place on the deck of the upward-bound boat. Here are fifty men rolling barrels aboard, each at the other's heels ; and yonder is a long straggling file of blacks crossing the stage from the levee to the steamer, each carrying a box on his shoulder. S36 FREEDMEN'S SCHOOLS. CHAPTER XLVIII. FREEDMEN'S SCHOOLS AND THE FREEDMEN'S BUREAU. By a census taken in June, 1865, there were shown to be 16,509 freedmen in Memphis. Of this number 220 were indigent persons, maintained, not by the city or tlie Bureau, but by the freed people themselves. During the past tln*ee years, colored benevolent societies in Memphis had contrib- uted five thousand dollars towards the support of their own poor. There were three thousand pupils in the freedmen's schools. The teachers for these were furnished, here as elsewhere, chiefly by benevolent societies in the North. Such of the citizens as did not oppose the education of the blacks, were generally silent about it. Nobody said of it, " That is free- dom ! That is what the Yankees are doing for them ! " Visiting these schools in nearly all the Southern States, I did not hear of the white people taking any interest in them. With the exception of here and there a man or woman in- spired by Northern principles, 1 never saw or heard of a Southern citizen, male or female, entering one of those hum- ble school-rooms. How often, thinking of this indifference, and watchino; the earnest. Christian labors of that little band of refined and sensitive men and women and girls, who had left cheerful homes in the North and voluntarily exposed themselves to privation and opprobrium, devoting their noblest energies to the work of educating and elevating the despised race, — how often the stereotyped phrase occurred to me, " The Southern people were always their best friends ! " The wonder with me was, how these " best friends " could be so utterly careless of the intellectual and moral interests of the freedmen. For my own part, I could never enter one of CONTRASTS IN AGES AND FEATURES. 337 those schools without emotion. They were often held in old buildings and sheds good for little else. There was not a school-room in Tennessee furnished with appropriate seats and desks. I found a similar condition of things in all the States. The pews of colored churches, or plain benches in the vestries, or old chairs with boards laid across them in some loft over a shop, or out-of-doors on the grass in summer, — such was the usual scene of the freedmen's schools. In the branches taught, and in the average progress made, these do not differ much from ordinary white schools at the North. In those studies which appeal to the imagination and memory, the colored pupil excels. In those which exercise the reflective and reasoning faculties, he is less proficient. But it is in the contrasts of age and of personal appearance which they present, that the colored schools differ from all others. I never visited one of any size in which there were not two or thi'ee or half a dozen children so nearly white that no one would have suspected the negro taint. From these, the complexion z'anges through all the indescribable mixed hues, to the shining iron black of a few pure-blooded Africans, perhaps not more in number than the seemingly pure-blooded whites. The younger the generation, the lighter the average skin ; by which curious fact one perceives how fast the race was bleach- ing under the " peculiar " system of slavery.^ The contrast of features is no less than that of complexions. Here you see the rosy child, whose countenance shows a per- fect Caucasian contour, shaded perhaps by light brown curls, reciting in the same class with thick-lipped girls and woolly- headed boys. The difference in ages is even more striking. Six years and sixty may be seen, side by side, learning to read from the same chart or book. Perhaps a bright little negro boy or girl 1 At Vicksburg, Miss., in one school of 89 children, only three were of unmixed African blood. In anether, there were two black and 68 mixed. In a school for adults, there were 41 black to 50 mixed. In a school of children on a Mississippi plantation, there were 46 black and 23 mixed. In another plantation school, there were 30 black and 7 mixed. These figures illustrate not only the rapid bleaching of the race, but also the difference in color between town and country. 22 338 FREEDMEN''S SCPIOOLS xiKD FREEDMEN'S BUREAU. is teaching a white-haired old man, or bent old woman m spectacles, their letters. There are few more affecting sights than these aged people beginning the child's task so late in life, often after their eyesight has failed. Said a very old man to a teacher who asked him his age, " I 'm jammed on to a hundred, and dis is my fust chance to git a start." The scholars are generally well behaved. It is the restless- ness and love of fun of the younger ones which prove tho greatest trial to the teacher's patience. The proportion ' ' vicious mischief-makers is no greater than in white schools. In the evening-schools, attended chiefly by adults, all is inter- est and attention. The older pupils are singularly zealous and assiduous in their studies. The singing is usually excel- lent. Never shall I forget the joyous blending of sweet, rich, exultant childish voices, to which I often listened. The voices of singing children are always delightful and touching : how especially so the musical choruses of children, once slaves, singing the glad songs of freedom ! At Memphis, as at Nashville and other points in Tennessee, I saw much of the operations of the Freedmen's Bureau. General Fiske appeared to me peculiarly fitted for his posi- tion ; and he was generally supported by firm and efficient officers ; although, like all the Assistant - Commissioners I saw, he complained that the law establishing the Bureau did not permit him to choose his own agents. He had to take such army officers as were given him ; some of whom were always found to be incompetent, or neglectful of their duties, or so prejudiced for or against the blacks that they were ren- dered incapable of administering justice. A few were in sym- pathy with slavery. Others, meaning to do right, were seduced from a straightforward course by the dinners to which they were invited by planters who had favors to ask. With such, the rights of the freedmen were sure to suffer, when into the opposite scale were thrown the aristocratic Rebel's flattering attentions and the smiles of his fair daughters. It was the practice of the agents of the Bureau to make frequent tours of their counties, and General Fiske himself was H O a I — I Q H OLD WROIS^GS RIGHTED. 339 in tlie habit of running off every few clays to visit some impor- tant point, where his organizing and concihatory influence was necessary. Often he would find the planters and the freedmen separated by hedges of animosity and distrust. Usually his first step was to call together as large an audience as could be obtained of both classes, and explain to them the object of the Bureau, and the duty each class owed the other. In nearly every instance, earnestness and common sense prevailed ; the freedmen came forward and made contracts with the land- owners, and the land-owners conceded to the freedmen advan- tages they had refused before. Sometimes exciting and dramatic scenes occurred at these meetings. " Not long ago," said General Fiske, " I addressed a mixed audience of three thousand persons at Spring Hill. The meeting was presided over by a black man. Rebel gen- erals and Federal generals sat together on the platform. I made a short speech, and afterwards answered questions for anybody, white or black, that chose to ask them. I had said that the intention of the Bureau was to do justice to all, with- out respect to color ; when there rose up in the audience a tall, well dressed, fine-looking woman, sallow, very pale, and much agitated, and wished to know if she could have justice. Said she, ' 1 was owned by a respectable planter in this neigh- borhood who kept me as his wife for many years. I have borne him five children. Two of them are dead. A short time ago he married another woman, and drove me and my three children off.' The man was in the audience. Everybody present knew him, and there were a hundred witnesses that could vouch for the truth of the woman's story. I told her justice should certainly be done in her case. The respectable planter now supports her and her three children." I have known many wrongs of this nature to be righted by the Bureau ; the late slave-owners learning that instead of making their offspring by bondwomen profitable to them as chattels, in the new order of things they were to be held re- sponsible for their maintenance. The freedmen's courts were designed to adjudicate upon 840 THE FREEDMEX'S BUREAU. cases which could not be safely intrusted to the civil courts.^ They are in reality military courts, and the law by which they are governed is martial law. I found them particularly efficient in Tennessee. Tlie annoying technicalities and legal quibbles by which, in ordinary courts, the truth is so often inextricably embarrassed, were here swept aside, and justice reached with admirable directness. I have watched carefully scores of cases decided by these tribunals, and do not remember one in which substantial justice was not done. No doubt exceptions to this rule occur, but I am satisfied that they are no more frequent than those which occur in common-law courts ; and they are inslo-nificant compared with the wholesale wrong to which the unprotected freedman would be subjected in communities where old slave codes and immemorial prejudice deny to him human rio-hts. The freednien's court is no respecter of persons. The proudest aristocrat and the humblest negro stand at its bar on an equal footing. I remember a case in which a member of the Tennessee Legislature was the defendant, and upwards of twenty freedmen hired by him were the plaintiffs. He had voted against the Negro Testimony Bill, which, if it had passed, would have placed his case in a civil court ; and now he had the satisfaction of seeing eight of these blacks stand up and testify against him. He admitted that they were faithful and truthful men ; and their testimony was So straightforward, I was astonished that he should have waited to have his accounts with them adjusted by the Bureau. Many difficulties arise from honest misunderstandings bt- 1 See Paragraph VII. in Circular No. 5, issued by Major-General Howard, Coiu- missioner of the Bureau, and approved by the President, June 2d, 18G5: — " In all places where there is an inteiTuption of civil law, or in which local courts, by reason of old codes, in violation of the freedom guaranteed by the Proclamation of the President and the laws of Congress, disregard the negro's right to justice before the laws, in not allowing him to give testimony, the control of all subjects relating to refugees and freedmen being committed to this Bureau, the Assistant- Commissioners will adjudicate, either themselves or through officers of their appoint- ment, all difficulties arising between negroes themselves, or between negroes and whites or Indians, except those in military service, so far as recognizable by military authority, and not taken cognizance of by the other tribunals, civil or military, of the iDnited States." A STOKY OF WEONG. 341 tween the contracting parties. These are decided by the Bureau according to general rules of equity, and nearly always to the satisfaction of both. I was assured by several of the most experienced officers of the Bureau in Tennessee, that, in cases where contracts were fully understood, they were much less frequently broken by the freedmen than by the whites. Complaints of assaults upon freedmen, and even upon women and girls, weve very common. Here is a simple story of wrong related to me by a girl of fourteen whom I saw, weary and famished and drenched, after she had walked thirty-four miles to obtain the protection of the Bureau, bearing the marks of cruel beatings upon her back. " My name is Milly Wilson ; I live in Wilson County ; my mistress's brother was my father. I have been kept a slave since Emancipation. I worked in de cornfield ; I had to hoe and drap corn ; I ho'ped gether the corn and shuck it. I had to cuke ; and I had spinning to do. I ho'ped sow, hoe, and pick cotton. I had to pick bolls and bring 'em into house, and pick cotton out o' bolls till chickens crowed for midnight. Dey never give me nothing. I did n't dare ax 'em for wages ; and dey said if I run away dey 'd shoot me. My mistress tried to whoop me, but she could n't ; I 'd run from her. Den her son Tom whooped me with a soap-paddle till he broke it. He struck me side of head with his fist, and knocked me down." (Her face was still discolored by the blow.) " His father said, ' That 's no way to beat 'em ; take 'em down and paddle 'em.' Dat night I lef '. I told Jennie to tell 'em I 'd gone to Murfreesboro', so dey would n't git on de right track ; and I started for Nashville. It was n't long till day when I lef. I walked till sun-up ; and laid by de balance part of de day in an old barn. I had nothing to eat, but on'y jist de meat and bread I had for my supper I took and carried with me for de nex' day. De nex' night de moon riz. I could n't see de moon, but it give light enough so I could see how to walk. Two miles from Triune I found some friends, and dey give me breakfas'. Wednesday mornin' it was sleetin', and 342 THE FREEDMEN'S BUREAU. dey give me a shawl. Thursday I got to Nashville. Now I want to send for my clothes ; for it was so dark when I lef ' I could n't see to find 'em. I lef my clothes, and a skillet and led, and a basket." The court sent not only for these, but for Master Tom who had paddled her, and for Master Tom's father who had abetted the outrage and held her enslaved after slavery was abolished. This is a very mild case com- pared with some that came to my knowledge, too horrible or too disgusting to be narrated. The freedmen's affairs in West Tennessee were giving the Bureau daily less and less trouble, — both whites and blacks beo-innin'^'- to learn that contracts were made to be kept, and that their mutual interests depended upon mutual good-will. The most ao-o-ravated and embarrassing cases were from Mis- sissippi. The farce of opening the civil courts to the blacks in that State had caused a discontinuance of the freedmen's courts, and the result was a stampede of wronged and outraged people across the line. During an hour I spent at the Bureau one morning, a stream of these cases kept coming in. The newly organized Mississippi militia, under pretence of search- ino- for arms wdiich the blacks were supposed to have provided for the forthcoming Christmas insurrections, had committed robberies, murders, and other outrages, against these unoffend- ing and unprotected people. The Bureau at Memphis could do nothinn- but refer these cases to the Assistant-Commissioner at Vicksburg, who could do nothing but refer them to the civil courts, which let them alone. One case I recall, however, in which the officers at Memphis thought they could do some- thing. A colored man, who had been managing a Mississippi plantation under contract for a quarter of the crop, came to Memphis for a redress of grievances. The owner had given him fifteen dollars, and refused to give him anything more for his labor. The cotton was baled, and ready for market. It would soon be in Memphis. " Keep watch of that cotton," said the agent ; " and as soon as it arrives, we will attach it, md you shall have your share." While I was there, tw^o negroes came in from Parson Botts's BUSmESS OF THE BUREAU. 343 plantation, in De Soto County, (Mississippi,) bringing guns which they iiad run off with on the approach of the mihtia. Tlie wife of one of these men had been beaten over the head with a pistol, and afterwards hung by the neck, to compel her to disclose where the guns were hidden. In this case there was no redress. A great variety of business is brought before the Bureau. Here is a negro-man who has printed a reward offei'ing fifty dollars for information to assist him in finding his wife and children, sold away from him in times of slavery : a small sum for such an object, you may say, but it is all he has, and he has come to the Bureau for assistance. Here is a free mulat- tress, who was stolen by a guerilla during the war, and sold into slavery in Arkansas, and she has come to enter a claim for wages earned during two years of enforced servitude. Yonder is a white woman, who has been warned by the police that she must not live with her husband because he is black, and who has come to claim protection in her marriage relation, bringing proof that she is in reality a colored woman. That poor old crippled negro was maimed for life when a slave by a cruel master, Vv'ho will now be compelled to pension him. Yonder comes an old farmer with a stout colored boy, to get the Bureau's sanction to a contract they wish to make. " Pull off your hat. Bob," says the old man; "you Avas raised to that ; " for he was formei'ly the lad's owner. He claims to have been a Union man. " I was opposed to secession till I was swep' plumb away." He is very grateful for what the officers do for him, and especially for the good advice they give the boy. " I '11 do well by him, and larn him to read, if he '11 do well by me." As they go out, in comes a powerful, short-limbed black, in tattered overcoat, with a red handkerchief on his head, and with a lordly countenance, looking like a barbarian chief. He has made a crop ; found everything — mules, feed, imple- ments ; hired his own help, — fifteen men and women ; man- aged everything; by agreement he was to have one half; but, oiu)ng to an attempt to swindle him, he has had the cotton 344 TILE FKEEDMEN'S BUREAU. attached ; and now it is not on his own account he has come, but he is owing his men wages, and they want something for Christmas, which he thinks reasonable, and he desires the Bureau's assistance to raise three himdred dollars on the said cotton. " For I 'm bound," he says, " to be liberal with my men." Here is a boy, who was formerly a slave, to whom his father, a free man, willed a sum of money, which the boy's owner borrowed, giving his note for it, but never repaid, — for did not the boy and all that he had belong to his master ? The worn and soiled bit of paper is produced ; and now the owner will have that money to restore, with interest. Lucky for the boy that he kept that torn and dirty scrap carefully hidden all these years ! Such documents are now serving to right many an ancient wrong. I saw at the Freedmen's Bureau at Richmond a large package of wills, made in favor of slaves, usually by their white fathers, all which had been supj^ressed by the legitimate heirs. One, a mere rotten and jaundiced rag, scarcely legible, had been carried sewed in the lining of a slave-woman's dress for more than forty years, — the date of the will being 1823. Her son was legally emancipated by that instrument ; but her owner, who claimed to be his owner by inheritance, threatened to kill her if the will was not de- stroyed, and he believed that it had been destroyed. That boy was now a middle-aged man, having passed the flower of his years in bondage ; and his mother was an old woman, living to thank God that her son was free at last. The master, a rich man, had as yet no idea of the existence of that will, by which he was to be held responsible for the payment of over forty years' wages to his unlawful bondman. From another of these documents, made by a white master, I copied the following suggestive paragraph : " It is also my last will and desire that my beloved wife Sally Dandridge, and my son Harrison, and my daughters Charity and Julia, should be free : and it is my wish and desii-e for them to be emancipated hereafter, and for them to remain as free people." Another paragraph gave them property. This will, like neai'Iy SUPPRESSIOK OF WILLS. 345 all the rest, had been registered and proved ; and, like them, it had been suppressed, — the beloved v^^ife and son and daughters remaining in bondage, until the slave system went down with the Rebelhon, and a day of judgment came with the Freed- m^en's Bureau. A MISSISSIPPI STEAMBOAT. 347 CHAPTER XLIX. DOWN THE MISSISSIPPI. At Memphis I took passage in a first-class Mississippi steam- packet for Vicksburg. It was evening when I went on board. The extensive saloon, with its long array of state-rooms on each side, its ornamental gilt ceiling, and series of dazzling chandeliers, was a brilliant spectacle. A corps of light-footed and swift-handed colored waiters were setting the tables, — bringing in baskets of table-cloths, and spreading them ; im- mense baskets of crockery, and distributing it ; and trays of silver, vvhich added to the other noises its ringing and jingling accompaniment. About the stove and bar and captain's office, at the end of the saloon, was an astonishing crowd of passen- gers, mostly standing, talking, drinking, buying tickets, play- ing cards, swearing, reading, laughing, chewing, spitting, and filling the saloon, even to the ladies' cabin at the opposite end, with a thick blue cloud which issued from countless bad pipes and cigars, enveloped the supper-tables, and bedimmed the glitter of the chandeliers. In that cloud supper was to be eaten. At a signal known only to the initiated I noticed that pipes were put out and quids cast out, and a mighty rush began. Two lines of battle were formed, confronting each other, with the table between them, each dauntless hero standing with foot advanced, and invincible right hand laid upon the back of a chair. In this way every place was secured at least five minutes before the thundering signal was given for the begin- ning of the conflict. At last the gong-bearing steward, pois- ing his dread right hand, anxiously watched by the hostile hosts, till the ladies were fairly seated, beat the terrible roll and, instantly, every chair was jerked back with a simulta- 348 DOWiT THE MISSISSIPPI. neous clash and clatter, every soldier plunged forward, everj coat-tail was spread, and every pair of trousers was in its seat. Then, rallied by the gong from deck and state-room and stove, came the crowd of uninitiated ones, (jjuorum pars parva fui,') hungry, rueful-faced, dismayed, finding themselves in the unhappy position of the fifth calf that suckled the cow with but four teats, — compelled to wait until the rest had fed. After supper, there were music and dancing in the after- part of the saloon, and gambling, and clicking glasses, and everlastino; talk about Yankees and nio-sjers and cotton, in the other part. There were a few Federal officers in their uni- forms, and a good many Rebel officers in civil dress. I recog- nized a thin sprinkling of Northern capitalists and business men. But the majority were Mississippi and Arkansas plant- ers going down the river to their estates : a strongly marked, unrefined, rather picturesque class, — hard swearers, hard drinkers, inveterate smokers and chewers, wearing sad-colored linen for the most part, and clad in coarse " domestic," slouch- ing in their dress and manners, loose of tongue, free-hearted, good-humored, and sociable. They had been to Memphis to purchase supplies for their plantations, or to lease their planta- tions, or to hire freedmen, or to " buy Christmas " for their freedmen at home. They appeared to have plenty of money, if the frequency with which they patronized the bar was any criterion. Liquors on board the Mississippi steamers were twenty-five cents a glass, and the average cost of such dram- drinkine; as I witnessed could not have been less than three or four dollars a day for each man. A few did not seem to be much attracted by the decanters; while others made drafts upon them every hour, or two or three times an hour, from morning till bedtime, and were never sober, and never quite drunk. How shall I describe the conversation of these men ? Never a word did I hear fall from the lips of one of them concerning literature or the higher interests of life ; but their talk was of mules, cotton, niggers, money, Yankees, politics, and tho RIVAL STEAMERS. 349 Freedmen's Bureau, — thickly studded with oaths, and gar- nished with joke and story. Once only I heard the subject of education indirectly alluded to. Said a young fellow, formerly the owner of fifty niggers, — "I've gone to school-keeping." — "O Lord!" said his companion, " j^ou ha'n't come down to that ! " I judged that most were married men, from a remark made by one of them : " A married man thinks less of personal ap- pearance than a bachelor. I 've done played out on that since I got spliced." There were a few Tennesseeans aboard, who envied the Mis- sissippians their Rebel State government, organized militia, and power over the freedmen. " We might make a pile, if we could only regulate the labor system. But that can't be done in tnis dog-goned Brownlow State. In Mississippi, if they can only carry out the laws they 've enacted, there '11 be a chance." It was impossible to convince these gentlemen that the freedmen could be induced to work by any other means than despotic compulsion. Leaving the gamblers over their cards, and the tipplers over their glasses, I went to bed, — to be awakened at midnight by an inebriated gentleman (weight two hundred, as he thickly informed me) climbing into the berth above me. After a night of foo;, Clu'istmas mornino- dawned. In the cabin, the generous steward gave to each passenger a glass of egg-nog before breakfast ; not because it was Christmas, but because passengers were human, and egg-nog (especially the whiskey in it) was one of the necessities of life. The morning was warm and beautiful. Mists were chasino; each other on the river, and clouds were chasing each other in the sky. A rival steamer was passing us. The decks of both boats were black with spectators watching the race, and making comments upon it : " Look how she piles the water up ahead of her ! " " She '11 open a gap of a mile between us in an hour ! " and so forth. The river was about half a mile in breadth. We were run- ning down the broad current between high banks covered 350 DOWN THE MISSISSIPPI. ■with forests, on one side, and sand-bars extending their broad yellow shelv^^s out into the rivei', on the other. Sometimes the sand Avas on our right, then it shifted to our left ; it Avas nearly always to be seen on one side, but never on both sides at once. The river is continually excavating one bank and making another opposite, — now taking from Arkansas to give to Mississippi, and now robbing Mississippi to pay Arkansas, and thus year after year forming and destroying plantations. I remember one point on the Arkansas shore where the bank rose forty feet above the water, and Avas covered with trees eighteen inches in thickness : of which a gentleman of the country said to me, " That is all a recent formation. Forty years ago the bed of the river was where that bank is." The water was now tearing away again what it had so suddenly built up, trj'ing to get back into its old bed. We were making landings at every plantation where pas- sengers or freight were to be put off, or a signal was shown from the shore. Sometimes a newspaper or piece of cloth Avas fluttered by negroes among the trees on the bank ; or a man who wished to come on board, stood on some exposed point and waved his handkerchief or hat. There was never a Avharf, but the steamer, rounding to in the current, and heading up stream, went bunting its broad nose against the steep, yielding bank. The planks were pushed out ; the passengers stepped aboard or ashore, and the deck-hands landed the freight. Dirtier or more toilsome work than this landing of the freight I have seldom seen. Heavy boxes, barrels of flour and whiskey, had to be lifted and rolled up steep paths in the soft sand to the summit of the bank. Often the paths were so narrow that but one man could get hold of the end of a barrel and lift it, while another hauled it from above, their feet sinking deep at every step. Imagine a gang of forty or fifty men engaged in landing boxes, casks, sacks of corn and salt, wagons, live-stock, ploughs ; hurrying, croAvding, working in each other's Avay, sometimes slipping and falling, the lost barrel tumbling doAvn upon those below ; and the mate driv- ing them Avith shouts and curses and kicks, as if they were so many brutes. TOILSOME WORK AKD BRUTAL TREATMENT. 351 Here the plantations touched the river ; and there the land- ing-place was indicated by blazed trees in the forest, where negroes and mules were in waiting. Wooding-up Avas always an interesting sight. A long wood- pile lines the summit of the bank, perhaps forty feet above the river. The steamer lands ; a couple of stages are hauled out : fifty men rush ashore and climb the bank ; the clerk accompa- nies them with pencil and paper and measuring-rod, to take account of the number of cords ; then suddenly down comes the wood in an amazing shower, rattling, sliding, bounding, and sometimes turning somersaults into the river. The bottom and side of the bank are soon covered by the deluge ; and the work of loading begins in equally lively fashion. The two stages are occupied by two files of men, one going ashore at a dog-trot, empty-handed, and another coming aboard with the wood. Each man catches up from two to four sticks, accord- ing to their size or his own inclination, shoulders them, falls into the current, not of water, but of men, crosses the plank, and deposits his burden where the corded-wood, that stood so lately on the top of the bank, is once more taking shape, divided into two equally-balanced piles on each side of the boiler-deck. The men are mostly negroes, and the treatment they re- ceive from the mate is about the same as that which they received when slaves. He stands on the shore between the ends of the two stages, within convenient reach of both. Not a laggard escapes his eye or foot. Often he brandishes a bil- let of Avood, with which he threatens, and sometimes strikes ; and now he fling's it at the head of some artful dodo-er who has eluded his blow. And all the Avhile you hear his hoarse, harsh voice iterating with horrible crescendo : " Get along, get along ! Out o' the way 'th that wood ! out o' the ivay^ out o' THE WAY ! OUT O' THE WAY ! Git on, git on, GIT ON!" Meanwhile the men are working as hard as men can rea- sonably be expected to work ; and how they discipline their souls to endure such brutality is to me a mystery. 352 DOWN THE MISSISSIPPI. Planters got off at every landing, by day and night ; and although a few came aboard, the company was gradually thin- ning oiit. At one plantation a colony of sixty negroes landed. They had a " heap of plunder." Beds and bedding, trunks, tubs, hen-coops, old chests, old chairs, spinning-wheels, pots, and kettles, were put off under the mate's directions, wlthovit much ceremony. The dogs were caught and pitched Into the river, much to the distress of the women and children, who appeared to care more for the animals than for any other por- tion of their property. These people had been hired for an adjoining plantation. The plantation at which we landed had been laid waste, and the mansion and negro-quarters burned, leaving a grove of fifty naked chimneys standing, — "monu- ments of Yankee vandalism," said my Southern friends. At one place a fashionably dressed couple came on board, and the gentleman asked for a state-room. Terrible was the captain's wrath. " God damn your soul," he said, " get off this boat ! " The gentleman and lady were colored, and they had been guilty of unpardonable Impudence In asking for a state-room. " Kick the nlo-ger ! " " He ouo-ht to have his neck broke ! " " He ought to be hung ! " said the Indignant passengers, by whom the captain's prompt and energetic action was strongly commended. The unwelcome couple Avent quietly ashoiC, and one of the hands pitched their trunk after them. They were In a dilem- ma : their clothes were too fine for a filthy deck passage, and their skins were too dark for a cabin passage. So they sat down on the shore to wait for the next steamer. " They won't find a boat that '11 take 'em," said the grim captain. " Anyhow, they can't force their damned nigger equality on to me ! " He was very indignant to think that he had landed at their signal. " The expense of running this boat is forty dollars an hour, — six thousand dollars a trip ; — and I can't afford to be fooled by a nigger ! " I omit the epithets. Afterwards I heard the virtuous passengers in calmer mo- SPRING FRESHETS. 353 ments talking over the affair. " How would you ^'eel," said one, with solemn emphasis, " to know that your wife was sleep- ing 171 the next room to a nigger and his ivife? ^'' The argu- ment was unanswerable : it was an awful thought ! There is not a place of any importance on the river between Memphis and Vicksburg, a distance of four hundred miles. The nearest approach to an exception is Helena, on the Ar- kansas shore, a hastily built, high-perched town, looking as if it had flown from somewhere else and just lit. Another place of some note is Napoleon, Avhich was burnt during the war. Here there is one of those natural "cut-offs" for which the Mississippi is remarkable ; the river having formed for itself a new channel, half a mile in length, across a tongue of land about which it formerly made a circuit of twelve miles. We passed through the cut-off^, and afterwards made a voyage of six miles up the old channel, which resembles a long, j^lacid, winding lake, to Beulah Landing, called after a novel of that name written by a Southern lady. I remember Beulah as the scene of a colored soldier's re- turn. He had no sooner landed from the steamer than his friends in waiting seized him, men, women, and girls, some grasping his hands, some clinging to his arms and waist, others hanging upon his neck, smothering him in their joyful em- braces. All who could reach him hugged him ; while those who could not reach him huo-oed those who were huo-o-inc; him, as the next best thing to be done on the happy occasion. Below Napoleon, the cleared lands of many plantations ex- tend to the river, while others show only a border of trees along the shore. The banks were continually caving, masses of earth flaking off* and falling into the turbid current, as we passed. The levees, neglected during the Avar, were often in a very bad condition. The river, encroaching upon the shores upon which these artificial embankments were raised, had made frequent breaches in them, and in many places swept them quite away ; so that whole plantations lay at the mercy of the usual spring freshets, which render cotton culture on such unprotected lands impracticable. 23 854 DOWN THE MISSISSIPPI. The power and extent of these freshets is something aston- ishing. The river averages nearly half a mile in width. Its deptli is very great, often exceeding one hundred feet. Its average velocity is something over two miles an honr. Yet when come the sudden rains and thaMS, and the great tribu- taries, with their thousand lesser streams, pour their floods into the bosom of the Father of Waters, this huge artery be- comes but an insignificant channel for them, and they spread out into a vast lake inundating the valley. The course of the river is then traceable only by the swifter current in its vicin- ity, and by the broad sinuous opening through the forests. A gentleman of my acquaintance told me that in Bolivar County, Mississippi, he had ridden thirty miles back from the river, and seen all the way the marks of high water on the trees as far up as he could reach with his riding-Avhip. The crevasses, or breaks in the levees and banks, which occur at such times, are often terrific. Plantations are de- stroyed, and buildings swept away. Boats are drawn into the current and carried inland, to be landed, like the Ark, on the subsidence of the waters, or lost among the trees of the deep swamps. The violence of these freshets is said to be on the increase of late years, from two or three causes, — the drainage of newly cultivated lands ; and the cut-ofFs and the levees, which project the floods more directly upon the lower country, in- stead of retarding the water, and suffering it to spread out gradually over the valley, naturally subject to its overflow. The best-protected plantations are those which are com- pletely surrounded by independent levees. " If my neighbor's levee breaks, my land is still defended," said a planter to me, describing his estate. " Inside of the levee is a ditch by which the water that soaks in can all be drained to one place and thrown over the embankment by a steam-pump." I learned something of the planter's anxiety of mind during the great floods. " Many is the time I 've sat up all night * just like these mates, looking after the levee on my planta- tion. Come a wind from the right direction, I 'd catch up a THE ANTICIPATED NEGRO INSURRECTIONS. 355 lantern, and go out, and maybe find the water within three or four inches of the top. In some places a little more would send it over and make a break. My heart would be nigh about to melt, as I watched it. Sometimes I waited, all night long, to see whether the water would go an inch higher. If it did n't, I was safe ; if it did, I was a ruined man." On some of the levees negroes were at work makino- the necessary repairs ; but I was told that many plantations would remain unprotected and uncultivated until another year. I had heard much about the anticipated negro insurrections at Christmas time. But the only act of violence that came to ray knowledge, committed on that day, was a little affair that occurred at Skipwith's Landing, on the Mississipjoi shore, a few miles below the Arkansas and Louisiana line. Four mounted guerillas, wearing the Confederate uniform, and carrving Spencer rifles, rode into the place, robbed a store kept by a Northern man, robbed and murdered a negro, and rode off again, unmolested. Very little was said of this trifling oper- ation. If such a deed, however, had been perpetrated by freedmen, the whole South would have rung with it, and the cry of " Kill the niggers I " would have been heard from the Rio Grande to the Atlantic. 356 IN AND ABOUT VICKSBURG. CHAPTER L. IN AND ABOUT VICKSBURG. On the afternoon of the third day we came in sight of Vicksljurg, — four hundred miles from Memphis by water, althougli not more than lialf that distance in a straight hue, so voluminous are the coils of the Great River. The town, seen across the intervening tongue of land as we approached it, — - situated on a high bluff, with the sunlight on its hills and roofs and fortifications, — was a fine sight. It diverted my attention, so that I looked in vain for the fiimous canal cut across the tongue of land, which pushes out from the Louisiana shore, and about which the river makes an ex- tensive curve. " You could n't have found it without looking mighty close," said a native of the country. " It 's a little small concern. The Yankees made just a big ditch to let the water through, thinking it would wash out, and make a cut- off. If it had, Farragut's fleet could liaA^e got through, and Vicksburg would have been flanked, high and dry. But, in the first place, they did not begin the ditch where the current strikes the shore ; in the next place the water fell before the ditch was completed, and never run through it at all." On the opposite shore, overlooking this peninsula and the windins: river, stands Vicksburg, on the brow of a line of bluffs which sweep down from the north, here first striking the Mississippi. In this ridge the town is set, — to compare gross things with fine, — like a diamond in the back of a ring. It slopes up rapidly from the landing, and is built of brick and wood, not beautiful on a nearer view. The hills are cut through, and their sides sliced off, by the deeply indented streets of the upper portion of the city. Here THE SHELLING OF VICKSBURG. 357 and there are crests completely cut around, isolated, and left standing like yellowish square sugar-loaves with irregular tops. These excavations afforded the inhabitants fine facilities for burrowino; durino; the sieo-e. The base of the hills and the cliff-like banks of the dug streets present a most curious ap- pearance, being completely honey-combed with caves, which still remain, a source of astonishment to the stranger, who half fancies that a colony of large-sized bank-swallows has been industriously at woi'k there. The majority of the caves were mere " gopher-holes," as the soldiers call them. Others were quite spacious and aris- tocratic. The entrance was usually large enough to admit a person stooping slightly ; but within, the roofs of the best caves were hollowed sufficiently to permit a man to stand up- right. The passage by which you entei-ed commonly branched to the rioht and left, forming with its two arms a sort of letter Y, or letter T. Every family had its cave. But only a few of the more extensive ones were permanently occupied. " Ours " (said a lady resident) " was very large and quite comfortable. There was first the entrance, under a pointed arch ; then a long cross- gallery. Boards were laid down the whole length and covered with carpets. Berths were put up at the sides, where we slept very well. At first we did not take off our dresses when we lay dow^n ; but in a little while we grew accustomed to un- dressing and retiring regularly. In the morning we found our clothes quite wet from the natural dampness of the cave. Over the entrance there was built a little arbor, where our cooking was done, and where we sat and talked with our neighbors in the daytime, when there were no shells dropping. In the night the cave was lighted up. We lived this sort of life six weeks." But few buildings were destroyed by the shells. Those that were partially injured had generally been patched up. After the twenty-sixth of May, when the bombardment be- came almost incessant, being continued night and day, it was estimated that six thousand shells were thrown into the city 858 IN- AND ABOUT VICKSBURG. by the mortars on tlie river-side every twenty-four liours. Grant's siege guns, in tlie rear of the bluffs, dropped daily four thousand more along the Rebel lines. The little damage done by so great a bombardment is a matter of surprise. The soldiers had also their " gopher-holes," and laughed at the projectiles. Of the women and children in the town, only three were killed and twelve injured. Both citizens and troops suffered more from the scarcity of provisions than from the abundance of shells. On both the river and land sides the city was completely cut off from sup- plies. The garrison was put upon fourteen-and-a-half-ounce rations ; and in the town, mule-meat, and even dog-meat, became luxuries. The day after my arrival I joined a small equestrian party, got up by Lieutenant E for my benefit, and rode out to visit the fortifications behind the city. We first came to the line of works thrown up by our troops after the capitulation. Exterior to these, zifrzaofo-ino; alono; the eastern brow of the bluffs, from the Mississippi, below Vicksburg, to the Yazoo River on the North, a distance of near fifteen miles, were the original Rebel defences, too extensive to be manned by less than a large army. Three miles northeast of the city we passed Fort Hill, in the "crater" of which, after the Rebel bastions had been success- fully mined and blown up, occurred one of the most desperate fights that marked the siege. Pushed up dangerously near to the Rebel position, is the advanced Federal line. Between the two, a little way down the slope from Fort Hill, is the spot rendered historic by the interview which terminated the long struggle for the key to the Mississippi. There, in full view of the confrontincr armies, the two commandino; s-enerals met under an oak-tree, and had their little talk. Every vestige of the tree, root and branch, had long since disappeared, — cut up, broken up, dug up, and scattered over the country in the form of relics ; and we found on the spot a monument, which bids fair to have a similar fate. This was originally a neat granite shaft, erected by a private SHEEMAN'S UNSUCCESSFUL ASSAULT. 359 subscription among officers and soldiers of the national army, and dedicated on July 4th, 1864, the first anniversary of th'.! surrender of the city. It bears the following inscription : — SITE OF INTERVIEW BETWEEN" MAJOR-GENERAL GRANT, U. S. A., AMD LIEUTENANT-GENERAL PEMBERTON, JULY 4, 1863. Nothing certainly could be more simple and modest. Not a syllable is there to wound the sensibilities of a fallen foe. Yet, since the close of the war, when the returning Confederates first obtained access to this monument, it had been shamefully mutilated. The fact that it was never injured before, and the circumstance that the eagle and shield of the escutcheon surmounting the inscription had been nearly obliterated by persistent battering and grinding, showed that no mere relic- hunters had been hammering here, but that the mischief had been done by some enemy's hand. The shaft was enclosed by a handsome iron fence, which we found broken and partly thrown down. From the inonument we rode noi'thward over rido;es crowned with zigzag fortifications, around steep crests and slopes, and past deep ravines green with tangled cane-brakes, — a broken and wild region ; crossing over through woods and hilly cotton- fields to the western brow of the bluffs, where Sherman made his unsuccessful assault in the gloomy last days of 1862. We reined up our horses on a commanding point, and lookud down upon the scene of the battle. Away on our left was the Mississippi, its bold curve sweeping in from the west, and doub- ling southward toward the city. Before us, under the bluff', was the bottom across which our forces charged, through the bristling abatis and their terrible entanglements, and in the face of a murderous fire captured the Rebel rifle-pits, — a most heroic, bloody, but worse than useless work. 860 IN AND ABOUT VICKSBURG. Finding a road that wound down the steep hill-sides, wg galloped through the cotton-fields of the bottom to Chickasaw Bayou, which bounded them on the west, — a small stream flow- ing down through swamps and lagoons, from the Yazoo, and emptying into the Mississippi below the battle-field. We rode along its bank, and found one of the bridges by which our forces had crossed. Beyond were ancient woods, sombre and brown, bearded with long pendant moss. Returninor across the bottom, the Lieutenant guided us to three prominent elevations in the midst of the plain, which proved to be Indian mounds of an interesting character. The largest was thirty feet in height, and one hundred and fifty feet across the base. Leaving the ladies in the saddle, the Lieutenant and myself hitched our horses to a bush on one of the smaller mounds, and entered an excavation which he had assisted in making on a former visit. We found the earth full of human bones and antique pot- tery. A little digging exposed entire skeletons sitting upright, in the posture in which they had been buried, — who knows how many centuries before ? Who were these ancient people, over whose unknown history the past had closed, as the earth had closed over their bodies? Perhaps these burial-mounda marked the scene of some great battle on the very spot where the modern fight took place. We found the surface of the mound, washed by the storms of centuries, speckled with bits of bones, yellowish, decayed, and often friable to the touch. Fragments of pottery were also exposed, ornamented in a variety of styles, showing that this ancient people was not without rude arts. The cotton-fields on the bluffs and in the bottom were cul- tivated by a colony of freedmen, whose village of brown huts we passed, on the broad hill-side above the river, as we returned to the city. The ride back over the western brow of the bluffs was one to be remembered. The sun was setting over the foi'ests and plains of Louisiana, which lay dark on the horizon, between the splendid sky and the splendid, wide-spreading river reflecting "WILL THE FREEDMEX WORK?" 361 It. Every cloud, every fugitive fleece, was saturated with fire. The river was a flood of molten gold. The ever-varying o-lory seemed prolonged for our sakes. The last exquisite tints had scarcely faded, leaving the river dark and melancholy, sweep- ing between its solitary shores, Avhen we left the crests, with the half-moon sailing in a thinly-clouded sky above our heads, and descended, by the deep-cut, narrow streets, and through the open gates at the breastworks, into the city. The next day, in company with Major-General Wood, in command of the Department of Mississippi, I visited the forti- fications below Vicksburg. For a mile and a half we rode along beside banks perforated with " gopher-hol§s " dug by the Rebel soldiers, and lines of rifle-pits, which consisted often of a mere trench cut across tlie edge of a crest. These were the river-side defences. The real fortifications commenced with a strong fort constructed on a' commanding bluff". This did not abut on the river, as maps I had seen, and descriptions I had read, had led me to expect. Below the city a tract of low bottom-land opens between the I'iver and the bluffs, of such a nature that no very formidable attack was to be appre- hended in that quarter. Standing upon the first redan, we $aw a mile or two of low land and tangled and shaggy cypress swamps intervening between us and the glimpses of shinino- liglit which indicated the southward course of the Mississippi. In this excursion, as in that of the previous day, I noticed on every side practical answers to the question, " Will the freedmen work ? " In every broken field, in every available spot on the rugged crests, was the negro's little cotton patch. Riding through the freedmen's quarter below the town the General and I called at a dozen or more different cabins, put- ting to every person we talked with the inquiry, — how large a proportion of the colored people he knew were shiftless char- acters. We got very candid replies ; the common opinion being that about five out of twenty still had a notion of living without work. Yet, curiously enough, not one would admit that he was one of the five, — every man and woman acknowl- edging that labor was a universal duty and necessity. 362 FREE LABOR IN MISSISSIPPL CHAPTER LI. FREE LABOR IN MISSISSIPPL Colonel Thomas, Assistant-Commissioner of the Freed- men's Bureau for the State of Mississippi, stationed at Vicks- burg, gave the negroes more credit for industry than they gave each other. In the large towns, to which vagrancy nat- urally gravitates, one in four "was probably a fair estimate of the proportion of colored people unable or unwilling to earn an honest livelihood. " But I am confident," said the Colonel, " there is no more industrious class of people anywhere than the freedmen who have little homesteads of their own. The colonies under my charge, working lands assigned them by the government, have raised this year ten thousands bales of cotton, besides corn and vegetables for their subsistence until another harvest." Other well-informed and experienced persons corroborated this statement. Dr. Warren, Superintendent of Freedmen's Schools in Mississippi, told me of a negro family, consisting of one man, three women, and a half-grown girl, who took a lot of five acres, which they worked entirely with shovel and hoe, having no mule, and on which they had that season cleared five hundred dollars, above all expenses. I heard of numerous other w^ell-authenticated instances of the kind. Dr. Warren spoke of the great eagerness of the blacks to buy or lease land, and have homes of their own. This he said accounted in a great measure for their backwardness in making contracts. He said to one intelligent freedman ; " The whites intend to compel you to hire out to them." The latter replied : " What if we should compel them to lease us lands ? " There were other reasons why the blacks would not con- tract. At Vicksburg, a gentleman who had been fifty miles "HOKESTY" OF A SOUTHERN PLANTER. 363 up the valley looking for a plantation, said to me : " The ne- groes everywhere I went have been shamefully abused. They had been promised that if they would remain and work the plantations, the}'- should have a share of the crops ; and now the planters refuse to give them anything. They have no confidence in Southern men, and will not hire out to thein ; but they are very eager to engage with Northern men." This was the universal testimony, not only of travellers, but of candid Southern planters. One of the latter class explained to me how it was that the freedman was cheated out of his share of the crop. After the cotton is sent to market, the proprietor calls up his negroes, and tells them he has " fur- nished them such and such things, for which he has charged so much, and that there are no profits to divide. The darkey don't understand it, — he has kept no accounts ; but he knows he has worked hard and got nothing. He won't hire to that man again. But I, and any other man who has done as he agreed with his niggers, can hire now as many as we want." Colonel Thomas assured me that lwo thirds of the laborers in the State had been cheated out of their wages during the past year. Mr. C , a Northern man who had taken a plantation at , (I omit names, for he told me that not rnly his property but his life depended upon the good-will of his aeighbors,) re- lated to me his experience. He hired his plantation of a gen- tleman noted for his honesty : " He goes by the name of ' Honest M ' all through the country. But honesty appeared to be a virtue to be exercised only towards white people : it was too good to be thrown away on niggers. This M has four hundred sheep, seventy milch cows, fifteen horses, ten mules, and forty hogs, all of which were saved from the Yankees when they raided through the country, by an old negro who run them off across a swamp. Honest M has never given that negro five cents. Another of his slaves had a cow of his own from which he raised a fine pair of oxen : Honest M lays claim to those oxen and sells them. A slave-woman that belonged to him had a cow she had raised 364 FEEE LABOR IN MISSISSIPPI. from a calf : Honest M takes that, and adds it to liis herd. He promised his niggers a share of the crops this year ; but he has sold the cotton, and locked up the corn, an^ never given one of them a dollar. And all this time he thinks he is honest : he thinks Northern capitalists treat free laborers in this way. You can't get it through the heads of these Southern planters that the laboring class has any rights. " Honest M has two plantations," continued Mr. C : " he rents me one of them. But he gave me notice at the start that he should take all the niggers from my plantation, and that I must look out for my own help. When I went to take possession I was astonished to find the niggers all there. " ' How 's this ? ' I said. ' I thought these people were going with you ? ' " He said he could n't induce one of them to contract ; and he had about given up the idea of running his other plan- tation, because the niggers would n't work. He had offered twenty-five dollars a month, with board and medical attend- ance, and they would n't engage to him even for that. " ' Well,' said I, ' if you have got through I should like to hire them.' " He said I was welcome to try. They knew me to be a Northern man, and when I called them around me for a talk, they all came with grinning faces. Said I : ' Mr. M offers you twenty-five dollars a month. That is more than I can afford to pay, and I think you 'd better hire to him.' They looked stolid : they could n't see it : they did n't want to work for him at any price. " Then I said, ' If you won't work for him, will you work for me ? ' I never saw faces light up so in my life. ' Yes, master ! Yes, master ! ' ' But,' said I, ' ten dollars a month is all I can afford to pay.' That made no difference, they said ; they 'd rather work for ten dollars, and be sure of their pay, than for twenty-five dollai's, and be cheated out of it. I gave them a day to think of it : then they all came for- "jward and made contracts, with one exception. They went FREEDMEK Aiy^D SOUTHERN PLANTERS. 365 right to work with a will : I won't ask men to do any better than they have been doing. They are having their Christmas frolic now, and it 's as merry a Christmas as ever you saw ! " I met with many planters in the situation of Honest M . Having made arrangements to run their plantations, and got in the necessary supplies, they had discovered that "the niggers would n't contract." They were then trying to lease their lands to Northern capitalists. I have seldom met a more anxious, panic-stricken set of men than the planters I saw on the steamer going down to Vicksburg to hire freedmen. Observing; the success of North- ern men, they had suddenly awakened to the great fact that, although slavery was lost, all was not lost, and that there was still a chance to make something out of the nigger. They could not hire their own freedmen, and were going to see what could be effected with freedmen to whom they were not known. Each seemed to fear lest his neighbor should get the start of him. " They 're just crazy about the niggers," said one, a Mis- sissippian, who was about the craziest of the set, — " crazy to get hold of 'em." " But," I remarked, " they say the freedmen won't work." " Well, they won't," said my Mississippi friend, unflinch- ingly. " Then what do you Avant of them ? " " Well, I found everybody else was going in for hiring 'em, and if anything was to be made, I did n't want to be left out in the cold." Adding with great candor and earnestness : "if everybody else would have refused to hire ''em anyhoiv, that woidd have just suited me : I'd have been willing to let my plantation go to the devil for one year, just to see the free niggers starve.^'' I saw this gentleman afterwards in Vicksburg, and was not deeply grieved to learn that he had failed to engage a single freedman. " They are hii'ing to Northern men," said he, bit- terly ; " but they won't hire to Southern men anyhow, if they can help it." " How do you account for this singular fact ? " I asked. 366 TREE LABOR IN MISSISSIPPI. " I don't know. They 've no confidence in us ; but tliey imagine the Yankees will do wonders by 'em. The Southern people are really their best friends." At which stereotyped bit of cant I could not forbear a smile. The usual terms proposed by the planters were one hundred and fifty dollars, for a full hand, payable at the .end of the year ; together with doctors' bills, two hundred pounds of pork, and a peck of meal a week. The terms most approved by Colonel Thomas were as fol- lows : Fifteen dollars a month, with food, including flour, sugar, and molasses ; a little patch of ground for each family, and Saturday afternoon, for the raising of their own vegeta- bles ; the freedmen to clothe themselves. The planters insisted on furnishing all needful supplies, and charging the blacks for them when not stipulated for in the contract. The alleged reason for this was that the negroes, if allowed to buy their own supplies, would spend half their time in running about the country for knick-knacks. But the better class of planters admitted that the system was liable to gross abuse. " I have neighbors," said one, " who keep stores of plain goods and fancy articles for their people ; and, let a nig- ger work ever so hard, and earn ever so high wages, he is sure to come out in debt at the end of the year." Those who had given the free-labor system a fair trial ad- mitted that the negro would work as well as ever before, while in the field, — some said better ; but he would not work as many hours. " How many hours did he formerly work ? " I inquired ; and received the following statement with regard to what was done on a well-regulated Mississippi plantation. " Mr. P 's niggers were in the field at daylight. It was so in the longest days of summer, as at other times of the year. They worked till six o'clock, when their breakfast was carried to them. They had just time enough allowed them to eat their breakfast ; then they worked till nooti, when their dinner was carried to them. They had an hour for their dinner. At six o'clock their supper was carried to them. Tlien they worked OVERSEERS AND NEGROES. 867 till dark. There were cisterns in the field, where they got their water. Nobody was allowed to leave the field from the time they entered it in the morning until work was over at nio-ht. That was to save time. The women who suckled babies had their babies carried to them. A little nigger-boy used to drive a mule to the field with a cart full of nigger babies ; and the women gave the brats their luncheon while they ate their own. So not a minute was lost." And this was the plantation of a " liberal " owaier, w^orked by a " considerate and merciful overseer." It appeared, ac- cording to the planters' own statements, that their slaves used to work at least sixteen hours a day in summer, — probably more, for they had chores to do at home after dark. That they should not choose to keep up such a continual strain on their bodily faculties, now that they were free, did not appear to me very unreasonable, — but that was perhaps because I was prejudiced. Under the old system, many plantations were left entirely to the management of overseers, the owners living in some pleasant town where they enjoyed the advantages of society for themselves and of schools for their children. The overseer who could produce the most cotton to the hand was in great request, and commanded the highest wages. The natural result was that both lands and negroes were often worked to a ruinous excess. But the occupation of these best overseers was now gone. Nat a freedman would hire out to work on plantations where they were known to be employed. Some managed, however, to avoid being throAvn out of business by attaching themselves to other plantations, and changing their title. With the negroes a name is imposing. Many would engage cheerfully to work under a " superintendent," who would not have entered the field under an " overseer." But it is easier to change an odious name than an odious character. Said a candid Southern planter to me, " I should get along very well wit^i my niggers, if I could only get my superintendent to treat them decently. Instead of cheering and encouraging them, he bullies and scolds them, and some- 368 FREE LABOR IN MISSISSIPPI. times so far forgets himself as to kick and beat tliem. Now they are free they won't stand it. They stood it when they were slaves, because they had to. He can't get the notion out of his head that they are still somehow slaves. When I see things going right badly, I take him, and give him a good talking to. Then for about three days he '11 use 'era better, and everything goes smooth. But the first I know, there 's more bullying and beating, and there 's more niggers bound to quit.' Meanwhile the Christmas holidays were effecting a change in the prospects of free labor for the coming year. I never witnessed in so short a time so complete a revolution in public feeling. One day it seemed that everybody Avas in despair, complaining that the niggers would n't work ; the next, everybody was rushing to employ them. And the freedmen, wdio, before Christmas, had refused to make contracts, vaguely hoping that lands would be given them by the government, or leased to them by their owners, now came forward to make the best terms they could. The presence of the Bureau at this time in the South was an incalculable benefit to both par- ties. It inspired the freedmen with confidence, and persuaded them, with the promise of its protection, to hire out once more to the Southern planters. The trouble was, that there Avas not labor enough in the State to supply the demand. Many ne- groes had enlisted in the war ; others had wandered back to the slave-breeding States from which they had been sold ; others had become small proprietors ; and others had died, in consequence of the great and sudden change in their circum- stances which the war had brought about; NEW BLACK CODES. 369 CHAPTER LII. A RECONSTRUCTED STATE. It seemed impossible for the people of Mississippi — and the same may be said of the Southern people generally — to un- derstand the first principle of the free-labor system. Their notions of it were derived from what they had seen of the shiftless poor whites about them, demoralized by an institution that rendered labor disreputable. They could not conceive of a man devoting himself voluntarily to hard manual toil, such as they had never seen performed except under the lash. Some compulsory system seemed to them indispensable^ Hence the new black codes passed by the reconstructed legis- latures of several States. Mississippi, like South Carolina, on returning to the fold of the Union, from which those innocent lambs had strayed, made haste to pass apprentice laws, vagrant laws, and laws relating to contracts and labor, designed to bring back the freedmen under the planters' control. " An Act to regulate the Relation of Master and Apprentice," passed in November, 1865, pro- vides that " all freedmen, free negroes, and mulattoes, under the age of eighteen, who are orphans," or are not maintained by their parents, shall be apprenticed " to some competent and suitable person," — the former owner to "have the prefer- ence;" that "the said apprentices shall be bound by inden- ture, in the case of males until they are twenty-one years old, and in case of females until they are eighteen years old " ; that said master or mistress shall have power to inflict " mod- erate corporal chastisement " ; that in case the apprentice leaves them without their consent, he may be committed to jail, and '•'■punished as provided for the punishment of hired freedmen^ as may he from time to time provided for hy laWj'^ — 2i 370 A EECONSTRUCTED STATE. the meaning of which is clear, although the grammatical con- struction is muddy ; and that any person who shall employ, feed, or clothe an apprentice who has deserted his master, " shall be deemed guilty of a high misdemeanor," and so forth. It will be seen that, by this act, (approved November 22d, 1865,) not merely children without means of support may be tlius bound out under a modified system of slavery, but that young girls, and lads of from fourteen to eighteen, capable not only of supporting themselves, but of earning perhaps the wages of a man or woman, m.ay be taken from the employ- ment of their choice and compelled to serve without wages the master or mistress assigned them by the court. " An Act to amend the Vagrant Laws of the State " pro- vides that " all freedmen over the age of eighteen years, found on the second Monday in January, 1866, or thereafter, with no lawful employment or business," (as if no man was ever honestly w^ithout employment,) " or found unlawfully assem- bling themselves together either in the day or night time, shall be deemed vagrants, and on conviction thereof shall be fined in the sum of not exceeding fifty dollars, and imprisoned at the discretion of the court not exceeding ten days " ; pro- vided, however, that in case any freedman " shall fail for five days after the imposition of said fine to pay the same, that it shall be, and is hereby, made the duty of the sheriff" of the proper county to hire out said freedman to any person who will for the shortest period of service pay said fine or forfeiture and all costs." A bill " To confer Civil Rights on Freedmen, and for other Purposes," enacts " That all freedmen, free negroes, and mulat- toes may sue and be sued, implead and be impleaded in all the courts of law and equity of this State, and may acquire per- sonal property and choses in action, by descent or purchase, and may dispose of the same, in the same manner, and to the same extent that white persons may : Provided that the pro- visions of this section shall not he so construed as to allow any freedman^ free negro, or mulatto to rent or lease any lands or tenements, except in incorporated towns and cities.''^ INJUSTICE OF THE LAWS. 371 Not to speak of the gross injustice of this Last provision, what shall be said of the wisdom of that legislation which pro- hibits an entire laboring class from acquiring real estate in the country, where their presence and energies are indispensable, and holds out an inducement for them to flock to the towns, which are crowded with them already, but where alone they can hope to become freeholders ? Another section of this bill enacts that freedmen shall be competent witnesses in all cases where freedmen are parties to the suit, or where a crime is alleged to have been committed by a white person upon the person or property of a freedman. But it does not give them the power to testify in cases in which only white persons are concerned. All the negro testimony bills which I have seen, passed by the legislatures of the re- constructed States under gentle pressure from Washington, are marked by this singular inconsistency. If the negro is a competent witness in cases in Avhich his own or his fellow's interests are involved, he is certainly a competent witness in cases involving only the interests of white persons. He is permitted to give evidence when there may exist a tempta- tion for him to swear falsely, and not when there is no such temptation. By the enactment of such laws the whites are in reality legislating against themselves. Even Governor Humphreys — late Rebel general, but now the reconstructed executive of the "loyal " State of Mississippi, elected for his services in the Confederate cause — in his message to this same legislature, favoring the admission of negroes into the courts as an indispensable step towards ridding the State of the military power, and of " that black incubus, the Freed- man's Bureau," made this suggestive statement : — " There are few men living in the South who have not known many white criminals to go ' unwhipt of justice ' be- cause negro testimony was not permitted in the courts." The act " To confer Civil Rights on the Freedmen," proceeds to make the following provisions, which look much more like wrongs : " That every freedman, free negro, and mulatto shall, on the second Monday of January, one thousand eight 372 A RECONSTRUCTED STATE. hundred and sixty-six, and annually thereafter, have a lawful home or employment," (of course on any terms that may be offered him,) " and shall have written evidence thereof, as follows, to wit : If living in any incorporated city, town, or villao-e, a license from the Mayor thereof; and if living outside of any incorporated city, town, or village, from the member of the Board of Police of his beat, authorizing him or her to do ii'regular and job work, or a written contract, as provided in section sixth of this act ; which licenses may be revoked for cause, at any time, by the authority granting the same." Section sixth enacts : " That all contracts for labor made with freedmen, free negroes, and mulattoes, for a longer period than one month, shall be in writing and in duplicate ; . . . . and said contracts shall be taken and held as entire contracts ; and if the laborer shall quit the service of the employer before expiration of his term of service, without good cause, he shall forfeit his wages for that year up to the time of quitting." But wdio is to be the judge with regard to the " good cause ? " The white man, of course, and not the negro. " Section 7. Be it further enacted, That every civil officer shall, and every person may, arrest and carry back to his or her legal employer any freedman, free negro, or mulatto, who shall have quit the service of his or her employer before the expiration of his or her terra of service." Section ninth provides that if any person " shall hioivingJi/ employ any such deserting freedman^ free negro, or midatto, or shall knowingly give or sell to any such deserting freedman, free negro, or midatto any food, raiment, or other thing, he or she shall he guilty of a misdemeanor, and upon conviction, shall he fined not less than twenty-five dollars, and not more tha7i tu'o hundred dollars and the costs.'''' These extracts — which I have made verbatim from an au- thorized copy of the recent State laws, with only such abridg- ments as were necessary to compress them within reasonable limits — show plainly enough what ideas prevail in the late Slave States on the subject of free labor. The design of all such enactments is simply to place both the labor and the CONVENTION AND LEGISLATURE. 373 laborer in the power of the employer, and to reorganize slavery under a new name. The fact that they are practically set aside and annulled by the military power and the Freedmen's Bureau, does not set aside or annul the spirit which dictated them. This still animates the people of the South ; and I was often plainly told that as soon as the States were fully restored to their rights, just such laws as these would certainly be put in force. I remarked to a Mississippi planter, " Do you not think it was unwise for your Legislature to pass such a code of laws ? " " Yes, it was unwise, at tJtis time" he replied, not understand- ing the scope of my question. " We shoived our hand too soon. We ought to have waited till the troops were withdrawn, and our representatives admitted to Congress ; then we could have had everything our own way." Since the admission of negro testimony in the civil courts of the State, the freedmen's courts had been discontinued, — greatly to the disadvantage of the colored race. The civil courts could hardly be induced to give the negro's cause a hearing. There were some exceptions ; and at Vicksburg I found a judge who seemed inclined to administer justice with- out regard to the prejudice against color. This was Judge Yerger, an original Union man, — one of the seven (against seventy-eight) who voted No, on the adoption of the ordinance of secession in the Convention of 1861 ; the same who, when asked by a member what title should be given to that act, re- plied, " Call it An Ordinance for the Abolition of Slavery and the Desolation of the South.'"' Yerger was the President of the new" Convention that recon- structed the State. That Convention was animated by a very different temper from that shown by the new Legislature. The Convention was composed of the best men in Mississippi, who went prepared to do what the Government at Washington had a right to expect of rebellious States returning to their allegiance ; the Legislature was made up of a different class, elected after the people of the South had been encouraged in their animosity and arrogance by the discovery that treason was not to be punished, nor made particularly odious. The Convention was 874 A RECONSTRUCTED STATE. governed by men of large influence and liberal views ; the Legislature was controlled by narrow-minded intermeddlers, mostly from the poorer districts of the State, where the inhab- itants hated the negroes the more by way of revenge for having owned so few. It was claimed by the better class that the Legislature did not represent them, and there was talk of calling another State Convention. But the Legislature, although it did not carry out the views of the more enlightened and progressive citizens, nor reflect in any way the sentiments of the great mass of true Union men in the South, namely, the blacks, represented quite faithfully the majority by which it was elected. I have already alluded to the organizing of the State militia, — an abuse that unfortunately received the sanction of the Administration. The only possible excuse for it was the cry raised regarding anticipated negro insurrections. To guard against danger from a class whose loyalty and good behavior durino; the war challenged the admiration of the world, arms were put into the hands of Confederate sol- diers who had returned to their homes reeking with the blood of the nation. Power was taken from the friends of the government and put into the hands of its enemies. The latter immediately set to work disarming the former. They plundered their houses, under the pretence of searching for weapons ; committing robberies, murders, and other atroci- ties, with authentic reports of which pages might be filled. Neither were white men, known to sympathize with the Union party of the North, safe from their violence. Governor Hum- phreys himself, startled by the magnitude of the evil that had been called into existence, told Colonel Thomas that he had been obliged to disband several militia companies already or- ganized, " on learning that they were sworn to kill negroes asserting their independence, and to drive off Northern men." Of what was being done by private parties outside of the militia organizations, a curious glimpse is given in the fol- lowing " general order," published in the Holmesville (Miss.) *' Independent " : — CAI^T ABOUT ITEGRO INSURRECTIOI^S. 375 " [General Order No. 1.] " Summit, Miss., Nov. 28, 1865. "In obedience to an order of His Excellency, the Governor of Mississippi, I have this day assumed command of all the militia in this section of the State, with head-quarters at this place. And whereas it has been reported to me that there are various individ- uals, not belonging to any military organization, 'either State or Fed- eral, who are engaged in shooting at, and sometimes killing, the freed- men on private account ; and whereas there are other white men reported as the attendants of, and participants in, the negro balls, who, after placing themselves upon a social equality with the people of color, raise quarrels with the freedmen, upon questions of social superiority already voluntarily waived and relinquished by them in favor of the negro, by which the peace of the countiy is broken and the law disregarded ; I therefore order the arrest of all such offend- ers, by the officers and soldiers under my command, and that they be taken before some civil officer having power to commit to the county jail, for the purpose of awaiting the action of the Grand Jury. " Men must quit blacking themselves, and do everything legally. " Oscar J. E. Stuart, " Q. M. G. and Col. Com. IMilitia." The objection here seems to be to shooting the freedmen " on private account," or doing anything " illegally," thus taking the proper work of the militia out of its hands. There were no doubt serious apprehensions in the minds of the people on the subject of negro insurrections. But a great deal that was said about them was mere pretence and cant, with which I have not seen fit to load these pages. There was not, while I was in the South, the slightest danger from a rising of the blacks, nor will there be, unless they are driven to desperation by wrongs. I remember two very good specimens of formidable negro insurrections. One was reported in Northern Mississippi, and investigated personally by General Fiske, who took pains to visit the spot and learn all the facts concerning it. According to his account, " a colored man hunting squirrels was magnified into a thousand vicious negroes marching upon their old mas- ters with bloody intent." 376 A RECONSTRUCTED STATE. The other case was reported at the hotel in Vicksburg where I stopped, by a gentleman who had jnst arrived in the steamer " Fashion " from New Orleans. He related an excit- ing stor}'^ of a rising of the blacks in Jefferson Parish, and a great slaughter of the white population. He also stated that General Sheridan had sent troops to quell the insurrection. Afterwards, when at New Orleans, I made inquiry of General Sheridan concerning the truth of the rumor, and learned that it was utterly without foundation. The most noticeable phase of it was the effect it had upon the guests at the hotel table. Everybody had been predicting negro insurrections at Christ- mas-time ; now everybody's prophecy had come true, and everybody was delighted. A good deal of horror was ex- pressed ; but the real feeling, ill-concealed under all, was exultation. " What will Sumner & Co. say now ? " cried one. " The only way is to kill the niggers off, and drive 'em out of the country," said another. I was struck by the perfect unanimity with Avhich the com- pany indorsed this last sentiment. All the outrages committed by whites upon blacks were of no account ; but at the mere rumor of a negro insurrection, what murderous passions were roused ! Of the comparative good behavior of whites and blacks in a large town, the police reports afford a pretty good indica- tion. Vicksburg, which had less than five thousand inhabi- tants in 1860, had in 1865 fifteen thousand. Of these, eight thousand were blacks. On Christmas-day, out of nineteen persons brought before the police court for various offences, fourteen were white and five colored. The day after there were ten cases reported, — nine white persons and one negro. The usual proportion of white criminals was more than two thirds. An unrelenting spirit of persecution, shown towards Union men in Mississippi, was fostered by the reconstructed civil courts. Union scouts were prosecuted for arson and stealing. A horse which had been taken by the government, and after- A PARDON'ED REBEL. 377 wards condemned and sold, was claimed by the original owner, and recovered, — the quartermaster's bill of sale, produced in court by the purchaser, being pronounced null and void. The government had leased to McAlister, a Northern man, an abandoned plantation, with the privilege of cutting wood upon it, for which he paid forty cents a cord : the Rebel owner re- turns with his pardon, and sues the lessee for alleged damages done to his property by the removal of wood, to the amount of five thousand dollars ; a writ of attachment issues under the seal of the local court, and the defendant is compelled to" give bonds to the amount of ten thousand dollars, or lie in jail. Such cases were occurring every day. The beautiful effect of executive mercy upon rampant Reb- els was well illustrated in Mississippi. A single example will suffice. The Reverend Dr. , an eloquent advocate of the Confederate cause, — who, as late as March 23d, 1865, delivered a speech before the State Legislature, urging the South to fight to the last extremity, — under strong pretences of loyalty, obtained last summer a full pardon, and an order for the restoration of his property. The House, in Vicksburg, belonging to this reverend gentleman, was at that time used as a hospital for colored persons by the Freedmen's Bureau. Returning, with the President's authority, he turned out the sick inmates with such haste as to cause the deaths of several ; and on the following Sunday preached a vehe- ment sermon on reconstruction, in which he avowed himself a better friend to the blacks than Northern men, and declared that it was " the duty of the government to treat the South with magnanimity, because it was not proper for a living ass to kick a dead lion." There was great opposition to the freedmen's schools. Dr. Warren, the superintendent for the State, told me that " if the Bureau was withdrawn not a school would be publicly allowed." There were combinations formed to prevent the leasing of rooms for schools ; and those who would have been willing to let buildings for this purpose were deterred from doing so by threats of vengeance from their neighbors. In 878 A KECONSTRUCTED STATE. Vicksburg, school-houses had been erected on confiscated land, which had lately been restored to the Rebel owners, and from which they were ordered, with other government buildings, to be removed. In the month of November there were 4750 pupils in the freedmen's schools, — the average attendance being about 3000. Of these, 2650 were advanced beyond the alphabet and primer ; 1200 were learning arithmetic, and 1000 writing. The schools were mainly supported by the Indiana Yearly Meeting of Friends, the Ohio Yearly Meeting, the American Freedmen's Aid Commission, (composed of various denomina- tions,) and the American Missionary Association, (Congrega- tional.) Elkanah Beard, of the Indiana Yearly Meeting, was the first to organize a colony of colored refugees in Mississippi, and through him his society have furnished to the freedmen practical relief, in the shape of food, clothing, and shelter, to a very great amount. The United Presbyterian Body had fif- teen teachers at Vicksburg and Davis's Bend. The Old School Presbyterian Church had a missionary at Oxford, introducing schools upon plantations, and the Moravian Church had a pio- neer at Holly Springs. ANXIETY OF THE COTTON PLANTER. 379 CHAPTER LIII. A FEW WORDS ABOUT COTTON. The best cotton lands in the States lie between 31° and 36° north latitude. Below 31° the climate is too moist, causing the plant to run too much to stalk, and the fibre to rot. Above 36° the season is too short and too cold. The most fertile tracts for the cultivation of cotton are the great river bottoms. In the Mississippi Valley, twice or even three or four times as much may be raised to the acre as in Northern Alabama or Middle Tennessee. But in the Valley there is danger from floods and the army worm, by which sometimes entire crops are swept away. On the uplands there is danger from drought. The life of the planter is one of care and uncertainty. It requires almost as extensive organization to run a large planta- tion as a factory. You never know, imtil the crop is picked, whether you are going to get fifty or five hundred pounds to the acre. Anxiety begins at planting-time. The weather may be too wet ; it may be too dry ; and the question eagerly asked is, " Will you have a stand ? " If the " stand " is favorable, — that is, if the plants come up well, and get a good start, — you still watch the weather, lest they may not have drink enough, or the levees, lest they may have too much. Look out also for the destructive insects : kindle fires in your fields to poison with smoke the moths that lay the eggs ; and scatter corn to call the birds, that they may feed upon the newly- hatched woi'ms. Perhaps, when the cotton is just ready to come out, a storm of rain and wind beats it down into the mud. Then, when the crop is harvested, it is liable to be burned ; ind you must think of your insurance. Notwithstanding these disadvantages, there is great fascina- o80 A FEW WORDS ABOUT COTTOK. tion in the culture, — the possibihty of clearuig in one season from a good plantation fifty or a hundred thousand dollars, causing you to take cheerfully all risks. The plausible fig- ures dazzle you ; and to the Northern man the novelty of the life in prospect for a year or two is itself an inducement. You think little of the danger to health from the miasmas of the swamps ; or to property, from the midnight torch of an enemy ; or to life, from the ill-timed recreation of some bush- whacking neighbor. And you are quite insensible to what the Southern planter deems the greatest of all risks that beset your crop, — that some day your freedmen will desert, and leave it to destruction. I found many Northern planters in the upland districts of Alabama and Tennessee, where lands are cheaper, plantations smaller, and the risks less, than in the Mississippi Valley. But the latter region proved the greater attraction to adventurous capital. Men from the Middle States and the great West were everywhere, buying and leasing plantations, hiring freed- ' men, and setting thousands of ploughs in motion. From experienced cotton-growers I obtained various esti- mates of the cost and probable profits of a crop the present year. They usually differed little as to items of expense, but sometimes very widely as to profits, according to each man's conjectures regarding freedmen's willingness to work, and the price of cotton next fall, which one would place as low as fifteen cents, and another as high as fifty. The annexed statement, furnished by the Southern Land Agency at Vicks- burg, is probably as good as any : — " Sir : — The following is an estimate of the expense and cash capital required to cultivate 500 acres of cotton land within the scope of our agency, for the year 1866. 25 mules @ $150 $3,750 25 single sets plough harness @ $4 100 3 lumber wagons @ S75 225 25 single ploughs @ $13 325 10 double ploughs @ $18 180 700 bushels cotton-seed @ $1 700 Total outlay for stock, seed, and implements $5,280 ESTIMATE OF COST AND PROFIT. 381 1200 bushels corn @ S0.75 $900 120 barrels of corn meal @ $6 (about 1|- lb. per ra- tion) 720 84 barrels pork @ $35 (about | lb. per ration) . 2,940 250 gallons molasses @ $0.75 (about | gallon per ra- tion each) 187 5 barrels salt @ $3, for stock and hands 15 Wages of 60 hands for 10 months @ $15 per month- • • 9,000 Incidentals 1,000 Total for supplies, wages, and incidentals $14,762 Rent of; 500 acres land @ $10 5,000 Total outlay during the season $25,042 Value of the articles on hand at the end of the year : — Amount paid for stock and implements, less ^ for usual wear 3,435 Amount paid for cotton-seed, which is replaced from the crop 700 $4,135 Leaving total expenditure durwg the year $20,907 For the actual amount of cash required up to the time a portion of the crop may be disposed of — say Sept. 30th — deduct | of the rent, which is not due until the crop is gathered 3,333 Last quarter's expenditures for supplies, wages, &c. • • • • 4,940 $8,273 $16,76J) " From which calculation we see that the actual cash capital re quired is $16,769, or about $33 per acre, and the actual expense about $42 per acre. But as men's financial abilities differ materially, we think it quite possible to cultivate land with smaller capitaL Blany are hiring men, agreeing to pay but a small portion of their wages monthly, and the balance at the end of the year ; while others save the use of capital by procuring supplies on a short credit, or by allowing a portion of the crop for rent. " The average crop on alluvial land is full one bale per acre ; on second bottom or table lands, about § bale, and on uplands J bale. " Clothing and extra supplies furnished to hands are usually charged against their wages. "This calculation is considered by the most experienced cotton- growers in the country a fair and liberal estimate ; and from it you may estimate the profit on any sized tract, as the difference in the amount of land tilled will not materially change the figures. " Very respectfully," etc. 882 A FEW WORDS ABOUT COTTOK Here the cost of some articles is placed too low. Two hun- dred dollars each for mules would be nearer the actual price. The cotton-seed to be replaced by the crop should also be thrown out of the consideration if you expect to close up busi- ness at the end of the year, for although seed this season brought one dollar and upwards, it has no merchantable value in ordinary times. This you will take into account if intend- ing to undertake a plantation next year. But suppose we call the total expenditure for this year twenty-four thousand dollars. And suppose a full crop is pro- duced, — five hundred acres yielding an equal number of bales. Taking twenty-five cents a pound as a safe estimate, you have for each bale (of five hundred pounds) $125 ; for five hundred bales, $62,500. From this gross amount deduct the. total ex- penditure, and you have remaining $38,500. If you go to the uplands where less cotton is produced, you employ fewer hands, and have less rent to pay, — perhaps not more than four or five dollars for good land. Should cotton be as low as twenty cents, you have still a fair margin for profits ; and should it be as high as fifty, as many confidently maintain it will be, the resulting figures are sufiiciently exciting. In 1850 Mississippi produced 484,292 bales, of 400 pounds each ; in 1860, more than twice that quantity. The present year, notwithstanding the scarcity of labor and the number of unprotected and desolated plantations, there is a prospect of two thirds of an average crop, — say half a million bales. The freedmen are working well ; and cotton is cultivated to the neglect of almost everything else. If we have a good cotton season, there will be a large yield. If there is a small yield, the price will be proportionately high. So that in either case the crop raised in Mississippi this year bids fair to produce forty or fifty million dollars. THE DAVIS PLANTATIONS, 383 CHAPTER LIV. DAVIS'S BEND. — GRAND GULF. — NATCHEZ. Descending the Mississippi, the first point of interest you pass is Davis's Bend, the former home of the President of the Confederacy. A curve of the river encircles a pear-shaped peninsula twenty-eight miles in circumference, with a cut-off across the neck seven hundred yards in length, converting it into an island. There is a story told of a man who, setting out to walk on the levee to Natchez, from Mr. Joe Davis's planta- tion, which adjoins that of his brother JeiEf, unwittingly made the circuit of this island, and did not discover his mistake until he found himself at night on the spot from which he had started in the morning. About a mile from the river stands the Jeff Davis Man- sion, with its wide verandas and pleasant shade -trees. The plantation comprises a thousand acres of tillable land, now used as a Home Farm for colored paupers, under the superin- tendence of a sub-commissioner of the Bureau. Here are congregated the old, the orphaned, the infirm, and many whose energies of body and mind were prematurely worn out under the system which the Confederacy was designed to glorify and perpetuate. Here you find the incompetent and thriftless. Some have little garden-spots, on which they worked last season until their vegetables were ripe, when they stopped work and went to eating the vegetables. The government cultivates cotton with their labor ; and once, at a critical period, it was neces- sary to commence ejecting them from their quarters in order to compel them to work to keep the grass down. The freedmen on the other plantations of the island repre- 384: DAVIS'S BEND. — GRAKD GULF. — NATCHEZ. sent other qualities of the race. Besides the Home Farm there are five thousand acres divided into farms and home- steads, cultivated by the negroes on their own account, and paying a large rent to the government. On these little farms twenty-five hundred bales of cotton were raised last year, be- sides large quantities of corn, potatoes, and other produce. Many of the tenants had only their naked hands to begin with : they labored with hoes alone the first year, earning money to buy mules and ploughs the next. The signal success of the colony perhaps indicates the future of free labor in the South, and the eventual division of the large plantations into home- steads to be sold or rented to small farmers This system suits the freedman better than any other ; and under it he is indus- trious, prosperous, and happy. There were about three thousand people at the Bend. Some worked a few acres, others took large farms, and hired laborers. Fifty had accumulated five thousand dollars each during the past two years ; and one hundred others had accumulated from one to four thousand dollars. Some of these rising cap- italists had engaged Northern men to rent plantations for tho coming year, and to take them in as partners, — the new black code of Mississippi prohibiting the leasing of lands to the freed- men. The colony is self-governing, under the supervision of the sub-commissioner. There are three courts, each having its colored judge and sheriff. The offender, before being put on tx'ial, can decide whether he will be tried by a jury, or have his case heard by the judge alone. Pretty severe sentences are sometimes pronounced ; and it is found that the negro will take cheerfully twice the punishment from one of his own color that he will from a white court. Some sound sense often falls from the lips of these black Solomons. Here is a sample. A colored man and his mother are brought up for stealing a bag of corn. Judge : "Do you choose to be tried by a jury ? " Culprit (not versed m the technicalities of the court) : "What'sdat?" A COLOEED COURT. 385 Judge : " Do you want twelve men to come in and help me ? " Culprit, emphatically : " No, sah ! " — for he thinks one man will probably be too much for him. Judge, sternly : " Now listen you ! You and your mother are a couple of low-down darkies, trying to get a li\-ing with- out work. You are the cause that respectable colored people are slandered, and called thieving and lazy niggers ; when it 's only the likes of you that 's thieving and lazy. Now this is what I "11 do with you. If you and your mother will hire out to-day, and go to work like honest people, I '11 let you off on good behavior. If you won't, I '11 send you to Captain Nor- ton. That means, you '11 go up with a sentence. And I 'II tell you what your sentence will be : three months' hard labor on the Home Farm, and the ball and chain in case you attempt to run away. Now which will you do ? " Culprit, eagerly : " I '11 hire out, sah ! " And a contract is made for him and his mother on the spot. The next point of interest is Grand Gulf; the only place that offered any resistance to our gunboats between Vicksburg and Port Hudson. It had before the war a thousand inhabi- tants, three churches, and several steam-mills. Water and fire appear to have conspired against it. The Yankees burned every vestige of the village, and the river has torn awaj' a large section of the bank on which it stood. A number of cheap whitewashed wooden buildings have taken its place on the shore ; above and behind which rises a steep rocky bluff, covered with sparse timber, sedge, and cane-brakes, and crowned by Rebel batteries. There was formerly an extensive whirlpool below the con- fluence of the Big Black with the Mississippi, which had worn a gulf six hundred feet deep, just above this place : hence its name. Grand Gulf. This immense chasm has been filled, since the beginning of the war, by the river that excavated it ; and where the whirlpool was there is now a solid sand-bar over- grown with cotton-Avood bushes. Opposite the town, on the Louisiana side, there is another sand-bar, bare and low, occu- 25 386 DAVIS'S BEND. — GRAND GULF. —NATCHEZ. pying the place of a fine plantation that flourished there before the war. A hundred and twenty miles below Vicksburg is Natchez, one of the most romantically and beautifully situated cities in the United States. It is built on an almost precipitous bluff, one hundred and fifty feet above the river, which is overlooked by a delightful park and promenade along the city fi'ont. The landing is under the bluff. The " Quitman " (in which I had taken passage) stopped several hours at Natchez getting on board a quantity of cot- ton. Above Vicksburg, I noticed that nearly all the cotton was going northward : below, it was going the other way, toward New Orleans. At every town, and at nearly every plantation landing, we took on board, sometimes a hundred bales and more, sometimes but two or three, until the " Quit- man " showed two high white walls of cotton all round her guards, which were sunk to the water's edge. She was con- structed to carry forty-three hundred bales. On the levee at Natchez I made the acquaintance of an old plantation overseer. He knew all about cotton raising. " I 've overseed in the swamps, and I 've overseed on the hills. You can make a bale to the acre in the swamps, and about one bale to two acres on the hills. I used to get ten to fifteen hundred dollars a year. I 'm hiring now to a Northern man, wdio gives me three thousand. A Northern man will want to fret more out of the nio-o-crs than we do. Mine said to me last night, ' I want you to get the last drop of sweat and the last pound of cotton out of my niggers ; ' and I shall do it. I can if anybody can. There 's a heap in humbnggin' a nig- ger. I worked a gang this summer, and got as much work out of 'em as I ever did. I just had my leading nigger, and I says to him, I says, ' Sam, I want this yer crop out by such a time ; noM' you go a-head, talk to the niggers, and lead 'em off right smart, and I '11 give you twenty-five dollars.' Then I got up a race, and give a few dollars to the men that picked the most cotton, till I found out the extent of what each man could pick ; then I required that of him every day, or I docked his waffes." THE GERIHAKS AND NEGROES. 387 As we were talking, the mate of the " Quitman " took up an oyster-shell and threw it at the head of one of the deck-hands, who did not handle the cotton to suit him. It did not hurt the negro's head much, but it hurt his feelings. " Out on the plantations," observed my friend the overseer, " it would cost him fifty dollars to hit a nigger that way. It cost me a hundred and fifty dollars just for knocking down three niggers lately, — fifty dollars a piece, by ! " He thought the negroes were going to be crowded out by the Germans ; and went on to say, with true Southern con- sistency, — " The Germans want twenty dollars a month, and we can hire the niggers for ten and fifteen. The Germans will die in our swamps. Then as soon as they get money enough to buy a cart and mule, and an acre of land somewhar, whar they can plant a grape-vine, they '11 go in for themselves." 388 THE LOWER MISSISSIPPI. CHAPTER LV. THE LOWER MISSISSIPPI. We were nearly all night at Natchez loading cotton. The next clay, I noticed that the men worked languidly, and that the mate was plying them with whiskey. I took an oppor- tunity to talk with him about them. He said, — " We have a hundred and eighty hands aboard, all told. Thar 's sixty deck-hands. That a'n't enough. We ought to have reliefs, when we 're shipping freight day and night as we are now." I remarked : ''A gentleman who came up to Vicksburg in the ' Fashion,' stated, as an excuse for the long trip she made, that the niggers would n't work, — that the mates could n't make them work." He replied : " I reckon the hands on board the ' Fashion ' are about in the condition these are. These men are used up. They ha'n't had no sleep for four days and nights. I 've seen a man go to sleep many a time, standing up, with a box on his shoulder. We pay sixty dollars a month, — more 'n almost any other boat, the work is so hard. But we get rid of pay- ing a heap of 'em. When a man gets so used up he can't stand no more, he quits. He don't dare to ask for wages, for he knows he '11 get none, without he sticks by to the end of the trip." While we were talking, a young fellow, not more than twenty years old, came up, looking very much exhausted, and told the mate he was sick. " Ye a'n't sick neither ! " roared the mate at him, fiercely. " You 're lazy ! If you won't work, go ashore." The fellow limped away again, and went ashore at the next landing;. TOILSOME WORK AN"D BRUTAL TREATMENT. 389 *' Is he sick or lazy ? " I asked. " Neither. He 's used up. He was as smart a hand as I bad when he came aboard. But they can't stand it." " Was it always so ? " " No ; before the war we had men trained for this work. We had some nigo-ers, but more white men. We could n't git all the niggers we wanted ; a fifteen hundred dollar man wore out too cj^uick." " The whites were the best, I suppose." " The niggers was the best. They was niore active getting down bales. They liked the fun. They stand it better than white men. Business stopped, and that set of hands all dropped off, — went into the war, the most of 'em. Now we have to take raw hands. These are all plantation niggers. Not one of 'ra '11 ship for another trip ; they 've had enough of it. Thar 's no compellin' 'em. You can't hit a nigger now, but these d d Yankee sons of b s have you up and make you pay for it." I told him if that was the case, I did n't think I should hit one. " They 've never had me up," he resumed. " When I tackle a nigger, it '11 be whar thar an't no witnesses, and it '11 be the last of him. That 's what ought to be done with 'em, — kill 'em all off. I like a nigger in his place, and that 's a servant, if thar 's any truth in the Bible." This allusion to Scripture, from lijjs hot with words of wrath and wrong, was especially edifying. The " Quitman " was a fine boat, and passengers, if not deck-hands, fared sumptuously on board of her. The table was equal to that of the best hotels. An excellent quality of claret wine was furnished, as a part of the regular dinner fare, after the French fashion, which appears to have been intro- duced into this country by the Creoles, and which is to be met with, I believe, only on the steamboats of the Lower Mississippi. On the " Quitman," as on the boat from Memphis to Vicks- burg, I made the acquaintance of all sorts of Southern people. The conversation of some of them is worth recording. 390 THE LOWEE MISSISSIPPI. One, a Mississippi planter, learning that I was a Northern man, took me aside, and with much emotion, asked if I thought there was " any chance of the government paying us for our niffSers." " What niiXffers ? " " Tlie niggers you 've set free by this abolition war." " This abolition war you brought upon yourselves ; and paying you for your slaves would be like paying a burglar for a pistol lost on your premises. No, my friend, believe me, you will never get the first cent, as long as this government lasts." He looked deeply anxious. But he still cherished a hope. " I 've been told by a heap of our people that we shall get our pay. Some are talking about buying nigger claims. They expect, when oiu' representatives get into Congress, there '11 be an appropriation made." He went on : "I did one mighty bad thing. To save my niggers, I run 'em off into Texas. It cost me a heap of money. I came back without a dollar, and found the Yankees had taken all my stock, and everything, and my niggers was free, after all. ' Jim B , from Warren County, ten miles from Vicksburg, was a Mississippi planter of a different type, — jovial, gener- ous, extravagant in his speech, and, in his habits of living, fast. " My niggers are all with me yet, and you can't get 'em to leave me. The other day my boy Dan drove me into town ; when we got thar, I says to him, ' Dan, ye want any money? ' ' Yes, master, I 'd like a little ? ' I took out a ten-dollar bill and give him. Another nigger says to him, ' Dan, what did that man give you money for?' 'That man?' says Dan; ' I belongs to him.' ' No, you don't belong to nobody now ; you 're free.' ' Well,' says Dan, ' he provides for me, and gives me money, and he 's my master, any way.' I give my boys a heap more money than I should if I just hired 'em. We go right on like we always did, and I pole 'em if they don't do right. This year I says to 'em, ' Boys, I 'm going to make a bargain with you. I '11 roll out the ploughs and the mules and AN ARKANSAS PLANTER. 391 the feed, and yovi sliall do the work ; we '11 make a crop of cotton, and you shall have half. I '11 provide for ye, give ye quarters, treat ye well, and when ye v/on't work, pole ye like I always have. They agreed to it, and I put it into the con- tract that I was to whoop 'era when I pleased." Jim was very enthusiastic about a girl that belonged to him. " She's a perfect mountain-spout of a woman ! " (if anybody knows what that is.) " When the Yankees took me prisoner, she froze to a trunk of mine, and got it out of tlie Avay with fifty thousand dollars Confederate money in it." He never wearied of praising her fine qualities. " She 's black outside, but she 's white inside, shore ! " And he spoke of a sou of hers, then twelve years old, with an interest and affection which led me to inquire about the child's father. " Well," said Jim, with a smile, " he 's a perfect little image of me, only a shade blacker." An Arkansas planter said : " I 've a large plantation near Pine Bluff". I furnish everything but clothes, and give my freedmen one third of the crop they make. On twenty plan- tations around me, there are ten different styles of contracts. Niggers are working well ; but you can't get only about two thirds as much out of 'em now as you could when they were slaves " (Avhich I suppose is about all that ought to be got out of them). " The nigger is fated : he can't live with the white race, now he 's free. I don't know one I 'd trust with fifty dollars, or to manage a crop and control the proceeds. It will be generations before we can feel friendly towards the North- ern people." I remarked : " I have travelled months in the South, and expressed my sentiments freely, and met with better treatment than I could have expected five years ago." " That 's true ; if you had expressed aooHtion sentiments then, you 'd have woke up some morning and found yourself hanging from some limb." Of the war he said : " Slavery was really what we were fighting for, although the leaders did n't talk that to the people. They saw the slave interest was losing power in the Unioii» and trying to straighten it up, they tipped it over." S92 THE LOWER I^nSSISSIPPI. A Louisiana planter, from Lake Providence, — and a A-ery intelligent, well-bred gentleman, — said : " Negroes do best when they have a share of the crop ; the idea of working for themselves stimnlates them. Planters are afraid to trust them to manage ; but it 's a great mistake. I know an old negro who, with three children, made twenty-five bales of cot- ton this year on abandoned land. Another, with two women and a blind mule, made twenty-seven bales. A gang of fifty made three hundred bales, — all without any advice or assist- ance from white men. I was always in favor of educating and elevating the black race. Tlie laws were against it, but I taught all my slaves to read the Bible. Each race has its peculiarities : the negro has his, and it remains to be seen what can be done with him. Men talk about his stealing: no doubt he '11 steal : but circumstances have cultivated that habit. Some of my neighbors could n't have a pig, but their niggei-S would steal it. But mine never stole from me, becau.se they had enough without stealing. Giving them the elective fran- chise just now is absurd ; but when they are prepared for it, and they will be some day, I shall advocate it." Another Louisianian, agent of the Hope Estate, near Wa- ter-Proof, in Tensas Parish, said : " I manage five thousand acres, — fourteen hundred under cultivation. I always fed my niggers well, and rarely found one that would steal, IMy neighbors' niggers, half-fed, hard-worked, they 'd steal, and I never blamed 'em. Nearly all mine stay with me. They 've done about two thirds the work this year they used to, for one seventh of the crops. Heap of niggers around me have never received anything; they 're only just beginning to learn that they 're free. Many planters keep stores for niggers, and sell 'em flour, prints, jewelry and trinkets, and charge two or three prices for everything. I think God intended the niggers to be slaves ; we have the Bible for that : " always the Bible. " Now since man has deranged God's plan, I think the best we can do is to keep 'em as near a state of bondage as possible, I don't believe in educating 'em." "Why not ^' TALK WITH THE DECK PASSENGERS. 393 " One reason, schooling would enable them to comj^ete with white mechanics." " And why not ? " " It would be a disadvantage to the whites," he replied, — as if that was the only thing to be considered by men with the Bible in their mouths ! "In Mississippi, opposite Water-Proof, there 's a minister collecting money to buy plantations in a white man's name, to be divided in little farms of ten and fif- teen acres for the niggers. He could n't do that thing in my parish : he 'd soon be dangling from some tree. There is n't a freedman taught in our parish ; not a school ; it would n't be allowed." He admitted that the war was brought on by the Southern leaders, but thought the North " ought to be lenient and give them all their rights." Adding: " What we want chiefly is to legislate for the freedmen. Another thing : the Confeder- ate debt ought to be assumed by the government. We shall try hard for that. If we can't get it, if the North continues to treat us as a subjugated people, the thing will have to be tried over again," — meaning the war. " We must be left to manage the nigger. He can 't be made to work without force." (He had just said his niggers did two thirds as much work as formerly.) " My theory is, feed 'em well, clothe 'em well, and then, if they won't work, d — n 'em, whip 'em well ! " I did not neglect the deck-passengers. These were all ne- groes, except a family of white refugees from Arkansas, who had been burnt out twice during the war, once near Little Rock, and again in Tennessee, near Memphis. With the little remnant of their possessions they were now going to seek their fortunes elsewhere, — ill-clad, starved-looking, sleeping on deck in the rain, coiled around the smoke-pipe, and covered with ragged bedclothes. The talk of the negroes was always entertaining. Here is a sample, from the lips of a stout old black woman : — " De best ting de Yankees done was to break de slavery chain. I should n't be here to-day if dey had n't. I 'm going to see my mother." 394 THE LOWER MISSISSIPPI. " Your mother must be very old." " You may know she 's dat, for I 'ra one of her baby chiPn, and I 's got 'leven of my own. I 've a heap better time now 'n I had wlien I was in bondage. I had to nus' my chiFn four times a day and pick two hundred pounds cotton besides. My third husband went off to de Yankees. My first was sold away from me. Now I have my second husband again ; I was sold away from him, but I found him again, after I 'd lived with my third husband thirteen years." I asked if he was willing to take her back. " He was willing to 'have me again 07i any terms,^^ — em- phatically — " for he knowed I was Number One ! " Several native French inhabitants took passage at various points along the river, below the Mississippi line. All spoke very good French, and a few conversed well in English. One, from Point Couple Parish, said : " Before the war, there were over seventeen thousand inhabitants in our parish." (In Lou- isiana a county is called a parish.) " Nearly thirteen thou- sand were slaves. Many of the free inhabitants were colored ; so that there were about four colored persons to one white. We made yearly between eight and nine thousand hogsheads of sugar, and fifteen hundred bales of cotton. The war has left us only three thousand inhabitants. We sent fifteen hun- dred men into the Confederate army. All the French popu- lation were in favor of secession. The white inhabitants of these parishes are mostly French Creoles. We treated our slaves better than the Americans treated theirs. We did n't work them so hard ; and there was more familiarity and kindly feel- ine: between us and our servants. The children were raised together ; and a white child .learned the negroes' patois before he learned French. The patois is curious : a negro says ' 3foi pas connais ' for ' Je ne sais pas ' (I do not know) ; and they use a great many African words which you would not under- stand. Our slaves were never sold except to settle an estate. Besides these two classes there was a third, quite separate, which did not associate with either of the others. They were the free colored, of French- African descent, some almost or THE LEVEES. 395 quite white, with many large property holders and slave-own- ers among them ; a very respectable class, forming a society of their own." The villages and plantation dwellings along here, with their low roofs and sunny verandas, on the level river bank, had a peculiarly foreign and tropical appearance. The levees of Louisiana form a much more extensive and complete system than those of Mississippi. In the latter State there is much hilly land that does not need their protection, and much swamp land not worth protecting ; and there is, I believe, no law regarding them. In the low and level State of Louisiana, however, a large and fertile part of which lies considerably below the level of high water, there is very strict legislation on the subject, compelling every land-owner on the river to keep up his levees. This year the State itself had undertaken to repair them, issuing eight per cent, bonds to the amount of a million dollars for the purpose, — the expense of the work to be defrayed eventually by the planters. For a long distance the Lower Mississippi, at high Avater, appears to be flowing upon a ridge. The river has built up its own banks higher than the country which lies back of them ; and the levees have raised them still higher. Behind this fer- tile strip there are extensive swamps, containing a soil of un- surpassed depth and richness, but unavtiilable for want of drain- age. Three methods are proposed kbr bringing them under cultivation. First, to surround them by levees, ditch them, and pump the water out by steam. Second, to cut a canal through them to the Gulf. Third, to turn the Mississippi into them, and fill them with its alluvial deposit. This last method is no doubt the one Nature intended to employ ; and it is the opinion of many that man, confining the flow of the stream within artificial limits, attempted the settlement of this country several centuries too soon. A remarkable feature of Louisiana scenery is its forests of cypress-trees growing out of the water, heavy, sombre, and shaggy with moss. The complexion of the river water is a light mud-color, 396 THE LOWER MISSISSIPPI. which it derives from the turbid Missouri, — the Upper Mis sissippi being a clear stream. Pour off a glass of it after it has been standing a short time, and a sediment of dark mud appears at the bottom. Notwithstanding this unpleasant pecul- iarity, it is used altogether for cooking and drinking purposes on board the steamboats, and I found New Orleans supplied with it. A curious fact has been suggested with regard to this won- derful river, — that it runs tip hill. Its mouth is said to be two and a half miles higher — or farther from the earth's cen- tre — than its source. When we consider that the earth is a spheroid, with an axis shorter by twenty-six miles than its equa- torial diameter ; and that the same . centrifugal motion which has caused the equatorial protuberance tends still to heap up the waters of the globe where that motion is greatest ; the seeming impossibility appears possible, — just as we see a re- volving grindstone send the water on its surface to the rim. Stop the grindstone, and the water flows down its sides. Stop the earth's revolution, and immediately you will see the Mis- sissippi River turn and flow the other way. Some years ago I made a voyage of several days on the Upper IMississippi, to the head of navigation. It was difficult to realize that this was the same stream on which I was now sailing day after day in an opposite direction, — six days in all, fi'om Memphis to New Orleans. From St. Anthony's Falls to the Gulf, the Mississippi is navigable twenty-two hun- dred miles. Its entire length is three thousand miles. Its great tributary, the Missouri, is alone three thousand miles in length : measured from its head-waters to the Gulf, it is four thousand five hundred miles. Consider also the Ohio, the Arkansas, the Red River, and the hundred lesser streams that fall into it, and well may we call it by its Indian name, Michi- Sepe, the Father of Waters. fre:n'ch quarter. — names of streets. 397 CHAPTER LVI. THE CRESCENT CITY. On the morning of January 1st, 1866, I arrived at New Orleans, It was midwinter ; but the mild sunny weather that followed the first chill days of rain, made me fancy it May. The gar- dens of the city were verdant with tropical plants. White roses in full bloom climbed upon trellises or the verandas of houses. Oleander trees, bananas with their broad drooping leaves six feet long, and Japan plums that ripen in February, grew side by side in the open air. There were orange-trees whose golden fruit could be picked from the balconies which they half concealed. Magnolias, gray-oaks and live-oaks, some heavily hung with moss that swung in the breeze like waving hair, shaded the yards and streets. I found the road- sides of the suburbs green with grass, and the vegetable gar- dens checkered and striped with delicately contrasting rows of lettuce, cabbages, carrots, beets, onions, and peas in blossom. The French quarter of the city impresses you as a foreign town transplanted to the banks of the Mississippi. Many of the houses are very ancient, with low, moss-covered roofs pro- jecting over the first story, like slouched hat-brims over quaint old faces. The more modern houses are often very elegant, and not less picturesque. The names of the streets are Pagan, foreign, and strange. The gods and muses of mythology, the saints of the Church, the Christian virtues, and modern heroes, are all here. You have streets of " Good Children," of " Piety," of " Apollo," of " St. Paul," of " Euterpe," and all their rela- tions. The shop-signs are in French, or in French and English. The people you meet have a foreign air and speak a foreign tongue. Their complexions range through all hues, from the 398 THE CRESCENT CITY. dark Creole to the ebon African. The anomalous third class of Louisiana — the respectable free colored people of French- African descent — are largely represented. Dressed in silks, accompanied by their servants, and speaking good French, — for many of them are well educated, — the ladies and children of this class enter the street cars, which they enliven with the Parisian vivacity of their conversation. The mingling of foreign and American elements has given to New Orleans a great variety of styles of architecture ; and the whole city has a light, picturesque, and agreeable appear- ance. It is built upon an almost level strip of land bordering upon the left bank of the river, and falling back from the levee with an imperceptible slope to the cypress and alligator swamps m the rear. The houses have no cellars. I noticed that the surface drainage of the city flowed hack from the river into the Bayou St. John, a navigable inlet of Lake Ponchartrain. The old city front lay upon a curve of the Mississippi, which gave it a crescent shape : hence its poetic soubriquet. The modern city has a river front seven miles in extent, bent like the letter S. The broad levee, lined with wharves on one side and belted by busy streets on the other, crowded with merchandise, and thronged with merchants, boatmen, and laborers, presents al- ways a lively and entertaining spectacle. Steam and sailing crafts of every description, arriving, departing, loading, unload- ing, and fringing the city with their long array of smoke-pipes and masts, give you some idea of the commerce of New Or- leans. Here is the great cotton market of the world. In looking over the cotton statistics of the jiast thirty years, I found that nearly one half the crop of the United States had passed through this port. In 1855-1856 (the mercantile cotton year beginning September 1st and ending August 31st) 1,795,023 bales were shipped from New Orleans, — 986,622 to Great Britain (chiefly to Liverpool) ; 244,814 to France (chiefly to Havre) ; 162,657 to the North of Europe ; 178,812 to the South of Europe, Mexico, &c. ; and 222,100 coastwise, - COTTON STATISTICS. — THE ST. CHARLES. 399 151,469 going to Boston and 51,340 to New York. In 1859- 1860, 2,214,296 bales were exported, 1,426,966 to Great Brit- ain, 313,291 to France, and 208,634 coastwise, — 131,648 going to Boston, 62,936 to New York, and 5,717 to Provi- dence. This, it will be remembered, was the great cotton year, the crop amounting to near 5,000,000 bales. One is interested to learn how much cotton left this port during the war. In 1860-1861, 1,915,852 bales were shipped, nearly all before hostilities began ; in 1861-1862, 27,627 bales ; in 1862-1863, " 23,750 ; in 1863-1864, 128,130 ; in 1864- 1865, 192,351. The total receipts during this last year were 271,015 bales. From September 1st, 1865, to January 1st, 1866, the receipts were 375,000 bales ; and cotton was still coming. The warehouses on the lower tributaries of the Mis- sissippi were said to be full of it, waiting for high water to send it down. There had been far more concealed In the country than was supposed : it made its appearance where least looked for ; and such was the supply that experienced traders believed that prices would thenceforth be steadily on the de- cline. A first-class Liverpool steamer is calculated to take out 3000 600-pound bales, the freight on which is 7-8ths of a penny per pound, — not quite two cents. The freight to New York and Boston is 1 1-4 th cents by steanrers, and 7-8ths of a cent by sailing-vessels. I put up at the St. Charles, famous before the war as a hotel, and during the war as the head-quarters of General Butler. It is a conspicuous edifice, with white-pillared porticos, and a spacious Rotunda, thronged nightly with a crowd which strikes a stranger with astonishment. It is a sort of social evening exchange, where merchants, planters, travellers, river-men, army men, (principally Rebels,) manufacturing and jobbing agents, showmen, overseers, idlers, sharpers, gamblers, foreign- ers, Yankees, Southern men, the well dressed and the prosper- ous, the rough and the seedy, congregate together, some lean- ing against the pillars, and a few sitting about the stoves, which are almost hidden from sight by the concourse of people stand- 400 THE CRESCENT CITY. ing or moving about in the great central space. Numbers of citizens regularly spend their evenings here, as at a club-room. One, an old plantation overseer of the better class, told me that for years he had not missed going to the Rotunda a single night, except when absent from the city. The character he gave the crowd was not complimentary. " They are all trying to get money without earning it. Each is doing his best to shave the rest. If they ever make any- thing, I don't know it. I 've been here two thousand nights, and never made a cent yet." I inquired what brought him here. " For company ; to kill time. I never was married, and never had a home. When I was young, the girls said I smelt like a wet dog ; that 's because I was poor. Since I 've got rich, I 'm too old to get married." What he was thinking of now was a fortune to be made out of labor-saving machinery to be used on the plantations : " I wish I could get hold of a half-crazy feller, to fix up a cotton planter, cotton-picker, cane-cutter, and a thing to hill up some." He talked cynically of the planters. " They 're a help- less set. They 're all confused. They don't know what they 're going to do. They never did know much else but to get drunk. If a man has a plantation to rent or sell, he can 't tell anything about it ; you can't get any proposition out of him." He complained that Northern capital lodged in the cotton belt ; but little of it getting through to the sugar country. He did not know any lands let to Northern men. " They hav'n't got sugar on the brain ; it 's cotton they 're all crazy after." He used to oversee for fifteen hundred dollars a year : he was now offered five thousand. He was a well-dressed, rather intelligent, capable man ; and I noticed that the planters treated him with respect. But his manner toward them was cool and independent : he could not forget old times. " I never was thought anything of by these men, till I got rich. Then they began to say ' Dick P is a mighty clever feller ; ' and by- OVEESEERS. - GEN. SHERIDAN". 401 and-by it got to be ' Mi*. P .' Now they all come to me, because I know about business, and they don't know a thing." Like everybody else, he had much to say of the niggers. *'A heap of the planters wants 'em all killed off. But I be- lieve in the nigger. He '11 work, if they '11 only let him alone. They fool him, and tell him such lies, he 's no confidence. I 've worked free niggers and white men, and always found the niggers worked the best. But no nigger, nor anybody else, will work like a slave works with the whip behind him. You can't make 'em. 1 was brought up to work alongside o' nig- gers, and soon as I got out of it, nothing, no money, could induce me to work so again." Speaking of other overseers, he said : " I admit I i^as about as tight on the nigger as a man ought to be. If I 'd been a slave, I should n't have wanted to work under a master that was tighter than I was. But I wa'n't a priming to some. You see that red-faced feller with 'lis right hand behind him, talking with two men ? He 's ai^ overseer. I know of his killing two niggers, and torturing another so that he died in a few days." (I omit the shocking details of the punishment said to have been applied.) " The other night he came here to kill me because I told about him. He pulled out his pistol, and sa,ys he, ' Dick P , did you tell so-and-so I killed three niggers on Clark's plantation ? ' ' Yes,' I says, ' I said so, and can prove it ; and if there 's any shooting to be done, I can shoot as fast as you can.' After that he bullied around here some, then went off, and I hav'n't heard anything about shooting since." Among the earliest acquaintances I made at New Orleans was General Phil. Sheridan, perhaps the most brilliant and popular fighting man of the war. I found him in command of the Military Division of the Gvilf, comprising the States of Louisiana, Texas, and Florida. In Florida he had at that time seven thousand troops ; in Louisiana, nine thousand ; and in Texas, twenty thousand, embracing ten thousand colored troops at Corpus Christi and on the Rio Grande, watching the French movements. 402 THE CRESCENT CITY. It was Sheridan's opinion that the Rebellion would never be ended until Maximilian was driven from Mexico. Such a. government on our borders cherished the seeds of ambition and discontent in the minds of the late Confederates. Many were emigrating to Mexico, and there was danger of their uniting either with the Liberals or the Imperialists, and form- ing a government inimical to the United States. To prevent such a possibility, he had used military and diplomatic strat- egy. Three thousand Rebels having collected in Monterey, he induced the Liberals to arrest and disarm them. Then in order that they should not be received by the Imperialists, he made hostile demonstrations, sending a pontoon train to Brownsville, and six thousand cavalry to San Antonio, estab- lishing military posts, and making extensive inquiries for forage. Under such circumstances, Maximilian did not feel inclined to w^elcome the Rebel refugees. It is even probable that, had our government at that time required the with- drawal of the French from Mexico, the demand, emphasized by these and similar demonstrations, would have been com- plied with. Maximilian is very weak in his position. Nine- teen twentieths of the people ar,e opposed to him. There is no regular, legitimate taxation for the support of his govern- ment, but he levies contributions upon merchants for a small part of the funds he requires, and draws upon France for the rest. His " government " consists merely of an armed occu- pation of the country; with long lines of communication be- tween military posts, which could be easily cut off and captured one after another by a comparatively small force. The Southern country, in the General's opinion, was fast becoming " Northernized." It was very poor, and going to be poorer. The planters had no enterprise, no recuperative energy : they were entirely dependent upon Northern capital and Northern spirit. He thought the freedmen's affairs re- quired no legislation, but that the State should leave them to be regulated by the natural law of supply and demand. Phil. Sheridan is a man of small stature, compactly and somewhat massively built, with great toughness of eonstitu- DEEDS AND PROFESSIOJs^S. 403 tional fibre, and an alert countenance, expressive of remark- able energy and force. I inquired if lie experienced no reaction after the long strain upon his mental and bodily powers occa- sioned by the war. " Only a pleasant one," he replied. " During my Western campaigns, when I was continually in the saddle, I weighed but a hundred and fifteen pounds. My flesh was hard as iron. Now my weight is a hundred and forty-five." He went over with me to the City Hall, to which the Executive department of the State had been removed, and introduced me to Governor Wells, a plain, elderly man, affa- ble, and loyal in his speech. I remember his saying that the action of the President, in pardoning Governor Humphreys, of Mississippi, after he had been elected by the people on account of his services in the Confederate cause, was doing great harm througliout the South, encouraging Rebels and discouraging Union men. " Everything is being conceded to traitors," said he, " before they have been made to feel the Federal power." He spoke of the strong Rebel element in the Legislature which he was combating ; and gave me copies of two veto messages which he had returned to it with bills that were passed for the especial benefit of traitors. The new serf code, similar to that of Mississippi, engineered through the Legislature by a member of the late Confedei'ate Congress, he had also disapproved. After this, I was surprised to hear from other sources how faithfidly he had been carrying out the very policy which he professed to condemn, — even going beyond the President, in removing from office Union men ap- pointed by Governor Hahn and appointing Secessionists and Rebels in their place ; and advocating the Southern doc- trine that the Government must pay for the slaves it had emancipated. Such discrepancies between deeds and pro- fessions require no comment. Governor Wells is not the only one, nor the highest, among public officers, who, wishing to reconcile the irreconcilable, and to stand well before the country whilst they were strengthening the hands and gaining the favor of its enemies, have suffered their loyal protestations to be put to some confusion by acts of doubtful patriotism. 404 TILE CRESCENT CITY. At the Governor's room I had the good fortune to meet the Mayor of the city, Mr. Hugh Kennedy, whom I afterwards called upon by appomtment. By birth a Scotchman, he had been thirty years a citizen of New Orleans, and, from the beginning of the Secession troubles, had shown himself a stanch patriot. He Avas appointed to the mayoralty by Presi- dent Lincoln ; General Banks removed him, but he was after- wards reinstated. I found him an almost enthusiastic believer in the future greatness of New Orleans. " It is certain," he said, " to double its population in ten years. Its prosperity dates from the day of the abolition of slavery. Men who formerly lived upon the proceeds of slave-labor are now stimulated to enter- prise. A dozen industrial occupations will spring up where there was one before. Manufactures are already taking a start. We have two new cotton-mills just gone into opera- tion. The effect upon the whole country will be similar. Formerly planters went or sent to New York and Boston and laid in their supplies ; for this reason there were no villages in the South. But now that men work for wages, which they will wish to spend near home, villages will everyM'here spring up." Living, in New Orleans, he said, was very cheap. The fertile soil produces, with little labor, an abundance of vegeta- bles the year round. Cattle are brought from the extensive prairies of the State, and from the vast pastures of Texas : and contractors had engaged to supply the charitable institu- tions of the city with the rumps and rounds of beef at six cents a pound. The street railroads promised to yield a considerable reve- nue to the city. The original company paid only $130,000 for the privilege of laying down its rails, and an exclusive right to the track for twenty-five years. But two new roads had been started, one of wdiich had stipulated to pay to the city government eleven and a half per cent, of its gross pro- ceeds, and the other twenty-two and a half per cent. " In two or three years an annual income from that source will not be less than $200,000." A BLACK AKD WHITE STRIKE. 405 From Mr. Kennedy I learned that free people of color owned property in New Orleans to the amount of $15,000,000. He was delighted with the working of the free-labor system. " I thought it an indication of progress when the white labor- ers and negroes on the levees the other day made a strike for higlier wages. They were receiving two dollars and a half and three dollai's a day, and they struck for five and seven dollars. They marched up the levee in a long procession, white and black together. I gave orders that they should not be inter- fered with as long as they interfered with nobody else ; but when they undertook by force to prevent other laborers from working, the police promptly put a stop to their proceedings." 406 POLITICS, FREE LABOR, AND SUGAR. CHAPTER LVII. POLITICS, FEEE LABOR, AND SUGAE. Through the courtesy of the Mayor I became acquainted with some of the radical Union men of New Orleans. Like the same class in Richmond and elsewhere, I found them ex- tremely dissatisfied with the political situation and prospects. " Everything," they said, " has been given iip to traitors. The President is trying to help the nation out of its difficulty by restoring to power the very men who created the difficulty. To have been a good Rebel is now in a man's favor ; and to have stood by the government through all its trials is against him. If an original secessionist, or a time-serving, half-and- half Union man, ready to make any concession for the conven- ience of the moment, goes to Washington, he gets the ear of the administration, and comes away full of encouragement for the worst enemies the government ever had. If a man of principle goes to Washington, he gets nothing but plausible words which amount to nothing, if he is n't actually insulted for his trouble." I heard everywhere the same complaints from this class. And here I may state that they were among the saddest things I had to endure in the South. Whatever may be thought of the intrinsic merits of any measures, we cannot but feel misgivings when we see our late enemies made jubi- lant by them, and loyal men dismayed. The Union men of New Orleans were severe in their strict- ures on General Banks. " It was he," they said, " who pre- cipitated the organization of the State government on a Rebel basis. Read his Greneral Orders No. 35, issued March 11th, 1864, concerning the election of delegates to the Convention. Robels who have taken the amnesty oath are admitted to the FRENCH CREOLE. -JnSWSPAPERS. 407 polls, and loyal colored men are excluded. Section 4th reads, ' Every free white man,' &c. Since his return to Massachu- setts he has been making speeches in favor of negro suffrage. H(^ is in favor' of it there, where it is popular as an abstrac- tion, and a man gets into Congress on the strength of it ; but he was not in favor of it here, where there was a chance of making it practical. His excuse was, that if black men voted white men would take offence, and keep away from the polls. Very likely some white men would, but loyal white men would n't. That he had the power to extend the franchise to the blacks, or at least thought he had, may be seen bv his apology for not doing so, in which he says : ' I did not decide upon this subject without very long and serious consideration,' and so forth. So he let the great, the golden opportunity slip, of organizing the State government on a loyal basis, — of demonstrating the capacity of the colored man for self-govern- ment, and of setting an example to the other Rebel States." Being one day in the office of Mr. Durant, a prominent lawyer and Union man', I was much struck by the language and bearing of a gentleman who called upon him, and carried on a lono; conversation in French. Havino- understood that the Creoles were nearly all secessionists, I was surprised to hear this man give utterance to the most enlightened Repub- lican sentiments. After he had gone out, I expressed my gratification at having met him. " That," said Mr. Durant, " is one of the ablest and wealth- iest business men in New Orleans. He was educated in Paris. But there is one thing about him you do not seem to have sus- pected. He belongs to that class of Union men the govern- ment has made up its mind to leave politically bound in the hands of the Rebels. That man, whom you thought refined and intellifrent, has not the riaht which the most ignorant, Yankee-hating, negro-hating Confederate soldier has. He is a colored man, and has no vote." There were six daily newspapers published in New Orleans, — ' five in English and one in English and French, — besides several weeklies. There was but one loyal sheet among them, 408 POLITICS, FEEE LABOR, AKD SUGAR.- and that was a " nigger paper," the Tribune, not sold loy any newsboy, and, I believe, by but one news-dealer. I called on General T. W, Sherman, in command of the Eastern District of Louisiana, who told me that, in order to please the people, our troops had been withdrawn from the interior, and that the militia, consisting mostly of Rebel sol- diers, many of whom still wore the Rebel uniform, had been organized to fill their place. The negroes, whom they treated tyrannically, had been made to believe that it was the United States, and not the State government, that had thus set their enemies to keep guard over them. Both Governor Wells and General Sherman had received piles of letters from " prominent parties " expressing fears of negro insurrections. The most serious indications of bloody retribution preparing for the white race had been reported in the Teche country, where regiments of black cavalry were said to be organized and drilled. The General, on visiting the spot, and investigating the truth of the story, learned that it had its foundation in the fact that some negro boys had been playing soldier with wooden swords. No wonder the Rebel militia was thought necessary ! From General Balixi, Assistant-Commissioner, and General Gregg, Inspecting-Agent of the Freedmen's Bureau, I ob- tained official information recardine the condition of free labor in Louisiana. A detailed account of it would be but a recapit- ulation, with slight variations, of what I have said of free labor in other States. The whites were as ignorant of the true nature of the system as the blacks. Capitalists did not under- stand how they could secure labor without owning it, or how men could be induced to work without the whip. It was thought necessary to make a serf of him who was no longer a slave. To this end the Legislature had passed a code of black laws even more objectionable than that enacted by the Legislature of Mississippi. By its provisions freedmen were to be arrested as vagrants who had not, on the 10th of January, 1866, en- tered into contracts for the year. They were thus left little choice as to employers, and none as to terms. They v/ere a^so DEPENDENCE OF THE FREEDMJEN'. 409 subjected to a harsh system of fines and punishments for loss of time and the infraction of contracts ; and made responsible for all losses of stock on the plantation, until they should be able to prove that they had not killed it. Although these laws had not been approved by the Governor, there was no doubt but they would be approved and enforced as soon as the na- tional troops were removed. A majority of the Southern planters clamored for the with- drawal of the troops and the Freedmen's Bureau. But North- ern planters settled in the State as earnestly opposed the measure. " If the government's protection goes, we must go too. It would be impossible for us to live here without it. Planters would come to us and say, ' Here, you 've got a nig- ger that belongs to us ; ' they would claim him, under the State laws, and compel him to go and work for them. Not a first- class laborer could we be sure of." Here, as elsewhere, the fact that the freedmen had no inde- pendent homes, but lived in negro-quarters at the will of the owner, placed him under great disadvantages, which the pres- ence of the Bureau was necessary to counteract. The plant- ers desired nothing so much as to be left to manage the negroes with or without the help of State laws. " With that privilege," they said, " we can make more out of them than ever. The government must take care of the old and worthless niggers it has set free, and we will put through the able-bodied ones." The disposition to keep the freedmen in debt by furnishino- their supplies at dishonest prices, and to impose upon their helplessness and ignorance in various other ways, was veiy general. Fortunately there was a great demand for labor, and the freedmen, with the aid of the Bureau, were making favorable contracts with their employers. When encouraged by just treat ment and fiir wages, they were working well. But they were observed to be always happier, thriftier, and more comfortable, living in little homes of their own and working land on their own account, than in any other condition. " I believe," said General Gregg, " the best thing philanthropic Northern cap- 410 POLITICS, FREE LABOR, AND SUGAR. italists can do both for the freedmen and for themselves, is to buy up tracts of land, which can be had in some of the most fertile sections of Louisiana at two, three, and five dollars an acre, to be leased to the freedmen." The more enlightened planters were in favor of educating the blacks. But the majority were opposed to it ; so that in many parishes it was impossible to establish schools, while in others it had been very difficult. In January last there were 278 teachers in the State, instructing 19,000 pupils in 143 schools. The expenses, $20,000 a month, were defrayed by the Bureau from the proceeds of rents of abandoned and con- fiscated estates. But this source of revenue had nearly failed, in consequence of the indiscriminate pardoning of Rebel own- ers and the restoration of their property. In New Orleans, for example, the rents of Rebel estates had dwindled, in Octo- ber, 1865, to $8,000 ; in December, to $1,500 ; and they were still rapidly diminishing. The result was, it had been neces- sary to order the discontinuance of all the schools in the State at the end of January, the funds in the treasury of the Bureau being barely sufficient to hold out until that time. It was hoped, however, that they would soon be reestablished on a permanent basis, by a tax upon the freedmen themselves. For this purpose, the Assistant Commissioner had ordered that five per cent, of their wages should be paid by their employers to the agents of the Bureau. The freedmen's schools in New Orleans were not in session at the time I was there ; but I heard them highly pi^aised by those who had visited them. Here is Mr. Superintendent Warren's account of them : — " From the infant which must learn to count its fingers, to the scholar who can read and understand blank-verse, we have grades and departments adapted and free to all. Examinations, promotions, and gradations are had at stated seasons. The city is divided into districts ; each district has its school, and each school the several de- partments of primary, intermediate, and grammar. A principal is appointed to each school, with the requisite number of assistants. Our teachers are mostly from the North, with a few Southerners, who have heroically dared the storm of prejudice to do good and SUGAR PLANTATIONS, AND PROFITS. 411 right. The normal method of teaching is adopted, and object teach- ing is a specialty. " There are eight schools in the city, with from two to eight hun- dred pupils each, which, with those in the suburbs, amount to sixteen schools with nearly six thousand pupils and one hundred teachers." It was estimated that there were at least fifty thousand Northern men in Louisiana. Some were in the lumber busi- ness, which had been stimulated to great activity through- out the South. Many were working cotton plantations with every prospect of success ; a few had purchased, others were paying a fixed rent, wdiile some were furnishing capital to be refunded by the crop, of wdiich they were to have a third or a half. Occasionally I heard of one who had taken a sugar planta- tion. Mr. , a merchant of New York, told me he had for two years been working the Buena Vista plantation, in St. James Parish. He employed an agent, and visited the place himself once a year. There were twelve hundred acres under cultivation, for which he paid an annual rent of sixteen thou- sand dollars. There was one hundred thousand dollars' worth of machinery on the plantation. He employed sixty freedmen. They worked faithfully and well, but needed careful manage- ment. During the past year but one had deserted, while two had been discharged. They received one third of their wages monthly, and the remainder at the end of the year. " If they were paid in full as fast as their work was done, when sugar- making season comes they would be apt to quit, the labor is so hard, — though we pay them then fifty cents a night extra." I inquired concerning profits. " The first year we lost money. This year we have made it up, and more. Next year we shall be in full blast." It takes three years from the start to get a sugar plantation going ; and in two years, if neglected, the cane will run out. This is the case in Louisiana, — although I was told that in the West Indies some kinds of cane would yield twenty or thirty successive crops, without replanting. In some parts of the State, where the soil is too dry, or the climate too cold 412 POLITICS, FEEE LABOR, AXD SUGAR. for the most profitable cultivation, it requires replanting every year for the subsequent year's crop. The majority of the plantations in Lower Louisiana, said to be good for little else but sugar and sweet potatoes, were waste and unavailable. St. Mary's Parish had been almost entirely abandoned. The cane had run out ; seed-cane was not to be had ; and to recommence the culture an outlay of capital w^as necessary, from which no such immediate, bountiful returns could be anticipated as from the culture of cotton. The sugar region and the cotton belt overlap each other. Cane may be cultivated to some extent as far north as 34°, while cotton ranges as far south as 30°, although it can scarcely be considered a safe or profitable crop much below 31°. In 1850 there were in Louisiana 4205 cotton and 1558 sugar planta- tions. This year cotton is not only king, but a usurper, holding with uncertain tenure much of the special province of sugar. Good cotton plantations in Louisiana yield a bale (of five hundred pounds) to the acre. The sugar crop varies from five hundred to thirty-five hundred pounds, according to the fitness of the soil, the length of the season, and the mode of culture. A hogshead of eleven hundred and fifty pounds to the acre, is about an average crop. Five different varieties of cane are used by the planters of Louisiana. The cuttings from which it is propagated are called " seed-cane." They are cut in September, and laid in " mats," — a sort of stack adapted to protect them from frost. Cane IS usually planted between the months of October and March. Two or three stalks are laid together in prepared rows seven feet apart, and covered by five or six inches of soil. This is called the " mother-cane." In cold soil it rots, and is eaten by vermin. The first year's growth is called " plant- cane," and is ploughed and hoed like corn. On being cut, new stalks spring up from the roots. These subsequent year's stalks are called rattoons, — a West Indian word, derived from the Spanish retonne hundred and ninety- one miles ni length, was destroyed n-ith conscientious thor- oughness by Sherman's army. From Gordon, twenty miles below Macon, to Scarborough Station, nine miles below Mil- len, a distance of one hundred miles, there was still an impas- sable hiatus of bent rails and burnt bridges, at the time of my journey; and in order to reach Savannah from Macon, it was necessary to proceed by the Georgia road to Augusta, either returning by railroad to Atlanta, or crossing over by railroad and stage to Madison, between which places the Georgia road destroyed for a distance of sixty-seven miles, had been re- stored. From Augusta I went down on the Augusta and Savannah road to a station a few miles below Waynesboro', where a break in that road rendered it necessary to proceed by stages to Scarborough. From Scarborough to Savannah the road was once more in operation. The relaid tracks were very rough ; many of the old rails having been straightened and put down again. "General Grant and his staff passed over this road a short time ago," said a citizen ; " and as they went jolting along in an old box- car, on plain board seats, they seemed to think it was great fun : they said they were riding on Sherman's hair-pins;' — an apt name applied to the most frequent form in which the rails were bent. " Sherman's men had all sorts of machinery for destroying the track. They could rip it up as fast as they could count. They burnt the ties and fences to heat the iron ; then two men would take a bar and twist it or wrap it around a tree or a telegraph post. Our people found some of their iron- 502 SHERMAN IN EASTERN GEORGIA. benders, and they helped mightily about straightening the rails again. Only the best could be used. The rest the devil can't straighten." Riding along by the destroyed tracks, it was amusing to see the curious shapes in which the iron had been left. Hair-pins predominated. Corkscrews were also abundant. Sometimes we found four or five rails wound around the trunk of a tree, which would have to be cut before they could be got off again. And there was an endh ss varity of most ungeometrical twists and curves. The Central Railroad was probably the best in the State. Before the war its stock paid annual dividends of fifteen per cent., — one year as high as twenty seven and a half per cent. It owned property to the amount of a million and a half dol- lars, mostly invested in Europe. This will be nearly or quite sunk in repairing the damage done by Sherman. Then the road will have all of its bent iron, — for Sherman could not carry it away or burn it ; — and this was estimated to be worth two thirds as much as new iron. The track, composed partly of the T and partly of the U rail, was well laid ; and the station-houses were substantially built of brick. I was told that the great depot building at Millen, although of wood, was equal in size and beauty to the best structures of the kind in the North. Sherman did not leave a building on the road, from Macon to Savannah. For warehouses, I found box-cars stationed on the side tracks. The inhabitants of Eastern Georo-ia suffered even more than those of Middle Georgia from our army operations, — the men having got used to their wild business by the time they arrived there, and the General having, I suspect, slipped one glove off. Here is the story of an old gentleman of Burke County : — " It was the 14th Corps that came through my place. They looked like a blue cloud coming. They had all kinds of music, — horns, cow-bells, tin-pans, everything they could pick up that would make a hideous noise. It was like Bedlam broke loose. It was enough to frighten the old stumps in the dead- TREASURE HUi^TIKG. 503 enings, say nothing about the people. They burned every- thing but occupied dwellings. They cut the belluses at the blacksmith-shops. They took every knife and fork and cook- ing utensil we had. My wife just saved a frying-pan by hanging on to it ; she was considerable courageous, and thev left it in her hands. After that they came back to get her to cook them some biscuit. " ' How can I cook for you, when you 've carried off every- thing? ' she said. " They told her if she would make them a batch of biscuit they would bring back a sack of her own flour, and she should have the balance of it. She agreed to it ; but while the bis- cuit was baking, another party came along and carried the sack off again. " The wife of one of my neighbors, — a very rich family, brought up to luxuries, — just saved a single frying-pan, like we did. Their niggers and all went off with Sherman ; and for a week or two they had to cook their own victuals in that frying-pan, cut them with a pocket-knife, and eat them with their fingers. My folks had to do the same, but we had n't been brought up to luxuries, and did n't mind it so much, " General Sherman went into the house of an old woman after his men had been pillaging it. He sat down and drank a glass of water. Says she to him, ' I don't wonder people say you 're a smart man ; for you 've been to the bad place and got scrapings the devil would n't have.' His soldiers heard of it, and they took her dresses and hung them all up in the highest trees, and drowned the cat in the well. " A neighbor of mine buried all his gold and silver, and built a hog-pen over the spot. But the Yankees were mightv sharp at finding things. They mistrusted a certain new look about the hog-pen, ripped it away, stuck in their bayonets, and found the specie. " Another of my neighbors hid his gold under the brick floor of his smoke-house. He put down the bricks in the same place ; but the rascals smelt out the trick, pulled up the floor, got the gold, and then burnt the smoke-house. They 504 SHERMAN IN EASTERN GEORGIA. made him take off his boots and hat, which they wore away They left him an old Yankee hat, which he now wears. He swears he never '11 buy another till the government pays him for his losses. " My wife did the neatest thing. She took all our valuables^ buch as watches and silver-spoons, and hid them in the corn- field. With a knife she would just make a slit in the ground, open it a little, put in one or two things, and then let tiie top earth down, just hke it was before. Then she 'd go on and do the same thing in another place. The soldiers went all over that corn-field sticking in their bayonets, but they did n't find a thing. The joke of it was, she came very near nevei findinp" them again herself. " One of my neighbors, a poor man, was stopped by some cavalry boys, who demanded his watch. He told 'em it was such a sorry watch they would n't take it. They wanted to see it, and when he showed it, they said, ' Go along ! — we won't be seen carrying off such a looking thing as that ! ' " The following story was related to me by a Northern man, who had been twenty-five years settled in Eastern Georgia : — " My neighbors Avere too much frightened to do anything well and in o;ood order. But I determined I 'd save as much of my property as I could drive on its own feet or load on to wagons. I took two loads of goods, and all my cattle and hogs, and run 'em off twenty miles into Screven County. I found a spot of rising ground covered with gall bushes, in the middle of a low, wet place. I went through water six inches deep, got to the knoll, cut a road through the bushes, run my wagons in, and stuck the bushes down into the wet ground where I had cut them. They were six or eight feet high, and hid everything. My cattle and hogs I turned off in a bushy field. After that, I weijt to the house of a poor planter and staid. That was Friday night. "Sunday, the soldiers came. I lay hid in the M^oods, and saw 'em pass close by the knoll where my goods were, running in their bayonets everywhere. The bushes were green yet, and they did n't discover anything, though they passed right by the edge of them. FORAGERS. -A NEW MISFORTUNE. 505 " All at once I heard the women of the house scream mur- der. Thinks I, ' It won't do for me to be lying here looking out onlj for my own interests, while the soldiers are abusino- the women.' I crawled out of the bushes, and was hurryinglack to the house, when five cavalrymen overtook me. They put their carbines to my head, and told me to give 'em my money. « As soon as I 'd got over my fright a little, I said, ' Gentle- men, I 've got some Confederate money, but it will do vou no good.' "^ ^ " ' Give me your pistol,' one said. I told him I had no pistol. They thought I lied, for they saw something in my pocket ; but come to snatch it out, it was only my pipe. Then they demanded my knife. " ' I Ve nothing but an old knife I cut my tobacco with • — you won't take an old man's knife ! ' ' " They let me go, and I hurried on to the house. It was hill of soldiers. 1 certainly thought something dreadful was happening to the women; but they were screeching because the soldiers were carrying off their butter and honey and corn- meal. They were making all that fuss over the loss of their property; and I thought I might as well have stayed to watch mine " That night the army camped about a mile from there ; and the next morning I rode over to see if I could get a safeguard for the house. But the officers said no ; - they were bound to have something to eat. I went back, and left my horse at the door while I stepped in to tell the women if they wished to save anything that was left they must hide it. Before I could get out again my horse was taken. I went on after it • the army was on the march again, and I was told if I would go with it all day, I should have my horse come night. J liiarched a few miles, but got sick of it, and went back. I could see big fires in the direction of my house, and I knew that the town was burnino-. " I got back ^o the poor planter's house, and found a new misfortune had happened to him. The night before, all his hogs and mine came together to his door,— the soldiers havino- 606 SHERMAN IN EASTERN GEORGIA. let the fences clown. ' This won't do,' I said ; ' I 'm going to make another effort to save my hogs.' But he was true South- ern ; he had n't energy ; he said, ' No use ! ' and just sat still. I tolled my hogs off with corn, and scattered corn all about in the bushes to keep them there. The next day it was hot, and they lay in the shade to keep cool ; so the soldiers did n't find them. " But when, as I said, I got back to his house, I found the soldiers slaughtering his hogs right and left. They killed every one. So much for his lack of laith. But the worst part of the joke was, they borrowed his cart to carry off his own hogs to the wagon-train which was passing on another road half a mile away. They said they 'd bring it back in an hour. As it didn't come, he went for it, and found they 'd piled rails on to it and burnt it. I had taken care of my wagons, and he might have done the same with his. But that 's the difference between a Northern and a Southern man. " Monday I returned home, and found my family living on corn-meal bran. They had been robbed of everything. The soldiers had even taken the hat off from my little grandson's head, six years old. They took a mother-hen away from her little peeping chickens. There were fifty or a hundred sol- diers in the house all one day, breaking open chests and bu- reaus ; and those that come after took what the first had left. My folks asked for protection, being Northern people ; and there was one officer who knew them; but he could con- trol only his own men. So we fared no better than our neighbors." The staging to Scarborough was very rough ; but our route lay through beautiful pine woods, carpeted with wild grass. It was January, but the spring frogs were singing. The best rolling-stock of the Central Road had been run up to Macon on Sherman's approach, and could not be got down again. So I had the pleasure of riding from Scarbor- ough to Savannah in an old car crowded full of wooden chairs, m place of the usual seats. The comments of the passengers on the destruction wrought THE KOAD TO SAVANNAH. 507 by Sherman were sometimes bitter, sometimes sentimental. A benevolent gentleman remarked : " How much good might be done with the millions of property destroyed, by building new railroads elsewhere ! " To which a languishing lady replied : " What is the use of building railroads for slaves to ride on ? I 'd rather be free, and take it afoot, than belong to the Yankees, and ride." Our route lay along the low, level borders of the Ogeechee River, the soil of which is too cold for cotton. We passed immense swamps, in the perfectly still waters of which the great tree-trunks were mirrored. And all the way the spring frogs kept up their shrill singing. At some of the stations I saw bales of Northern hay that had come up from Savannah. " There is a commentary on our style of farming," said an intelligent planter from near Millen. " This land, though worthless for cotton, could be made to grow splendid crops of grass, — and we import our hay." 508 A GLANCE AT SAVAKNAH. CHAPTER LXX. A GLANCE AT SAVANNAH. On the 16tli of November, 1864, Sherman began his grand march from Atlanta. In less than a month his army had made a journey of three hundred miles, consuming and de- vastating the country. On December 13th, by the light of the setting sun. General Hazen's Division of the 15th Corps made its brilliant and successful assault on Fort McAlister on the Ogeechee, opening the gate to Savannah and the sea. On the night of the 20th, Savannah was hurriedly evacuated by the Rebels, and occupied by Sherman on the 21st. The city, with a thousand prisoners, thirty-five thousand bales of cotton, two hundred guns, three steamers, and valuable stores, thus fell into our hands without a battle. Within forty-eight hours a United States transport steamer came to the wharf, and the new base of supplies, about which we were all at that time so anxious, was established. The city was on fire during the evacuation. Six squares and portions of other squares were burned. At the same time a mob collected and commenced breaking into stores and dwellings. The destroyers of railroads were in season to save the city from the violence of its own citizens. A vast multitude of negroes had followed the army to the sea. This exodus of the bondmen from the interior had been permitted, not simply as a boon to them, but as an injury to the resources of the Confederacy, like the destruction of its plantations and railroads. What to do with them now became a serious problem. Of his conference with Secretary Stanton on the subject at Savannah, General Sherman says : " We agreed perfectly that the young and able-bodied men should be enlisted as soldiers or employed by the quartermaster in ASPECT OF THE OlTl'. (-'^q6: the necessary work of unloading ships, and for other armv purposes; bnt this left on our hands the old and f eble t"e vomen and children, who had necessarily to be fed t' tt U„.ted States. Mr. Stanton summoned a large nu,nber of he old negroes, mostly preachers, with whom he held a onl confe,;ence, of wbich be took down notes. After this confer^ from th! U VTf "' ','" "^^'-"^^ '°"'"' -"• -- ''"™aTd on the sea islands and along the navigable rivers, take care of themselves." Sherman's " General Orders No. 15 " we ands""Tl®"""^-""^7 f"'"'' "possessory titles " to these . whth m^Xr:;"" '"^ '"""^ ''^-'''"' --™-^ °f The aspect of Savannah is peculiarly Southern and r„t -.thout a certain charm. Its uLorm squares m"t aTd heavy atmosphere, the night fogs that infest it, the dead le vet o US sandy streets, shaded by two and four rows of mol dped trees, and its frequent parks of live-oaks, water-oal^ w, d-ohves, and magnolias, impress you singularly The citv notw.thstend,ng .ts low, flat appearance, fs buift on a pit forty feet above the river. The surrounding country is an almost unbroken evel. Just across the Savannah lie the ow marsity shores of South Carolina. It is the largest city of itont^. Here, before the war, dwelt the aristocracy of the country, hvmg ,n luxurious style upon the income of slave labor on the nee and cotton plantations. . ™<= ™^ '<=»^ "■='!« a' Savannah than in some of the mtenor towns owing to its greater isolation. A flood of busmess passed through it, however. The expense of Is the nver from Augusta, two hundred and thirty miles cI" ^ftL'piri '"' '"^ ''"'"" --"'"« ^-■•^^'^ - - There were sixteen hundred colored children in Savannah r: fiftvll f.."''°" ='"-''^'' -'-»'• Three hldTed and fifty attended the schools of the Savannah Educational / 51^ A GLAXCE AT SAVANiq^AH. Association, organized and supported by tlie colored popula- tion. I visited one of these schools, taught by colored per- sons, in a building which was a famous slave-mart, in the good old days of the institution. In the large auction-room, and behind the iron-barred windows of the jail-room over it, the children of slaves were now enjoying one of the first, inesti- mable advantages of freedom. If you go to Savannah, do not fail to visit the Bonaventure Cemetery, six miles from the city. You drive out southward on the Thunderbolt Road, past the fortifications, through fields of stumps and piny undergrowths, whose timber was cut away to give range to the guns, to the fragrant, sighing solitude of pine woods beyond. Leaving the main road, you pass beneath the low roof of young evergreen oaks overarching the path. This leads you into avenues of indescribable beauty and gloom. Whichever way you look, colonnades of huge live- oak trunks open before you, solemn, still, and hoary. The great limbs meeting above are draped and festooned with long fine moss. Over all is a thick canopy of living green, shut- ting out the glare of day. Beneath is a sparse undergrowth of evergreen bushes, half concealing a few neglected old family monuments. The area is small, but a more fitting scene for a cemetery is not conceivable. CHAKLESTON HARBOR. • 511 CHAPTER LXXI. CHARLESTON AND THE WAR. 1 HE railroad from Savannah to Charleston, one hundred and four miles in length, running through a country of rice- plantations, was struck and smashed by Sherman in his march from the sea. As it never was a paying road before the war, I could see no prospect of its being soon repaired. The high- way of the ocean supplies its place. There was little travel and less business between the two cities, two or three small steamers a week being sufficient to accommodate all. Going on board one of these inferior boats at three o'clock one after- noon, at Savannah, I awoke the next morning in Charleston harbor. A warm, soft, misty morning it was, the pale dawn breaking through rifts in the light clouds overhead, a vapory horizon of dim sea all around. What is that great bulk away on our kft, drifting past us ? That is the thing known as Fort Sumter : it does not float from its rock so easily : it is we who are drift- ing past it. We have just left Fort Moultrie on our right ; the low shores on which it crouches lie off there still visible, like banks of heavier mist. That obscure phenomenon ahead yonder looms too big for a hencoop, and turns out to be Fort Ripley. The dawn brightens, the mist clears, and we see, far on our right. Castle Pinckney ; and on our left a gloomy line of pine forests, which we are told is James Island. This is historic ground we are traversing, — or rather his- toric water. How the heart stirs with the memories it calls up ! What is that at anchor yonder ? A monitor I A man on its low flat deck walks almost level with the water. Two noticeable objects follow after us : one is a high-breasted, proud-beaked New York steamer ; the other, the wonderful light of dawn dancing upon the waves. 612 CHARLESTOK AND THE AVAR. Before us all the while, rising and expanding as we approach, its wharves and shipping, its warehouses and church steeples, gradually taking shape, on its low peninsula thrust out between the two rivers, is the haughty and defiant little city that inau- gurated treason, that led the Rebellion, that kindled the fire it took the nation's blood to quench. And is it indeed you, city of Charleston, lying there so quiet, harmless, half asleep, in the peaceful morning light ? Where now are the joy-intox- icated multitudes who thronged your batteries and piers and house-tops, to see the flag of the Union hauled down from yonder shattered little fortress ? Have you forgotten the frantic cheers of that frantic hour ? Once more tlie old flag floats there ! How do you like the looks of it, city of Charles- ton ? . THE GREAT FIRE OF 1861. 513 I gave my travelling-bag to a black hoy on the wliarf, who took it on his head and led the way through the just awakened streets to the Mills House. The appearance of the city in the early morning atmosphere, was prepossessing. It is a well built, light, and airy city. It lacks the broad streets, the public squares, and the forest of trees, which give to Savannah its charm ; but it strikes one as a more attractive place for a residence. You are not at all oppressed with a sense of the lowness of the situation ; and yet it is far less elevated than Savannah, the flat and narrow peninsula on which it is built rising but a few feet above high water. Charleston did not strike me as a very cleanly town, and I doubt if it ever was such. Its scavengers are the turkey buzzards. About the slaughter-pens on the outskirts of the city, at the markets, and wherever garbage abounds, these black, melancholy birds, properly vultures, congregate in num- bers. There is a law against killing them, and they are very tame. In contrast with these obscenities are the o-ardens of the suburban residences, green in midwinter with semi-tropical shrubs and trees. Here centred the fashion and aristocracy of South Carolina, before the war. Charleston Avas the watering-place where the rich cotton and rice planters, who lived upon their estates in winter, came to lounge away the summer season, thus invert- ing the Northern custom. It has still many fine residences, built in a variety of styles ; but, since those recent days of its pride and prosperity, it has been wofully battered and deso- lated. The great fire of 1861 swept diagonally across the oity from river to river. A broad belt of ruin divides what remains. One eighth of the entire city was burned, comprising much of its fairest and wealthiest quarter. No effort had yet been made to rebuild it. The proud city lies humbled in its ashes, too poor to rise again without the helping hand of Northern Capital. The origin of this stupendous fire still remains a mystery. 514 CHAELESTON AKD THE WAR. It is looked upon as one of the disasters of the war, although it cannot be shown that it had any connection with the war. When Eternal Justice decrees the punishment of a people, it sends not War alone, but also its sister terrors, Famine, Pesti- lence, and Fire. The ruins of Charleston are the most picturesque of any I saw in the South. The gardens and broken walls of many of its fine residences remain to attest their former elegance. Broad, semicircular flights of marble steps, leading up once to proud doorways, now conduct you, over their cracked and calcined slabs, to the level of high foundations swept of every- thing but the crushed fragments of their former superstruct- ures, with here and there a broken pillar, and here and there a windowless wall. Above the monotonous gloom of the ordi- nary ruins rise the churches, — the stone tower and roofless walls of the Catholic Cathedral, deserted and solitary, a roost for buzzards ; the burnt-out shell of the Circular Church, in- teresting by moonlight, with its dismantled columns still stand- ing, like those of an antique temple ; and others scarcely less noticeable. There are additional ruins scattered throughout the lower part of the city, a legacy of the Federal bombardment. The Scotch Church, a large structure, with two towers and a row of fi'ont pillars, was rendered untenantable by ugly breaches in its roof and walls, that have not yet been repaired. The old Custom-House and Post-Office building stands in an ex- ceedingly dilapidated condition, full of holes. Many other public and private buildings suffered no less. Some were quite demolished ; while others have been patched up. After all, it would seem that the derisive laughter with which the Oharlestonians, according to contemporaneous accounts in their newspapers, received the Yankee shells, must have been of a forced or hysterical nature. Yet I found those who still maintained that the bombardment did not amount to much. A member of the city fire department said to me : — " But few fires were set by shells. There were a good many fires, but they were mostly set by mischief-makers. BOMBARDMEXT OF THE CITY. 515 The object was to get us firemen down in slicllino- rano-e. Tiiere was a spite against us, because we were exempt from military duty." The fright of the inhabitants, however, was generally frankly admitted. The greatest panic occurred immediately after the occupation of Morris Island by General Gillmore. " The first shells set the whole town in commotion. It looked like everybody was skedaddling. Some loaded up their goods, and left nothing but their empty houses. Others just packed up a few things in trunks and boxes, and abandoned the rest. The poor people and negroes took what they could carry on their backs or heads, or in their arms, and put for dear hfe. Some women put on all their dresses, to save them. For a while the streets were crowded with runaways, — hurrying, hustling, driving, — on horseback, in wagons, and on foot, — white folks, dogs, and niggers. But when it was found the shells only fell down town, the people got over their scare ; and many who went away came back again. Every once in a while, how- ever, the Yankees would appear to mount a new gun, or get a new gunner; and the shells would fall higher up. That would start the skedaddling once more. One shell would be enough to depopulate a whole neighborhood." A Northern man, who was in Charleston during the war, told me that he was lying sick in a house which was struck by a shell early during the bombardment. " A darkey that was nursing me took fright and ran away, and left me in about as unpleasant a condition as I was ever in. I could n't stir from my bed, and there was much more danger that I might die from neglect, than from Gillmore's shells. Finally a friend found me out, and removed me to another house a few streets above. It was nine months before the shells reached us there." The shelling began in July, 1863, and was kept up pretty regularly until the surrender of the city, on the 18th of Feb- ruary, 1865. This last event occurred just four years after the inauguration of Jefferson Davis as President of the Con- federate States. How did the people of Charleston keep that last glorious anniversary ? 516 CHAELESTON AND THE WAR. Sherman's northward marching army having flanked the city, its evacuation Avas not nnexpected ; but when it came, contusion and dismay came with it. The Rebel troops de- partincr, adhered to their usual custom of leavmg rum behmd them." They fired the upper part of the city, burnn.g an nn- laense quantity of cotton, with railroad buildings and mihtary store'; While the half-fomished poor were ruslnng early m the m"orning to secure a little of the Confederate rice n. one of the warehouses, two hundred kegs of powder blew up, kill- ing and mutilating a large number of those unfortunate people. Here also it devolved upon the Union troops to save the city from the fires set by its own friends. Of the sixty-five thousand inhabitants which the city con- tained at the "beginning of the secession war, only about ten thousand remained at the time of the occupation by our troops Those belonged mostly to the poorer classes who could no cet away. Many people rushed in from the suburbs, got Jaucht inside the intrenchments, and could not get out agam Others rushed out panic-stricken from the burning city, and when they wished to return, found that they could not Charleston, from the moment of its occupation, was a sealed city Families were divided. Husbands shut within the line of fortifications drawn across the neck of the peninsula, could .ot hear from their families in the country ; and wives in the country could not get news fi-om their husbands. 'I wa two months before I could learn whether my husband was dead or alive," said a lady, who took refuge in the intenox. And some who remained in Charleston, told me it was a nionth before they heard of the burning of Columbia; tha they could not even learn which way Shermans army had gone. A MASS OF RUINS. 517 CHAPTER LXXII. A VISIT TO FORT SUMTER. One morning I went on board the government supply steamer " Mayflower," plying between the city and the forts below. As we steamed down to the rows of piles, driven across the harbor to compel vessels to pass under the guns of the forts, I noticed that .they were so nearly eaten off by worms that, had the war continued a year or two longer, it would have been necessary to replace them. There is in these Southern waters an insect very destructive to the wood it comes in contact with. It cannot live in fresh water, and boats, the bottoms of which are not sheathed, or covered with tar, are taken occasionally up the rivers, to get rid of it. Only the palmetto is able to resist its ravages ; of the tough logs of which the wharves of Charleston are constructed. Fort Sumter loomed before us, an enormous mass of ruins. We approached on the northeast side, which appeared covered with blotches and patches of a most extraordinary description, commemorating the shots of our monitors. The notches in the half-demolished wall were mended with gabions. On the southeast side not an angle, not a square foot of the original octagonal wall remained, but in its place was an irregular steeply sloping bank of broken bricks, stones, and sand, — a half-pulverized mountain, on which no amount of shelling could have any other effect than to pulverize it still more. I could now readily understand the Rebel boast, that Fort Sumter, after each attack upon it, was stronger than ever. Stronger for defence, as far as its walls were concerned, it undoubtedly was ; but where were the double rows of port- holes for heavy ordnance, and the additional loopholes on the south side for musketry? Our guns had faithfully smashed everything of that kind within their range. 518 A VISIT TO FORT SUMTEE. On the nortliwest side, facing the city, the perpendicular lofty wall stands in nearly its original .condition, its scientific proportions, of stupendous solid masonry, astonishing us by their contrast with the otlier sides. Between this wall and the wreck of a Rebel steamer, shot through and sunk whilst bringing supplies to the fort, we landed. By flights of wooden steps we reached the summit, and looked down into the huge crater within. This is a sort of irregular amphitheatre, with sloping banks of gabions and rubbish on all sides save one. On tlie southeast side, where the exterior of the fort received the greatest damage from the guns on Morris Island, the inte- rior received the least. There are no casemates left, ex- cept on that side. In the centre stands the flagstaff, bearing aloft the starry symbol of the national power, once humbled here, and afterwards trailed long through bloody dust, to float asain higher and hauohtier than ever, on those rebellious shores. Who, that loves his country, can look upon it there without a thrill ? The fort is built upon a mole, which is flooded by high- water. It was half-tide that morning, and climbing down the slope of the southeast embankment, I walked upon the beach below, — or rather upon the litter of old iron that strewed it thick as pebble-stones. It was difiicult to step without placing the foot upon a rusty cannon-ball or the fragment of a shell. The curling weaves broke upon beds of these Iron debris, extending far down out of sight into the sea. I suggested to an officer that this would be a valuable mine to work, and was told that the right to collect the old iron around the fort had already been sold to a speculator for thirty thousand dol- lars. The following statement of the cost to the United States of some of the forts seized by the Rebels, and of others they would have been glad to seize, but could not see their way clear to do so, will Interest a few readers. Fort Moultrie, $87,601. (Evacuated by Major Anderson Dec. 26th, 1860.) Castle Pinckney, $53,809. (Seized by South Carolina State troops, Dec. 27th, 1860.) COST OF FOETS.- HEROES OF THE WAR. 519 Fort Sumter, $977,404. Fort Pulaski, at the mouth of the Savannah River, |988,- 859. (Seized by order of Governor Brown, Jan. 3d, 1861.) Fort Morgan, Mobile Harbor, $1,242,552. (Seized Jan 4th, 1861.) Fort Gaines, opposite, $221,500. (Same fate.) Fort Jackson, on the Mississippi, below New Orleans, $837,- 608. Its fellow, Fort St. Philip, $258,734. (Both seized Jan. 10th, 1861.) Fort Warren, Boston Harbor, $1,208,000. (Not conve- nient for the Rebels to appropriate.) Fortress Monroe, the most expensive, as it is the largest of our forts, $2,476,771. (Taken by Jeff Davis in Mayri865, under peculiar circumstances, and still occupied by him at this date. May, 1866.) I found eighty-five United States soldiers in Sumter: a mere handful, yet they were five more than the garrison that held it at the time of Beauregard's bombardment in April, 1861. ^ My mind went back to those earlier days, and to that other little band. How anxiously we had watched the news- papers, week after week, to see if the Rebels would dare to execute their threats ! Even the children caught the excite- ment, and asked eagerly, as papa came home at night with the news, " Is Fort Sumter attackted ? " At last the" defiant act was done, and what a raging, roaring fire it kindled all over the land ! How our hearts throbbed in sympathy with Major Anderson and his seventy-nine heroes ! Major, Colonel, Gen- eral Anderson, — well might he step swiftly up the degrees of rank, for he was already atop of our hearts. It was so easy for a man to blaze forth into sudden glory of renown at that time \ One true, loyal, courageous deed, and fame was secure. But when the hurricane howl of the storm was at its height, when the land was all on fire with such deeds, ^ glory was not so cheap. Only the taller flame could make itself distinguished, only the more potent voice be heard amid the roar. So many a hero of many a greater exploit than Anderson's passed on unnoted. 520 A VISIT TO FORT SUxMTER. And looking back coolly at the event from the walls of Sumter to-day, it is not easy to understand how a patriot and a soldier, who knew his duty, could have sat quiet in his for- tress while Rebel batteries were rising all around him. He was acting on the defensive, you say, — waiting for the Rebels to commence hostilities. But hostilities had already begun. The first spadeful of earth thrown up, to protect the first Rebel gun, within range of Sumter, was an act of war upon Sumter. To wait until surrounded by a ring of fire, which could not be resisted, before opening the guns of the fort, appears, by the light both of military duty and of common sense, absurd. But fortunately something else rules, in a great revolution, besides military duty and common sense ; and in the plan of that Providence which shapes our ways, I suppose Major Anderson did the best and only thing that was to be done. Besides, forbearance, to the utmost verge of that virtue, and sometimes a little beyond, was the policy of the government he served. Reembarking on the steamer, and running over to Morris Island, I noticed that Sumter, from that side, looked like noth- ing but a solitary sandy bluff, heaved up in the middle of the harbor. STORY OF GENERAL S 'S CAPTURE. 521 CHAPTER LXXIII. A PEISON AND A PRISONER. " Is this your first visit to Charleston ? " I asked General ^ ' o»e day as we dined together. "My first visit "he rephed, "occurred in the summer of 1864, considerably against my inclination. I was lodged at the expense of the Confederate Government in the Work- House, —not half as comfortable a place as this hotel f " Both visits were made in the service of the United States Government ; but under what difi^erent circumstances ! Then a hep ess, insulted prisoner; now, he came in a capacitv which brought to him as humble petitioners some of the most rebellious citizens of those days. When sick and in prison ' they did not minister unto him; but since he sat in an office' of public power, nothing could exceed tlieir polite, hat-in- hand attentions. i , ictt m ^'n»er o he proposed that we should go around and look at his old quarters in the Work-House. I Hadlv as- sented, and, on the way, drew from him the sto'y of his capture. -^ He was taken prisoner at the battle of July 22d before Atlanta, and placed on a train, with a number of other pris- oners, to be conveyed to Macon. " When we were about ten or a dozen miles from Macon I went and sat on the platform with the guard. To prevent his suspecting my design, I told him I was disabled by rheu- matism, and complained of pain and weakness in my back He presently leaned against the car, and closed his eyes ; like everybody else after the battles of July, he was pretty well used up, and in a few minutes he appeared to be asleep His gun was cocked, ready to shoot any prisoner that attempted 522 A PRISON AND A PRISONER. to escape; and I quietly took the cap off, without disturbing him Then I did n't dare >Yait a minute for a better oppor- tunity, but jumped when I could. We ^.eve five or s,x miles from Macon, and the train was running about ten miles an hour. As I took my leap, I felt my hat flying from my head, and instinctively put up my hand and caught it, knowing if it was lost it might give a clew that would lead to my recapture. All this passed through my mind while I went rolling down an embankment eighteen or twenty feet high. I thought I never should strike the bottom. When I did, the concussion was so o-reat that I lay under a fence, nearly senseless, for 1 don t know how long : I could n't have moved, even if I had known a minute's delay would cause me to be retaken. " After a while I recovered, got up, crossed the fields, and found a road on the edge of some woods. It was then just at dusk I walked all night, and in the morning found myselt where I started. I had been walking around a hill, on a road made by woodmen. . , t ^ i « I was very tired, but I made up my mmd I must leave that place. I c^ot the points of the compass by the light in the east, and started to walk in a northerly direction, hoping to strike our lines somewhere near Atlanta. I soon passed a field of squealing hogs. I ought to have taken warning by their noise ; but I kept on, and presently met a man with a bacr of corn on his shoulder, going to feed them. I was walk- ino'fast, with my coat on my arm ; and we passed each other without saying a word. My whole appearance was calculated to excite suspicion. Besides, one might know by my uniform that I was a Yankee officer. I suppose, by the law of self- defence, I ought to have turned about and put him out of t^ie way of doing me any mischief. It would have been well for me if I had! I was soon out of sight; but I could hear the 1 ho.s squealing still, so I knew he had not stopped to give I . them the co/n ; I knew he had dropped his bag and run, as well as if I had watched him. «I crossed the fields to the road, where I saw somebody coming very fast on a horse. I hid in some weeds, and pres- HUNTED BY BLOODHOUNDS. -IN TROUBLE. 623 entlj saw this same man riding bj at a sharp gallop towards a neighboring plantation. " Then I knew I had a hard time before me. I first sat down and rubbed pine leaves and tobacco on the soles of m^^ boots ; then took once more to the fields. It was n't an hour before I heard the blood-hounds on my track. I can never tell what I suffered during the next three days. I did not sleep at all ; I travelled almost incessantly. Sometimes when I stopped to rest the dogs would come in sight ; and often I could hear them when I did not see them. I baffled them continually by changing my course, walking in streams, and rubbing tobacco and pine leaves on my boot-soles." " What did yon live on all this time ? " " I will tell you what I ate : three crackers, which I had with me when I jumped from the cars, one water-melon, and some^ raw green corn I picked in a field. The third day I got rid of the dogs entirely. I saw a lonely looking house on a hill, and went to it. It was occupied by a widow. I asked for something to eat, and she cooked me a dinner while I kept watch for the dogs. Perhaps she was afraid to do differently ; but she appeared very kind. When the dinner was ready I was so sick from excitement and exhaustion that I could n't eat. I managed to force down an egg and a spoonful of peas, and that was all. The Rebels had taken my money, and I could pay her only with thanks. " I travelled nearly all that night again. Towards morning I lay by in a canebrake, and slept a little. It was raining hard. The next day I started on again. As I was crossing a road, suddenly a man came round a steep bank, on horse'^ back. I did n't see him until he was right upon me. I felt desperate. He asked me some question, and I gave him a surly answer. I thought I would n't leave the road until he had gone on ; but he checked his horse, and rode alono- bv my side. " ' You look like you are in trouble,' he said. " ' I am,' I said. " ' Can I be of any service to you ? ' 624 A PRISON AND A PRISONER. " ' Yes. I Avant to go to Crawford's Station. How far is it?' " He said it was three miles, and told me the way to go. Crawford's is only fifteen miles from Macon ; so you see I had not got far whilst running from the dogs. " Suddenly a terrible impulse took me. I turned upon him ; I felt fierce ; I could have murdered him, if necessary. " ' I told you a lie,' said I. ' I am not going to Crawford's. I am a Federal soldier trying to escape.' " He turned pale. ' I am the provost-marshal of this dis- trict,' he said, after we had looked each other full in the face for about a minute, ' and do you know it is my duty to arrest you ? ' " Then a power came upon me such as I never felt before in my life ; and I talked to him. I laid open the whole ques- tion of the war with a clearness and force which astonishes me now when I think of it. I believe I convinced him. Then I told him that if I had been doing my duty, it was Ms duty to help me escape, instead of arresting me. And then I prophe- sied : — ' This war is going to end,' I said ; ' and it is going to end in only one way. As true as there is a heaven above us, your Confederate Government is going to be wiped from the earth ; and then where will you be ? then what will you think of the duty of one man to arrest another whose only fault is that he has been fighting for his country ? The time is com- ing, sir, when it may make a mighty difference with you, whether you help me now, or send me to a Rebel prison.* " He looked at me in perfect amazement. He did not an- swer me a word ; only when I got through he said, ' I 'd give a thousand dollars if I had not met you ! ' I got down to drink from a ditch by the road. Then he said, ' I 've got a canteen at the house which you might have.' That was the first intimation I received that he would help me. " He told me to stay where I was and he would bring me somethino; better to drink than ditch-water. I looked him through. ' I '11 trust you,' I said ; for no man ever looked as he did who was n't sincere. Yet there was danger he mig) t A FRIEND IK NEED. - RECAPTURE. 525 change liis mind ; and I M^aited ^^•ith great anxiety to see whether he would bring the canteen or a guard of soldiers. A last he came ^ with the canteen I It ^yas full of the most dehcious spring water. I can't begin to tell you how good tha w-ater tasted ! The nectar of- the gods was nothing tt it. rhat n.ght he hid me between two bales of cotton in his gm-house. He brought me bacon and biscuits enouo-h to last me two or three days. What was more to the purpose, he gave me a suit of citizens' clothes to put on. While it was yet early, he brought me out, and went with me a mile or so on my way. He gave me the names of several citizens of the country, so that I could claim to be going to see them if any- body questioned me. I carried my uniform with me tied up m a bundle, which I intended to drop in the first piece of woods at a safe distance from his house. I never parled with a man under more affecting circumstances. An enemy, he had risked his life to save me, - for we both knew that if the part he took m my escape was discovered, his reward would De tne nalter. "I had a valuable gold watch, which the Rebels had not taken from me, and I urged him to accept it. 'If I am re captured,' I said, ' some Confederate soldier will get it If T escape, it will be the greatest source of satisfaction I can have o know that you keep this token of my gratitude.' At last he consented to accept it, and we parted "I travelled due north all that day, and lay by at night in acanebrake. How it rained again ! The next day, in avoid- mg the mam roads, as I had been careful to do whenever I could, I got entangled among streams that put into the Ocmul- gee Riyer. I came to a large one, and as I was turning back from It, I saw a squad of soldiers going down to it to bathe I was m a complete cut de sac, and I must either run for the river ILT'aT ^ ^'' " ' ^'^^ ^^^^' "^^ ^-"^ -^ towards them. As It was an extraordinary situation for a stranger to be m they naturally suspected everything was not right. They asked me where I was from, and where I was going. I said I came from near Macon, and that I was goint to visit my 526 A PRISON AND A PRISONER. uncle, Dr. Moore, in De Kalb County. I suppose my speech betrayed me. They did n't suspect me of being an escaped prisoner ; but their captain said, ' I beheve you 're a damned Yankee spy.' " That sealed my fate. I was taken to Forsyth, on the ]\Iacon and Western Railroad, where I was finally recognized by the guard I had escaped from. " While I was sitting in the depot, in my citizens' clothes, a half-drunken Confederate soldier came in, flourishing a loaded pistol, and inquiring for the ' damned Yankee.' ' What do you want of him ? ' I asked. ' To shoot his heart out ! ' said he. ' What ! ' said I, ' would you shoot a prisoner ? I hope you are too chivalrous to do that.' ' It 's a part of my chivalry to kill every Yankee I find,' said he. ' Just show him to me, and you'll see.' ' I'll sliow him to you. I am the man. Now let 's see you shoot him.' " He swore I was joking. He would n't believe I was the Yankee, even when the guard told him I was ; and he went blustering away again. I suspect that he Avas a fellow of more talk than courage. " Meanwhile Mr. T , who gave me my citizens' dress, heard of my recapture, and came over to Forsyth, in great anx- iety lest I should betray him. I pretended not to recognize him, but gave him to .understand by a look that his secret was safe. He said it was very important to ascertain how I came by my clothes, and questioned me. I said I obtained them of a good and true man, whom I should never name to his injury; but that I would tell where I left my uniform, because I wished to get it again. When I described the spot, he said he believed he recognized it, and, if so, that it was on one of his neighbors' plantations. He sent to search, and the next day I received my uniform. I forgot to state that when I was retaken, my drawers were mildewed from my lying out in the canebrakes in the rain. " From Forsyth I was sent to the stockade at Macon, where I found my companions from whom I separated when I jumped from the car. I had n't been there three days when I formed " TUJ^KELLmG."- THE WORK-HOUSE. '527 a new plan of escape. I got the other prisoners enhsted in it and we went to tunnelhng the ground under the stockade' Kach man worked with a knife, or a piece of hoop, -any- thuig that he could scratch with, - and filled a haversack with the du-t, which was brought out and scattered over the ground. As prisoners exposed to the weather were always burrowmg in caves, our design was not suspected. It was exceedmgly toilsome work, and it was carried on principally bj night. You would be astonished to see how much a man will accomplish, with not much besides his finger-nails to do with, when his liberty is at stake. We M^orked six tunnels, three feet high, and extending well out beyond the stockade I he very night when we were going to open them up on the outside, one of the prisoners, a Kentuckian, betrayed us If we had found out who he was, he would n't have fived a min- here "^^'''"' "^"'^ ""' ^ '""^^ maturing another plan, I was sent We were at the Work-House, a castle-like buildino-, flanked by two tall towers ; built of brick, but covered with a cement in imitation of freestone. Before the war it was used as a safe place of deposit for that description of property known as slaves. Negroes for sale and awaiting the auction-day ne- groes who had or had not merited chastisement not convenient for their city masters or mistresses to administer at home ne- groes who had run away, or were in danger of running away were sent here for safe-keeping or scientific floggin-,"as the' ease might be. It was a mere jail, with cells and bolts and bars, hke any other. During the war, the negroes were trans- terred to another building near by, and the " Work-House " became a Yankee prison, in which officers were confined In the same block was the City Jail, likewise turned into a prison for Federal officers. The Roper and Marine Hospi- tals, not far off*, were put to the same use. It was a dungeon-like entrance, dark and low and damp, to which we gained admittance through a heavy door that creaked harshly on its hinges. " When I first entered here," said General S , " a cold 628 A PRISON AND A PRISONER. shudder ran over me. I looked around for a chance to escape, and saw behind and on each side of me two rows of bayonets, not encouraging to the most enterprising man ! " We walked through the empty, foul, and dismal passages, up- stairs and down-stairs ; visited the various cells, the old negro whipping-room, the room in which General Stoneman, the captured raider, was confined ; and at length came to a room in the second story of the west towei-, which was occupied by General S and a dozen more Federal officers. There were several wooden bunks in it, on which they slept ; from among which the General singled out his own. " This is the old thing I lay on ! Here is my mark ! " He looked up : " Do you see tliat patched place in the roof? A shell came in there one day, when we were lying on our bunks. It made these holes in the floor. But it hurt no one." He took me to the window. " That other tower was knocked by a shell. It was one of our amusements to watch the shells as they came up from Morris Island, rose over the ruined Cathedral yonder, and passed diagonally across these streets, until they fell. They were dropping all the time ; but the gunners knew where we were, and avoided us. At night we could watch them from the time they rose, until, after describing a beautiful curve, they fell and exploded. Our guard was much more afraid of them than we were. Every day there was a fire set by them. This burnt section near the Work-House was set by a shell while I was here." We went down into the yard. " I never got outside of this enclosure but once. Then I went through that gate for a load of wood. I had a taste of the pure air, and I can't tell you how good it was ! It exhilarated me like wine." On the other side of the yard was the building to which the negroes were transferred. " Every day we could hear the yells of those who were being whipped." In the yard is a wooden tower of observation, which we climbed, and had a view of the city. It was occupied as a lookout by the Rebel guard. " Near the foot of this tower," said General S , " was PLAKS OF ESCAPE. 529 a small mountain of ofFal, — fragments of food, old bones, and the like, tin-own out from the prison ; a horrible heap, — all a moving mass of maggots, — left to engender disease. Lucidly for us, the men on guard were made sick by it, and it was finally removed. " The officer who had control of the prison has been ap- pointed United States Marshal for the State of South Caro- lina, for his kindness to us," he continued. " It is strange I never heard of his kindness when I was here. We were^iot whipped like the negroes ; but in other respects our treatment was no better than they received. Out of curiosity I once measured my rations for ten days, and counted just fifty-five spoonfuls, — five and a half spoonfuls a day! « I believe the prisoners at the Roper Hospital were treated very well. They had the run of the garden, and the privilege of trading with the negroes through the fence. But those who went there took an oath not to try to get away. I could have gone there, if I would have consented to take such an oath. But I would n't sell the hope of escaping at any price. " I had n't been here a week before we had three schemes on foot for getting out. One was to cut through a board in the yard fence ; but we found we were watched too closely for that. Another was to make a tunnel to the sewer in the street in front of the prison, as I will show you." Descending the tower, he took me to an iron grating that covered a dark cavity in the ground under one of the prison passages. "Here is a large cistern, which we had exhausted of its contents. One day I pulled up this grate, dropped down into the hole, lighted a candle which I had in my pocket, and made an exploration. On coming out I gave a favorable report, and that night we went to digging. We tunnelled first through the cistern wall, then through the foundation wall of the prison, and got into the sand under the street. We half filled the old cistern with the stones and dirt we dug out with sticks, old bones, and any bits of iron we could lay our hands on! We worked like rats. Two or three of us were constantly 34 530 A PRISON AND A TRISONER. in tlie tunnel, while others kept watch above. A friend out- side had given us information with regard to the position of the sewer ; we had already struck it, and the next night we should have got into it, and into the street beyond the prison guard, when once more we were betrayed by the same Ken- tuckian who exposed our scheme at Macon. This time we found him out, and he had to be removed from the prison to save his life. " We had our third and great plan in reserve. " There were at that time six hundred prisoners in the Work-House, three hundred in the City Jail adjoining, and one thousand in the Roper and Marine Hospitals, within an arrow's shot. These were officers. At the Race - Course prison, on the outskirts of the town, there were four thousand enlisted men. Our guard, here at the Work-House, consisted of three reliefs of thirty-three men each. They were mere militia, that had never seen service. Old soldiers like us were not afraid of such fellows ; and we knew that if we made a demonstration they would be afraid of us. Our plan was, for two prisoners, at a given signal, to leap on the back of each one of the guard in the prison, and disarm him. Possibly some of us might get hurt, but we were pretty sure of suc- cess. Then, with the arms thus secured, we could easily cap- ture the second relief guard as it marched in. Then we were to rush out immediately and seize the third relief. This would give us ninety-nine guns. With these we were to marcli di- rectly upon the arsenal, capture it, and provide ourselves with all the arms and ammunition we needed. Then to release the thirteen hundred officers at the jail and hospitals, and the four thousand privates at the Race-Course, would have been easy ; and we should have had a force of near six thousand men. With these, the city would have been in our power. " Our plan then was, to set fires clear across it, from river to river, to make a barricade of burning buildings against the Rebel artillery that would have been coming down to look ^fter us. Of course the panic and confusion of the citizens would have been extreme, and the military would hardly have i EXCHANGED. - POETIC JUSTICE. 531 known what we were about ; while our plans were laid with mathematical precision. Our friend outside had smuggled in to us, done up in balls of bread, a map of Charleston, with complete explanations of every point about which we needed information ; and through him we had communicated with our friends on Morris Island. We were to seize the shipping, capture the water-batteries, and hold the lower part of the town until our friends, under cover of a furious bombardment, could come to our assistance. My whole heart was in this scheme, and the time was set for its execution. The very day before the day appointed, I was exchanged, together with the principal leaders in it. To be let out just on the eve of what promised to be such a brilliant exploit, Avas almost a disappoint- ment." " I am still interested to know one thing," I said. " Have you ever heard from the Rebel who gave you the citizen's dress?" " After the breaking up of the rebellion I wrote to him, making inquiries concerning his condition. He replied, saying that he had come out of the war a poor man, and that he did not know how he was to relieve the destitution of his family. I immediately made application in his behalf to the War De- partment, and obtained for him a pardon, and a place under the government, in his own county, which he now fills, and which yields him a liberal income." THE SEA ISLANDS. CHAPTER LXXIV. THE SEA ISLANDS. The plantation negro of the great cotton and rice-growing States is a far more ignorant and degraded creature than the ne.ro of Vu-ginia and Tennessee. This difference .s traceable tot variety o^f causes. First, the farmers of the slave-breedmg States were formerly accustomed to select, from among the^i servants, the most stupid and vicious class, to be sok m the Southern market. To the same destination went all the moie modern importations of raw savages from the coast of Africa The necrro is susceptible to the influences of civilization ; and in the border States his intelligence was developed by miich intercourse with the white race. His veins also received a generous infusion of the superior blood The --e "lay be said of house and town servants throughout the South. The slaves of large and isolated plantations, however, enjoyed but limited advantages of this sort ; seeing little of civihzed society beyond the overseer, whose lessons were not those of grace, and the poor whites around them, scarcely more elevated m the scale of being than themselves. ^ In South Carolina the results of these combined causes are more striking than in any other State The excess of her black population, and the unmitigated character of slavery ^vithin her borders, afford perhaps a -^^-"ViJf^ 7'"' nd this fact In 1860 she had 291,388 white, 402,406 slave, and 9 914 free colored inhabitants. Even these figures do not indicate the overwhelming predominance of black numbers m certain localities. In the poorer districts, as counties are here called, the whites are in a majority ; while m certain others there were three and four times as many negroes as white pei- sons. Herded together in great numbers, and worked hke NEGKO SETTLEMEIs^TS. 633 cattle, the habits of these wretched people, their comforts and enjoyments, were little above those of the brute. Under such circumstances it was hardly possible for them to make anv moral or intellectual advancement, but often, even to the third generation, they remained as ignorant as when brought from the wilds of Africa. It was owing much no doubt to this excessive black popula- tion and its degraded character, that labor appeared to be more disorganized, and the freedmen in a worse condition in South Carolina, than elsewhere. The Sea-Island question, however, had had a very marked and injurious effect upon labor in the State, and should be taken into consideration. The most ignorant of the blacks have certain true and strong instincts, which stand them in the place of actual knowledge. Their faith in Providence has a depth and integrity which shames the halting belief of the more enlightened Christian. Next to that, and strangely blended with it, is the faith in the government which has brought them out of bondage. Alono- with these goes the simple and strong conviction, that, in order to be altogether free, and to enjoy the fruits of their freedom, they must have homes of their own. The government en- couraged them in that belief and hope. Conscious of their own loyalty, and having a clear understanding of the disloy- alty of their masters, they expected confidently, long after the war had closed, that the forfeited lands of these masters would be divided among them. It was only after earnest and per- sistent efforts on the part of the officers of the Bureau, to con- vince them that this hope was futile, that they finally aban- doned it. But by this time it had become known among the freed peo- ple of South Carolina and Georgia, that extensive tracts of land on the coast of these States had been set aside by military authority for their use. There the forty thousand bondmen who followed Sherman out of Georgia, together with other thousands who had preceded them, or come after, were estab- lished upon independent farms, in self-governing communities from which all white intruders were excluded. These settle- 534 THE SEA ISLANDS. ments were chiefly upon the rich and dehghtful Sea Islands, which the Ilebel owners had abandoned, and which now be- came the paradise of the freedmen's hopes. " Go there," they said, " and every man can pick out his lot of forty acres, and have it secured to him." With such fancies in his brain, the negro of the interior was not likely to remain contented on the old plantation, after learning that no acre of it was to be given him. He was nat- urally averse to accepting a white master, when he might be his own master elsewhere. His imaginative soul sang too, in its rude way : — " Oh, had we some sweet little isle of our own, In a blue summer oceaa, far off and alone ! " And so the emigration to the coast set in. In October, 1865, orders were issued that no more allot- ments of land should be made to the Freedmen. But this did not avail to stop entirely the tide of emigration ; nor did it inspire with contentment those who remained in the interior. " If a freedman has forty acres on the coast," they reasoned, " why should n't we have as much here ? " Hence one of the most serious troubles the officers of the Bureau had to contend against. In October, General Howard visited the Sea Islands with the intention of restoring to the pardoned owners the lands on which freedmen had been settled, under General Sherman's order. According to the President's theory, a pardon entitled the person pardoned to the immediate restoration of his prop- erty. Hence arose a conflict of authority and endless confu- sion. Secretary Stanton had approved of Sherman's order, and earnestly advised the freedmen to secure homesteads un- der the government's protection. General Saxton, Assistant Commissioner of the Bureau, had in .every way encouraged them to do the same. So had General Hunter. Chief Jus- tice Chase had given them similar counsel. General How- ard found the land-owners urgent in pressing their claims, and the freedmen equally determined in resisting them. CONFLICTING CLAIMS. -THE DIFFICULTY. 535 Impressed by the immense difficulty of the problem, he post- poned its immediate solution by a compromise, leaving the main question to be settled by Congress. Congress settled it, after a fashion, in the provisions of the Freedmen's Bureau Bill ; but that, in consequence of the President's veto, did not become a law. By General Howard's plan, abandoned lands on which there were no freedmen settled under Sherman's order, or only " a few," were to be restored to pardoned owners. Other estates, on which there were more than " a few," were also to be restored, provided arrangements could be made, satisfactory to both the owners and the freedmen. So nothing was settled. The owners claimed the lands, and wished the* freedmen to make contracts to work for them. The freedmen claimed the lands, and positively refused to make contracts. The freedmen's crops for the past year had generally proved failures, or nearly so. Their friends argued that this result was owing to causes that could not be controlled, — the lack of capital, of seed, of mules and farming implements, and the lateness of the season when most of them commenced work. The owners of the lands contended that the negro, under the best conditions, could not make a crop of cotron' The truth probably lies between these two extremes. The freedmen lacked experience in management, as well as plant- ing capital ; and I have no doubt but many of them thought more of a gun and a fishing-rod, sources of a pleasure so n'^w to them, than of hard work in the field, which was anythino- but a novelty. '^ I regret to add that the freedmen's prospects for the coming year did not appear flattering. The uncertainty of their titles caused them deep trouble and discouragement, and they did not exhibit much energy in improving lands which might be taken from them at any moment. The feeling, " This\ my home and my children's," seemed no longer to inspire them. The majority were at work ; but others were sullenly waiting to see what the government would do. This whole question is one of great embarrassment and 536 THE SEA ISLANDS. difficulty, and it is not easy to say liow it should be decided. The plan proposed by Congress, of securing to the freedmen the possession of the lands for three years, did not seem to me a very wise one. It would take them about three years, under the most favorable circumstances, to overcome the ob- stacles against which their poverty and inexperience would have to struggle ; and the knowledge that, after all, those homes were not to be permanently their own, would tend to discourage industry and promote vagabondism. It would be better to remove them at once, if they are to be removed at all ; but then the question presents itself, can a great and mag- nanimous government afford to break its pledges to these help- less and unfortunate people ? On the other hand, to make their titles perpetual, is to give over to uncertain cultivation, by a race supposed to exist only for the convenience of another, the most valuable cotton-lands of those States, — for it is here alone that the incomparable long-fibred "Sea-Island" staple is produced, — a conclusion deemed inadmissible and monstrous, especially by the Rebel owners of the lands. JS'EGEOES UNDER COAL-SHEDS. 537 CHAPTER LXXV. A VISIT TO JAMES ISLAND. A COMPANY of South Carolina planters, who were going over to look at their estates on James Island, and learn if any ari'angements could be made with the freedmen, invited me to accompany them ; and on the morning of the day appointed, I left my hotel for the purpose. Finding I was too early for the boat, I took a stroll along the wharves, and visited the colonies of homeless plantation negroes who had sought shelter under the open coal-sheds. There were at that time in Charleston fifteen hundred freed people of this class waiting for transportation back to their former homes, or to the plantations of new masters who had hired them. A more wretched and pitiable herd of human beings I never saw ; nor had I witnessed anything like it out of South Carolina. Families were cooking and eating their breakfasts around smoky fires. On all sides were heaps of their humble house- hold goods, — tubs, pails, pots and kettles, sacks, beds, barrels tied up in blankets, boxes, baskets, bundles. They had brought their live-stock with them ; hens were scratchinsr, pigs squealing, cocks crowing, and starved puppies whinino-. One colony was going to Beaufort. " Mosser told we to go back. We 'se no money, and we 'se glad to git on gov- 'ment kindness, to git off'." But the government was not yet ready to send them. Many seemed deeply to regret that they were so mu^ch trouble to the government. " We wants to git away to work on our own hook. It 's not a good time at all here. We does nothing but suffer from smoke and ketch cold. We wants to begin de planting business." 688 A VISIT TO JAMES ISLAND. Another colony had been two weeks waiting for transpor- tatfon back to their old hon.es in Colleton D.tr.c . The sufferings were very great. Said an old woman, w,t 1 M over her head : " De jew and de a,r hackles we mo>e n any tin.. De rain beats on we, and de sun shmes we o ,t. My Sn so hungry dey can't hole np. De Gov'.nent, he han t t. we nottin% Said dey wonld pnt we on Wd Saturday Some libs and some dies. If dey libs dey hbs, and .f dey d, s dey dies." Such was her dim philosophy. tr.ed to conve se Tilh others, who spoke a wild jargon pecuhar to the planta- tions of which I understood hardly one word m ten. General Scott, who had recently succeeded General Saxtou as Assistant Commissioner of the Bureau in South Carohna, wafhastening measures for the relief of these poor people, and to prevent any luore from coming to the cty. I wa ked around by the delightful residence on East bay and South Bay, commanding fine views of the harbor and Ashley River f and reached the wharf from whtch we were '" StoS; lay James Island, with its marshy borders, and its dark-lreen line of pines. Boats -mostly hnge cypress dug- 1^1 manned by ,e™es-were passing to and fro, some •n:r,:tl!f island with loads of wood, others returntng^ herviW laden, with families of freed,„eu gon,g to thctr new homes and with household goods and supplies. "This is interesting," said one of the planters whom I found in waiting. " Tliat wood comes from our y.lantafons The negroes cut it off, bring it over to the city and perhap. se it to the actual owners of the land they have taken it from. We are buying our own wood of the darkey squattes. m ne-roes are still going to the island picking their lands, and staking out fortyracre lots, though the Bureau is giving no more titles. -, ^ c r.A i^-.r n A large cypress dug-out came to the wharf, rowed by a hlack man and his son. "These boats all belonged to the planters, ti 1 the negroes took possession of them. Kow a man has to hire a passage PLANTERS CAPTURED BY NEGROES. 539 in his own canoe, and like as any way of one of his own negroes." The grim, silent boatman seemed to understand well that he was master of the situation. There were seven individuals in our party, and his charge for taking us over to the Island and back was ten dollars. He made no words about it : we could accep.t his terms, or find another boat. The gravity and taciturnity of this man indicated decided character, and no mean capacity for self-ownership. As he and his son rowed us across the river, he attended strictly to his business, hearing the talk of the planters about the race he represented — talk by no means complimentary — with an impenetrability of countenance quite astonishino-. This was the thii-d visit of the planters to the island, since the war. On the first occasion, they were met by a party of negroes, about forty in number, who rushed down to the land- ing, armed with guns, and drove them away, with threats to kill them if they came to disturb them in their homes ao-ain ; whereupon they discreetly withdrew. On their second" visit they were accompanied by Captain Ketchum, special agent of the Bureau for the Sea Islands, to whose influence thev prob- ably owed their lives. They were met as before, surrounded by fierce black faces and levelled guns, captured, and not per- mitted to regain their boat until their leaders, who could read a little, became satisfied, from an examination of the Captain's papers, that he was an officer of the government. "We are ready to do anything for gov'ment," they said. " But wo have nothing to do with these men." They asked the Captain, who were the real owners of the land, — they who had been placed there by the government, or the planters who had been fighting against the government'? " That is uncertain," replied the conscientious Captain. The planters, who had hoped for a different reply, well aware that the negroes could not be brouglit to terms without a positive assurance from an officer of the Bureau that tliey had no good title to the lands, were very much diso-usted. " We may as well go back now," said they. And scarcely 540 A VISIT TO JAMES ISLA2TD. any effort was made to induce the negroes to abandon their claims and make contracts. This was now their tliird visit, and it remained to be seen how they would be received. We rowed a short distance down Wappoo Creek, which separates the island from the main land, and disembarked at a plantation belonging to three orphan children, whose guardian was a member of our party. The freedmen, having learned that the mere presence of the planters on the soil could effect nothing, had changed their tactics, and now not one of them was to be seen. Although there were twenty-two hundred on the island, it appeared as solitary and silent as if it had not an inhabitant. We found the plantation house occupied as head-quarters by an officer of the Bureau, recently sent to the island. The guardian of the three orphans took me aside, showed me the desolated grounds without, shaded by magnificent live-oaks, and the deserted chambers within. " You can vmderstand my feelings coming here," he said. "My sister expired in tliis room. She left her children to me. This estate, containing seventeen hundred acres, and worth fifty thousand dollars, is all that remains to them ; and you see the condition it is in. Why does the Government of the United States persist in robbing orphan children ? They have done nothing ; they have n't earned the titles of Rebels and traitors. Why not give them back their land ? " I sympathized sincerely with this honest gentleman and his orphan wards. "But you forget," I said, " that such a war as we have passed through cannot be, without involving in its calamities the innocent as well as the rest. It would have been well if that fact had not been overlooked in the begin- ning." He made no reply. I afterwards learned from his friends that he was one of the original and most fiery secessionists of Charleston. He made a public speech, early in 'sixty-one, — printed in the newspapers at the time, — in which he ex- pressly pledged his life and his fortune to the Confederate cause. His life he had managed to preserve ; and of his ' for- RECEPTION BY THE ISLANDERS. 541 tune sufficient remained for the elegant maintenance of his own and his sister's children ; so that it appeared to me quite inireasonable for him to complain of the misfortune which he himself had been instrumental in bringing upon the orphans. The partj separated, each man going to look at his own estate. I accompanied one who had three fine plantations in the vicinity. A Northern man by birth, his sympathy had been with the government, while he found his private interest in working for the Confederate usurpation under profitable contracts. By holding his tongue and attending to business he had accumulated a handsome fortune, — wisely investing his Confederate scrip in real estate, which he thought somewhat niore substantial. These plantations were a part of his earn- ings. Being a Northern man, and at heart a Union man, he deemed it hard that they should not be at once restored to him. The fact that they were his reward for aiding the ene- mies of his country, — rich gains, so to speak, snatehed from the wreck of a pirate ship on board which he had served, — did not seem to have occurred to him as any bar to his claims. ^ At first we found all the freedmen's houses shut up, and as silent as if the inhabitants had all gone to a funeral. By press- ing into some of them, we discovered a few women and chil- dren, but the men had disappeared. Since they were not to resist our coming, it seemed their policy to have nothing what- ever to do with us. At last we found an old negro too decrepit to run away, who sullenly awaited our approach. " What is your name, uncle ? " " Samuel Butler." " Where are you from ? " " From St. John." " How did you come here ? " " Yankees fotch me." " Don't you want to go back to St. John ? " " Yankees fotch me here," repeated the old man, « and I won't go back widout de Yankees send me back." We inquired about his family and his prospects. " My chil'n 's out in soldiering. I made corn, peas, and 542 A VISIT TO JAMES ISLAND. potatoes ; I got eiiougli to curry me out de year. I had to bought my own clo'es, besides. Gov ment don't help me none." He had his forty-acre lot, and would not peril his claim to it by talking about a contract. In one cabin we found a very old negro lying on the floor, miserably sick with the dropsy. He had been " a faithful old family servant," as the phrase is ; and was accounted a wise head by the planters. When asked if he thought the freed- men could be prevailed upon to contract, he replied : " What little we do will be sarvice to we-self. We don't want to M'ork for rest," — meaning the planters. Speaking of himself, he said : " My time is all burnt out." He said there was a heap of idlers on the island. " Dey 'm on a full spree now. Dey got a sort of frolic in de brains." There had been considerable destitution even among the industrious ones the past year ; but many of them had made fair crops, and had corn sufficient to keep them till another harvest. " Dey 'm more situated better now." The small-pox had raged on the island, and " a sight of our people had died." °We lingered at these cabins, waiting for a guard the officer at head-quarters thought it prudent to send with us. At last he arrived, — a shining black youngster in soldier-clothes, over- flowing with vanity and politeness. " I 'm waiting on your occupation, gentlemen," he said ; and we started on. We passed a field in which there were several women at work. As they had no mule, they did everything by hand, chopping up the turf and weeds with their great awkward hoes, and scraping them, with the surface soil, into little ridges, on which cotton or corn was to be planted. This process of preparing the ground is called " listing " ; it answers the pur- pose of ploughing, and the refuse stuff scraped together, rotting, serves instead of manure. My companion inquired on what terms they would consent to give up their forty-acre lot. One of them, poising her formidable hoe, replied in accents that carried conviction with them: OUR GUARD. -FREED^IEIN-S DISADVANTAGES. 543 we'oft-' '""'"* ^''"^' "' ^"''' ^"^'^ S^ ''^" ^-^'-«"t take ^ As we were now proceeding to a more remote part of the He evidently felt himself vastly superior to these low-down p antanon n.ggers And I noticed that when we stopped to taikwuh anyof them, and my friend recorded their names and nnmbers, and I also took notes, this shining black fellow in blue hkewise produced a piece of card and a pencil, and r^i^ndi: '' ^^"'"^^ '''-'' ''-' ""'--'^^ -^' ^-^^^ A mile or so from head-quarters we found negro men and women worknig in the fields. ^'^' Is this your farm ? " my friend inquired of one of them 1 calls It mme. General Saxton told me to come and stake out my forty acres, and he'd give me a ticket for it " " Would n't it be better for you to contract for good wa^es than to work in this way ? " '=' ' " No, I don't want to contract. 1 'H eat up my corn and fjcrtS ru.s • " Did you raise much last year?" " I begun too late. Den de drought hit us bad. Heap of places didn t raise much. But I got a little." _ Observing a strange looking thing of skin and bones stand- mg m the weeds, I asked, " Is that a horse ? " . " Dat 's a piece o' one. When he gits tired, I can take my arms ; 1 ve good strong arms." Upon that one of the women struck in vehemently • ;' I can plough land same as a boss. Wid dese hands I raise cotton dis year, buy two bosses ! " Seeing the immense disadvantage under which these poor people labored, without teams, without capital, and even with- out security in the possession of their little homesteads, I urged them to consider well what the planters had to offer. " If I contract, what good does my forty acres do me ? " 544 A VISIT TO JAMES ISLAND. " But you are not sure of your forty acres. This year or next they may be given back to the former owner. Then you will have nothing ; for you will have spent all your time and strength in trying to get a start. But if you work for wages, you will have, if you are prudent, a hundred and fifty dollars in clear cash at the end of the year. At that rate it will not be long before you will be able to buy a little place and stock it handsomely ; when you will probably be much better off than you would be working here in this way." I could see that this argument was not without its weight with the men. They appeared troubled by it, but not con- vinced. The women clamored against it, and almost made me feel that I was an enemy, giving them insidious ill advice. And when I saw the almost religious attachment of these peo- ple to their homes, and their hope and ambition bearing up resolutely against poverty and every discouragement, it would have caused me a pang of remorse to know that I had pur- suaded any of them to give up their humble but worthy and honest aims. Then the children came around us, carrying primers, out of which they read with pleased eagerness, either for the fun of the thing, or to show us what they could do. The parents, forgetting the disheartening words we had spoken, said cheerily, " Richard, Helen, time for school ! " and the little ones scampered away ; the older ones resumed their work, and we walked on. I was pleased to see some of the forty-acre lots enclosed by substantial new fences. But every question of benefit has two sides. The other side to this was that the fine old plantation shade-trees had been cut down and split into rails ; a circum- stance which made my friend the planter look glum. The island is level, with handsome hedged avenues running through it in various directions. It is nine miles in length and threeln breadth. We extended our walk as far as Fort Pem- berton, on Stono River, which bounded my friend's plantations in that direction. On our return, he thought he would try one more freedman with the offer of a contract. The man was working with his wife on a little farm of in- h;s ow:n" deh^er. 545 iefinite extent. « I don't knoAv how much land I have. I guessed off as near as I could forty acres." He said he had " a large fambly," and tliat lie came from Charleston. " I heard there was a chance of we being our own driver here ; that 's why we come." He could get tlong very well if he only had a horse. " But if I can git de land, I'll take my chances." " But if you can't get the land ? " " If a man got to go crost de riber, and he can't git a boat, he take a log. If I can't own de land, I '11 hire or lease land, but I won't contract." " Come, then," said my friend, "we may as well go home." 546 SHERMAN IN SOUTH CAROLIN'A. CHAPTER LXXVI. SHERMAN IN SOUTH CAROLINA. " The march of the Federals mto our State," says a writer in the " Columbia Pha?nix," " was characterized by such scenes of license, plunder, and conflagration as very soon showed that the threats of the Northern press, and of their soldiery, were not to be regarded as a mere hrutum fulmen. Daily long trains of fugitives lined the roads, with wives and children, and horses and stock and cattle, seeking refuge from the pursuers. Long lines of wagons covered the highways. Half-naked people cowered from the winter under bush-tents in the thickets, under the eaves of houses, under the railroad sheds, and in old cars left them along the route. All these repeated the same story of suffering, violence, poverty, and nakedness. Habitation after habitation, village after village, — one sending up its signal flames to the other, presaging for it the same fate, — lighted the winter and midnight sky with crimson horrors. " No language can describe, nor can any catalogue furnish, an adequate detail of the wide-spread destruction of homes and property. Granaries were emptied, and where the grain was not carried off, it was strewn to waste under the feet of the cavalry, or consigned to the fire which consumed the dwell- ing. The negroes were robbed equally Avith the whites of food and clothino;. The roads were covered with butchered cattle, hogs, mules, and the costliest furniture. Valuable cab- inets, rich pianos, were not only hewn to pieces, but bottles of ink, turpentine, oil, whatever could efface or destroy, were employed to defile and ruin. Horses were ridden into the houses. People were forced from their beds, to permit the search after hidden treasures. 648 SHERMAN IN SOUTH CAROLINA. "The beautiful homesteads of the parish country, with their wonderful tropical gardens, were ruined ; ancient dwellings of black cypress, one hundred years old, which had been reared by the fathers of the Republic, — men whose names were fa- mous in Revolutionary history, — were given to the torch as recklessly as were the rude hovels ; choice pictures and works of art from Europe, select and numerous libraries, objects of peace wholly, Avere all destroyed. The inhabitants, black no less than white, were left to starve, compelled to feed only upon, the garbage to be found in the abandoned camps of the soldiers. The corn scraped up from the spots where the horses fed, has been the only means of life left to thousands but lately in affluence. The villages of Buford's Bridge, of Barnwell, Blackville, Graham's, Bamberg, Midway, were more or less destroyed ; the inhabitants everywhere left homeless and with- out food. The horses and mules, all cattle and hogs, when- ever fit for service or for food, were carried off, and the rest shot. Every implement of the workman or the farmer, tools, ploughs, hoes, gins, looms, wagons, vehicles, was made to feed the flames." Passing northward through the State, by the way of Orange- burg, Columbia, and Winnsboro', I heard, all along the route, stories corroborative of the general truthfulness of this some- what highly colored picture. The following, related to me by a lady residing in Orangeburg District, will serve as a sample of these detailed narratives. " The burning of the bridges by the Confederates, as the Yankees were chasing them, did no good, but a deal of harm. They could n't stop such an army as Sherman's, but all they could do was to hinder it, and keep it a few days longer in the country, eating us up. " It was the best disciplined army in the world. At sun- down, not a soldier was to be seen, and you could rest in peace till morning. That convinces me that everything that was done was permitted, if not ordered. " I had an old cook with me, — one of the best old creatures you ever saw. She had a hard master before we bought her, HOUSES FIRED. 549 and she carried the marks on her face and hands where he had thrown knives at her. Such treatment as she got from us was something new to her ; and there was nothing she would n't do for us, in return. " ' For lieaven's sake, missus,' says she, ' bury some flour for the chil'n ! ' I gave her tlie keys to the smoke-house, and told her to do what she pleased. ' Send all the niggers off the place but me and my son,' she says, ' for I don't trust 'em.' Then she and her son buried two barrels of flour, the silver pitcher and goblets, and a box of clothes. But tliat night she dreamed that the Yankees came and found the place ; so the next morning she went and dug up all the things but the flour, which she had n't time to remove, and buried them under the hog-pen. Sure enough, when the Yankees came, they found the flour, but her dream saved the rest. She was afraid they would get hold of her son, and make him tell, so she kept him in the chimney-corner, right under her eyes, all day, pretending he was sick. " Some of the negroes were very much excited by the Yan- kees' coming. One of our black girls jumped up and shouted, ' Glory to God ! de Yankees is comin' to marry all we nio-- gers ! ' But they generally behaved very well. A black man named Charles, belonging to one of our neighbors, started %vith a load of goods, and flanked the Yankees for three days, and eluded them. " A good many houses were burned in our neighborhood. Some that were occupied were set on fire two or three times, and the inhabitants put them out. The Yankees set the woods on fire, and we should have all been burnt up, if our negroes hadn't dug trenches to keep the flames from reaching the buildings. General Sherman and his staff stopped at the house of a man of the name of Walker, in Barnwell District. While Mr. Walker was thanking him for protecting his prop-, erty, he turned around, and saw the house on fire. General Sherman was very indignant. Said he, ' If I could learn who did that, he should meet with condign punishment ! ' " The foragers broke down all the broadside of our barn, 550 SHERMAK IN SOUTH CAKOLINA. and let the corn out ; then they broke down all the broadside of the garden, and drove in. We had three hundred bushels of corn ; and they took all but fifty bushels ; they told me to hide that away. We had three barrels of syrup, and they took all but one gallon. They took eight thousand pounds of fodder, and three barrels of flour, all we had. We had twelve hundred pounds of bacon, and the soldiers took all but three pieces, which they said they left for the rest to take. We had twelve bushels of rough-rice ; they left us three ; and after- wards soldiers came in and threw shot in it, and mixed all up with sugar. " They loaded up our old family carriage with bacon and sweet potatoes, and drove it away, — and that hurt me worse than all. " They took our last potatoes. Three or four had just been roasted for the children : ' Damn the children ! ' they said ; and they ate the potatoes. " Out of forty hogs, they left us six. We had twenty-one head of cattle, and they left us five. The officers were very kind to us, and if we could have had them with us all the time, we should have saved a good deal of stuff. One Yankee lieutenant was with us a good deal, and he was just like a brother to me. He reprimanded the soldiers who spoke saucily to us, telling them to remember that they had mothers and sisters at home. He wanted me to put out a white flag, be- cause my husband is a Northern man. But I said, ' I 'II see this house torn to pieces first, for I 'm as good a Rebel as any of them ! ' He took three wagon-loads of corn from us : I thought that was mighty hard, if he cared anything for me." It was lie, however, who left her the fifty bushels, which no- body took. " The soldiers were full of fun and mischief Says one, ' I 'm going to the smoke-house, to sweeten my mouth with molasses, and then I 'm coming in to kiss these dumb perty girls.' They emptied out the molasses, then walked through it, and tracked it all over the house. They dressed up their horses in women's clothes. They tore up our dresses and WHITE OFFICERS AND COLORED GIRLS. 551 tied them to their horses' tails. Thej dressed up the neo-roes that followed them. They strung coxv-bells all around their horses and cattle. They killed chickens and brought them into the house on their bayonets, all dripping. " Two came into the house drunk, and ordered the old cook to get them some dinner. She told them we had nothino- left 'Go and kill a weasel!' said they. She boiled them "some eggs. They took one, and peeled it, and gave it to my little boy. ' Here, eat that ! ' said one. ' But I 've a good mind to blow your brams out, for you 're a d d little Rebel.' This man was from Connecticut, a native of the same town my husband came from. It would have been curiou.s if they had met, and found that they were old acquaintances ! "Some behaved very well. One was handling the fancy thmgs on the what-not, when another said, 'It won't help crush the Rebellion to break them.' ' I ain't going to break them,' he said, and he did n't. " My husband had moved up a large quantity of crockery and glass-ware from his store in Charleston, for safety The Yankees smashed it all. They wouldn't stop for keys, but broke open every drawer and closet. There wasn't a lock left in the neighborhood. " For three nights we never lay down at all. I just sat one side of the fireplace and another young lady the other thmking what had happened during the day, and wonderina' what dreadful things would come next. ^ " She had helped me bury three boxes of silver in the cellar. The soldiers were all around them, and afterwards I found one of the boxes sticking out ; but they did n't find them When they asked me for my silver I thought I 'd lie once, and I told them I had none. ' It 's a lie,' says one. Then the old cook s son spoke up, ' Take the word of a slave ; she 's n<,thincr buried. On that they stopped looking. * " Some of the officers had colored girls with them. One stopped over night with his miss at the house of one of our neighbors. When they came down stairs in the mornino- she was dressed up magnificently in Mrs. J 's best clothes 552 SHEllMAIT IN SOUTH CAROLINA. They ordered breakfast ; while they were eating, the last of the army passed on, and they were left behind. ' Captain,' says she, ' aint ye wery wentur'some ? ' " When one division was plundering us, the men would say, ' We 're nothing ; but if such a division comes along, you 're gone up.' " Besides the fifty bushels of corn the lieutenant left us, I don't think there were fifty bushels in the whole district. Our neighbors were jealous because we had been treated so much better than they. The Yankees did n't leave enough for the children to eat, nor dishes to eat off of. Those who managed to save a little corn or a few potatoes, shared with the rest. "We thought we were served badly enough. Of all my bedding, I had but two sheets and a pillow-case left. The Yankees did n't spare us a hat or a coat. They even took the children's clothes. We had n't a comb or a brush for our heads the next day, nor a towel for our hands. But, after all is said about Sherman's army, I confess some of our own soldiers, especially Wheeler's men, were about as bad. " I never gave the negroes a single order, but they went to work, after the Yankees had passed, and cleared up the whole place. They took corn and ground it ; and they went to the Yankee camp for meat, and cooked it for us. Our horses were taken, but they planted rice and corn with their hoes. There were scarcely any white men in the country. Most were in the army ; and the Yankees took prisoners all who came under the conscript act. They carried some away who have never been heard from since. " My husband was in Charleston, and for weeks neither of us knew if the other was alive. I walked seventeen miles to mail a letter to him. The old cook went with me and carried my child. From seven in the morning until dark, the first day, I walked twelve miles ; and five the next. The old cook did n't feel tired a bit, though she carried the baby ; bilt she kept saying to me, ' Do don't set down dar, missus ; we '11 neber git dar ! ' We were two days coming home again." FALL OF PKIDE. 553 CHAPTER LXXVII. THE BUKNING OF COLUMBIA. "It has pleased God," says the writer in the "Daily Phoenix " already quoted, " to visit our beautiful city with the most cruel fate which can ever befall states or cities. He has permitted an inyadmg army to penetrate our country almost without impediment; to rob and ravage our dwellings, and to commit three fifths of our city to the flames. Eighty-four squares, out of one hundred and twenty-four which the citv contains, have been destroyed, with scarcely the exception of a single house, ihe ancient capitol building of the State — that venerable structure, which, for seventy years, has echoed with the elo- quence and wisdom of the most famous statesmen— is laid in ashes ; six temples of the Most High God have shared the same fate ; eleven banking establishments ; the schools of learn- ing, the shops of art and trade, of invention and manufacture • shnnes equally of religion, benevolence, and industry ; are all buried together, in one congregated ruin. Humiliation spreads her ashes over our homes and garments, and the universal wreck exhibits only one common aspect of despair." Columbia, the proud capital of the proudest State in the Union, — who ever supposed that nlie could be destined to such a fate ? Who ever imagined that in tliu way that fine bird secession, would come home to roost ? ' Almost until the last moment the people of South Carolina relying upon the immense prestige of their little State sover- eignty, even after the State was invaded, believed that the capital was safe. Already, during the war, thousands of citi- zens from Charleston and other places, in order to avoid the possibility of danger, had sought the retirement of its beautiful shady streets and supposed impregnable walls. The popula- 554 THE BURNING OF COLUMBIA. tion of Columbia had thus increased, in two or three ;years, from fourteen thousand to thirty -seven thousand. Then Sherman aj)peared, driving clouds of fugitives before him into the city. Still the inhabitants cherished their delusion, until it was dispelled by the sound of the Federal cannon at their gates. The Confederate troops fell back into the city, followed by bursting shells. Then commenced the usual scenes of panic. "Terrible was the press, the shock, the rush, the hurry, the universal confu- sion — such as might naturally be looked for, in the circum- stances of a city from which thousands were preparing to fly, without previous preparations for flight, burdened with pale and trembling women, their children and j)ortable chattels, trunks and jewels, family Bibles and the lares familiar es. The railroad depot for Charlotte was crowded with anxious waiters upon the train, with a wilderness of luggage, millions, perhaps, in value, much of which was left finally and lost. Through- out Tuesday, Wednesday, and Thursday, these scenes of strug- gle were in constant performance. The citizens fared badly. The Governments of the State and of the Confederacy ab- sorbed all the modes of conveyance. Transportation about the city could not be had, save by a rich or favored few. No love could persuade where money failed to convince, and self, growing bloated in its dimensions, stared from every hurry- ing aspect, as you traversed the excited and crowded streets. In numerous instances, those who succeeded in getting away, did so at the cost of trunks and luggage ; and, under what discomfort they departed, no one who did not see can readily conceive." ^ Numbers of the poorer classes took advantage of this con- fusion to plunder the city. On Friday morning, they broke into the South Carolina Railroad Depot, which was " crowded with the stores of merchants and planters, trunks of treasure, innumerable wares and goods of fugitives, all of great value. It appears that among its contents were some kegs of powder. The plunderers paid, and suddenly, the penalties of their crime. 1 Daily Phcenix. ORIGIN OF THE FIRES. 555 Using their lights freely and hurriedly, they fired a train of powder leading to the kegs." A fearful explosion followed destructive to property and life.i ' Early on Friday the Confederate quartermaster and com- missary stores were thrown open to the people. Old men women, children, and negroes, loaded themselves with plunder' Wheeler s cavalry rushed in for their share, and several troop- ers were seen riding off -with huge bales of cotton on their saddles. ^ The same day -Friday, February 17th _ Sherman en- tered Columbia. To the anxious mayor he said: "Not a lingers breadth of your city shall be harmed. You may lie down and sleep, satisfied that your town will be as safe in my hands as m your own." That night Columbia was destroyed It IS sti 1 a question, who is responsible for this calamity. Cxeneral Sherman denies that he authorized it, and we are bound to believe him. But did he not permit it? or was' it not m his power at least to have prevented it? General Howard is reported to have said to a clergvman of the place that no orders were given to burn Columbia, but the soldiers had got the impression that its destruction would be acceptable at head-quarters. Were the soldiers correct in their imnres- sion ? ^ A member of General Sherman's staff speaks thus of the origin of the fire : — "lam quite sure that it originated in sparks flyino- from the hundreds of bales of cotton which the Rebels had "^.laced along the middle of the main street, and fired as they left the city. Fire from a tightly compressed bale of cotton is unlike that of a more open material, which burns itself out The fire lies smouldering in a bale of cotton long after it appears to be extinguished; and in this instance, when our soldiers supposed they had extinguished the fire, it suddenly broke out again with the most disastrous effect. _ " There were fires, however, which must have been started mdependent of the above-named cause. The source of these 1 Daily PhcBnix. 556 THE BURNING OF COLUMBIA. is ascribed to the desire for revenge from some two hundred of our prisoners, who had escaped from the cars as they were being conveyed from this city to Charlotte, and with the mem- ories of long sufferings in the miserable pens I visited yester- day on the other side of the river, sought this means of retal- iation. Again it is said that the soldiers who first entered the town, intoxicated with success and a liberal supply of bad liquor, which was freely distributed among them by designing citizens, in an insanity of exhilaration set fire to unoccupied houses," ^ It is also probable that fires were set by citizen marauders. But is this the whole truth with reo;ard to the burning of Columbia ? I visited the place nearly a year after its great disaster, when the passions of men had had time to cool a little. Through the courtesy of Governor Orr I made acquaintance with prominent and responsible citizens. To these gentlemen — especially to Mr. J. G. Gibbes, the present mayor of the city — I am indebted for the following statements and anec- dotes. Early in the evening, as the inhabitants, quieted by General Shemnan's assurance, were about retiring to their beds, a rocket went up in the lower part of the city. Another in the centre, and a third in the upper part of the town, succeeded. Dr. R. W. Gibbes, father of the present mayor, was in the street talking, near one of the Federal guards, who exclaimed, on seeing the signals, " My God ! I pity your city ! '' Mr. Goodwyn, who was mayor at the time, reports a similar re- mark from an Iowa soldier. " Your city is doomed ! These rockets are the signal ! " Immediately afterwards fires broke out in twenty different places. The dwellings of Secretary Trenholm and General Wade Hampton were among the first to burst into flames. Soldiers went from house to house, spreading the conflagration. Fire- balls, composed of cotton saturated with turpentine, were thrown in at doors and windows. Many houses were entered, 1 Nichols's Story of the Great March. STORIES OF FEDERAL GUARDS. 557 and fired by means of combustible liquids poured upon bed^ and clothing, and ignited by wads of burning cotton, or matches from a soldier's pocket. The fire department came out in force, but the hose-pipes v/ere cut to pieces and the men driven from the streets. At the same time universal plundering and robbery began. The burning of the house of Dr. R. W. Gibbes, — an emi- nent physician, well-known to the scientific world, — was thus described to me by his son : — "He had a guard at the front door; but some soldiers climbed in at the rear of the house, got into the parlor, heaped together sheets poured turpentine over them, piled chairs on them, and set them on fire. As he remonstrated with tliem, they laughed at him. The guard at the front door could do nothing, for if he left his post, other soldiers would come in that way. " The guard had a disabled foot, and my father had dressed it for him. He appeared very gratefuffor the ftivor, and earnestly advised my flither to save his valuables. The house was full of costly paintings, and curiosities of art and natural history, and my father did not know Avhat to save and what to leave behind. He finally tied up in a bedquilt a quantity of silver and gems. As he was going out of the door, — the house was already on fire behind him, —the guard said, 'Is that all you can save ? ' ' It is all I can well carry,' said my father. ' Leave that with me,' said the guard ; 'I will take charge of it, while you go back and get another bundle.' My father thought he was very kind. He went back for another bundle, and while he was gone, the guard ran off with his lame leg and all the gems and silver." One of Mr. Gibbes's neighbors, a widow lady, had an equally conscientious guard. He said to her, " I can guard the front of the house, but not the rear; and if you\ave anything valuable buried you had better look after "it." She threw up her hands and exclaimed, " O, my silver and my fine old wine, buried under that peach-tree ! " The guard immediately called a squad of men, and told them to respect bi)8 THE BURNING OF COLUMBIA. the widow lady's wine and silver, buried under that peach- tree. He went with them, and they dug a little to see if the treasures were safe. Finding the wine, they tasted it to see if it merited the epithet " fine old." Discovering that it did, they showed their approbation of her good sense and truthful- ness by drinking it up. They then carried off the silver. The soldiers, in their march through Georgia, and tlnis far into South Carolina, had acquired a wonderful skill in finding treasures. They had two kinds of " divining-rods," negroes, and bayonets. What the unfaithful servants of the rich failed to reveal, the other instruments, by thorough and constant practice, were generally able to discover. On the night of the fire, a thousand men could be seen, in the yards and gar- dens of Columbia, by the glare of the flames, probing the earth with bayonets. " Not one twentieth part of the articles buried in this city escaped them," Mr. Gibbes assured me. The fire was seen at immense distances. A gentleman living eighty-five miles north of Columbia, told me he could see to read in his garden that night by the light it gave. The dismay and terror of the inhabitants can scarcely be conceived. They had two enemies, the fire in their houses and the soldiery without. Many who attempted to bear away portions of their goods were robbed by the way. Trunks and bundles were snatched from the hands of hurrying fugitives, broken open, rifled, and then hurled into the flames. Orna- ments were plucked from the necks and arms of ladies, and caskets from their hands. Even children and negroes were robbed. Fortunately the streets of Columbia Avere broad, else many of the fugitives must have perished in the flames which met tbem on all sides. The exodus of homeless families, flying between walls of fire, was a terrible and piteous spectacle. I have already described a similar scene in a Reminiscence of Chambersburg, and shall not dwell upon this. The fact that these were the wives and children and flaming homes of our enemies, does not lessen the feeling of sympathy for the suf- ^rers. Some fled to the parks; others to the open ground SACKING OF CHURCHES. -DISCIPLINE. 559 without the city ; numbers sought refuge in the graveyards. Isolated and unburned dwellings were crowded to excess with fugitives. "On Saturday morning," said Mayor Gibbes, " there were two Imndred women and children in tliis house."' Three fifths of the city in bulk, and four fifths in value, were destroyed. The loss of property is estimated at thirty millions. No more respect seems to have been shown for buildin-s com- monly deemed sacred, than for any others. The churches were pillaged, and afterwards burned. St. Mary's Colleo-e, a Catholic institution, shared their fate. The Catholic Convent to which had been confided for safety many young ladies, not nuns, and stores of treasure, was ruthlessly sacked. The' sol- diers drank the sacramental wine, and profaned with fiery draughts of vulgar whiskey the goblets of the communion ser- vice. Some went off reeling under the weight of priestly robes, holy vessels, and candlesticks. Not even the Masonic and Odd Fellow lodges were spared. Afterwards tipsy soldiers were seen about the streets dressed up in the regalias of these orders. The sword of state be- longing to the Grand Lodge of South Carolina, a massy, 'curi- ous, two-edged weapon, of considerable antiquity, was amono- the objects stplen. '^ The buildings and library of South Carolina College were saved. Not much drunkenness was observed among the soldiers until after the sacking of the city had been some time in prog- ress. Then the stores of liquors consumed exhibited thetr natural effect; and it is stated that many perished in fires of their own kindling. Yet the army of Sherman did not, in its wildest orgies, for- get Its splendid discipline. " When will these horrors cease ? " ■ asked a lady of an officer at her house. " You will hear the bugles at sunrise," he replied; "then they will cease, and not till then. ' He prophesied truly. "At daybreak, on Satur- day morning," said Mayor Gibbes, "I saw two men gallopino- through the streets, blowing horns. Not a dwelling was fired after that ; immediately the town became quiet." 560 THE BURNING OF COLUMBIA. Robberies, however, did not cease with the night. Watches and money continued to be in demand. A soldier would ask a citizen the time. If the latter was so imprudent as to pro- duce his watch, it was instantly snatched. " A very pretty watch that ; 1 '11 take it, if you please," was the usual remark accompanying the act. One old gentleman who had purchased two watches for his grandchildren, lost one in this way. In his rage and grief he exclaimed, " You may as well take the other I " And his suggestion was cheerfully complied with. Another sufferer said, " That watch will be good for noth- ing without the key. Won't you stop and take it ? " " Thank you," said the soldier ; and he went off, proudly winding his new chronometer. A few saved their watches by the use of a little artifice. " What 's the time ? " cried a soldier, stopping a ready-witted gentleman. " You 're too late ; I was just asked that ques- tion," was the opportune reply. Another looked up where the city hall clock stood until brought down by the fire, and re- plied to the question of time, " The clock has been burned, you see." The women of Columbia have the credit of exhibiting; great courage and presence of mind, under these trying circum- stances. Occasionally, however, they were taken by surprise. I have related how one lady lost her silver and fine old wine. Another was suddenly accosted by a soldier who thrust his revolver under her bonnet : " Your money ! your watch ! " " O, my soul ! " she exclaimed, " I have no Avatch, no money, except what 's tied 'round my waist ! " "I '11 relieve you of that," said the soldier, ripping up her stays with his knife. The soldiers were full of cheerful remarks about the fire. " What curious people you are ! " said one, looking at the ruins. " You run up your chimneys before you build your houses." • Although some of the guards were faithless, others — and I hope a majority of them — executed their trust with fidelity. Some curious incidents occurred. One man's treasure, con- CURIOUS INCIDE^^TS. 561 cealed by his gaixlen fence, escaped the soldiers' divining-rods, but was afterwards discovered by a liitched horse pawing the earth from the buried box. Some hidden guns had defied the most dihgent search, until a chicken, chased by a soldier, ran into a hole beneath a house. The soldier, crawling after] and putting in his hand for the chicken, found the guns! A soldier, passing in the streets, and seeing sonte children playhig with a beautiful little greyhound, amused himself by beating its brains out. Another soldier with a kinder heart, to comfort them, told them not to cry, and proposed to have a funeral over the remains of their little favorite. He put it in a box, and went to bury it in the garden, directly on the spot where the family treasures were concealed. The proprietor, in great distress of mind, watched the proceedings, fearful' of exciting suspicion if he opposed it, and trembling lest each thrust of the spade should reveal the secret. A corner of the box was actually laid bare, when, kicking some dirt over it, he said, "There, that will do, children ! " and hastened the burial. The soldier no doubt tliought he betrayed a good deal of emo- tion at the grave of a lap-dog. The hole was filled up, but the danger was not yet over, for there was a chance that the next soldier who came that way might be attracted by the fresh-looking earth, and 2:0 to dio-oino-. borne treasures were buried in cemeteries, but they did not always escape the search of the soldiers, who showed a strong mistrust of new-made graves. It is curious to consider what has become of all the jewels and finery of which our armies robbed the people of the South. On two or three occasions gentlemen of respectability have shown me, with considerably more pride than I could have felt under the circumstances, vases' and trinkets which they " picked up when they were in the army." Some of these curiosities have been heard from by their rightful owners. A ring, worn by a lady of Philadelphia, was last summer recog- nized by a Southern gentleman, who remarked that he thought he had seen it before. " Very possibly," was the reply • « it was given me by Captain , of General Sherman's staff- 36 ' 562 THE BUK:N'mG OF COLUMBIA. and it was presented to him by a lady of Columbia for his efforts in saving her property." But the lady of Columbia, who knew nothing of any such efforts in her behalf, avers that the gallant captain stole the ring.^ Mrs. Minegault, daughter of the late Judge Huger, of Charleston, — the same gentleman who was associated with Dr. Bollmann in the attempted rescue of Lafayette from the dungeons of Olmiitz, — while on a visit to New York last sum- mer, was one Sunday morning kneeling in Grace Church, when she saw upon the fair shoulders of a lady kneeling before her, a shawl which had been lost when her plantation, between Charleston and Savannah, was plundered by the Federals. Her attention being thus singularly atti'acted, she next ob- served on the lady's arm a bracelet which was taken from her at the same time. This was to her a very precious souvenir, for it had been presented to her by her father, and it contained his picture. The services ended, she followed the lady home, and rang at the door immediately after she had entered. Ask- ing to see the lady of the house, she was shown into the parlor, and presently the lady appeared, with the shawl upon her shoulders and the bracelet on her arm. Frankly the visitor related the story of the bracelet, and at once the wearer re- stored it to her with ample apologies and regrets. The visitor, quite overcome by this generosity, and delighted beyond meas- 1 An officer taking his punch (they drink punch in the army when the coffee ration is exhausted) from an elegantly -cliased silver cup, was saluted thus: — " Halloa, captain, that 's a gem of a cup. No mark on it; why, where did you get it?" " Ye-e-s! that cup? Oh, that was given me by a lady in Columbia for saving hei households gods from destruction." An enterprising officer in charge of a foraging party would return to camp with a substantial family coach, well filled with hams, meal, etc. " How are you, captain ? Where did you pick up that carriage ? " " Elegant vehicle, is n't it ? " was the reply ; " that was a gift from a lady out here whose mansion was in flames. Arrived at the nick of time — good thing — she said she didn't need the carriage any longer — answer for an ambulance one of these days." After a while this joke came to be repeated so often that it was dangerous for any one to exhibit a gold watch, a tobacco-box, any uncommon utensil of kitchen ware, a new pipe, a guard-chain, or a ring, without being asked if " a lady at Columbia had presented that article to him for saving her house from burning." — Story of the ■ Great March. DESTITUTION. -WAR AND EDUCATION. 568 ure at the recovery of the bracelet, had not the heart to say a ■word about the shawl, but left it in the possession of the inno^ cent wearer. I talked with some good Columbians who expressed the most violent hatred of the Yankees, for the ruin of their homes. Others took a more philosophical view of the subject. This difference was thus explained to me by Governor Orr's private secretary, an intelligent young man, who had been an officer in the Confederate service : — "People who were not in the war cannot understand or forgive these things. But those who have been in the army know what armies are ; they know that, under the same cir- cumstances, they would have done the same things." i I also observed that those whose losses were greatest were seldom those who complained most. Mayor Gibbes lost more cotton than any other individual in the Confederacy. Sher- man burned for him two thousand and seven hundred bales, besides mills and other property. Yet he spoke of these re- sults of the war without a murmur. He censured Sherman severely, however, for the destitution in which he left the people of Columbia. " I called on him to relieve the starving inhabitants he had burned out of their homes. He gave us four hundred head of refuse cattle, but he gave us nothing to feed them, and a hundred and sixty of them died of starvation before they could be killed. For five weeks afterwards, twenty-five hundred people around Columbia lived upon nothing but loose grain picked up about the camps, where the Federal horses had been fed. A stranger," he added, " cannot be made to understand the continued destitu- tion and poverty of the people of this district. If a tax should now be assessed upon them of three dollars per head, there would not be money enough in the district to pay it. Ordi- 1 " The grass will grow in the Northern cities, where the pavements have been worn off by the tread of commerce. We will carry war where it is easy to advance — where food for the sioord and tm-ch await our armies in the densely populated cities; and though they (the enemy) may come and spoil our crops, we can raise them as before while they cannot rear the cities which took years of industry and mUlions of money to bmld." Teff Davis in 1861 — Speech at Stevenson, Ala. 664 THE BUENES^G OF COLUMBIA. narlly, our annual taxes in this city have been forty thousand dollars. This year they have dropped down to eighteen hun- dred dollars." South Carolina Colleo;e is a striking illustration of the effect the war has had upon the institutions of learning at the South. Formerly it had about two hundred and fifty students ; it has now but eighteen. The State appropriated annually sixty-five thousand dollars for its benefit ; this year a nominal appropri- ation of eight thousand dollars was made, to pay the salaries of the professors, but when I was in Columbia they had not been able to get that. One, a gentleman of distinguished learning, said he had not had ten dollars in his possession since Sherman visited them. Of the desolation and horrors our army left behind it, no description can be given. Here is a single instance. At a factory on the Congaree, just out of Columbia, there re- mained, for six weeks, a pile of sixty-five dead horses and mules, shot by Sherman's men. It was impossible to bury them, all the shovels, spades, and other farming implements of the kind having been carried off" or destroyed. Columbia must have been a beautiful city, judged by its ruins. The streets were broad and well shaded. Many fine residences still remain on the outskirts, but the entire heart of the city, within their circuit, is a wilderness of crumbling walls, naked chimneys, and trees killed by the flames. The fountains of the desolated gardens are dry, the basins cracked ; the pillars of the houses are dismantled, or overthrown ; the marble steps are broken ; but all these attest the wealth and elegance which one night of fire and orgies sufficed to destroy. Fortunately the unfinished new State House, one of the hand- somest public edifices in the whole country, received but tri- fling injury. Not much was doing to rebuild any but the business portion of the city. Only on Main Street were there many stores or shanties going up. FREE LABOR.— LANDS. 365 CHAPTER LXXVIII. NOTES ON SOUTH CAROLINA. At a distance from the Sea Islands, the free-labor system in South Carolina, was fast settling down upon a satisfectorj basis. General Richardson, commanding the Eastern District of the State, — comprising all the districts east of the Wateree and Santee, except Georgetown and Horry, on the coast, assured me that there was going to be more cotton raised in those districts this year than ever before. In the districts w^est of the Wateree, the soil is not so well adapted to cotton, and the country abounds in ignorant small planters and poor whites. A planter of the average class, in York District, said to me : «' The people of this countiy for- merly lived on nigger-raising. That Avas the crap we de- pended on. If we could raise corn and pork enough to feed the niggers, we did well. Now this great staple is tuk from us." The planters here love to dwell upon the advantages they derived from that crop. One said to me ; " Let a young man take three likely gals, set 'em to breedin' right away, and he mought make a fortune out on 'em, 'fore he was old. But them times is past." The winds of freedom had scarcely reached the more re- mote western districts. A planter of Union District told me that he was hiring good men for twenty-five dollars a year. " Heap on 'em, round here, just works for their victuals and clothes, like they always did. I reckon they '11 all be back whar they was, in a few years." The South Carolina lands and modes of culture are not well adapted to corn. A rotation of crops is deemed neces- sary to keep the soil in a condition to raise it successfully. 566 NOTES ON SOUTH CAROLINA. The decay of cotton seed and waste cotton is its best fertilizer. During the war, when httle cotton was raised, planters became alarmed at the yearly decrease of the corn crop. The average yield, thronghout the State, the first year, was fifteen bushels to the acre ; the second, twelve bushels ; the third, nine bush- els ; and the fourth, six bushels. Before the war, the city of Charleston exported annually one hundred and twenty-five thousand tierces of rice. This year, it is importing rice of an inferior quality from the West Indies. This fact indicates the condition of that culture. Yet in the face of it, rice-planters were raising the price of their lands from fifty dollars an acre, for which they could be bought before the war, to one hundred dollars. As the rice plantations are confined to the tide- water region, where the fields can be flooded after sowing, their present prospects were more or less embarrassed by the knotty Sea- Island question. " If our people this year make one sixth of an average rice-crop," said Governor Orr, " they will be for- tunate, and they will be doing well. In old times, our annual crop brought upwards of three and a half million dollars, when rice was only five cents a pound." The railroads of South Carolina were nearly worn out during the war. All sorts of iron were used to keep them in repair ; and the old rolling-stock was kept running until it was ready to fall to pieces. Then Sherman came. The South Carolina Road, wealthy before the war, was relaying its torn-up track and rebuilding its extensive trestle-work and bridges, as fast as its earnings would permit. The branch to Columbia was once more in operation ; but, on the main road to Augusta, travel was eked out by a night of terribly rough stagincr. The finances of South Carolina were at a low ebb. Gov- ernor Orr told me that there had not been a dollar in the State treasury since his inauguration. The current expenses of the war were mostly met by taxation ; and the annual in- terest on the foreip-n debt of two and a half millions had been promptly paid, up to July, 1865, by the exportation of cotton. DEBTS. — TAXES. — OUTRAGES. 567 The State bank was obliged to suspend its operations, but the faith of the State was pledged for the redemption of the bills. The other banks had been ruined bj loans made to the Con- federate government. Their stock had been considered the safest in the market, and the property of widows and orphans was largely invested in it. The estates of the stockholders, liable for double the amount of the bills issued, were insuf- ficient to redeem them. In January, 1866, two National Banks had been organized in the State. The aggregate of debts, old and new, in South Carolina, were estimated to be worth not more than twenty-five per cent, of their par value. South Carolina had suffered more than any other State by the sale of lands for United States taxes, during the war. I heard of one estate, woi-tli fifteen thousand dollars, which had been sold for three hundred dollars. Governor Orr instanced another, the market value of which was twenty-four thousand dollars, which was bought in by the government for eighty dollars. Such was the fate of abandoned coast lands held by the United States forces. Their owners, absent in the inte- rior, were in most instances ignorant even of the proceedings by which their estates were sacrificed. In this way, accord- ing to the governor, " the entire parish of St. Helena, and a portion of St. Luke's, have completely changed hands, and passed either into the possession of the government, or of third parties." The prevalence of crime in remote districts was alarming. I was assured by General Sickles that the perpetrators were in most cases outlaws from other States, to which they dared not return. Union soldiers and negroes were their favorite vic- tims. They rode in armed bands through the country, defying the military authorities. The people would not inform against them for fear of their vengeance. Many robberies and mur- ders of soldiers and freedmen, however, were unmistakably committed by citizens. Much ill-feeling had been kept alive by United States treas- ury agents, searching the country for Confederate cotton and 568 NOTES ON SOUTH CAROLINA. branded mules and horses. Many of these agents, as far as I could learn, both in this and in other States, were mere rogues and fortune-hunters. They would propose to seize a man's property in the name of the United States, but abandon the claim on the payment of heavy bribes, which of course went into their own pockets. Sometimes, having seized " C. S. A.'* cotton, they would have the marks on the bales changed, get some man to claim it, and divide with him the profits. Such practices had a pernicious eifect, engendering a contempt for the government, and a murderous ill-will which too commonly vented itself upon soldiers and negroes. I found in South Carolina a more virulent animosity existing in the minds of the common people, against the government and people of the North, than in any other State I visited. Only in South Carolina was I treated with gross personal -in- sults on account of my Northern origin. There is notwithstanding in this State a class of men whom I remember with admiration for their courteous hospitality and liberal views. Instead of insulting and repelling Northern men, they invite them, and seem eager to learn of them the secret of Northern enterprise and prosperity. Their ideas, although not those of New-England radicals, are hopeful and progressive. Considering that they have advanced from the Southern side of the national question, their position is notable and praiseworthy. This class is small, but it possesses a vital enero-y of which great results may be predicted. From it the freedmen have much to hope and little to fear. It is not so far in advance of the people that it cannot lead them ; nor so far behind the most advanced sentiment of the times that we may not expect them soon to come up to it. Foremost among this class is Governor Orr, — almost the only man in South Carolina who seemed to me prepared to consider dispassionately the subject of universal suffrage. The color of the negro's skin, he said, was no good reason for keep- ing the ballot out of his hand. " In this country, suffrage is progressive ; and when the colored people are prepared for it, they will have it." A large proportion of the freedmen, h© GOVERKOR ORE'S CARPENTER. 669 felt sure, would become industrious aud respectable citizen. As an .nstance of the capacity and fidelity sb'owu by Cy „f .he,r race, he gave an account of one of 1,1 own slaves "^ «e ,s by trade a car|)enter, and a first-class workman by ir:,^ "'; "' ''t°"S'™' °™^'-' "■- ^manclpa: d m set ! tol' '" 1^"™ '""•' "'"' ^'' "terty.a mule, i saddle, a »«„ he looked for some i If b;^!rthe ^il' ^^t and thus converting them into pubfc paupers. I reoufr d the master, before freeing his servant, to make a certabta.e ^npport. Tins formahty had been neglected in Henry's cue • and he court decided that he must remain a slave."^ Wl en' the fact ™s made known to him, he said to the executor ' I? the court has so decided, I suppose I must abide by th d'ecis .on. It ,s unjust, hut I submit to it. But I will Lver serve y u. I have lost all confidence in you, and all respect for you and the best tlnng you can do is to sell me.' The execTo; was so nnpressed by this declaration, that he told him to lo pir-Tft^r huL^diiir""' '° '- - -' ^^^^ "^ "He hyed as my slave until the close of the war: and all the time his nat ence ,tnrU,- l.:. . TT» .,„ Patenco undei his great wrong was wonderful. He never complained; and he served mt with the mos conscientious fidehty. By overwork, he earned two hunfed dollars a year, which he spent upon his family. I had boS him a set of toos worth five hundred doIlL, and cie ntc books worth one hundred, which I gave him when we pa rtfd assure you. He is now doing business in Columbia He might become wealthy, but he is too generous. He wHI nol pend his earnings foolishly, but he will share whatever he z i: : '" ^^°""- "^ -- ^ ™-' '- --M give : , • 570 NOTES OIT SOUTH CAEOLIN"A. There were in January fifty freedmen's schools in operation in South CaroHna, with one hundred and twenty teachers, and ten thousand pupils. The New-England Freedmen's Aid, and the National Freedmen's Association, had each about fifty teachers in the field. The Boston teachers in Charleston get forty-five dollars a month, and pay their own expenses. At other points, where expenses are less, they get thirty-five dol- lars. The average yearly cost of each teacher to the associa- tions is six hundred dollars. The American Missionary Association, the Pennsylvania Freedmen's. Relief, and the Friends' Freedmen's Association, had also teachers in the field. The State superintendent of freedmen's schools spoke in high praise of the school in the Normal school building, at Charles- ton. The principal was a colored man who had been educated at his own expense at the University of Glasgow. Another teacher was a colored girl, who had taug-ht a free colored school in Charleston during the war, — payiiig half her income to a white woman for sitting and sewing in the school-room, and appearing as the teacher, when it was visited by the police. " This woman's pupils," said Mr. Tomlinson, " draw maps, and do everything white girls of twelve and sixteen years do, in ordinary advanced schools." General Richardson of the Eastern District, had set a number of old soldiers, unfit for military duty, to teaching the freedmen. There was not much active opposition shown to the schools in the State, nor yet much encouragement. Only here and there an enlightened planter saw the necessity of education for the negroes, and favored it. DISSECTIiq^G THE YANKEES. 571 CHAPTER LXXIX. THE RIDE TO WINNSBORO'. For a distance of thirty miles north of Columbia, I had an interesting experience of staging over that portion of the Char- lotte and South Carolina Railroad destroyed by Sherman. Much of the way the stage route ran beside or near the track. Gangs of laborers were engaged in putting down new ties and rails, but most of the old iron lay where our boys left it. It was the Seventeenth Corps that did this little job, and it did it well. It was curious to note the different styles of the destroying parties. The point where one detail appeared to have left oft' and another to have begun was generally unmis- takable. For a mile or two you would see nothing but hair- pins, and bars wound around telegraph posts and trees. Then you would have corkscrews and twists for about the same dis- tance. Then came a party that gave each heated rail one sharp wrench in the middle, and left it perhaps nearly straight, but facing both ways. Here was a plain business method, and there a fantastic style, which showed that its authors took a wild delight in their work. Early in the morning I rode with the driver, in the hope of learning something of him with regard to the country. But he proved to be a refogee from East Tennessee, where he said a rope-noose was waiting for him. An active Rebel, he had been guilty of some offences which the Union men there could not forgive. Finding him as ignorant of the country as myself, I o-ot down, and took a seat inside the coach. Within, an animated political discussion was at it§ height. Two South Carohnians and a planter from Arkansas were dissecting the Yankees in liveliest fashion ; while a bitter South Carolina lady and a good-natured Virginian occasionally put in a word. dl2 THE KIDE TO WINNSBORO'. It was some time before I was recognized as a representa- tive of all that was mean and criminal in the world. At lensth something I said seemed to excite suspicion ; and the Arkan- san wrote something on a card, which was passed to every one of the company except me. An alarming hush of several minutes ensued. It was as if a skeleton had appeared at a ban- quet. The abuse of the Yankees was the banquet ; and I was perfectly well aware that I was the skeleton. At last the awful silence Avas broken by the Arkansan. " What is thought of neo-ro suffrao;e at the North ? " o o o The question was addressed to me. I replied that opinion was divided on that subject ; but that many people believed some such security was necessary for the freedmen's rights. " They do not think it quite safe," I said, " to leave him with- out any voice in making the laws by which he is to be gov- erned, — subject entirely to the legislation of a class that cannot forget that he was born a slave." " I believe," said one of the South Carolinians, " all that is owing to the lies of the newspaper correspondents travelling through the South, and writing home whatever they think will injure us. I wish every one of 'em Avas killed off. If it was n't for them, we should be left to attend to our own busi- ness, instead of being ridden to death by our Yankee masters. It is n't fair to take solitary instances reported by them, as representing the condition of the niggers and the disposition of the whites. Some impudent darkey, who deserves it, gets a knock on the head, or a white man speaks his mind rather too freely to some Yankee who has purposely provoked him, and a long newspaper story is made out of it, showing that every nigger in the South is in danger of being killed, and every white man is disloyal." " Certainly," I said, " isolated cases do not represent a whole people. But the acts of a legislative body may be supposed to represent the spirit and wishes of its constituents. We consider the negro code enacted by your special legisla- ture simply abominable. It is enough of itself to show that you are not quite ready to do the freedmen justice. Your SOUTH CAROLIN"A AND MASSACHUSETTS. 573 present governor appears to be of the same opinion, judged by his veto of the act to amend the patrol laws, and his excel- lent advice to your representatives who passed it. You are wholly mistaken, my friend, in supposing tliat the people of the North wish anything of you that is unnecessary, unreason- able, or unjust. They may be mistaken with regard to what is necessary, but they are honest in their intentions." " All we want," said the South Carolinian, " is that our Yankee rulers should give us the same privileges with regard to the control of labor which they themselves have." " Very well ; what privileges have they which you have not ? " " In Massachusetts, a laborer is obliged by law to make a contract for a year. If he leaves his employer without his consent, or before the term of his contract expires, he can be put in jail. And if another man hires him, he can be fined. It is not lawful there to hire a laborer who does not brino- a certificate from his last employer. All we want is the same or a similar code of laws here." " My dear sir," said I, " all any man could wish is that you might have just such laws here as they have in Massachu- setts. But with regai'd to the code you speak of, it does not exist there, and it does not exist in any Northern State with which I am acquainted. There is nothing like it anywhere." " How do you manage without such laws ? How can you get work out of a man unless you compel him in some way ? " " Natural laws compel him ; we need no others. A man must work if he would eat. A faithful laborer is soon discov- ered, and he commands the best wages. An idle fellow is detected quite as soon ; and if he will not do the work he has agreed to do, he is discharged. Thus the system regulates itself." *' You can't do that way with niggers." " Have you ever tried ? Have you ever called your freed- men together and explained to them their new condition ? A planter I saw in Alabama told me how he managed this thing. He said to his people, ' If you do well, I shall want you an- 674 THE EIDE TO WINNSBORO'. other year. The man who does best will be worth the most to me. But if you are lazy and unfaithful, I shall dismiss you when your contracts are ended, and hire better men. Do you know why some overseers are always wandering about in search of a situation ? ' ' Because nobody wants 'em,' said the negroes. ' Why not ? ' ' Because they a'n't good for their business.' ' Why did I keep John Bird pnly one year ? ' ' Because, soon as your back was turned, he slipped off to a grocery, or went a-fishing.' ' And why did I keep William Hooker eight years, and increase his salary every year ? ' ' Because he stuck by and always looked after your interest.' ' Now,' said the planter, ' you are in the condition of these overseers. You can always have good situations, and your prospects will be continually improving, if you do well. Or you may soon be going about the country with bundles on your backs, miserable low-down niggers that nobody will hire.' In this way he instructed and encouraged the freedmen ; and he assured me they were working better than ever. But by your serf-codes you would crush all hope and manhood out of them." " Well, there may be something in all that. I can't say, for I never thought of trying but one way with a nigger. But nigger suffrage the South a'n't going to stand anyhow. We 've already got a class of voters that 's enough to corrupt the pol- itics of any country." I used to think the nigger was the meanest of God's creatures. But I 've found a meaner brute than he ; and that 's the low-down white man. If a respect- able man hires a nigo-er for wages, one of those low-down cusses will offer him twice as much, to get him away. They want him to prowl for them. A heap of these no-account whites are getting rich, stealing cotton ; they 're too lazy or cowardly to do it themselves, so they get the niggers to do it for 'em. These very men hold the balance of political power in this district. They '11 vote for the man who gives 'em the most whiskey. Just before the war, at an election in Colum- bia, over a hundred sand-hillers sold their votes beforehand, and were put into jail till the polls opened, and then marched out to vote." SPIRIT OF THE PEOPLE. 575 " By what right were they put in jail ? " "It was in the bargain. Thej knew thej could n't be trusted not to sell their votes to the next man that offered more whiskey, and they like going to jail well enough, if they can go drunk. Make the niggers voters, and you '11 have just such another class to be bought up with whiskey." "It seems to me more reasonable," I replied, "to suppose that the franchise will elevate the negro; and by elevating him you will elevate the white man who has been decvraded by the negro's degradation. Some of both races will no'doubt be found willing to sell their votes, as well as their souls, for whiskey ; but that is no more a reason whv all blacks should be deprived of the right of suffrage, th^n that all whites should be. This is a specimen of the talk that was kept up during the day. ^ ^ We stopped to dine at a house, where I was told by a young lady that the Yankees were the greatest set of rogues, and that some passed there every dav. " Is it possible ! " I said. ' " Are you not afraid of them ? " " I have nothing whatever to do with them. I should be ashamed to be seen talking with one." " Then be careful that no one sees you now." " You are not a Yankee ! " she exclaimed. " Yes," said I, " I am one of that set of rogues " " I am very sorry to hear it, for I had formed a more favor- able opinion of you." Only the good-natured Virginian went in with me to the dining-room. Tlie lady of the house, sitting at the table with us, soon began to talk about the Yankees. « They often dine here," she said. "But I have nothing to say to them. As soon as I know who they are, I go out of the room." She was very sociable; and when I informed her at partino- that she had been entertaining a Yankee, she appeared confused and incredulous. Such was the spirit commonly shown by the middle class of houth Carohnians. But I remember some marked exceptions. 576 THE RIDE TO WINNSBORO'. Late in the afternoon we stopped at a place wliicli a sturdy old farmer said was Ridge way before Sherman came there : "I don't know what you 'd call it now." " If the devil don't get old Sherman," said one of my trav- elling companions, " there a'n't no use having a devil." " We did it ourselves," said the farmer. " We druv the nail and the Yankees clinched it." In the coach, the South Carolinians had just been denying that any outrages were committed on the freedmen in that part of the country. So I asked this man if he had heard of any such. " Heard of 'em ? I hear of 'em every day. I 'm going to Columbia to-night to attend the trial of one of my neighbors for shootino; a negro woman." " You must expect such things to happen when the niggers are impudent," observed one of my companions. " The niggers a'n't to blame," said the farmer. " They 're never impudent, unless they 're trifled with or imposed on. Only two days ago a nigger was walking along this road, as peaceably as any man you ever saw. He met a white man right here, who asked him who he belonged to. ' I don't belong to anybody now,' he says ; ' I 'm a free man.' ' Sass me ? you black devil ! ' says the white fellow ; and he pitched into him, and cut him in four or five places with his knife. I heard and saw the whole of it, and I say the nigger was re- spectful, and that the white fellow was the only one to blame." " What became of the negro ? " " I don't know ; he went off to some of his people." " And what was done with the white man ? " " Nothing. There 's nobody to do anything in such cases, unless the nigger goes all the way to the Freedmen's Bureau and makes a complaint. Then there 's little chance of getting the fellow that cut him." Three miles further on, we reached a point to which the railroad had been repaired, and took the cars for Winnsboro'. While we were waiting by moonlight in the shelterless and stumpy camping-ground which served as a station, one of my SHEEMAK'S "BUMMERS." 577 South Carolina friends said to me : " We may as well tell the whole truth as half. The Yankees treated us mighty badly but a heap of our own people followed in their track and robbed on their credit." On the train I found a hotel-keeper from Winnsboro' drum- ming for customers. He was abusing the Yankees with great violence and passion until he found that I was one. After that he kept remarkably quiet, and even apologized to me for his remarks until I told him I had concluded to go to the house ot a rival runner. Thereupon he broke forth ao-ain "They've left me one inestimable privilege -to hate 'em. 1 git up at half-past four in the morning, and sit up till twelve at night, to hate 'em. Talk about Union ! They had no object in coming down here, but just to steal. I 'm like a whipped cur; I have to cave in; but that don't say I shall love 'em I owned my own house, my own servants, my own garden, and in one night they reduced me to poverty. My house was near the t5tate House in Columbia. It was occupied by Howard's head-quarters. When they left, they just poured camphene over the beds, set 'em afire, locked up the house, and threw away the key. That was after the burning of the town, and that s what made it so hard. Some one had told 'em I was one of the worst Rebels in the world, and that 's the only truth I reckon, that was told. I brought up seven boys, and what they had n t killed was fighting against 'em then. Now I Iiave to keep a boarding-house in Winnsboro' to support my wife and children." "^ At Winnsboro' I passed the night. A portion of that town also had been destroyed ; and there too Sherman's " bum- mers " were said to have behaved very naughtily. For in- stance: " When the Episcopal church was burning, they took out the melodeon, and played the devil's tunes on it till the house was weU burned down; then they threw on the melo- aeon." 37 678 A GLIMPSE OF THE OLD NORTH STATE. CHAPTER LXXX. A GLIMPSE OF THE OLD NORTH STATE. The next day I entered North Carolina. Almost immediately on crossing the State line, a change of scene was perceptible. The natural features of the country improved; the appeai'ance of its farms improved still more. North Carolina farmers use manures, and work wuth their own hands. They treat the soil more generously than their South Carolina neighbors, and it repays them. That night I passed at the house of a Connecticut man, in a country villarre, — a warm and comfortable New-England home transported to a southern community, — and went on the next day to Raleigh. At Raleigh I found the Legislature, — composed mostly of a respectable and worthy-looking yeomanry — battling over the question of negro testimony in the civil courts ; spending day after day in the discussion of a subject which could be settled in only one way, and which ought to have been settled at once. One member remarked outside : " I '11 never vote for that bill unless driven to it by the bayonet." Another said : " I 'm opposed to giving niggers am/ privileges." These men represent a large class of North Carolina farmers ; but fortunately there is another class of more progressive and lib- eral ideas, which are sure at last to prevail. The business of Raleigh was dull, the money in the country being exhausted. A few Northern men, who had gone into trade there, were discouraged, and anxious to get away. " So great is the impoverishment of our State," Governor Worth said to me, " that a tax of any considerable amount would bring real estate at once into the market." Among other causes, the repudiation of the entire State debt con- 580 A GLIMPSE OF THE OLD 1ul rmmlier of persons in eacli Mate, exuiuuiiij, ^ ■, ^ ^^„ Xn he ri.ht to vote at any election for the choice of electors for SeTidert and Vice-President of the United S-te. r^resen a - in Con..ress, the executive and judicial oftcers of a State or the Lei; of' the legislature thereof, is denied to any o e m^e inhabitants of snch State, being twenty-one years of age, and e, lens the United States, or in any way abridged, except for part,- clpation in rebellion or other crime, the basis of represen aUon Terl si all be reduced in the proportion which the nnmber of sndt mrcitlens shall bear to the whole number of male ett.ens twenty- rmf> vpars of a^e in such State. "srcTtoH 3. No person shall be a senator or representaUve m Cent , or elector of President and Vice-President or hold any offlc; ei;il or military, under the United States or - « -7 « ^'^ who, having previously taken an oath, as a member- of Congre^^. <« Is an officer of the United States, or as a member of any Slate legts lature Tras an executive or judicial officer of any State, to support ftrc;nstitution of the United States, shall bave engaged m .ns r- rection or rebellion against the same, or gtven a. »;;;- » ^ ° *^ enemies thereof. But Congress may, by a vote of two thn-ds eachi house, remove such disabihty. Ofo+pa "Section 4. The validity of the public debt of the United States authored by law, including debts incurred for payment of pensions Election or rebeUion against the United States o^ any c a u^^^^^^^^ the loss or emancipation of any slave; but all such debts, g tions, and claims shall be held illegal and void. « Section 5. The Congress shall have power to enfoice, by ap propriate legislation, the provisions of this article." . On the 2d of July, 1866, the Senate, and on the 3d of THE DESOLATED STATES. 599 July, the House, passed a second Freedmen's Bureau Bill, continuing in force the original bill of March 3, 1865, for two years from the passage of this act, and providing more defi- nitely for its administration, and the bestowment of its aid upon the freedmen and loyal refugees (the first bill havino- been somewhat loose in these particulars). It also prescribed in certani emergencies for the exercise of military protection, and jurisdiction to the freedmen, as the wards of the nation, by the commissioner and his assistants. This bill Mr. Johnson, after rei)eated pledges that he would not do so, vetoed, on the 16th of July, 1866, and it was passed over tiie veto in both houses of Congress the same day : in the House by 103 yeas to 33 nays; and in the Senate by 33 yeas to 12 nays. On the 23d of July, Congress passed the fol- lowing joint resolution to restore Tennessee to the Union : — « Whereas, in the year eigliteea hundred and sixty-one, the gov- ernment of the State of Tennessee was seized upon and taken pos- session of by persons in hostility to the United States, and the in- habitants of said State, in pursuance of an act of Congress were declared to be in a state of insurrection against the United States • and whereas said State government can only be restored to its former political relations in the Union by the consent of the law- making power of the United States ; and whereas the people of said btate did, on the twenty-second day of February, eighteen hundred and sixty-hve, by a large popular vote, adopt and ratify a constitu- tion of government whereby slavery was abolished, and all ordi- nances and laws of secession, and debts contracted under the same were declared void ; and whereas a State government has been or- ganized under said constitution whicli has ratified the amendment to the Constitution of the United States abolishing , davery, also the amepdment proposed by the Thirty-ninth Congress, and has done other acts proclaiming and denoting loyalty ; Therefore, ''Be it resolved by the Seriate and Home of Representatives of the United States of America in Gouffress assembled. That the State of Tennessee is hereby restored to her former proper, practical rela- tions to the Union, and is again entitled to be represented by sen- ators and representatives in Congress." 600 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. This joint resolution passed the Senate, 28 yeas to 4 nays ; and the House, 93 yeas to 26 nays. As a joint resolution it did not require the President's signature to make it valid, but he addressed a messag;e to Cono;ress- statins; that he had signed it, but protesting against what he professed to regard as its anomalous features. With this act, the reconstruction meas- ures of the first session of the Thirty-ninth Congress con- cluded. They were a good beginning in the work, but were not, and their authors did not regard them as, a complete sys- tem of reconstruction. The work was to be perfected in sub- sequent sessions. Occurrences were transpiring, meanwhile, which were des- tined to have an influence on this subject. In May, 1866, a collision took place between some discharged negro soldiers, and the police of Memphis, Tennessee (which Avas composed to a large extent of rebel soldiers and officers, and of Irish- men, whose hatred of the negro was intense) ; and this cul- minated in a riot which lasted two or three days, and resulted in the murder of twenty-four neo-roes, the serious woundino; of more than one hundred, many of whom subsequently died of their wounds, and the destruction of property to the amount of about $120,000, mostly negro dwellings, churches, and school-houses. On the side of the police one white man was wounded, it was alleged by the negroes, but, as was afterward ascertained, by another poHceman. Tiie real question at issue here was, the right of the freedman to tlie same privileges and immunities as the white. For this atrocious massacre of the nation's wards, Mr. Johnson had no word of censure. On the 30th of July, at New Orleans, the Constitutional Con- vention of 1861, being revived and reconvened by Goverjior Wells, commenced its session at the Mechanics' Institute, when they were set upon by the police (nine tenths of them unrepentant rebels), under the prompting of Mayor Monroe, the same man who was mayor in 1862, when New Orleans was captured, and Attorney-General Herron, another rebel officer. The police fii'st assaulted a procession of colored THE DESOLATED STATES. 601 men, who were marching to the Institute, and by firing upon them, compelled them to attempt their own defence (though not one in ten had any weapons). The police murdered a num- ber, and drove the rest before them into the Institute, when they commenced an indiscriminate firing upon the members of the Convention, who were unarmed, though they raised at once a white flag. Several of these were killed, and others mortally wounded, among the number, Rev. J. W. Horton, who had acted as chaplain of the Convention, and Dr. A. P. Dostie, a prominent Union man. In all, 27 were killed out- right, and over eighty wounded, many of them mortally. Of the policemen, and their abettors, forty-two were either killed or wounded. General Sheridan, the commander of the Fifth Military District, was at this time absent in Texas, having been assured beforehand by Monroe and Herron that there would be no disturbance and no violence. General Baird, who was in command at the time, seemed irresolute, and did not attempt any movement until too late to do any good. General Sheridan, on his return, examined into the aflkir, and on the 2d of August reported to General Grant, that " it was an absolute massacre by the police, which was not ex- celled in murderous cruelty by that of Fort Pillow. It was a murder which the mayor and police of the city perpetrated without the shadow of a necessity ; furthermore, I believe it was premeditated, and every indication points to this. I recommend the removing of this bad man." Monroe and Herron, and their party, insisted that they had the sanction of the President in all their conduct ; and the telegraphic despatches of the President to Herron, and to General Baird ; his permitting, if he did not direct, the gar- bling of Sheridan's despatches ; his attempted justification of Monroe and Herron, and his effort to throw the blame on Congress, at St. Louis, and subsequently on Secretary Stan- ton, gave good reason to believe their statement true. The attempt to revive this defunct convention may have been injudicious ; some of the men who took part in it, espe- cially Governor Wells and R. Cutler King, may have been 602 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. ■ bad men — demagogues ; but it was an honest effort on the part of the great majority of the delegates (whether wise or not) to reorganize the State on' a loyal basis, and in accord- ance with the Congressional plan of reconstruction ; and this was sufficient to arouse Mr. Johnson's hostility to it. The next act in the drama was the Pliiladelphia Conven- tion, called, by those who summoned it, the National Union Convention, which met in that city, August 14, 1866, respon- sive to a call signed b}' Messrs. A. W. Randall, J. R. Doolit- tle, O. H. Browning, Edgar Cowan, Charles Knapp, and Sam- uel Fowler, as Executive Committee of the National Union Club, and indorsed by Senators Norton, Nesmith, Dixon, and Hendricks. The object of this convention was to rally to the support of the President a considerable portion (a majority it was hoped) of both parties upon a so-called conservative plat- form, which should be sufficiently comprehensive to accommo- date the Semi-Republicans, the War-Democrats, Peace-Demo- crats, and the half-repentant Rebels. General J. A. Dix was chosen temporary, and Senator Doolittle, permanent President of the Convention, and Mr. Henry J. Raymond, of the "New York Times," was made Chairman of the Committee on Reso- lutions. At the opening of the Convention, General Couch, of Mas- sachusetts, a former corps commander in the Army of the Potomac, and Ex-Governor Orr, of South Carolina, came in arm-in-arm, " at which scene," said the reporters, " every eye was suffused with tears." The Convention, however, proved a failure. The elements were too discordant to mingle read- ily ; and though Mr. Raymond pi'o})osed a very plausible and neatly worded address and series of resolutions, and Messrs. Doolittle, Cowan, and others, spoke very eloquently in favor of harmony and union on the President's policy, the influence of the affiiir on the nation was positively nothing, and the prime movers in it, who had been Republicans, found them- selves read out of their own party, and not received cordially by the other. Mr. Johnson had for some months been receiving delega- THE DESOLATED STATES. 'OTJtJ tions of all sorts of men, and expressing his opinions on polit- ical questions with great freedom, though not always with con- sistency or coherence. On receiving a committee from the Philadelphia Convention, who, through their chairman, Hon. Reverdy Johnson, presented their proceedings, he made one of his characteristic speeches, full of references to himself, his feelings and emotions, his weeping at the touching scene in the Convention, and allusions to " the humble individual who was then addressing them," and spoke of Congress in these words : " We have seen hanging upon the verge of the gov- ernment, as it were, a body called, or which assumes to be, the Congress of the United States, while in fact it is a Con- gress of only a part of the States. We have seen this Con- gress pretend to be for the Union, when its every step and act tended to perpetuate disunion, and make a disruption of the States inevitable. Instead of promoting reconciliation and harmony, its legislation has partaken of the character of pen- alties, retaliation, and revenge. This has been the course and the policy of one portion of your government." Such unwarrantable charges against a coordinate depart- ment of the government, were not only in bad taste, but tended to bring the two into speedy collision ; and it was due rather to the great patience and forbearance of Congress, than to any circumspection on the part of Mr. Johnson, that a rev- olution was not precipitated. Then came that journey to Chicago, professedly to lay the corner-stone of the monument to the late Hon. Stephen A. Douglas, but really intended as a political canvass in behalf of what Mr. Johnson called his " policy." This disgraceful expedition, aptly termed, from one of his own pet expressions, "swinging round the circle," was to every loyal American the most humiliating exhibition ever made by any public man in this country. Leaving Washington on the 28th of August, he proceeded northward, accompanied by Secretaries Seward and Welles, Postmaster-General Randall, General Grant, Admiral Farra- gut, and others, a part of whom, however, left the party some ^Q^ THE WORK OF RESTORATION. time before it reached its destination. At every point of his progress, which was by Avay of Philadelphia, New York, Albany, the New York Central and Lake Shore roads to Chicago, and thence to St. Louis, Louisville, Indianapolis, and Cincinnati, he seized upon the opportunity to make a speech, and in many places was speedily involved in a wordy wrangle with the crowd, in which he invariably became angry, and exhibited a proficiency in the use of Billingsgate that might have done credit to a fishwoman, but was simply shame- ful in the chief magistrate of the United States. We cannot consent to defile our pages with specimens of the venom and abuse, which sometimes was almost blasphemous in its char- acter, with which his twenty or thirty speeches during this tour were so freely interlarded. They are too fresh in the minds of the people, and have formed recently one of the counts in the indictment with which a long-suffering people have visited this public offender. Yet the abusive portions of these speeches were the only parts of them which were readable. The dreary platitudes about " the humble individual who now addresses you," the ineffable conceit which on every occasion rehearsed the fact that " he had filled every station from alderman of a small country village to his present exalted station," the gravity with which he stated at every railway station that he " left the Constitution of the United States, and the flag with thirty- six stars in their hands," became at last so intolerably Aveari- some, that nobody could wade through the mass of dullness. The elections of the autumn of 1866, which immediately succeeded this tour, proved most conclusively the growing dis- gust of the jieople for the man who occupied the presidential chair. The Thirty-ninth Congress had been strongly Repub- lican ; the Fortieth was overwhelmingly so ; and wherever Johnson had addressed the public, there the Republican ma- jorities wei'e unprecedented. The reconstruction measures which Congress had adopted, were sanctioned by the people, and others of a more decided character completing the work, were urged upon them. THE DESOLATED STATES. 605 CHAPTER LXXXIII. RECONSTRUCTION. Condition of the Republican and Democratic Parties in Congress in December, 1866. — The District of Cokimbia Elective Franchise Bill passed: Its Provisions. — Mr. Johnson vetoes it, but it is passed over the Veto. — Territorial Franchise Bill passed. — Admission of Nebraska as a State, with the Elective Franchise Proviso. — Difficulties in Maturing satisfactorily the Reconstruction Act. — The Provisions of the House Bill. — It is materially changed in the Senate. — Further Modifica- tion in the House Provisions of the Bill as finally passed. — Necessity for the Tenure of Office Act: Its Provisions. — Effect of the Passage of the District of Columbia Franchise Bill on Tennessee. — Decision of the Supreme Court of Ten- nessee. — The First Supplementary Reconstruction Act of the Fortieth Congress. — It is vetoed, and re-passed: Its Provisions. — Arrangement for the Call of a Summer Session. — Mr. Stanbery's Exposition of the Reconstruction Acts. — The Summer Session of 1867. — The Second Supplementary Reconstruction Act: Its Provisions. — Appropriations for Carrying out the Reconstruction Acts. — The President's Communication. — The Resolution of the House in Replj'. — Sharp Talk. — The Completion of Congressional Legislation on the Subject in 1867. — Condition of the Desolated States in 1867. The elections of the Autumn of 1866 had greatly strengthened and encouraged the Republican majority in Congress, and when the members of the Thirty-ninth Con- gress met in their second session in December, 1866, they were resolved to complete their work of reconstruction, so far as it was possible to do so, and to pass the necessary bills over the President's veto. The minority (Democrats) were weak in numbers in both houses, but they numbered several men of very considerable ability, and they had been reenforced by the defection from the Republicans of Messrs. Cowan, Doo- little, Dixon, and Norton in the Senate, and Mr. Raymond, and two or three others, on some questions, in the House. Their losses by death and by the unseating of several mem- bers Avliose seats were contested, however, gave them really very little more available strength than in the previous ses- 606 RECONSTRUCTION. sion, while the Republicans were united and thoroughl}- in earnest. The first measure adopted during the session, having a bearing on the question of reconstruction, was the bill regu- lating the elective franchise in the District of Columbia. This was a measure of great importance, as, the District of Columbia being under the exclusive government of Congress, the action of that body in regard to conferring the suffrage and other privileges of citizenship upon the negro there, would in- dicate distinctly what Congress would require from the Rebel States as conditions precedent to their admission into the Union. Its provisions were as follows : Sec. 1 confers the elective franchise on male citizens of the United States, twenty-one years old and upward without distinction on ac- count of race or color, who shall have resided in the District one year next preceding any election therein, excepting pau- pers, persons under guardianship, those convicted of any infamous crime or offense, and those who may have volun- tarily given aid and comfort to the Rebels in the late Rebel- lion. Sec. 2 provides that any person whose duty it shall be to receive votes at any election within the District of Columbia, who shall reject the vote of any person entitled to vote under this act, shall be liable to an action of tort by the person injured, and on indictment and conviction, to a fine not exceeding |5,000, or to imprisonment not exceeding one year in the jail of the District, or both. Sec. 3 provides that any one willfully disturbing an elector in the exercise of such franchise shall be guilty of a misdemeanor, and on con- viction, shall be liable to a fine not exceeding f 1,000, or an imprisonment not exceeding thirty days in the jail of the District, or both. Sec. 4 makes it the duty of criminal courts in the District to give this act in special charge to the grand jury at the common circuit of each term of the court. Sees. 5 and 6. The voting lists are to be prepared by the mayors and aldermen of the cities of Washington and Georgetown on and before the first day of March in each THE DESOLATED STATES. 607 year, and are to be posted in public places ten days before the annual election. The remaining four sections o;ive other prescriptions as to the manner in which the election shall be held. This bill passed the Senate December 14, 1866, by a vote of 32 yeas to 13 nays ; and the House by 128 yeas to 46 nays. Mr. Johnson vetoed it in a very elaborate message, on the 7th of January, 1867 ; and the same day the Senate passed it again over the veto, by yeas 29, nays 10 ; and the next day, the House followed their example by yeas 113, nays 38. On the 14th of January, 1867, a bill was sent to the Presi- dent, which had previously passed both houses of Congress by a large majority, which px'ovided that from and after its passage there should be no denial of the elective franchise in any of the territories of the United States, now, or hereafter to be organized, to any citizen thereof, on account of race, color, or previous condition of servitude ; and all acts or parts of acts, either of Congress or the legislative assemblies of said ter- ritories, inconsistent witii the provisions of this act, are de- clared null and void. This bill, not being returned by the President within ten days, became a law on the 24th of January, 1867. The next measure was the admission of Nebraska as a State, with the condition that the new State should by a solemn, act assent to the provision that there should be no denial within the State of the elective franchise, or of any other right to any person, by reason of race or color, except- ing Indians not taxed. This was vetoed by the President, but passed over his veto, February 9. The question of reconstruction proper, as applied to the States lately in insurrection, was one of greater difficulty. Several bills were presented in both houses, and very con- siderable differences of opinion evidently existed among the Republican members. So serious were these at one time as to make it doubtful whether any measure which would be generally satisfactory could be passed during the session. A 608 RECONSTRUCTION. bill at length passed the House, for abrogating tlie existing provisional governments in the Rebel States, and establishing military rule there, dividing the vs^hole Southern territory into five military districts, and conferring vipon the General-in-chief the power of appointing the commanders of these districts. This bill was materially modified, or rather, another bill, com- bining with it reconstruction measures, and placing the ap- pointing power in tiie hands of the President, was presented in the Senate, by Senator Sherman of Ohio, which passed that body. To this the House disagreed, and voted to adhere to its original bill. After some time, however, the House re- ceded, and added some important amendments to Sherman's bill, which was then passed by both houses ; the vote in the House being 128 yeas to 46 nays, and that in the Senate, 35 yeas to 7 nays. This measure was one of such importance that we deem it necessary to give the text of it in full. It is as follows : — " An Act to provide efficient Government for the Insurrectionary States. " Whereas, No legal State governments or adequate protection for life or property now exist in the Rebel States of Virginia, North Carolina, South Carolina, Georgia, Alabama, Mississippi, Louisiana, Florida, Texas, and Arkansas; and whereas, it is necessary that peace and good order should be enforced in said States until loyal and republican State governments can be legally established ; thei'e- fore, " Be it enacted, etc., That said Rebel States shall be divided into military districts, and made subject to the military authority of the United States, as hereinafter mentioned ; and for that purpose Vir- ginia shall constitute the First District ; North Carolina and South Carolina the Second District ; Georgia, Alabama, and Florida the Third District ; Mississippi and Arkansas the Fourth District ; and Louisiana and Texas the Fifth District. " Section 2. That it shall be the duty of the President to assign to the command of each of said districts an otRcer of the army not below the rank of Brieadier-General, and to detail a sufficient mill- THE DESOLATED STATES. 609 tary force to enable such officer to perform his duties and enforce his authority within the district to which he is assigned. *' Section 3. That it shall be the duty of each officer assigned as aforesaid to protect all persons .in their rights of person and property ; to suppress insurrection, disorder, and violence ; and to punish or cause to be punished all disturbers of the public peace and criminals ; and to this end he may allow local civil tribunals to take jurisdiction of and try offenders, or, when in his judgment it may be necessary for the trial of offenders, he shall have power to organize military committees or tribunals for that purpose ; and all interference under color of State authority with the exercise of military authority under this act shall be null and void. " Section 4. That all persons put under military arrest by virtue of this act shall be tried without unnecessary delay, and no cruel or unusual punishment shall be inflicted; and no sentence of any mili- tary commission or tribunal hereby authorized affecting the life or liberty of any person shall be executed until it is approved by the officer in command of the district ; and the laws and regulations for the government of the army shall not be affected by this act, except in so for as they may conflict with its provisions. Provided, That no sentence of death under this act shall be carried into execution without the approval of the President. " Section 5. When the people of any one of said Rebel States shall have formed a constitution and government in conformity with the Constitution of the United States in all respects, framed by a convention of delegates elected by the male citizens of said State, 21 years old and upward, of whatever race, color, or previous condition, who have been resident in said State for one year previous to the day of such election, except such as may be disfranchised for partic- ipation in tlie Rebellion, or for felony at common laAv, and when such constitution shall provide that the elective franchise shall be enjoyed by all such persons as have the qualifications herein stated for electors of delegates, and when such constitution shall be ratified by a majority of the pei-sons voting on the question of ratification who are qualified as electors for delegates, and when such constitu- tion shall have been submitted to Congress for examination and approval, and Congress shall have approved the same, and when said State by a vote of its legislature elected under said constitu- 39 610 RECONSTRUCTION. tion shall have adopted the amendment to the Constitution of the United States proposed by the Thirty-ninth Congress, and known as Article 14, and when said article shall have become part of the Con- stitution of the United States, said State shall be declared entitled to representation in Congress, and Senators and Representatives shall be admitted therefrom, on their taking the oath prescribed by law, and then and thereafter the preceding sections of this act shall be inoperative in said State. Provided, That no person excluded from the privilege of holding office by said proposed amendment to the Constitution of the United States shall be eligible to election as a member of the convention to frame a constitution for any of said Rebel States, nor shall any such person vote for members of such convention. " Section 6. Until the people of the said Rebel States shall by law be admitted to representation to the Congress of the United States, all civil governments that may exist therein shall be deemed provis- ional only, and shall be in all respects subject to the paramount authority of the United States, at any time to abolish, modify, con- trol, and supersede the same, and in all elections to any office under such provisional governments all persons shall be entitled to vote under the provisions of the fifth section of this act. And no person shall be eligible to any office under such provisional governments who would be disqualified from holding office under the provisions of the tMrd article of said Constitutional Amendment." This act completes the reconstruction measures properly so called, of the Thirty-ninth Congress. One other bill, passed by that Congress, at its second session, demands notice in this connection, from its purpose, and its subsequent bearing on the question of impeachment. The due and active enforcement of the reconstruction measures passed by Congress over the President's veto, depended in a great degree upon the Secre- tary o-f War. It was known that Mr. Johnson would not be remarkably zealous in compelling obedience to them, though it was not known, till some months later, that he would counsel their violation, on the ground of his belief or impression that they were unconstitutional. But of the fidelity and loyalty of Hon. E. M. Stanton, Secretary of War, the Republicans THE DESOLATED STATES. 611 in Congress had no question, and their only apprehension was that Mr. Johnson woald discharge him from his cabinet, and place in the department some supple tool of his own, whose whole effort would be to nullify these measures which they regarded as so important. There were others, too, in admin- istrative positions, especially in connection with the Freed- men's Bureau, who were liable to removal for no other offense than that of an honest effort to administer the laws in letter and spirit. To prevent the exercise of this arbitrary power by the President, the Tenure of Office Act was matured, and passed the Senate February 18, 1867, by yeas 22, nays 10 ; and the House, February 19, by yeas 112, nays 41. It was as fol- lows : — " An Act regulating the Tenure of certain Civil Offices. " Be it enacted by the Senate and House of Representatives of the United States of America in Congress assembled, That every person holding any civil office to which he has been appointed by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, and every person who shall hereafter be appointed to any such office, and shall become duly- qualified to act therein, is, and shall be, entitled to hold such office until a successor shall have been in like manner appointed and duly qualified, except as herein otherwise provided : Provided, That the Secretaries of" State, of the Treasury, of War, of the Navy, and of the Interior, the Postmaster-General, and the Attorney-General shall hold their offices respectively for and during the term of the President by whom they may have been appointed, and for one month thereafter, subject to removal by and with the advice and consent of the Senate. " Section 2. Tiiat when any officer appointed as aforesaid, except- ing judges of the United States courts, shall, during the recess of the Senate, be shown, by evidence satisfactory to the President, to be guilty of misconduct in office, or crime, or for any reason shall become incapable or legally disqualified to perform its duties, in such case, and in no other, the President may suspend such officer, and desig- nate some suitable person to perform temporarily the duties of such office until the next meeting of the Senate, and until the case shall 612 RECONSTRUCTION". be acted upon by the Senate ; and such person, so designated, shall take the oaths and give the bonds required by law to be taken and given by the person duly appointed to fill such office ; and in such case it shall be the duty of the President, within twenty d;iys after the first day of such next meeting of the Senate, to report to the Senate such suspension, with the evidence and reasons for his action in the case, and the name of the person so designated to perform the duties of such office. And if the Senate shall concur in such sus- pension, and advise and consent to the removal of such officer, they shall so certify to the President, who may thereupon remove such officer, and, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, ap- point another person to such office. But if the Senate shall refuse to concur in such suspension, such officer so suspended shall forth- with resume the functions of his office, and the powers of the person so performing its duties in his stead shall cease, and the official salary and emoluments of such officer shall, during such suspension, belong to the person so performing the duties thereof, and not to the officer so suspended : Provided, however, That the President, in case he shall become satisfied that such suspension was made on insuffi- cient grounds, shall be authorized, at any time before reporting such suspension to the Senate as above provided, to revoke such suspen- sion, and reinstate such officer in the performance of the duties of his office. " Skction 3. That the President shall have power to fill all vacancies which may happen during the recess of the Senate, by reason of death or resignation, by granting commissions which shall expire at the end of their next session thereafter. And if no ap- pointment, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, shall be made to such office so vacant or temporarily filled as aforesaid during such next session of the Senate, such office shall remain in abeyance without any salary, fees, or emoluments attached thereto, until the same shall be filled by appointment thereto, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate ; and during such time all the powers and duties belonging to such office shall be exercised by such other officer, as may by law exercise such powers and duties in case of a vacancy in such office. " Section 4. That nothing in this act contained shall be con- strued to extend the term of any office the duration of which is limited by law. THE DESOLATED STATES. 613 " Section 5. That if any person shall, contrary to the provisions of this act, accept any appointment to or employment in any office, or shall hold or exercise, or attempt to hold or exercise, any such office or employment, he shall be deemed, and is hereby declared to be, guilty of a high misdemeanor, and, upon trial and conviction thereof, he shall be punished therefor by a fine not exceeding ten thousand dollars, or by imprisonment not exceeding five years, or both said punishments, in the discretion of the court. " Section 6. That every removal, appointment, or employment made, had, or exercised, contrary to the provisions of this act, and the making, signing, sealing, countersigning, or issuing of any com- mission or letter of authority for or in respect to any such appoint- ment or employment, shall be deemed, and are hereby declared to be, high misdemeanors, and, upon trial and conviction thereof, every person guilty thereof shall be punished by a fine not exceeding ten thousand dollars, or by imprisonment not exceeding five years, or both said punishments, in the discretion of the court: Provided, That the President shall have power to make out and deliver, after the adjournment of the Senate, commissions for all officers whose appointment shall have been advised and consented to by the Senate. " Section 7. That it shall be the duty of the Secretary of the Senate, at the close of each session thereof, to deliver to the Secre- tary of the Treasury, and to each of his assistants, and to each of the Auditors, and to each of the Comptrollers in the Treasury, and to the Treasurer, and to the Register of the Treasury, a full and complete list, duly certified, of all persons who shall have been nominated to and rejected by the Senate during such session, and a like list of all the offices to which nominations shall have been made and not confirmed and filled at such session. " Section 8. That whenever the President shall, without the ad- vice and consent of the Senate, designate, authorize, or employ any person to perform the duties of any office, he shall forth- with notify the Secretary of the Treasury thereof, and it shall be the duty of the Secretary of the Treasury thereupon to commu- nicate such notice to all the proper accounting and disbursing officers of his Department. " Section 9. That no money shall be paid or received from the 61i RECONSTRUCTION. Treasury, or paid or received from or retained out of any public moneys or funds of the United States, whether in the Treasury or not, to or by or for the benefit of any person appointed to or author- ized to act in or holding or exercising the duties or functions of any office contrary to the provisions of this act ; nor shall ainy claim, ac- count, voucher, order, certificate, warrant, or other instrument pro- viding for or relating to such payment, receipt, or retention, be presented, passed, allowed, approved, certified, or paid by any officer of the United States, or by any person exercising the functions or performing the duties of any office or place of trust under the Unit- ed States, for or in respect to such office, or the exercising or per- forming the functions or duties thereof; and every person who shall violate any of the provisions of this section shall be deemed guilty of a high misdemeanor, and upon trial and conviction thereof, shall be punished therefor by a fine not exceeding ten thousand dollars, or by imprisonment not exceeding ten years, or both said punishments, in the discretion of the court." The action of Congress in bestowing the franchise, without distinction of race or color, on the inhabitants of the District of Columbia, speedily exerted an influence in other sections. On the 6th of February, 1867, the lower branch of the Ten- nessee Legislature passed a bill striking the word " white " from the franchise law of the State, by yeas 38, nays 25. On the 18th of February the State Senate concurred, by yeas 14, nays 7. On the 21st of March, the Supreme Court of the State unanimously sustained the constitutionality of the fran- chise law as thus amended, and in August following, the ne- groes, for the first time, exercised the franchise, at the elec- tion for governor. In the passage of the Reconstruction Act of March 2, 1867, the Republicans of the Thirty-ninth Congress had not fully come up to the positions which it was their duty to occupy. The bill too was somewhat loosely drawn, and some supple- mentary leo-islation was necessary to oive it force and effi- cacy. It Avas, perhaps, the best that could be done under the circumstances, for they w^ere embarrassed by the diver- THE DESOLATED STATES. 615 sity of opinions on many of the details of reconstruction, among the RepubHcans themselves, and by the fact, that any very stringent measure could not be passed over the veto which was sure to come. The Fortieth Congress, which was called together by the officers of its predecessor on the 4tli of March, 1867, was fresli from the people, and stronger and more positive in its convictions. One of the measures taken np at its short session of March, 1867, was a supplementary Reconstruction Act, which passed both houses on the 19th of March. This was vetoed March 23, and the same day passed over the veto ; in the House by 114 yeas to 25 nays, and in the Senate by 40 yeas to 7 nays. The following are the main provisions of this act : — "Before September 1, 1867, the commanding general in each dis- trict, defined by an act entitled ' An Act to provide for the more Effi- cient Government of the Rebel States,' passed March 2, 1867, shall cause a registration to be made of the male citizens of the United States, twenty-one years of age and upwards, resident in each county or parish in the State or States included in his district, which registra- tion shall include only those persons who are qualified to vote for dele- gates by the act aforesaid, and who shall have taken and subscribed the following oath or affirmation : ' I, , do solemnly swear (or affirm), in the presence of Almighty God, that I am a citizen of the State of ; that I have resided in said State for months next pre- ceding this day, and now reside in the county of , or the par- ish of , in said State (as the case may be) ; that I am twenty- one years old ; that I have not been disfranchised for participation in any rebellion or civil war against the United States, nor for felony committed against the laws of any State or of the United States ; that I have never been a member of any State legislature, nor held any executive or judicial office in any State and afterwards engaged in insurrection or rebellion against the United States, or given aid or comfort to the enemies thereof; that I have never taken an oath as a member of Congress of the United States, or as an officer of the United States, or as a member of any State legislature, or as an ex- ecutive or judicial officer of any State, to support the Constitution of the United States, and afterwards engaged in insurrection or 616 RECONSTRUCTION". rebellion against the United States, or given aid or comfort to the enemies thereof; that I will faithfully support the Constitution and obey the laws of the United States, and will, to the best of ray abil- ity, encourage others so to do, so help me God ; ' which oath or affir- mation may be administered by any registering officer. Sec. 2. After the completion of the registration hereby pi-ovided for in any- State, at such time and places therein as the commanding general shall appoint and direct, of which at least thirty days' public notice shall be given, an election shall be held of delegates to a convention for the purpose of establishing a constitution and civil government for such State loyal to the Union, said convention in each State, except Virginia, to consist of the same number of members as the most numerous branch of the .State legislature of such State in the year 1860, to be apportioned among the several districts, counties, or par- ishes of such State by the commanding general, giving to each repre- sentation in the ratio of voters registered as aforesaid, as nearly as may be. The convention in Virginia shall consist of the same num- ber of members as represented the territory now constituting Vir- ginia in the most numerous branch of the legi>lature of said State in the year 1860, to be apportioned as aforesaid. Sec. 3. At said election the registered voters of each State shall vote for or against a convention to form a constitution therefor under this act. The person appointed to superintend said election, and to make return of the votes given thereat, as herein provided, shall count and make re- turn of the votes given for and against a convention ; and the com- manding general to whom the same shall have been returned shall ascertain and declare the total vote in each State for and against a convention. If a majority of the votes given on that question shall be for a convention, then such convention shall be held as hereinafter provided ; but if a majority of said votes shall be against a conven- tion, then no such convention shall be held under this act: Pro- vided, that such convention shall not be held unless a majority of all such registered voters shall have voted on the question of holding such convention. Sec. 4. The commanding general of each dis- trict shall appoint as many boards of registration as may be neces- sary, consisting of three loyal officers or persons, to make and complete the registration, superintend the election, and make return to him of the votes, lists of voters, and of the persons elected as del- THE DESOLATED STATES. 617 egates by a plurality of the votes cast at said election ; and upon re- ceiving said returns be sball open the same, ascertain the persons elected as delegates according to the returns of the officers who con- ducted said election, and make proclamation thereof; and if a ma- jority of the votes given on that question sball be for a convention,, the commanding general, within sixty days from the date of elec- tion, sball notify the delegates to assemble in convention, at a time and place to be mentioned in the notification, and said convention, when organized, shall proceed to frame a constitution and civil gov- ernment according to the provisions of this act and the act to which it is supplementary; and when the same shall have been so framed, said constitution shall be submitted by the convention for ratification to the persons registered under the pi'ovisions of this act, at an elec- tion to be conducted by the officers or persons appointed or to be ap- pointed by the commanding general, as hereinbefore provided, and to be held after the expiration of thirty days from the date of notice thereof, to be given by said convention ; and the returns thereof shall be made to the commanding general of the district. Sec. 5. That if, according to said returns, the constitution shall be ratified by a majority of the votes of the registered electors qualified as herein specified, cast at said election (at least one half of all the registered voters voting upon the question of such ratification), the president of the convention shall transmit a copy of the same, duly certified, to the President of the United States, who shall forthwith transmit the same to Congress, if then in session, and if not in session, tlmn im- mediately upon its next assembling ; and if it shall, moreover, ap- pear to Congress, that the election was one at which all the registered and qualified electors in the State had an opportunity to vote freely and without restraint, fear, or the influence of fraud, and if the Con- gress shall be satisfied that such constitution meets the approval of a majority of all the qualified electors in the State, and if the said con- stitution shall be declared by Congress to be in conformity with the provisions of the act to which this is supplementary, and the other provisions of said act shall have been complied with, and the said constitution shall be approved by Congress, the State shall be de- clared entitled to representation, and Senators and Representatives shall be admitted therefrom as therein provided. Sec. 6. All elec- tions in the States mentioned in the said ' Act to provide for the 618 RECONSTRUCTION. more efficient Government of the Rebel States,' shall, during the operation of said act, be by ballot ; and all officers making the said registration of voters and conducting said elections shall, before enter- ing upon the discharge of their duties, take and subscribe the oath prescribed by the Act approved July 2, 18G2, entitled 'An Act to prescribe an Oath of Olhce:' Provided, That if any person shall knowingly and falsely take and subscribe any oath in this act pre- scribed, such person so oflfending and being thereof duly convicted, shall be subject to the pains, penalties, and disabilities which by law are provided for the punishment of the crime of wilful and corrupt perjury." Mr. Johnson promised to cany out this act faithfully, but the Republican leaders had seen so often how little depend- ence was to be placed upon his pledges, that they did not think it prudent to adjourn without making provision for the calling of a Summer Session, sliould it prove to be necessary. The event proved that this was a wise and needful precau- tion. In direct contradiction to his promises, Congress had liardly adjourned before Mr. Johnson procured from his At- torney-General, Mr. Stanbery, a series of opinions in regard to the Reconstruction Acts, in which, with a lawyer's ingenuity, they were wrested from their plain and obvious meaning, and explained to be merely measures of military police, of no par- ticular importance. The first of these opinions, bearing date May 24, the President had forwarded to the various military commanders, accompanied with a note calling their attention to it. It was his obvious intention, though he was too disingenuous to say so distinctly, that it should be regarded as mandatory ; and by this device he hoped to annul the Reconstruction Acts. This artful trick rendered it necessary to summon Congress to meet on the 4th of July, 1867, and they promptly passed another supplementary Reconstruction Act, in terms so plain and unmistakable that even the Attorney-General could not subvert its meaning, and the execution of the act was con- ferred on the General-In-chief and the commanders of the military districts, instead of the President. This act was THE DESOLATED STATES. 619 passed July 13, in the Senate by a vote of 31 to 6 ; in the House by 111 to 23. Mr. Johnson vetoed it (of course) on the 19th of July, and it was at once passed over the veto ; in the Senate by a vote of 30 to 6, in the House by 100 to 22. The bill was as follows : — " Sec. 1. That it is hereby declared to have been the true intent and meaning of the Act of the 2d day of March, 1867, entitled 'An Act to provide for the more efficient Government of the Rebel States,' and the act supplementary thereto, passed the 23d of March, 1867, that the governments then existing in the Rebel States of Virginia, North Carolina, South Carolina, Georgia, Mississippi, Alabama, Louisiana, Florida, Texas, and Arkansas, were not legal State governments ; and that thereafter said governments, if continued, were to be continued subject in all respects to the military com- manders of the respective districts, and to the paramount authority of Congress. " Sec. 2. That the commander of any district named in said act shall have power, subject to the disapproval of the General of the army of the United States, and to have effect until disapproved, whenever, in the opinion of such commander, the proper adminis- tration of said act shall require it, to suspend or remove from office, or from the performance of official duties, and the exercise of official powers, any officer or person holding or exercising, or professing to hold or exercise, any civil or military office or duty in such district, under any power, election, ajjpointment, or authority derived from, or granted by, or claimed under, any so-called State, or the govern- ment thereof, or any municipal or other division thereof ; and upon such suspension or removal such commander, subject to the approval of the General as aforesaid, shall have power to provide from time to time for the performance of the said duties of such officer or person so suspended or removed, by the detail of some competent officer oi soldier of the array, or by the appointment of some other person to perform tlie same, and to fill vacancies occasioned by death, resigna- tion, or otherwise. " Sec. 3. That the General of the army of the United States shall be invested with all the powers of suspension, removal, appointment, and detaching, granted in the preceding section to district com- manders. 620 RECONSTRUCTION. " Sec. 4. That the acts of the officers of the army, already done in reraovhig in said districts persons exercising the functions of civil officers, and appointing others in their stead, are hereby confirmed ; provided that any persons heretofore or hereafter appointed by any district commander to exercise the functions of any civil office may be removed either by the military officer in command of the district, or by the general of the army, and it shall be the duty of such com- mander to remove from office, as aforesaid, all persons who are dis- loyal to the government of the United States, or who use their official influence in any manner to hinder, delay, prevent or obstruct the due and proper administration of this act and the acts to which it is sup- plementary. " Sec. 5. That the boards of registration provided for in the act en- titled ' An Act supplementary to an Act entitled " An Act to provide for the more efficient Government of the Rebel States," passed March 2, 1867, and to facilitate Restoration,' passed March 23, 1867, shall have power, and it shall be their duty, before allowing the registra- tion of any person, to ascertain, upon such facts or information as they can obtain, whether such person is entitled to be registered un- der said act, and the oath required by said act shall not be conclu- sive on such question ; and no person shall be registered unless such board shall decide that he is entitled thereto ; and such board shall also have power to examine under oath, to be administered by any member of such board, anyone touching the qualification of any per- son claiming registration ; but in every case of refusal by the board to register an applicant, and in every case of striking his name from the list, as hereinafter provided, the board shall make a note or memorandum, which shall be returned with the registration list to the commanding general of the district, setting forth the ground of such refusal or such striking from the list : Provided, that no person shall be disqualified as a member of any board of registration by reason of race or color. " Sec. 6. That the true intent and meaning of the oath presented in said supplementary act is (among other things), that no person who has been a member of the legislature of any State, or who has held any executive or judicial office in any State, whether he has taken an oath to support the Constitution of the United States or not, and whether he was holding such office at the commencement THE DESOLATED STATES. 621 of the rebellion or had held it before, and who has afterwards en- gaged in insurrection or rebellion against the United States, or given aid or comfort to the enemies thereof, is entitled to be registered or vote ; and the words ' executive or judicial ' office in any State, in said oath mentioned, shall be construed to include all civil otfices created by law for the administration of any general law of a State, or for the administration of justice. " Sec. 7. That the time for completing the original registration provided for in any act may, in the discretion of the commander of any district, be extended to the 1st day of October, 1867; and the board of registration shall have power, and it shall be their duty, commencing fourteen days prior to any election under said act, and upon reasonable public notice of the time and place thereof, to revise for a period of five days the registration lists, and upon being satisfied that any person not entitled thereto has been registered, to strike the name of such person from the list, and such person shall not be al- lowed to vote. And such board shall also, during the same period, add to each registry the names of all persons who at that time pos- sess the qualifications required by said act, who have not been al- ready registered, and no person shall at any time be entitled to be registered or to vote by reason of any executive pardon or amnesty, for any act or thing which, without such pardon or amnesty, would disqualify him from registration or voting. " Sec. 8. That all members of said boards of registration, and all persons hereafter elected or appointed to office in said military dis- tricts under any so-called State or municipal authority, or by detail or appointment of the district commander, shall be required to take and subscribe to the oath of office prescribed by law for the offi- cers of the United States. " Sec. 9. That no district commander or member of the board of registration, or any officer or appointee acting under them, shall be bound in his action by any opinion of any civil officer of the United States. " Sec. 10. That section four of said last-named act shall be con- strued to authorize the commanding general named therein, when- ever he shall deem it needful, to remove any member of a board of registration, and to appoint another in his stead, and to fill any vacancy in such board. 622 RECOKSTKUCTIOK " Sec. 11. That all. the provisions of this act, and of the acts to which this is supplementary, shall be construed liberally, to the end that all the intents thereof may be fully and perfectly carried out." A bill was also passed appropriating 11,675,000 to carry out the Reconstruction Acts, which was vetoed, and passed over the veto ; in the Senate by 32 to 4, and in the House by 100 to 24. The Senate passed a bill, 25 to 5, providing that in the District of Columbia no person should be disqualified for holding office on account of race or color. The President sent in a communication, stating that the annual cost of main- taining State Governments in the ten States was $14,000,000, and if the General Government undertook to manage them it would be greater ; also that if it abolished the present State Governments, it would be liable for their debts, amounting to at least 1100,000,000. The House passed a resolution, 100 to 18, declaring this communication " at war with the princi- ples of international law, a deliberate stab at the national credit, abhorrent to every sentiment of loyalty, and well pleas- ing only to the vanquished traitors by whose agency alone the governments of said States were overthrown and destroyed." Such was the legislation on the subject of reconstruction during the year 1867. We shall see in our next chapter what was done by the military authorities and the people of the desolated States, during the year, to carry out these meas- ures. With a glance at the condition of these States early in the year, we close our present chapter. The winter of 1866-67 was one of great and widely extended suffering. The crops had been short, and of inferior quality, and for want of help many of them had not been fully gathered. In some sections there was actual starvation. Over $500,000 had been raised in the Northern States and distributed mostly in breadstuffs to those who were most in need. Congress, in March, au- thorized the distribution of aid to a limited extent through the Freedmen's Bureau. In April, 65,000 persons received ra- THE DESOLATED STATES. 623 tions daily through the Freedmen's Bureau, in Alabama alone, and 20,000 more were on the verge of distress. There was also pi-evalent a deplorable state of lawlessness. Bands of armed men, ruffians, mostly bushwhackers, formerly con- nected with the Rebel army, roamed through many districts, plundering and burning property, and destroying tlie lives of loyal men, white and black, often under circumstances of pe- culiar atrocity. Some parts of the South, and especially Ken- tucky, Middle and Western Tennessee, Louisiana, and Texas, seemed given over to anarchy. 624 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. CHAPTER LXXXIV. THE WORK OF RESTORATION. Votes on the Fourteenth Constitutional Amendment. — The New States and Recon- structed States likely to vote for it. — Action of the Commanders of the Military Districts. — The Fifth District. — Measures adopted by General Sheridan. — His Reasons for them. — Further Action of General Sheridan. — Governor Wells re- moved, and Governor Flanders appointed. — Incidents in Charleston : The Rail- road Cars; The Flag at the Charleston Fire Parade. — General Sickles' Order No. 10: Its Provisions. — Attorney-General Stanbery's Objections to it. — Other Orders of General Sickles. — He asks to be relieved of his Command. — Troubles in General Pope's District. — Insubordination of Governor Jenkins: General Pope asks that he be removed; General Grant's Indorsement. — Riot in Mobile. — In Eichmond. — Registration, and Powers of Militarj' Commanders. — The Interfer- ence of the Attorney-General. — His Written Opinions. — General Grant decides that they are not Mandator^'. — General Sheridan's Opinion of them. — Removal of Throckmorton. — Sheridan's Complaint of Rousseau. — The Removal of Secre- tary Stanton determined upon, and of General Sheridan also. — The President's Letter to Stanton. — Stanton's Reply. — General Grant's Private Letter to the Presi- dent. — Stanton suspended, and Grant appointed Secretary of War ad interim. — The Order for Sheridan's Removal. — General Grant's Protest. — The President's Eeply. — Thomas appointed to the Fifth District, but declines on account of his Health. — Hancock appointed. — General Griffin's Death. — General Sickles' Re- moval. — Generals Canby and Mower's Orders. — The President's two Proclama- tions. — Who are to be amnestied. — The President's Pardons. — General Han- cock's Special Order. — The President's delight with it. —He proposes that Con- gress shall make a Public Recognition of the General's Patriotism. — Congress "don't see it." — Measures of General Hancock. — General Grant revokes his Orders. — Hancock asks to be relieved, and is appointed by the President to the Command of the New Department of Washington. — The New Constitutions. — Alabama: The Measures of the Rebels to prevent the adoption of the Constitution. — The Constitutions of the other States adopted. — Vote on Convention and Con- stitution. Before proceeding to give an account of the progress of reconstruction under the Congressional acts, in the Desohited States, we subjoin the following table of the votes of the Legislatures of the several States on the 14th Amendment to the Constitution, which was submitted to them for ratification on the 13th June, 1866 ; — THE DESOLATED STATES. 625 VOTES OF STATE LEGISLATURES ON THE FOUR- TEENTH CONSTITUTIONAL AMENDMENT. LOYAL STATES. * RATIFIED TWENTY-ONE STATES. Maine. — Senate, January 16, 1867, yeas 31, nays 0. House, January 11, 1867, yeas 126, nays 12. New Hampshire. — Senate, July 6, 1866, yeas 9, nays 3. House, June 28, 1866, yeas 207, nays 112. Vermont. — Senate, October 23, 1866, yeas 28, nays 0. House, October 30, 1866, yeas 199, nays 11. Massaclmsetts. — Senate, March 20, 1867, yeas 27, nays 6. House, March 14, 1867, yeas 120, nays 20. • Rhode Island. — Senate, February 5, 1867, yeas 26, nays 2. House, February 7, 1867, yeas 60, nays 9. Connecticut. — Senate, June 25, 1866, yeas 11, nays 6. House, June 29, 1866, yeas 131, nays 92. New York. — Senate, January 3, 1867, yeas 23, nays 3. House, January 10, 1867, yeas 76, nays 40. New Jersey. — Senate, September 11, 1866, yeas 11, nays 10. House, September 11, 1866, yeas 34, nays 24. Pennsylvania. — Senate, January 17, 1867, yeas 20, nays 9. House, February 6, 1867, yeas 58, nays 29. West Virginia. — Senate, January 15, 1867, yeas 15, nays 3. House, January 16, 1867, yeas 48, nays 11. Ohio. — Senate, January 3, 1867, yeas 21, nays 12. House, January 4, 1867, yeas 54, nays 25. Tennessee. — Senate, July 11, 1866, yeas 15, nays 6. House, July 12, 1866, yeas 43, nays 11. Indiana. — Senate, January 16, 1867, yeas 29, nays 18. House, January 23, 1867, yeas — , nays — . Illinois. — Senate, January 10, 1867, yeas 17, nays 7. House, January 15, 1867, yeas 59, nays 25. Michigan. — Senate, January, 1867, yeas 25, nays 1. House, January, 1867, yeas 77, nays 15. Missouri. — Senate, January 5, 1867, yeas 26, nays 6. House, January 8, 1867, yeas 85, nays 34. 40 626 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. Minnesota. — Senate, January 16, 1867, yeas 16, nays 5. House, January 15, 1867, yeas 40, nays 6. Kansas. — Senate, January 11, 1867, unanimously. House, January 10, 1867, yeas 75, nays 7. Wisconsin. — Senate, January 23, 1867, yeas 22, nays 10. House, February 7, 1867, yeas 72, nays 12. Oregon. — * Senate, September, 1866, yeas 13, nays 7. House, September 19, 1866, yeas 25, nays 22. Nevada. — * Senate, January 22, 1867, yeas 14, nays 2. House, January 11, 1867, yeas 34, nays 4. REJECTED THREE STATES. Delaware. — Senate, February. House, February 6, 1867, yeas 6, nays 15. Maryland. — Senate, March 23, 1867, yeas 4, nays 13. House, March 23, 1867, yeas 12, nays 45. Kentucky. — Senate, January 8, 1867, yeas 7, nays 24. House, January 8, 1867, yeas 26, nays 62. NOT ACTED THREE STATES. Iowa, California, Nebraska. INSURRECTIONARY STATES. REJECTED — TEN STATES. Virginia. — Senate, January 9, 1867, unanimously. House, January 9, 1867, 1 for amendment. North (hrolina. — Senate, December 13, 1866, yeas 1, nays 44. House, December 13, 1866, yeas 10, nays 93. Sovih Carolina. — Senate, . House, December 20, 1866, yeas 1, nays 95. Georgia. — Senate, November 9, 1866, yeas 0, nays 36. House, November 9, 1866, yeas 2, nays 131. Florida. — Senate, December 3, 1866, yeas 0, nays 20. House, December 1, 1866, yeas.O, nays 49. Alabama. — Senate, December 7, 1866, yeas 2, nays 27. House, December 7, 1866, yeas 8, nays 69. * UnoflScial. THE DESOLATED STATES. 627 Mississippi. — Senate, January 30, 1867, yeas 0, nays 27. House, January 25, 1867, yeas 0, nays 88. Louisiana. — Senate, February 5, 1867, unanimously. House, February 6, 1867, unanimously. Texas. — Senate, . House, October 13, 1866, yeas 5, nays 67. Arkansas. — Senate, December 15, 1866, yeas 1, nays 24. House, December 17, 1866, yeas 2, nays 68. Of these States North Carolina, South Carohna, Georgia, Florida, Louisiana, and Arkansas, and possibly some of the other desolated States, will reverse their decision the present summer, and Nebraska, Iowa, and Colorado will also vote for it. On the other hand, New Jersey and Ohio, which have now Democratic Legislatures, have attempted, but in vain, to reverse their decisions and reject the Amendment. The votes of the reconstructed States will undoubtedly be sufficient to secure its adoption by the affirmative vote of the constitutional number (three fourths) of the States. The commanders of the five military districts, Generals Meade, Sickles, Pope, Thomas, and Sheridan, after the pas- sage of the Reconstruction Act, and its first supplement, issued their orders, insisting on obedience to its provisions, as according to the law they were required to do, but manifesting at the same time a disposition to interfere as little as possible with the existing civil government until the question of a con- stitutional convention could be voted on, and if called, a new constitution prepared and adopted, and the machinery of gov- ernment set in motion under the new regime. Many leading citizens of the South, who had been prominent in the Rebel- lion, advised acquiescence in the Congressional plan, and while strong opposition was manifested in many quarters, it was hoped that there would be a general participation in the work of reorganization. The opposition was violent, and most strongly marked in the cities, where many of the leading papers, of Rebel antecedents, took an active part in abusing and berating Congress. The action of the military com- 628 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. mander of the Fifth District^ General Sheridan, in suppressing the violence of the Rebel ojiposition, was early and decided, as, indeed, was necessary. On the 27th of March, 1867, he removed from office Andi'evv S. Herron, Attorney-General of Louisiana, John T. Monroe, Mayor of New Orleans, and Edmund Abell, Judge of the first District Court of the city, and appointed in their places B. L. Lynch, Edward Heath, and W. W. Howe. Li a note to General Grant, soon after, he assigned the following reasons for this action : — " I did not deem it necessary to give any reason for the removal of these men, especially after the investigation made by the' Military Board on the massacre of July 30, 1866, and the rejiort of the Con- gressional Committee on the same massacre ; but as some inquiry has been made for the cause of removal, I would respectfully state as follows : The court over which Judge Abell presided is the only Criminal Court in the city of New Orleans, and for a 2)eriod of at least nine months previous to July 30, he had been educating a large portion of the community to the perpetration of this out- rage, by almost promising no prosecution in his court against the offenders, in case such an event occurred. The records of this court will show that he fulfilled his promise, as not one of the guilty ones has been prosecuted. In reference to Andrew S. Herron, Attorney- General of the State of Louisiana, I considered it his duty to indict these men before this criminal court. This he failed to do, but went so far as to attempt to impose on the good sense of the whole nation by indicting the victims of the riot instead of the rioters — in other words, making the innocent guilty and the guilty innocent. He was, therefore, an abettor of and coadjutor with Judge Abell in bringing on the massacre of July 30. Mayor Monroe controlled the element engaged in this riot, and when backed by an attorney- general who would not prosecute the guilty, and a judge who advised the grand jury to find the innocent guilty and let the mur- derers go free, felt secure in engaging his police force in the riot and massacre. With these three men exercising a large influence on the worst elements of this city, giving to these elements an im- munity for riot and bloodshed, the General -in-chief will see how insecure I felt in letting them occupy their present positions in the troubles which might occur in registration and voting in the reor- ganization." THE DESOLATED STATES. 629 Monroe was mayor when New Orleans was captured by Farragut and Butler. He had been pardoned by the Presi- dent and reelected mayor. Early in April, General Griffin, who was in command in Texas, wrote to General Sheridan, stating that, under the Military Bill, both the Governor and Lieutenant-Governor of that State were disqualified to act, and that he desired the immediate removal of Governor Throckmorton. General Sheridan forwarded the letter to General Grant, with his favorable recommendation indorsed thereon, and added that he feared he would be compelled to remove Governor Wells, of Louisiana, who was impeding him all he could. To this General Grant responded, April 3, advising him not to re- move the governors at present, the question of the powers of military commanders being under consideration in the Cabi- net. This ended the matter for the time being. On the 6th of April, General Sheridan telegraphed General Grant that he was nearly ready to proceed with the work of registration, and that " an authoritative decision, as to what classes are dis- franchised, is very important." General Grant replied, that the questions had been submitted to the Attorney-General, and that no answer had been received, adding, " Go on giving your interpretation of the law until answer is given." Breaches in the Mississippi levees were very disastrous in Marcii and April, and there had been a serious conflict in regard to Levee Commissioners. General Sheridan removed those officers May 2, and appointed others in their places. June 3, General Sheridan removed Governor Wells, and appointed Thomas J. Durant in his stead. June 4, he in- formed General Grant of his action, saying, " He has em- barrassed me very much since I came in command, by his subterfuge and political chicanery. This necessary act will be approved here by every class and shade of political opinion. He has not a friend who is an honest man. Nothing will answer here but a bold and strong course, and in taking it, I am supported by every class and all parties." Mr. Durant 6c0 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. declining the office, General Sheridan, on the 6th, appointed Benjamin F. Flanders in his stead. Governor Wells declining to vacate the office. General Sheridan, on the 7th, addressed a note to him, stating that he had been informed that he dis- puted his right to remove him from office, which right he had previously acknowledged and urged. He concluded his note as follows : " I therefore send Brevet Brigadier-General James W. Forsyth, of my staff, to notify you that he is sent by me to eject you from the Governor's room forcibly, unless you consider this notification as equivalent to ejection." Gen- eral Forsyth presented the communication on the 8th, when Governor Wells vacated, responding, " I surrender the office I hold only to the sword." Governor Flanders went to New Orleans in 1842, was driven out of the city in 1861, by a body of Rebels, styling themselves a Vigilance Committee, for his devotion to the Union. He made his Way to Cairo and Columbus, barely saving his life, and returned with Butler in 1862. In the fall of the same year he was elected a member of Congress. Upon his return, he was appointed City Treasurer, and shortly afterward was selected, by Sec- retary Chase, as supervising special agent for the Treasury Department for the District. He was connected with the Treasury Department from that time until his appointment as Governor. It having been reported that General Grant favored reprimanding Sheridan for the removal, the former telegraphed the latter, June 7, denying the report, saying, " There is not one woi-d of truth in the story." The bold action of General Sheridan caused great excitement, and rumors of his having been removed by the President were constantly set afloat. In the Second District, Charleston was the scene of one or two interesting incidents in the earlier days of the enforce- ment of the Reconstruction Act. During the last ten days in March, the freedmen, who had been denied equal privileges in the cars, undertook to secure them by force, and several of them were arrested. Commissioner R. K. Scott, of the THE DESOLATED STATES. 631 Freedmen's Bureau, issued a circular, waniing them that such attempts would only retard the acknowledgment of their rights, and that their only remedy Avas through legal process. The question was finally settled May 3, by the directors resolving to admit all classes alike. The arrested persons were released. An annual parade of the Charleston fire department was to have taken place at ten o'clock on the morning of the 27th of April. As it was about starting, it was observed that it did not bear the American flag. General Sickles thereupon ad- dressed the chief engineer a note, stating that, at the previous parade, regrets had been expressed at the absence of the national emblem, and ordering that the Stars and Stripes be borne at the head of the column ; that an escort of honor be detailed to escort it, and that each person in the procession salute it. The order was obeyed, the procession being de- layed until the ensign was procured. General Sickles issued an order, April 10, known as Gen- eral Order No. 10, designed to relieve the destitute, which attracted considerable attention. It prohibited imprisonment for debt, except for fraud ; directed that judgments on actions arisinfr durincr the Rebellion should not be enforced ; sheriffs' sales on process prior to December 19, 1860, were suspended for a year ; allowed process to continue judgments entered since May 15, 1865 ; suspended all proceedings for the re- covery of money in the purchase of negroes ; protected ad- vances of moneys and materials for agricultural purposes, and made wages a lien ; provided a homestead exemption of $500 ; declared United States currency legal tenders ; property of an absent debtor should not be taken under foreign attach- ment, but aliens should not be disturbed ; other provisions relative to criminal proceedings were set aside ; the carrying of deadly weapons was prohibited ; coi'poreal punishment was abrogated ; the punishment of death in cases of burglary and larceny was abolished, and terms of imprisonment substituted ; the govei'nors of North and South Carolina were authorized 632 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. to reprieve or pardon criminals sentenced by civil courts. The order closed with these words : " Any law or ordinance heretofore in force in North Carolina or South Carolina, in- consistent with the provisions of this general order, are here- by suspended and declared inoperative." It gave great satis- faction in South Carolina, on account of the features staying executions in civil cases. In an opinion addressed to the President, June 12, At- torney-General Stanbery strongly objected to the issuing of this and other orders, which he said began to assume the di- mensions of a Code. He said that under it the commanding general assumed, " not only a power to suspend the laws, but to declai-e them generally inoperative, and assuming full powers of legislation by the military authoritv." The At- torney-General proceeded : " The ground upon which these extraordinary powers are based is thus set forth in military order No. 1, issued in this district : ' The civil government now existing in North Carolina and South Carolina is provis- ional only, and in all respects subject to the paramount au- thority of the United States at any time to abolish, modify, control, or supersede the same.' Thus far the provisions of the Act of Congress are Avell recited. What follows is in these words : ' Local laws and municipal regulations not in- consistent with the Constitution and laws of the United States, or the proclamations of the President, or with such regulations as are or may be prescribed in the orders of the commanding general, are hereby declared to be in force, and, in conformity therewith, civil officers are hereby authorized to continue the exercise of their pro])er functions, and will be respected and obeyed by the inhabitants.' Tins construction of his powers under the act of Congress places military com- manders on the same footing as the Congress of the United StatJes. It assumes that ' the paramount authority of the United States at any time to abolish, modify, control, or super- sede,' is invested in him as fully as it is reserved to Con- gress." THE DESOLATED STATES. 633 The Attorney-General conceded that the orders were issued under an honest behef they were necessary or expedient, and wari'anted by the act of Congress, but he protested against the assumption of such powers, as full of evil and mischief. General Sickles issued an order, April 18, establishing a Provost Court in the military post of Aiken, S. C, in conse- quence of " it having become apparent that justice to freed- men cannot be obtained in the civil courts within that post." The court was given jurisdiction of any case to which a per- son of color was a party, except murder, arson, and rape. On the 2-3d of April, he issued an order prohibiting the sale or gift of liquors to United States soldiers, sailors, or marines, and giving post commanders supervision over all sheriffs and police within their commands, and directing them, " when- ever necessary for the preservation of order, and the efficient discharge of their duties, to assume command of the police force." It having been alleged that the supply of food had been greatly diminished by distillation ; that distillers de- frauded the revenue, and maltreated the collectors when en- deavoring to collect- the tax ; and that the practice of distilla- tion tended to increase poverty, disorder, and ci'ime, he issued an order May 30, prohibiting the distillation of grain. The strictures of the Attorney-General were received in Charleston June 19, and the same day General Sickles for- warded a request to Washington to be relieved from duty, and demanded a court of inquiry on his official actions. He was subsequently relieved, but the court of inquiry was not granted. Third District. — Early in April, movements were insti- tuted in Washington to enjoin the enforcement of the Recon- struction Act, in the name of the State of Georgia. (A sim- ilar movement waS made on the part of Mississippi). On the 10th of April, Governor Jenkins, of Georgia, issued an address to the people of the State, dated at Washington, advising them to take no action under the Reconstruction law until its constitutionality could be tested. On the 24th, General Pope 634 THE TTORK OF RESTORATION. addressed liiin a note, reminding him that it was his duty, under the hiw, to place no impediment in the way of recon- struction, and that if he did, he was Hable to removal. Gen- eral Pope likewise addressed General Grant on the subject. His letter contained the following paragraph : — " The ill effects of permitting the whole power of the provisional State government, through all its civil departments and in all its ramifications, to be used to frustrate the acts of Congress, and to keep up the disturbed condition of the public mind, cannot be over- stated. No reconstruction is possible, aud it will be next to impos- sible to secure faithful administration of the laws, while such in- fluences are allowed to go on unchecked, unless the entire civU government is overthrown and the military substituted. I deem it of the last importance to arrest it now, in the person of Provisional Governor Jenkins. If he is permitted to set authority at defiance, it will be useless to notice such offenses committed by the minor officers." General Grant forwarded the letter to the War Depart- ment, indorsed as follows : — " Respectfully forwarded to the Secretary of War for his informa- tion. The telegraphic despatch herein inclosed shows that Governor Jenkins, of Georgia, has given such pledges to the commander of the Third District as to induce him to withhold, for the present, his order suspending the Governor. " The conduct of Governor Jenkins demonstrates, however, how possible it is for discontented civil officers of the reconstructed States to defeat the laws of Congress, if the power does not exist with the district commanders to suspend then* functions for cause in some way. It seems clear to me that the power is given in the bill ' for the more efficient Government of the Rebel States,' to use or not, at the pleasure of district commanders, the provisional machinery set up without the authority of Congress, in the States to which the Reconstruction Act applies. There being doul)t, however, on this point, I would respectfully ask an early opinion on the subject. " If the power of removal does not exist with district commanders, then it will become necessary for them to take refuge under that section of the Bill which authorizes military commissions. "U. S. GRANT, General. " Head-quarters, Armies United States, April 22, 1867." THE DESOLATED STATES. 635 A riot occurred in Mobile, May 14, on the occasion of a speech made by Judge Kelley, of Pennsylvania, who had been speaking in the South in favor of reorganizing under Congressional law. Four persons were killed and twenty wounded. A citizens' meeting was held, composed of all par- ties, which denounced the outrage. The Mayor and Chief of Police were censured, on an investigation into the affair, and, on the 22d of May, were removed, and others appointed in their stead. A negro riot took place in Richmond, May 9, on the occa- sion of an engine trial, when a thousand negroes were dis- persed at the point of the bayonet. No events worthy of special notice occurred in the First and Fourth Districts, except the registration proceedings. Registration^ and the Powers of 3Iilitary Commanders. — The military commanders had scarcely begun the work of registration before questions involving the construction of the law were orio-inated. Different commanders construed the act differently, and of course conflicting instructions were given. Some were very stringent, and others more moderate. The one most widely variant from those generally issued, was issued by General Ord, June 10. The views of Secretary Stanbery and General Grant, respectively, are set forth in the following note, signed by General Grant, June 23 : — " I entirely dissent from the views contained in Paragraph IV. Your view as to the duty of registrars to register every man who will take the required oath, though they know the applicant perjures himself, is sustained by the views of the Attorney-General. My opinion is, that it is the duty of the Board of Registration to see, so far as it Hes in their power, that no unauthorized person is allowed to register. To secure this end, registrars should be allowed to administer oaths and examine witnesses. The law, however, makes district commanders their own interpx'eters of their power and duty under it ; and, in my opinion, the Attorney-General or myself can no more than give our opinion as to the meaning of the law ; neither can enforce their views against the judgment of those made re- 636 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. sponsible for the faithful execution of the law, — the district com- manders." The Attorney-General had addressed an opinion to the President, May 24, giving his interpretation of the law. so far as relates to registration, at length. Under it there were comparatively few who were not entitled to register. This opinion was forwarded to the various commanders by the President, with a note, directing attention to it. General Pope, June 27, telegraphed General Grant to learn whether the note of the President was mandatory or not, and received the following response : — " Enforce your own construction of the Military Bill until ordered to' do otherwise. The "opinion of the Attorney-General has not been distributed to district commanders in language or manner en- titling it to the force of an order, nor can I suppose that the Presi- dent intended it to have such force. " U. S. GRANT, Genera/." A similar despatch was sent to General Sheridan the same day, in answer to a telegi'am. The latter officer, June 22, wrote to General Grant, that the opinion of the Attorney- General opened a " broad, macadamized road to perjury," and that its effects were beginning to show themselves in organized opposition to all the acts of the military commanders. " Every civil officer in the State will administer justice according to his own views : many of them, denouncing the Military Bill as unconstitutional, will throw every impediment in the way of its execution." The Attorney-General gave a lengthy opinion, June 12, to the effect that military commanders did not possess the power to remove State officers ; that they could not take cognizance of past offenses ; and generally confining their powers within limits more contracted than it had been supposed was the scope of the law. Under the supplementary Reconstruction Act of July 23, the military commanders proceeded in the discharge of their duties. General Sheridan, on the 30th of July, issued an THE DESOLATED STATES. 637 order In these words : " A careful consideration of the reports of Brevet Mnjor-General Charles Griffin, U. S. A., shows that J. W. Throckmorton, Governor of Texas, is an impedi- ment to the reconstruction of that State under the law. He is, therefore, removed from that office. E. M. Pease is here- by appointed Governor of Texas, in place of J. W. Throck- morton, removed. He will be obeyed and respected accord- ingly." Governor Pease took the oath of office, August 7, and Governor Throckmorton vacated the following day. On the 3d of August, General Sheridan informed General Grant that the work of registration in Louisiana was complete, and that " the State will, in all probability, come in as a Union State. In accomplishing this registration, I have had no op- position from the masses of the people ; on the contrary, much assistance and encouragement ; but from the public press, especially that of the city of New Orleans, and from office- holders and office-seekers disfranchised, I have met with bit- terness and opposition. I have, as I have heretofore stated to you, permitted no political influence nor political machinery to help or influence me in this work. Receiving the law as an order, it was so executed. I regret that I have to make the charge against Brigadier-General L. H. Rousseau, U. S. A., of visiting my command recently, and without exhibiting any authority, interfering with my duties and suggesting my re- moval." President Johnson had long been dissatisfied with Secretary Stanton, who was friendly to the Congressional plan of recon- struction, and had aided so far as was in his power, in the faithful execu-tion of the laws pertaining to that subject. The President was desirous of having his Cabinet composed wholly of men who would reflect his views and support him in the violation or careless and incomplete execution of the measures which he hated, and Stanton, whom he could not use or con- trol, was to him a Mordecai sitting in the king's gate, who would do him no reverence. He determined, therefore, to rid himself of him. Accordingly, on the 5th of August, he ad- 638 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. dressed a note to the Secretary, saying that public considera- tions of high character constrained him to say that his resicr- nation as Secretary of War would be accepted. Secretary Stanton replied the same day in the following terms : " In reply, I have the honor to say, that public considerations of a high character, which alone have induced me to continue at the head of this department, constrain me not to resign the office of Secretary of War before the next meeting of Con- gress." To this, the President made no direct reply. But his determination to drive Stanton from the War Department had been too long cherished to be relinquished, especially by a man of such a tenacious and Avilful disposition as the Pres- ident. He had intimated in the latter part of July, to General Grant, his intention of removing both Secretary Stanton and General Sheridan, the commander of the Fifth District, from their positions, and the General-in-chief, who well knew the value of the two men, in executing promptly and fairly the laws, had remonstrated in the following manly letter, which was only made public on the subsequent demand of Con- gress : — " Head-quarters Armies of the U. S., ) " [Private.] Washington, D. C, August 1, 1867. ) " His Excellency, A. Johnson, President of the United States : " Sir : I take the liberty of addressing you privately on the subject of the conversation we had this morning, feehng as I do the great danger to the welfare of our country, should you carry out the de- signs then expressed. " 1. On the subject of the displacement of the Secretary of War. His removal cannot be effected against his will without the consent of the Senate. It is but a short time since the United States Senate was in session, and why not then have asked for his removal, if it was desired ? It certainly was the intention of the legislative branch of the Government to place the Cabinet Ministers beyond the power of Executive removal, and it is pretty well understood that, so far as Cabiwet Ministers are affected by the Tenure of Office Bill, it was intended especially to protect the Secretary of War, whom the country felt great confidence in. The meaning of the law may THE DESOLATED STATES. 639 be explained away by an astute lawyer, but common sense and the views of loyal people will give to it the effect intended by its framers. " 2. On the subject of the removal of the very able commander of the Fifth Military District, let me ask you to consider the effect it would have upon the public. He is unusually and deservedly be- loved by the people who sustained this Government through its trials, and feared by those who would still be enemies of the Government. " It fell to the lot of but few men to do as much against our armed enemy as General Sheridan did during the Rebellion ; and it is within the scope of the ability of few, in this or other countries, to do what he has. His civil administration has given equal satisfac- tion. He has had difficulties to contend with which no other dis- trict commander has encountered. Almost, if not quite, from the day he was appointed district commander to the present time, the press has given out that he was to be removed ; that the adminis- tration was dissatisfied with him, etc. " This has emboldened the opponents to the laws of Congress within bis command to oppose him in every way in their power, and has rendered necessary, measures which otherwise might never have been necessary. " In conclusion, allow me to say, as a friend desiring peace and quiet, the welfare of the whole country, North and South, that it is, in my opinion, more than the loyal people of this country (I mean those who supported the Government during the great Rebellion) will quietly submit to, to see the very men of all others whom they have expressed confidence in, removed. " I would not have taken the liberty of addressing the Executive of the United States thus, but for the conversation on the subject alluded to in this letter, and from a sense of duty, feeling that I know I am right in this matter. " With great respect, your obedient servant, " U. S. GRANT, General." The President was not, as we have said, to be turned from his pitrpose. On the 12th of August, he notified Secretary Stanton that he was suspended from office from that date, and on the same day addressed a note to General Grant au- thorizing and requiring him to act as Secretary of War ad 640 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. ■ interim. General Grant informed Secretary Stanton of his assignment and acceptance, assuring him at the same time of his appreciation of the zeal, patriotism, firmness, and ability with which he had ever discharged his duties as Secretary of War. Mr. Stanton replied to both the President and tlie General ; denying the power of the former to suspend him from office, without the consent of tlie Senate, and saying that he yielded under protest to superior force ; and repeating the protest to the latter, while at the same time he assured him of his personal appreciation of his sentiments and patriotism. Having thus, for tlie time (though not permanently, as he hoped), disposed of Secretary Stanton, Mr. Johnson next proceeded to issue an order, assigning General George H. Thomas to the command of the Fifth District, General Han- cock to the Department of the Cumberland, and General Sheridan to the Department of Missouri, and directing the Secretary of War ad interim to issue the necessary instruc- tions to carry the order into effect. A note from the Pres- ident accompanied the order, that, before he issued the instructions, he would be pleased to receive any suggestions respecting the assignments. General Grant replied the same day in a note, from which the following is an extract : — " I am pleased to avail myself of this invitation to urge, earnestly urge — urge in the name of a patriotic people, who have sacrificed hundreds of thousands of loyal lives, and thousands of millions of treasure, to preserve the integrity and union of this country — that this order be not insisted on. It is unmistakably the expressed wish of the country that General Sheridan should not be removed from his present command. This is a Republic, where the will of the people is the law of the land. I beg that their voice may be heard. " General Sheridan has performed his civil duties faithfully and intelligently. His removal will only be regarded as an effort to de- feat the laws of Congress. It will be interpreted by the unrecon- structed element in the South — those who did all they could to break up this Government by arms, and now wish to be the only element consulted as to the method of restoring order — as a triumph. THE DESOLATED STATES. 641 It will embolden them to renewed opposition to the will of the loyal masses, believing that they have the Executive with them. " There are military reasons, pecuniary reasons, and, above all, patriotic reasons, why this order should not be insisted on. " I beg to refer to a letter, marked private,^ which I wrote to the President when first consulted on the subject of the change in the War Department. It bears upon the subject of this removal, and I had hoped would have prevented it." The President responded in a lengthy letter, dated the 19th. He had not intended to invite a formal report, but only a verbal statement of General Grant's views. He was not aware that this question of removal of General Sheridan had been submitted to the people for their determination. He commended General Thomas's abihties, and comphiined of the results of General Sheridan's administration, as producing a bitter spirit of antagonism. He had rendered himself ex- ceedingly obnoxious, and his rule had been one of absolute tyranny. In his opinion, he should be removed. General Grant issued the instx'uctions required, August 19, attaching a clause, directing General Thomas to " con- tinue to execute all orders he may find in force in the Fifth Military District at the time of his assuming command of it, unless authorized by the General of the Army to annul, alter, or modify them." In consequence of the unfavorable condi- tion of General Thomas's health, the President issued an order, August 26, assigning General Hancock to the Fifth Dis- trict, directing him to "proceed directly to New Orleans, Louisiana, and, assuming the command to which he is hereby^ assigned, he will, when necessary to a faithful execution of the laws, exercise any and all powers conferred by acts of Con- gress upon district commanders, and all authority pertaining to officers in command of military departments." General Grant issued the necessary insti'uctions. General Sheridan was directed to turn over his command to Major-General Charles Griffin, which he at once proceeded to do. He then 1 See this letter on a preceding page. 41 642 THE WOEK OF RESTORATION. came North, visited many of the principal cities, in all of which he was enthusiastically received. General Griffin assumed command, September 7, and issued an order, in which he directed that " all existing orders should remain in full." General Griffin soon died, of yellow fever, and Brevet Major- General Joseph A. Mower assuming command, reiterated the same order. The President issued an order, August 26, relieving Major- General Daniel E. Sickles, and assigning Brevet Major-Gen- eral Edward R. S. Canby to the command, of the Second District. General Canby assumed command, September 5, and in his order adopted and confirmed all existing orders and regulations. General Canby issued an order, September 14, declaring tax-payers registered as voters, qualified to serve as jurors. General Mower issued an order, September 28, declaring all persons registered in Texas qualified to act as jurymen. General Grant issued an order, August 29, as General of the Army, directing that commanders of the military districts created under the Act of March 2, 186T, should make no ap- pointments to civil office of persons who have been removed, by themselves or their predecessors in command. On the 3d of September, apparently in vindication of his pre- vious acts. President Johnson issued a proclamation declaring the supremacy of the Constitution, the Laws, and tlie decisions of the Civil Courts, warning all persons against obstructing them, and enjoining all civil and mihtary officers to enforce them. On the 8th of September, 1887, the President issued another amnesty proclamation, in which he declared the peo- ple of the unreconstructed States loyally disposed, deprecated a vindictive policy, and extended the benefits of the Amnesty Proclamation of May 29, 1865, to all persons except the fol- lowing : — First. The chief, or pretended chief executive officers, in- cluding the President, Vice-President, and all heads of depart- THE DESOLATED STATES. 643 ments of the pretended Confederate or Rebel Government, and all who were agents thereof in foreign states and countries, and all who held, or pretended to hold, in the service of the said pretended Confederate Government, a military rank or title above the grade of Brigadier-General, or naval rank or title above that of Captain, and all who were, or pretended to be, governors of States while maintaining, abetting, submitting to, or acquiescing in, the Rebellion. Second. All persons who, in any way, treated otherwise than as lawful prisoners of war, persons who, in any capacity, were employed or engaged in the military or naval service of the United States. Third. All persons who, at the time they may seek to ob- tain the benefits of this proclamation, are actually in civil, mil- itary, or naval confinement or custody, or legally held to bail either before or after conviction; and all persons who were en- gaged directly or indirectly in the assassination of the late Pres- ident of the United States, or in any plot or conspiracy in any manner therewith connected. This proclamation further declared the amnestied persons restored to all privileges, immunities, and rights of property, except as to property with regard to slaves, and except in cases of legal proceedings under the laws of the United States. This proclamation amnestied a very large number of Rebels, and left very few to be excepted from pardon, and the great- er part of these received special pardons from the President upon application, without any professions of repentance being required. Other cases also received the Executive clemency, greatly to the prejudice of all efforts to bring offenders to justice. Every counterfeiter or forger of the national currency or bonds, eveiy man who had defrauded the Government during the war, by means of spurious claims, and every one who was detected in the attempt to cheat the Government of its dues in the way of internal revenue, was promptly pardoned by the Executive, generally on the first application. General Hancock assumed command of the Fifth Military 644 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. District on the 29th of November, 18G7, and issued a special order on taking command, of which the second item was the most important, as containing an exposition of his intentions in regard to the mihtarj and civil government of the district. It was as follows : — " Second. The General commanding is gratified to learn that peace and quiet reigu in this department. It will be his purpose to pre- serve this condition of things. As a means to this great end, he re- gards the maintenance of the civil authorities in the faithful execution of the laws, as the most efficient under existing circumstances. In war it is indispensable to repel force by force, and overthrow and de- stroy opposition to authority ; but when insurrectionary force has been overthrown and peace established, and the civil authorities are ready and willing to perform their duties, the military power should cease to lead, and the civil administration resume its natural and rightful dominion. Solemnly impressed with these views, the General an- nounces that the great principles of Araei-ican liberty still are the lawful inheritance of this people, and ever should be. The right of trial by jury, the habeas corpus, the liberty of the press, the freedom of speech, and the natural rights of persons and the rights of prop, erty must be preserved. Free institutions, while they are essential to the prosperity and happiness of the people, always furnish the strongest inducements to peace and order. Crimes and offenses committed in the district must be referred to the consideration and judgment of the regular civil authorities, and these tribunals will be supported in their lawful jurisdiction. Should there be violations of existing laws, which are not inquired into by the civil magistrates, or should failures in the administration of justice by the courts be complained of, the cases will be reported to these Head-quarters, when such orders will be made as may be deemed necessary. While the General thus indicates his purpose to respect the liberties of the people, he wishes all to understand that armed insurrections or for- cible resistance to law, will be instantly suppressed by arms." President Johnson had at last, after much tribulation, found a district commander after his own heart ; and though it was soon found tliat General Hancock removed loyal men from office, and, so far as he could, put disloyal ones in their place, THE DESOLATED STATES. 645 and that he was winning the praise of evei'y rebel in his dis- trict and the hearty dislike of every loyal citizen, yet the President was so delighted with his course and his proclama- tions, that on the 18th of December, 1867, he sent a message to Congress, in which, after the most fulsome commendation of the General, comparing him to Washington, and saying that to him belonged the distinguished honor of being the first officer in high command south of the Potomac, since the close of the civil war, who had given utterance to these noble sen- timents in the form of a military order, he suggested to Con- gress, tliat some public recognition of General Hancock's pa- triotic conduct was due, if not to him, to the friends of law and justice throughout the country. " Of such an act as his at such a time," he continued, " it is best fitting that the dignity should be vindicated and the virtue proclaimed, so that its value as an example may not be lost to the nation." Con- gress could not view General Hancock's conduct in so praise- worthy a light, and they accordingly declined to make any public recognition of it. On assuming command, General Hancock found in force an order issued by General Mower, who had been in temporary command, dated November 21, removing several State and other officers. These orders were revoked in different orders, and on the 3d of December, General Mower was relieved from duty as Commander of the District of Louisiana and Commissioner of Freedmen, and returned to his remment. General Hancock also issued an order, December 5, revoking an order issued August 24, requiring persons to be sworn for registered voters, and restoring the State laws. An order was issued from the Freedmen's Bureau for the District of Louisiana, December 19, which provided that all differences between whites and freedmen, or between freed- men themselves, should first be referred to the civil courts for adjudication. The Bureau agents were to seek, in the first place, an amicable adjustment of difficulties, but if they failed in that, then resort was to be had to the courts, to which, also, 646 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. all legal questions must be referred. They were likewise to act on behalf of the freedmen as attorneys, and in case plant- ers refuse or neglect to pay their wages, if the courts fail to award justice, then the agents are to enforce it. In January, General Hancock proceeded to remove the colored members of the Council of Education in New Orleans, on the alleged ground that they had transcended their powers and duties, and to put Rebels in their places. General Grant, on investigation, ordered him to reinstate the members he had removed. He complied with the order, but requested to be relieved from his command, and after some delay his request was granted, and the President created a new Military De- partment of Washington, including Maryland, Virginia, Penn- sylvania, and the District of Columbia, and after trying several other officers, placed Major-General Hancock in command of it. Meantime, the voting for the constitutional conventions, under the Reconstruction Act, had resulted in the decision to hold conventions in all the desolated States, and the conven- tions had begun to assemble. The first to convene was that of Alabama, November 5. It consisted of one hundred dele- gates, sixty-one of whom signed the new Constitution, and sixteen protested against it. Its provisions were substantially the same with those of the other States, which followed in its train, and we therefore quote them as examples of the general character of these constitutions. It declared all men created equal ; persons born in the United States or naturalized, to be citizens of the State of Alabama, possessing equal civil and political rights and public privileges, and prohibiting slavery. The following is the article in regard to suffrage : — " In all elections by the people, the electors shall vote by ballot. Every male person born in the United States, and every person who has been naturalized, or who has legally declared his intentions to become a citizen of the United States, twenty-one years old or up- wards, who shall have resided in this State six months next preced- ing the election, and three months in the county in which he THE DESOLATED STATES. 647 offers to vote, except as hereinafter provided, shall be deemed an elector. " Soldiers, sailors, and marines in the United States service are not permitted to vote by reason of being stationed in the State on duty. Registration must be provided for by the General Assembly, and the following persons are not permitted to register. ^^ First. Those who during the late Rebellion inflicted or caused to be inflicted any cruel or unusual punishment upon any soldier, sailor, or marine, employee, or citizen of the United States, or who in any other way violated the rules of civilized warfare. " Second. Those who may be disqualified from holding office by the proposed amendment to the Constitution of the United States, known as Article XIV., and those who have been disqualified from registering to vote for delegates to the Convention to frame a Con- stitution for the State of Alabama, under the act of Congress ' to provide for the more efficient Government of the Rebel States,' passed by Congress March 2, 1867, and the acts supplementary thereto, except such persons as aided in the reconstruction proposed by Congress, and accept the political equality of all men before the law : Provided, That the General Assembly shall have power to re- move the disabilities incurred under this clause. " Third. Those who shall have been convicted of treason, embez- zlement of public funds, malfeasance in office, crime punishable by law with imprisonment ipi the penitentiary, or bribery. " Fourth. Those who are idiots or insane. *' All persons, before registering, must take and subscribe the fol- lowing oath : ' I, , do solemnly swear (or affirm) that I will sup- port and maintain the Constitution and laws of the United States, and the Constitution and laws of the State of Alabama ; that I am not excluded from registering by any of the clauses in section 8, ar- ticle 7, of the Constitution of the State of Alabama ; that I will never countenance or aid in the secession of this State from the United States ; that I accept the civil and political equality of all men, and agree not toattem[)t to deprive any person or persons, on account of race, color, or previous condition, of any poHtical or civil right, priv- ilege, or immunity, enjoyed by any other class of men; and fui'ther- more, that I will not in any way injure, or countenance in others any attempt to injure, any person or persons, on account of past or present support of the Government of the United States, the laws of 648 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. the United States, or the principle of the political and civil equality of all men, or for affiliation with any political party.' " The Convention adjourned December 6, and the Constitution was submitted to the people on the 4th and 5th of February, 1868. The Rebels and those opposed to the Constitution, and to the Congressional policy of reconstruction, used every device to defeat it. The provisions of the Reconstruction Act required that for the adoption of the Constitution, there must be a ma- jority of the whole number of registered voters, and taking ad- vantage of this, the Rebels registered as many names as possible (many, it was believed, fraudulently), and then, when the time came for voting, they not only kept away from the polls them- selves, but by threats, by discharging from their employ every colored man who would vote, and by a general system of ter- rorism, sought to prevent as many as possible from voting. The registration was 170,631 voters, but the registry of four counties was illegal and fraudulent. This reduced the whole number of registered voters to 156,945 ; and the lowest num- ber required for ratification of the Constitution was 78,473. The actual legal vote, under these adverse influences, was 70,359, or 8,114 short of the vote required. Of these 70,859 votes, 62,089 were for the Constitution. Under the existing law, therefore, fhe Constitution failed of ratification. The Louisiana Convention met November 23. It adopted for its first article, that all men were born free and equal, and on the 28th of December, enacted the following as its second article : " All persons, without regard to race, color, or pre- vious condition, born and naturalized in the United States, and residents of this State for one year, are citizens of this State. They shall enjoy the same civil, political, and public rights and privileges, and be subject to the same pains and penalties." This Constitution was voted upon in April, and was rat- ified by a majority of over 17,000 votes. The Georgia Convention met on the 12th of December, and sat through nearly the whole of January. The Consti- THE DESOLATED STATES. 649 tution formed by it was adopted in April, by about 18,000 majority. The Florida Convention met January 20, 1868. At first there was considerable difficulty — two factions existing in the Convention, which seemed determined to divide and ruin its councils ; but through the friendly interference of General Meade, who had succeeded to General Pope in command of the district on the 28th of December, 1867, the two parties were reconciled, and the Convention perfected its Constitution, which was ratified by the people early in May, by about 3,000 majority. In South Carolina the Convention was called by a large majority, and met on . Its Constitution was rat- ified in April, by a majority of over 36,000, in a registry of 127,550, and a vote of 85,843. North Carolina adopted her new Constitution also in April, by nearly 30,000 majority. Arkansas voted on her new Constitution in May, and rat- ified it by about 2,000 majority. Virginia, Mississippi, and Texas have each held their con- ventions and framed constitutions, but they have not yet been submitted to the people.^ • 1 According to the most complete returns now available, the vote of the registra- tion and for a convention to form a constitution in all the desolated States, except Texas, was substantially as follows : — KEGISTRATION.* CONVENTION. White. Colored. Total. For. Against. Not Voting. Alabama .... Arkansas .... Florida Georgia Louisiana .... Mississippi .... North Carolina . . South Carolina . . Texas Virginia 74,450 a3,047 10,804 95,214 45,199 46,636 103.060 45,751 59,666 116,982 90,350 21.207 15,234 93,458 84,431 60,167 71,657 79,535 47,430 104,772 166,289 66,805 27,521 188,672 129.630 139,327 174,717 125,286 107,096 221,754 87,672 27,576 13,882 102,282 75,083 69,739 57,359 60,278 107,342 5,683 13,558 111 4.127 4,006 6,277 18.635 1,480 61,887 72,934 25,671 . 13,528 82,263 50,541 63,311 t 63,528 52,525 Total .... 630,809 668,241 1,347,097 601,213 115,764 424,301 650 THE WORK OF RESTORATION. The latest available reports in regard to the adoption of the constitutions and the election of legislatures in these States are as follows: — Total vote. For Constitution. Against. White for. Against. Colored for. Against. Alabama . . 71,817 70,812 1,005 6,802 GOO 62,089 105 South Carolina* 98,046 70,758 27,288 Arkansast . . 19,978 10,985 8,993 North Carolina — Majority for Constitution over 25,000 « Georgia. . . » '< " 17,923 Louisiana . . « " " over 17,000 Florida ... " " " oyer 3,000 The Governors elected in these States were, South Carolina, ; Arkansas, ; North Carolina, W. W. Holden; Georgia, Bullock; Louisiana, H. C. Warmoth ; Florida, Reed. The Governors were all Republicans. The Legislatures had also in every case a Republican majority, in some cases a very large one. In Georgia, the Senate stood 27 Republicans to 16 Democrats, and 1 doubtful ; the House, 96 Republicans to 24 Democrats, and 6 doubtful. In North Carolina, the Republicans had 32 out of the 50 Senators, and 68 of the 122 Represen- tatives. In Louisiana, the Republicans had 21 out of 36 Senators, and 56 out of 101 Representatives. The other States had generally large majorities on the Repub- lican side. The Senators from all these States were Republicans, and the Representatives in Congress were of the same party, except three from Georgia, and one from Louisi- ana, whose seat was to be contested. * In a number of the States, a discrepancy will be observed between the white and colored registries and the total. It arises from the fact that we have used ofiScial totals where we could obtain them, giving incomplete divisions of the races when we could obtain nothing better. t The returns of the vote in this State are so incomplete that the number not voting cannot be given. THE DESOLATED STATES. 651 CHAPTER LXXXV. SOCIAL CONDITION. Suffering at the South among the Freedmen and Loyal Whites. — Causes. — The Discharge of the Freedmen by their Employers for Voting. — Good Conduct of I the Freedmen. — Description of the Scenes at the Polls in Montgomery, Ala. — Negro Suffrage, North and South. — Reasons why it was indispensable that the Freedmen should have the Ballot. — Testimony to the Good Conduct of the Negroes at the South. — Southern White Loyalty. — The Competency of the Negro for the Exercise of Suffrage equal to that of the Poor Whites. — Eloquence of a Negro in Arkansas, a recent Slave. — The Destitution at the South. — Wrongs Inflicted on the Freedmen. — Laziness of the Eebel Whites. — The Advance in Education at the South. — Benevolent Associations. — Freedmen's Bureau. — Mr. Peabody's Munificent Gift. — Higher Education. — The Educational Provisions in the New Constitutions. — The Results which must flow from this in the Future. While the desolated States were tlius striving to get into line, and henceforth keep step to the music of loyalty and Union, and, despite the bitter and ingenious opposition of the disloyal and rebellious portion of the population, and the hostility of President Johnson, were meeting with remarkable success, their social condition had, as yet, improved very little. The winter of 1867-68 was one of extensive suffer- ing, especially among the freedmen and the poor whites, from several causes : The crops of the year 1867 had been, for the most part, poor ; there had not been a sufficiency of corn or other grain grown in the South for the consumption of the population, and where cotton, sugar, and I'ice were culti- vated, in a majority of cases the crop had not been sufficient to pay the expense incurred by the still thriftless managers, and, as somebody must suffer, they preferred that it should be the freedmen, whom they drove away, without pay, in the depth of winter, alleging that the advances already made to them covered, or more than covered, their entire earnings. S62 SOCIAL CONDITION. In most of tlie States the freedmen were not, as yet, per- mitted to either hire or buy land. Where they could do so, and could in any way procure the means of cultivating it, they were industrious and economical, and managed to live comfortably. One of the measures to which the Rebel planters resorted, most generally, to prevent, if possible, the calling of a con- stitutional convention, or later, the adoption of a constitu- tion, was to discharge, at once, all in their employ Avho should dare to vote for either. Their papers openly advocated this outrageous despotism, and their advice was followed very widely. Under these circumstances, it was certainly remarkable that no larger number of the colored people fell into a con- dition of dependence and pauperism, and that, ignorant as most of them Avere, and, as yet, indisposed to extra exertion from the life-long enervating influence of slavery, with the old fear of the lash still lingering in their minds, they should have braved all the threats and persecution of their old masters, and dared to contend so earnestly for their rights. The polls, in these States, both at the time of voting for the Convention and for the Constitution, presented scenes of mingled pathos and humor, which could not fail to impress deeply every thoughtful mind. The correspondent of the " Cincinnati Commercial," him- self somewhat inclined to sympathize with the President's policy, was at Montgomery, Alabama, when the vote was taken on the adoption of the new Constitution, and his account of what he witnessed is so graphic, and tallies so exactly with what was observed in other States, that we cannot do better than to reproduce a portion of it : — " The influences brought to bear to induce them to cooperate with the late master class have been ingenious and manifold. If good- humoredly reasoned with, they would only nod in reply. Scolding fell on their impassive heads as uselessly as a spitball. Expostula- tion was of no avail. Tlu-eats of proscription have been Jess fruit- lees, but many thousands disregarded every motive save the one that THE DESOLATED STATES. 653 spurred them to vote for the political elevation of their race. It is universally asserted by the Conservatives, that the poor negroes are the dupes of designing white 'carpet-baggers,' who desire to be floated into office and emolument. That such designing persons exist is not to be doubted, but the black man, at this election, is trying to pull out of the fire the largest and most succulent chest- nuts for himself and his own people. Read the proposed Constitu- tion, and judge for yourself if he be snapping for more shadow than substance. Though often credulous, and by nature always confiding, he has a just apprehension of the stake played for in this deal of the political cards. " For four days the election has been quietly proceeding. To-day is the last of the term allowed. If ratification fail, it will not be because time enough was not given to muster all who desired to vote. Originally but two days were named, then four. The voting commenced in a raw rain-storm, the creeks became swollen, and it was feared that many negroes would be kept at home by the wretched weather and roads. So another day was added by Gen- eral Meade, making five in all. The first two days were exceed- ingly chilly, wet, and gloomy. The second two were mild and sunny. To-day promises to be a lovely one. But, rain or shine, the streets of Montgomery have been thronged with negroes. The curbstone restaurants (ranging in size from a hand-basket to a rickety table) have continued operations on a scale adapted to the crisis. Ebony cobblers on back streets have been pegging away, day and night, at the shocking bad foot-gear of tramping voters from distant plantations. "Wooden awnings have sheltered a nightly bivouac. Every hospitable hut has lodged enough darkies to give it a double claim to be called a black hole. The warm sides of the avenues have had their ebony procession lengthened and widened to the election standard ; and philanthropic auctioneers have about closed out their stock of goods and stock of conscience, at a fearful sacrifice, of course. " If the reader now will come with me, and watch for a while how the voting proceeds, I promise him a novel experience. We will not take the first day of the voting, for then it was painful to see the crowd of ragged colored men standing for hours in the pitiless storm, waiting to slip in their tickets, and so fearful of losing their 654 SOCIAL CONDITION. turns, that one who had deposited his vote found no avenue of egress, save that paved with the heads of those behind. Let us choose the third day, for the air is bland and the sky cloudless. There stand the black pilgrims, you see, ranged (for better order prevails to-day) in a double queue. At the side of the window, where the vote is handed in, are two policemen — one to admit the voter, the other to point the way out. In front of the window is the Conservative challenging committee of four. One of the four keeps tally of the vote ; another scans the registration list as the name of each voter is announced ; the third writes down the names not found registered, and the fourth makes himself generally watch- ful. Behind the window three judges are seated around a table, bearing in its centre a large pine ballot-box. " The column of negroes waiting to vote is jammed together as if by some uncontrollable muscular impulse, but it surges back when- ever the barrier of the first policeman threatens to give way. They do not talk to each other, deeming silence, perhaps, to be due to the sacred importance of the occasion. If their eye catches yours (you are a Caucasian, remember), it falls with an expression of embar- rassment, as if they felt that you, being white, looked with keen disfavor on the act they had drawn up to perform. FalstafTs re- cruits were not greater ragamuffins. Look at the garb of these negroes, and I defy you to point out one unpatched garment in fifty. Gray coats and blue coats, worn out three years ago, still are forced to serve in a tattered sartorial invalid corps. One coat (doubtless for Sunday and elections) is made of cheap ingrain carpeting. The pantaloons are more shredlike than the coats ; the hats advanced to all degrees of organic decay. Not one in twenty wears boots, and few shoes retain much of their original homely integrity. In shape, they might inclose either a small ham, or the foot of any human being deformed by toil among the clods of cotton-fields. If you study the heads and the fiices, you will find more indications of a gentle, submissive, ease-loving heart, than of active intelligence or ambitious disposition. " Whatever the natural aptitudes of the African may be, a hun- dred years of slavery in Alabama have not added anything attractive to his phrenological development. That many of them are very Ignorant of the scope and meaning of citizenship, is as plain as THE DESOLATED STATES. 655 their determination to learn more about it. The hunger to have the same chances as the white man, they feel and comprehend as clearly as they understand a physical craving. That is what brings them here, and not the expectation of getting free lands, free ra- tions, and free mules. Your Conservative friend may tell you that they look for such windfalls ; but talk to as many on the subject as I have, and you will accumulate the strongest sort of rebutting evi- dence. The last one I sounded looked at me with a shade of re- buke, and said : ' No, sah. I spect to git nuffin but what I works hard for, and when I'se sick I '11 get docked.' " Enter the first voter. He takes off his hat, and nervously gives his name to the judges. They run over the registration list. So do the Conservative challengers, who, as you see, are afforded every facility to contest and analyze. If the negro has a smooth face they demand that he swear to his age, and he is accordingly sworn. If his name be found, the judges announce the column in which it stands, and the challengers check it off. In vain the voter, seeing his vote glide into the box, and making his own way out, strives to choke down the delight that fills him. If ever you saw an amateur gamester win a heavy stake (which I trust you never have unless it was at charming Baden-Baden, or some place in New York where they go with a clergyman to study vice the better to preach against it — ahem), you watched the same sort of a smile on his face, as on the homely countenance of this happy freed- man. " Enter the second. This middle-aged negro deliberately takes off his mittens, removes his hat, runs one hand under his vest, pro- duces a little package, unwraps the rag around it, and at last hands in the paper treasure. " ' Oh, the devil ! be quick,' says the Judge, rapping irately on the window. ' Put on your hat, uncle — that humility 's played out,' says one of the challengers, with a laugh. But the voter has his own views as to the hat. Perhaps he stands uncovered to the ballot and not to men. His ticket drops into the box, and he stumps off, irradiated. The third ! 'Another George Washington.' Another vote, too, and another chuckle. The fourth ! The name of this one cannot be found. ' Go to head-quarters of registration,' says the Judge ; ' if your name is there, they will give you a certifi- 656 SOCIOL CONDITIOlSr. cate enabling you to vote.' ' I've been thar,' sorrowfully rejoins the applicant. ' 'Taint thar.' ' Sorry,' says the Judge ; ' make room, make room.' Now I ask you to watch this poor fellow. He comes out looking sick at heart. A bright mulatto takes him aside, and inquire^ into his case. It is hopeless — name not registered at all. The disappointed darkey wanders around for ten minutes, then he quietly falls again into the rear of the line, to be repulsed again and again when he reaches the window. Hope that his name may have been overlooked dies out at last, and not without the sharpest pang his simple, but emotional nature can feel. " Enter the fifth. ' My name is Henry Clay.' ' All right, Henry, you can vote ; you're registered. But, Henry, where were you born ? ' 'In Kentucky, sir ; Henry Clay, of Ashland, was my father.' And the tall, handsome mulatto, bows and makes his w^ay out. The sixth ! This is another of the persevering kind. He gives his name. ' Be off,' says the Judge. ' You have been here already half a dozen times. You say you are not registered.' ' Well, sail,' replies the sorrowful negro, ' I'se been hyah evah since Tuesday trying to vote at one place or nuther, and I hasn't had a bite to eat, and I can't vote, and I'se got to walk twelve miles to git home.' The red-nosed, cross-looking Judge takes a biscuit from his pocket and hands it to the negro, with ' Here, make room, now.' One of the challengers says : ' Boys, the Conservatives have the name of being generous. Let 's give this hungry nigger a dinner.' The speaker draws his pocket-book and transfers some currency to the object of this kindly impulse, who takes it with a ' tankee,' but a vacant look. It is a vote he wants, not a meal. " So the strange procession moves slowly on. If you wish to determine how much the negro's heart is in this election, watch his face as he comes away from that little window. His vote once in, every feature blazes with joy; but his vote rejected, sorrow and dismay are expressed even in his attitudes. Watch the anxious but resolute sooty faces in those waiting their turns. Is all this emotion due to the duplicity of Yankee adventurers ? Can the ' carpet-bag- ger ' thus sway the very soul of the black man to reach his own self- ish ends ? Is it for a possible mule and forty acres of land that the negro is thus profoundly stirred ; that he braves hardship, the ill- will of his employers, and, may be, starvation itself? No, friend THE DESOLATED STATES. 657 Conservative. The slave you once owned, ignorant as he is still, and lowly in social rank, feels, as he casts that ballot, the throes that liberty awakened, and which, unchecked by renewed oppres- sion, will give his manhood a rapid and generous growth. I do not seek to conceal his ignorance about the technical duties of citizen- ship. An old black fellow came, as I stood near one of the polls, and proffered me his vote, asking : ' Are you de boss ? ' The ques- tion is. Does the lack of such technical knowledge unfit him for useful and honest citizenship ? There have been periods in the history of our country when a loyal heart, an honest, incorruptible nature, were worth more than ten thousand of the most choicely cultivated intellects on the national roll of the rich, the powerful, and the gifted." The question has been often asked, and sometimes in a tone of triumpli, as if it were unanswerable, Is it not tyran- nical, on the partj^of the majority in Congress, to insist on giving the ballot to the negro in the desolated States, w^hen the party which tliey represent refuses to permit the negro to vote in the Northern States ? Is it not a positive violation of the golden rule — a placing of burdens upon the South which they themselves will not bear ? We answer both inquiries with a decided negative. With- out stopping to discuss the question of negro suffrage at the North, farther than to say, that a large majority of the Re- publican party throughout the North are in favor of it, and have carried it in some of the States, and have been defeated in others only by the coalition of Democrats and weak-kneed Republicans, we take the ground that the condition of the two sections is entirely different. At the North the negro citizens had no special claims on us ; they had manifested an interest in the war, and some of them had volunteered to serve in the ranks against the South, though hardly so many in pro- portion to their number as the whites. We should prefer to have them vote, for we do not believe in taxation without representation ; but, at the South, the negroes had been our friends throughout the war ; they had been steadily and per- 42 658 SOCIAL conditio:n'. sistently loyal, when very few of the whites were so, and many thousands of them had laid down their lives for the national cause. We had emancipated them, both as a mili- tary necessity, and as an act of justice to an oppressed race. But the close of the war, and the reinstating of their former disloyal masters in power, as was done often by the par- dons of the President, left them like sheep in the midst of wolves. Their old masters hated them for their loyalty, and proceeded at once, under Mr. Johnson's provisional govern- ments, to oppress them, to refuse them land, education, or employment, except at wages which would not sustain life, and to endeavor to reduce them back to slavery. To obviate this gross injustice, and to protect these wards of the nation, to whom its honor was solemnly pledged, it was necessary that they should be permitted to share in the government, that loyalty might, at least, have equal rights with disloyalty, the oppressed an equal voice with the op- pressor. This must be done, or the other alternative adopted, — that of arming the negro and bringing on a war of races, which would not have ceased till those States should have, indeed, become desolate and without inhabitants. Congress had no ambition to reenact the bloody scenes of St. Domingo, and they felt that with the kindly and placable nature of the African, peace, quiet, and good order would be sooner secured by giving him the ballot than in any other way, and the event is even now demonstrating the wisdom of their decision. The same able writer from whom we have already quoted, after spending some months in the South, says : — " The freedmen have surprised me by their native shrewdness and good sense, their cautious and submissive behavior, and the keen, in- telligent interest they take in their new political privileges. If they were one tenth as vindictive and contemptuous in their manner toward the whites as the whites toward them, a war of races would have ensued long ago. From close observation, I believe them to be humbler in deportment than before emancipation. As a class THE DESOLATED STATES. 659 they are anxious to work and get on in the world. They are more industrious than their late masters. And though the word has been abused, they are as loyal to the government as it is possible for men of their capacities to be. They would respond to a national sum- mons to arras with alacrity and enthusiasm. By their votes in their conventions they have shown that they feel no hatred toward their old oppressors, and ask nothing beyond security for the future. " Scratch a Southerner, and you find an intolerant. He is not willing to have you vote as your conscience dictates. Defy his local despotisms, and you will be socially ostracized ; your name will be published in a black-list; you will be sneei*ed at and insulted. If you are a Northern man, acquire citizenship by the legal period of residence, and get nominated to office, you will be ridiculed as a Yankee adventurer — a ' carpet-bagger.' Witness the Alabama election in February : witness the Southei'n newspaper treatment of all the constitutional conventions. " How about Southern loyalty ? " About three fourths of the Southern white people are passively dis' loyal. Could it be otherwise ? For four years they rained death on the National flag and the National uniform. They shot at and cursed them. In every church in the Confederacy they prayed and supplicated with fervor and with tears, to have them go down in dis- grace. Can it be that their gorge does not rise now at their sight? " On the boat coming up the Potomac from Aquia Creek, I heard a Southerner confess that though he tried to subdue the emotion, he still felt a hatred of the Stars and Stripes. He had fought under Lee from first to last, and during that time had seen the flag so often in battle when the army of the Potomac swept down upon him and his companions in arms, that he feared he would never again be able to look upon it as his flag. " The dominant class in the South never was republican in traits, tastes, or habits. The revolution now going on in its industries and system of labor tend to make it so, but as long as this generation lives the change cannot be complete. The Southern man and woman still deem themselves a better order of beings than the Yankees. They will die in that faith. The vanity is ingrain. " I have been astonished to find how generally the Southerners be- lieve the North to be on the verge of civil convulsion. Reading only 660 SOCIAL COITDITION. their own newspapers and the most violent Copperhead journals in the North, they are firmly convinced that nothing is more likely to happen than the embroilment of the Western with the Middle and New England States. This delusion is shared by thousands of the most intelligent men in the South. That they would delight in such a calamity is as certain as the fact that the next gale that sweeps from the North will not take to them ' the clash of resounding arms.' They cannot understand the elastic temper and wholesome tolerance of the North, where elections come and go, crises ripen and decline, with no thought of bloodshed, nor black-lists, nor social disdain, con- tempt, and persecution. " The Southerner is generous in some things, and honorable in many ; but he is not yet a good citizen for a republic. That is the whole trouble. He must be made so, or stand back for his children. He needs a firm, resolute guidance — not unkindly unless he will have it so — but firm, always firm. The moment we waver, he wavers. When he fully and finally understands that his old undue political importance is irrevocably a thing of the past, he will take the first step on the road to valuable citizenship. But between An- drew Johnson and the ' Great Democratic Reaction,' he has come to believe in the speedy overthrow of the Republican party, and in the restoration of the slave dynasty to reign over a dominant party, composed of Southern extremists and Northern doughfaces." That among these freedmen till lately slaves, there are many who have very inadequate notions of the value and importance of tlie ballot, and whose knowledge of our political institutions, is very Hmited, is undoubtedly true ; but they hardly suffer even in these respects by comparison with the ignorant poor whites of the South ; a class much slower to learn on these sub- jects than the most stupid of the negroes, and among the latter there are men who in intellect and eloquence are the peers of any of the white legislators of the South, brilliant as some of them have been. In the report of the debates of the Con- stitutional Convention in Arkansas, which adjourned in March last, we find a speech of W. H. Gray, a full-blooded negro, and till recently a slave, but at that time a member of the Convention, on this very subject, which may safely be placed THE DESOLATED STATES. 661 by the side of any speech of any white Senator or Representa- tive from that State in either House of Congress. We have read carefully the debates of the fathers of the American Re- public on the Declaration of Independence, and we can find in them nothing more manly or statesmanlike in tone, or more logical in argument, than the speech of this negro orator. It is a defense of the right of his people to suffrage which it would be very difficult for any white man to gainsay or refute. The question of Impartial Suffrage was before the Conven- tion, and Mr. Gray said : — " Now, sir, having stood by the government and the old flag in times of trouble, when the Republic trembled with the throes of civil war, from centre to circumference, from base to cope, for this and other considerations we are here not to ask charity at the hands of the honorable body, but to receive, at the hands of the people of Arkansas in convention assembled, the apportionment of our riglits, as assigned by the Eeconstruction Acts of Congress. I am here, sir, to see those rights of citizenship engrafted in the organic law of this State. The gentleman from White County does not seem to rec- ognize the fact that the present constitution is not in accordance with the Constitution of the United States, guaranteeing to each State a republican form of government. The gentleman from White says the negro cannot become a citizen. The fact is patent that we have exercised those rights under the constitution in all the States except South Carolina, and voted for that time-honored instrument — the Federal Constitution — by voting for the men that ratified it. As free men, we were not denied the right of suffrage under the State laws on account of color. It seems as though the gentleman had read the history of our country to little purpose, or at least not as I have. . . . Again the gentleman denies us the right of suffrage on the ground of our ignorance. Why, sir, for every negro vote reg- istered in this State I can duplicate it with the vote of a white man that can neither read or write ; and still we are charged with ig- norance. I do not deny it, but we are not isolated. If these men can vote, I see no injustice in permitting me to vote also. And in this connection I would say that the colored people of this State met in convention in this city, in 1865, for the purpose of considering 662 SOCIAL CONDITION. their condition and prospects, and then asked simply for the most remote recognition of their rights, but it was unheeded. I then said that I had an unshaken confidence in the eventual justice of the American. Since then we have crossed the Rubicon, as a nation, and cannot recede if we would. . . . We are told a republican form of government must rest upon the intelligence and virtue of the masses, and that we have not these qualifications ; they are qualities that are at least susceptible of improvement. In other races of men — and they were not largely displayed when the Huns, Van- dals, and other tribes were laying waste the fair fields of Italy, or when the Danes and Normans were making sad havoc of your an- cestral estates — our condition would compare favorably with that of England, as described by Macaulay, at the time of the conquest of the island by the legions of Ca3sar, when he says the condition of the people was little better than that of the Sandwich Islanders. We were not far behind those who sold civilized women along the banks of the James for 200 pounds of tobacco, or less. Nor has our intelligence, even in a barbarous state, been much below the level of those who ate the acorns falling from the lofty oak of Dodona, and worshipped the tree from which they fell. The civilization of the nineteenth century is the product of 800 years ; and with this start ahead, with all the wealth, intelligence, and power and prestige of a great government, men pretend to believe that they are afraid of negro domination, afraid that 4,000,000 of negroes, scattered over this vast country, will rule 30,000,000 of intelligent white people. They cannot believe it. But they are endeavoring to work on the prejudices of the masses, to produce outrage and bloodshed ; and, if possible, what they pretend to deprecate, a war of races. But, sir, this I do not fear, so long as we are led by the best minds of the na- tion, and count in our ranks those distinguished men of both sections, whose gleaming swords were seen flashing on many a skirmish line and in the smoke of battle. The gentleman says we are not citizens, by the highest judicial decision. That decision, sir, travelled outside of American History, outside of the presence of the courts ; and hence I regard Chief Justice Taney as the American Jeffries. Could I afford to trust my dearest rights in the hands of men who hold up such a decision as the measure of my rights, and at the same time profess to be my best friends ? I beg respectfully to decline such THE DESOLATED STATES. 663 friendship — men who are willing to consign us to a system of peon- age worse than slavery, a system that strips us of every right or priv- ilege, and turns us bound hand and foot over to the tender mercies of mob law. . . . " Man cannot prevent it, for God has written it in burning charac- ters across the pages of American History — emblazoned it as upon a sign-board, and hung it on the brows of the Rocky Mountains — * This is the asylum for the oppressed of all nations, and all people.' This is according to the original contract, drawn up by those patriotic men of the Revolution, and I believe they were honest when they de- clared that ' All men are created equal.' I believe the hand of an angel guided the pen that wrote those words, and that they were re- corded in heaven. God intends you shall keep the original contract. The acting in bad faith by the children of those good men, has cost the country a million lives — the flower of the land — and untold sums of wealth. I believe He intends to demand its fulfillment now, and I plant myself upon the Declaration of Independence and the Constitution, as defined by the framers of those documents, and ex- pounded by the leading men of that period, and claim that they secure me my rights, if honestly and faithfully executed. Settle at once and forever the question of human rights by giving us equality before. the law. Then, and not till then, will peace come to our borders. Until that is done, capital will not seek investment within our limits, nor will immigration flow to a State that continues to op- press and crush the laborer. Arkansas has tried it for thirty years, and she is still comparatively a vast forest. With an extent of terri- tory sufficient for an empire, — stretching from Missouri on the north to Louisiana and Texas on the south, from the Cherokee territory on the west to where her eastern front looks out on the Father of Waters ; with internal streams sufficiently navigable to bear the com- merce of an empire to the sea, — thirty years a State and not a rail- . road worth the name, no means of inter-communication, except that employed in a by-gone age. Not a respectable school-house, and her primeval forests still keeping silent guard along her water-courses : and why ? because her soil was desecrated by Slavery. It was here this Moloch of the nineteenth century reared his altars and sacrificed his human victims. God has removed the idol and shattered the al- tars, and those that opposed it, like the devotees that cast themselves 664 SOCIAL CONDITION. before the Hindoo car of Juggernaut, will be crushed beneath the progress of the age." The pictures of the condition of the South in the begin- ning of the present year were gloomy in the extreme. We have taken in preference the testimony of moderate men who have spent some months in the South during the early part ot the present year. One of these, a Mr. D., for a long time, and we believe still, connected with the " Cincinnati Gazette," gives in Januar}', 1868, the following summary of the condi- tion of affairs from his own personal observation : — " There is literally 'no show' for an outspoken Union man. He is socially ostracized ; nobody will trade with him. If he be a farmer, his horses are stolen, his stock dies suddenly, his fences mys- teriously disappear, ' spontaneous combustion ' destroys his out- houses ; and if he is still foolish enough to misunderstand these ' manifestations of Providence,' he is accidentally shot, or some equally broad hint is given him to leave. To learn these facts, leave the railroad towns and live in the interior for a few months, and you will get your fill. I believe that even Andrew Johnson himself might be reformed, provided he could visit Mississippi incog., and stay at the house of a Union man even a fortnight. " But to know Rebeldom in its truest character, you must leave its dealings with white men, and view its dealings with the negro. It could not be expected that the relations existing between the whites and their late chattels would be very decidedly cordial, for it will be years ere former owners can calmly view what was once their prop- erty and soui'ce of wealth now toiling for themselves ; but still com- mon humanity would dictate a treatment toward the negroes fully as generous as that usually extended to brutes. Villainy of the whites is the cause of three fourths of the destitution among the negroes. In four cases in five where he has worked for a white man, either on shares or wages, the negro has been defrauded out of his earnings. If a crop has been raised on shares, it is disposed of by the land- owner, and if the laborer receives one half his dues he is most fortunate ; if he is employed by the year, he is turned adrift as soon as crops are gathered, and he is given but a moiety of his wages ; when he asks for the balance due, he is cursed and threatened, and. THE DESOLATED STATES. QQo if he persists in his demand, he is knocked down, or, more often, shot ; if he resents the blow, his death is certain, for no negro dare strike a white man here, unless there be a company of soldiers pres- ent. To kill a negro is no crime here, and I have heard men talk of their exploits in this line with the utmost complacency. The only protection that the colored man now has in the South is the Freedmen's Bureau, backed up by Federal bayonets. Break up the Bureau before reconstruction is effected, and the colored race will be exterminated in ten years, unless a ' war of races ' ensues, and the whites be brought to their senses thereby. It appears to be the policy of not a few leaders to bring about such a conflict. The excessive tyranny practiced upon the poor blacks, and the appeals to the prejudices and baser passions of the whites, tend to that end, and certainly must have that object. " Great destitution prevails in the interior of Alabama and Missis- sippi, but it is by no means so severe as has been represented. Here again is another fiendish device of the opponents of reconstruction. The colored laborer is defrauded out of most of his earnings. As a consequence, he is in want, and his family are nigh to starvation. This is heralded forth to the world as an evidence of the negro's natural laziness and disability to take care of himself. If the whites had dealt justly and generously by their colored laborers, they would not now be asking alms of the North, nor begging relief of govern- ment. It makes me mourn for the white race when I witness their oppression of the negro. A just Providence cannot permit such iniquities to be perpetrated. " The prime cause of Southern want is the laziness of the whites. The Southern climate is notoriously enervating, and is made the ex- cuse for not working by the ' privileged classes.' At every cross- roads doggery, every shop, and every store in every town and village, is to be found a crowd of long-haired, stalwart fellows engaged in whittling sticks, chewing tobacco, and cursing the negro — three things which they do well and industriously follow up. Without a dollar, save what they make or defraud their laborers out of, they spend their time, week in and week out, in idleness, regretting ' old times,' instead of turning to work and industriously striving to re- trieve their fallen fortunes. They have land in abundance, but this few only will sell, lest the negroes get a foothold and become prop- 666 SOCIAL CONDITION. erty owners. The South is by no means as impoverished as has been represented. The Southern people still have in abundance all the elements of wealth, and it only requires industry among the whites, and encouragement and fair dealing toward the colored la- borers, to raise the late Rebel States to even a higher state of pros- perity than they ever before enjoyed." Still amid all this gloom and darkness there were some gleams of liglit. Education , is and has been, for the past two years, advancing in the South with a rapidity hitherto unknown. Heretofore in most of the Southern States, every- where except in the large towns, education was only the boon of the wealthy, and the poor white had almost as little chance of learning to read and write as the slave, to whom all knowl- edge of books was prohibited by law under the severest pen- alties. But now, thanks to the efforts of the philanthropic citizens of the North, the Missionary Associations, Home Missionary Societies, Fi'eedmen's Aid Societies and Commis- sions, and to the Freedmen's Bureau, there were thousands of schools where the negro and the child of the poor white vrere taught the elements of knowledge, and an intense ri- valry, in which truth compels us to say the negro child often- est came out winner, ensued between the two in regard to the rapid acquisition of knowledge. This laudable enterprise for the general diffusion of educa- tion in the South was powerfully aided and will continue to be so by the munificent gift by George Peabody, Esq., of the sum of more than two millions of dollars, the income of which is to be distributed annually to southern schools and institu- tions of learning, without distinction of color or race. Sev- eral institutions have been founded in Washington, D. C, Wilmington, N. C, New Orleans, and Pittsburgh for the higher education of colored young men, with a view to qual- ify them for teachers and preachers among their own people. The constitutional conventions of the desolated States have wisely incorporated into their bills of rights and their consti- tutions the right and the provision for universal education, THE DESOLATED STATES. 667 and the legislatures elected are manifesting a willingness to tax themselves for this purpose, to an extent -which, in their present impoverished condition, is highly creditable to them. The result of this will be that in a few years the mass of voters in the Southern States will be equal in intelligence to the people of any other section of the country, or to any nation in the world, and with that intelligence they may safely be trusted to govern themselves. In all countries and states, and at all times, ignorance, which brings in its train all other vices, has been the worst foe of good government. But with an intelligent and enterprising people no form of despo- tism, neither autocracy, oligarchy, or mob law, can prevail. Hence dark as may be the clouds which now overhang the South, we look confidently for a brighter future, when its despotic aristocracy shall no longer hold sway. IMPEACHMENT. ' 669 CHAPTER LXXXYI. IMPEACHMENT. The determination of the President to proceed with his own plan of restoring the states lately in insurrection to their former status, in violation of all law, and of the rights of the Legislative branch of the Government, to whom this work had been confided by the constitution, as well as the defiant and hostile spirit he manifested toward all who opposed his course, led many of the members of both houses of Con- gress to feel that it would be necessary to check his career by impeachment. Still there was a very great reluctance to resort to such an extreme measure, except under circumstances of extraordina- rily aggravated offence. Many of the Republican members believed for months that Mr. Johnson's course was merely experimental, and that he would ere long return to harmony and co-operation with the party which had elected him to the Vice-Presidency ; and entertaining this view, they were un- willing to resort to any measures which should alienate him still more. The more advanced Republicans were convinced that these views were erroneous ; that Mr. Johnson really sought a breach with the Republicans ; that he was at heart a Demo- crat, and in sympathy with the Rebel leaders ; that his viola- tions of the laws and of the rights of Congress, had been de- liberate and intentional, and that he intended to continue his course so long as he could do it with impunity. The first positive movement looking toward impeachment, was made on the 17th of December, 1866, wlien tlie Hon. James M. Ashley, of Ohio, moved a suspension of the rules 670 IMPEACHMENT. to enable him to report, from the Committe on Territories, a resolution for the appointment of a select committee of seven by the Speaker, to inquire whether any acts had been done by any officer of the Government of the United States, which in contemplation of the constitution, were high crimes, or mis- demeanors, &c. The suspension of the rules was refused, (two-thirds being necessary). Yeas, 90 ; nays, 49. On the 7th of January, 1867, Hon. Ben. F. Loan, of Mis- souri, moved a resolution, (which was referred to the Com- mittee on Reconstruction), declaring it the imperative duty of the Thirty-Ninth Congress, (among other things), to take, without delay, such action as would accomplish the impeach- ment of the officer now exercising the functions pertaining to the office of President of the United States of America, and his removal from said office upon his conviction, in due form of law, of the high crimes and misdemeanors of which he is manifestly and notoriously guilty, and which render it unsafe longer to permit him to exercise the powers he has unlawfully assumed. On the same day, Hon. John R. Kelso, of Missouri, offered a resolution of nearly similar tenor, which was referred to the Committee on the Judiciary. On the same day, Hon. James M. Ashley, of Ohio, offered, as a question of privilege, the following : " I do impeach Andrew Johnson, Vice-President and acting President of the United States, of high crimes and misdemeanors. " I charge him with a usurpation of power and violation of law ; " In that he has corruptly used the appointing power; " In that he has corruptly used the pardoning power ; " In that he has corruptly used the veto power ; " In that he has corruptly disposed of public property of the United States ; " In that he has corruptly interfered in elections, and committed acts which, in contemplation of the Constitution, are high crimes and misdemeanors ; Therefore, Be it resolved^ That the Committee on the Judiciary be, and they are hereby authorized to inquire into the official conduct of Andrew Johnson, Vice-Presi- dent of the United States, discharging the powers and duties of the office of President of the United States, and to report to this House whether, in their IMPEACHMENT. 671 opinion, the said Andrew Jolinson, while in said office, has been guilty of acts which are designed or calculated to overthrow, subvert, or corrupt the Govern- ment of the United States, or any department or office thereof; and whether the said Andrew Johnson has been guilty of any act, or has conspired with others to do acts, which, in contemplation of the Constitution, are high crimes and misdemeanors, requiring the interposition of the constitutional power of this House ; and that said committee have power to send for persons and papers, and to administer the customary oath to witnesses." This resolution was adopted by a vote of 108 to 39. The subject was fre- quently discussed during the session. The Judiciary Committee, on the 3d of March, reported that it had not con- cluded its investigation, but that, in the opinion of the majority, eight to one, " sufficient testimony had been brought to the notice of the Committee to justi- fy and demand a further prosecution of the investigation." The Judiciary Com- mittee of the XLth Congress was empowered to continue the investigation, by action had on the 7th of March. The Judiciary Committee reported November 25th, 1867. The majority, consist- ing of Messrs. George S. Boutwell, Francis Thomas, Thomas Williams, William Lawrence, and John C. Churchill, favored impeachment. Messrs. James E. Wil- son and Frederick E. Woodbridge united in a report opposed thereto, and Mar- shall and Eldridge signed another minority report. Debate on these reports began in the House December 5th, and closed the 7th. The impeachment resolution was then lost, 57 to 108. The affirmative were all Republicans. In the nega- tive were 67 Republicans and 41 Democrats; there were 20 absentees, 16 Re- publicans and 4 Democrats. The following is the vote in detail : Yeas — Anderson, of Missouri; Arnell, of Tenn.; Ashley, of Ohio ; Boutwell, of Mass; Bromwell, of Illinois; Broomall, of Penn; Butler, of Mass; Church- ill of N. Y.; Clarke, of Ohio; Clarke, of Kansas; Cobb, of Wisconsin; Coburn, of Indiana; Covode, of Penn.; Collum, of Illinois ; Donnelly, of Minn. ; Eckley, of Ohio; Ela, of New Hampshire; Farnsworth, of Illinois; Gravelly, of Missou- ri ; Harding, of Illinois ; Higby, of California ; Hopkins, of Wisconsin ; Hunter, of Indiana ; Judd, of Illinois ; Julian, of Indiana ; Kelley, of Penn. ; Kelsey, of New Yoi'k ; Lawrence of Ohio ; Loan, of Missouri ; Logan, of Illinois ; Lynch, of Maine, Maynard, of Tenn. ; McClurg, of Missouri ; Mercer, of Penn. ; Mul- lins, of Tenn. ; Myers, of Penn. ; Newcomb, of Missouri ; Nunn, of Tenn. ; O'Neil, of Penn ; Orth, of Indiana ; Paine, of Wisconsin ; Pile, of Missouri ; Price, of Iowa ; Schenck, of Ohio; Shanks, of Indiana; Stevens, of New Hamp- shire ; Stevens, of Penn. ; Stokes, of Tenn. ; Thomas, of Maryland ; Trimble, of Tenn. ; Trowbridge, of Michigan ; Van Horn, of Missouri ; Ward, of New York ; Williams, of Penn. ; Williams, of Indiana ; Wilson, of Pennsylvania. — 57. Nays. — Republicans in Roman, Democrats in italic. Adams, of Kentucky; AUison, of Iowa; Ames, of Mass. ; Archer, of Mary- land; Ashley, of Nevada; Axtell, of California; Bailey, of New York; Baker, of Illinois ; Baldwin, of Mass ; Banks, of Mass ; Barnum of Conn. ; Beaniau, of Michigan ; Beck, of Kentucky ; Benjamin, of Missouri ; Benton, of N. H. ; Bingham, of Ohio ; Blaine, of Maine ; Boyer, of Penn. ; Brooks, of New York ; 672 IMPEACHMENT. Buckland, of Ohio ; Burr, of Illinois ; Carey, of Ohio ; Chanler, of \ew York ; Cook, of Illinois; Dawes, of Mass; Dixon, of R. I.; Dodge, of Iowa; Driggs, of Micliigan ; Eggleston, of Ohio ; ELdridge, of Wisconsin ; Eliot, of Mass ; Ferris, of New York ; Ferry, of Michigan ; Fields, of New York ; Garfield, of Ohio ; GetZy of Penn. ; Olossbrenner, of Penn. ; Golladay, of Kentucky ; Gris- ■wold, of New York ; Graver, of Kentucky ; Haight, of New Jersey ; Halsey, of New Jersey ; Hamilton, of Ohio ; Hawkins, of Tenn. ; Hill, of New Jersey ; Holman, of Indiana ; Hooper, of Mass ; Hotchkiss, of Conn ; Hubbard, of Iowa; Hubbard, of West Va. ; Hubbard, of Conn ; Hubbard, of New York , Humphrey, of New York ; Ingersoll, of Illinois ; Johnson, of Cal. ; Jones, of Kentucky ; Kerr, of Indiana; Ketchum, of New York; Knott, of Kentucky; Koontz, of Penn. ; Laflin, of New York ; Lawrence, of Penn. ; Lincoln, of New York ; Marfihall, of llUnois; Marvin, of New York; McCarty, of New York; McCul- lough, of Maryland; Miller, of Penn. ; Morehead, of Penn. ; llorgan, of Ohio; 3Iungen, of Ohio ; Niblack, of Indiana ; Nicholson, of Delaware ; Perham, of Maine ; Peters, of Maine ; Phelps, of Maryland ; Pike, of Maine ; Plants, of Ohio ; Poland, of Vermont ; Polsley, of West Va. ; Pruyn, of New York ; Ran- dall, of Penn. ; Robertson, of New York ; Robinson, of New York ; Ross, of Illinois; Sawyer, of Wisconsin ; (Si^^reaties, of New Jersey ; Smith, of Vermont; Spalding, of Ohio ; Starkweather, of Conn. ; Stewart, of New York ; Stone, of Maryland ; Taber, of New York ; Taylor, of Penn. ; Upson, of Michigan ; Van Aernam, of New York; Van Auken, of Penn.; Van Trump, of Ohio; Van Wyck, of New York; Washburne, of Wisconsin; Washburne, of Indiana; Washburne, of Illinois ; Washburn, of Mass. ; Welkor, of Ohio ; Wilson, of Iowa ; Wilson, of Ohio ; Woodbridge, of Vermont ; Woodward, of Pennsylvania. — 108. Absentees. — Messrs. Blair, Michigan ; Cornell, New York; Finney, Penn.; Jenckes, Rhode Island; Kitchen, West Va. : Mallory, Oregon; Morrell, Penn. ; Pomeroy, New York ; Raum, Illinois ; Selye, New York ; Scofield, Penn. ; Shellabarger, Ohio ; Taffe, Neb. ; Twitchell, Mass ; Van Horn, New York ; Windom, Minn. ; all Republicans: and Barnes, Fox, and Morrissey, all of New York, and Democrats. It was conceded on all hands that this was the end of im- peachment for that time at least, and it was thought that, the President, feeling that his conduct had brought down upon him the censure of a large body of the Members of Congress, who tliough they were not willing to proceed to extremities, still disapproved of his course, would, for the future, act more wisely, and refrain from those overt acts which might bring him into further collision with Congress. But those who reasoned thus with regard to Andrew John- son, knew nothing of his character. Elated with his victory, he could not conceal his disposition to show his defiance to IMPEACHMENT. 673 Congress by further and more considerable acts of aggression. He interfered in several of the desolated states which were about voting upon the question of calling a convention, and electing delegates to prepare a new constitution, suggesting to them ways and means of thwarting the reconstruction measures ; continued so far as possible his systematic remov- als of loyal and incorruptible officers, and nominated to their places corrupt men, whom the Senate could not confirm with- out becoming partners in corruption ; and in every way pos- sible made known his determination to defy Congress, which he believed he could now do, with impunity. On the 13th of January, 1868, Congress having decided that his suspension of Secretary Stanton was illegal, and that he must be reinstated. General Grant, who had been Secre- tary ad interim, quietly relinquished the War Office to Secre- tary Stanton, and notified the President that he had done so. A very bitter correspondence ensued between the President and General Grant, (the General, however, keeping his tem- per), in which the President charged Grant with duplicity, treachery and inveracity because he had not given him pre- vious notice of his intention of surrendering the office to Secretary Stanton, so that he (Johnson) might have put some one in possession who would have prevented Secretary Stan- ton's reinstatement. The whole issue between the President and the General was, in fact, that the President had intended to violate the Tenure of Office Act and defy the Senate, and General Grant by his judicious course, had prevented him from doing so. The excitement growing out of this correspondence, and of the attempts of Mr. Johnson to compel General Grant not to issue his orders through the War Department, had not died out, when Mr. Johnson prepared, by a new act of aggression, to show his defiance of Congress. On the 21st of February, 1868, he sent the following order to Secretary Stanton, by Brevet Major-Gencral Lorenzo Thomas, Adjutant-General of the Army, a subordinate of the Secretary : (43) 674 IMPEACHMENT. Executive Mansion, Washington, D. C, Feb. 21, 1868. SiK : By virture of the power and authority vested in me as President by the Constitution and laws of the United States, you are hereby removed froi» office as Secretary of War, and your functions as sucli will terminate upon receipt of this communication. You will transfer to Brevet Major-Gen. Lorenzo Thomas, Adjutant-General of the Army, who has this day been authorized to act as Secretary of War ad interim, all I'ecords, books, papers, and other public property now in your cus- tody and charge. Respectfully yours, Andrew Johnson, President. To the Hon. Edwin M. Stanton, Washington, D. C. Secretary Stanton bein[^ satisfied that under the Tenure of Office Act, the President had no power to remove him, refused obedience, and ordered Gen. Thomas to his own office. The General refused to go, and expressed his determination to obtain possession by force, if necessary. That he understood at the time that the President had authorized him to use force if necessary, there can be no doubt ; whether he understood Mr. Johnson correctly, may be a question. Mr. Stanton continued in possession, and notified Congress of the action of the President, and of what he had done. This act was so plainly a violation both of the Tenure of Office Act, and the rights of the Senate, that it produced at once the most intense excitement, and convinced those who had hitherto doubts, that impeachment was necessary. On the same day, February 21st, Mr. Covode, of Pennsyl- vania, offered a resolution that the President be impeached, which was referred to the Committee on Reconstruction. On the 22d of February, (Saturday,) Mr. Stevens, of Pennsyl- vania, from the Committee on Reco^^struction, made the fol- lowing report : That, in addition to the papers referred to, the Committee find that the Presi- dent, on the 21st day of February, 1868, signed and ordered a commission or letter of authority to one Lorenzo Thomas, directing and authorizing said Thomas to act as Secretary of War ad interim, and to take possession of the books, records, papers, and other public property in the War Department, of iwhich the ibllowing is a copy : IMPEACHMENT. 675 Executive Mansion, ) Washington, D. C, Feb. 21, 18G8. f Sir : The Hon. Edwin M. Stanton having been removed from office as Secre- tary of the Department of War, you are hereby authorized and empowered to act as Secretary of War ad interim, and will immediately enter upon the dis- charge of the duties pertaining to that office. Mr. Stanton has been instructed to transfer to you all records, books, papers, and other public property in- trusted to his charge. Respectfully yours, Andrew Johnson. To Brevet Major-Gen. Lorenzo Thomas, Adjutant-General U. S. A. (Official copy.) — Respectfully furnished to Hon. Edwin M. Stanton. L. Thomas, Secretary of War an interim. Upon the evidence collected by the Committee, which is hereafter presented, and in virtue of the powers with which they have been invested by the House, they are of the opinion that Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, be impeached of high crimes and misdemeanors. They, therefore, recommend to the House the adoption of the accompanying resolution : THADDEUS STEVENS, C. T. HULBURD, GEORGE A. BOUTWELL, JOHX F. FARNSWORTH, JOHN A. BINGHAM, H. E. PAINE. F. C. BEAMAN, Resolved, That Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, be im- peached of high crimes and misdemeanors. On the 24th of February, (Monday), this resolution passed the House by 126 yeas to 47 nays ; the yeas being all Repub- licans, and the nays all Democrats, except Mr. Gary, of Ohio, who was elected as an Independent. The names of those who voted on the question were as follows : Yeas.— Allison, Ames, Anderson, Arnell, Ashley (Nev.), Ashley (Ohio), Bailey, Baker, Baldwin, Banks, Beaman, Beatty, Benton, Bingham, Blaine, Blair, Bout- well, Bromwell, Broomall, Buckland, Butler, Cake, Churchill, Clarke (Kan.), Clark (Ohio), Cobb, Coburn, Cook, Cornell, Covode, Cullum, Dawes, Dodge, Driggs, Eckley, Eggleston, Eliot, Farnsworth, Ferris, Ferry, Fields, Gravelly, Griswold, Halsey, Harding, Higby, Hill, Hooper, Hopkins, Hubbard (Iowa), Hubbard (W. V.), Hulburd, Hunter, Ingersoll, Jenckes, Judd, Julian, Kelley, Kelsey, Ketcham, Kitchen, Laflin, Lawrence (Pa.), Lawrence (Ohio), Lincoln, Loan, Logan, Loughridge, Lynch, Mallory, Marvin, McCarthy, McClurg, Mercer, Miller, Moore, Moorhead, Morrill, Mullins, Myers, Newcomb, Nunn, Orth, O'Neill Paine, Perham, Peters, Pike, Pile, Plants, Poland, Polsley, Price, Raum, Rob- ertson, Sawyer, Schenck, Scofield, Selye, Shanks, Smith, Spalding, Starkweather Stevens (N. H.), Stevens (Pa.), Stokes, Taffe, Taylor, Trowbridge, Twitchell, 676 IMPEACHMENT. Upson, Van Aernam, Van Horn (N. Y.), Van Wyck, Ward, Washburn (Wis.), Washburne (111.), Washburn (Mass.), Welker, Williams (Pa.), Wilson (Iowa), Wilson (Ohio), Wilson (Pa.), Windom, Woodbridgc, The Speaker— 126. Nays. — Adams, Archer, Axtell, Barnes, Barnum, Beck, Boyer, Brooks, Burr, Gary (Ind.), Chanler^ Eldridge, Fox, Getz, Glossbrenner, Golladay, Grover, Haight, Holman, Hotchkiss, Hubbard (Conn.), Humphrey, Johnson, Jones, Kerr, Knott, Marshall, McCormick, McCuIIough, Morgan, Morrissey, Mungcn, Niblack, Nicholson, Phelps, Pruyn, Randall, Boss, Sitgreaves, Stewart, Stone, Taber, Trimble (Ky.), Van Auken, Van Trump, Wood, Woodward — 47. Mr. Stevens of Pennsylvania, then moved that a committee of two be appointed to go to the Senate and at the bar there- of, in the name of the House of Representatives, and of all the people of the United States, impeach Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, of high crimes and misde- meanors. This motion prevailed, and on the 25th of Febru- ary, Messrs. Thaddeus Stevens and John A. Bingham, of the House of Representatives, appeared before the bar of the Senate, and read the following announcement : "Mr. President: In obedience to the order of the House of Representa- tives, we have appeared before you, and in the name of the House of Repre- sentatives and of all the people of the United States, we do impeach Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, of high crimes and misdemeanors in office ; and we further inform the Senate that the House of Representatives will in due time exhibit particular articles of impeachment against him, and make good the same ; and in their name we demand that the Senate take due order for the appearance of the said Andrew Johnson, to answer to the said Impeachment." The President pro tem replied : The Senate will take order in the premises. A committee of seven, appointed by the President, and con- sisting of Messrs. Howard, Trumbull, Conkling, Edmunds, Morton, Pomeroy, and Johnson, were on motion of Mr. How- ard, directed to consider and report upon this announcement. Between this date and the 4th of March, the action of the House was mainly confined to the preparation of the Articles of Impeachment, their adoption, and the election of Managers of the Impeachment. The Managers elected were Mr. Stevens IMPEACHMENT. (377 of Pennsylvania, Mr. Butler of Massachusetts, Mr. Bingham of Ohio, Mr. Boutwell of Massachusetts, l^Ir. Wilson of Iowa, Mr. Williams of Pennsylvania, and Mr. Logan of Illinois. On Wednesday, March 4th, the series of Articles of Im- peachment which had passed the House, were presented to the Senate by a House Committee. They were as follows : Article 1. That said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, on the 21st day of February, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-eight, at Washington, in the District of Columbia, unmindful of the high duties of his office, his oath of office, and of the requirement of the Con- stitution that he should take care that the laws be faithfully executed, did un- lawfully and in violation of the Constitution and laws of the United States, is- sue an order in writing for the removal of Edwin M. Stanton from the office of Secretary for the Department of War, said Edwin M. Stanton having been theretofore, duly appointed and commissioned by and with the consent of the Senate of the United States as such Secretary ; and said Andrew Johnson President of the United States, on the 12th day of August, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-seven, and during the recess of the said Senate, having suspended by his order Edwin M. Stanton from said office and within twenty days after the first day of the next meeting of the Senate on the r2th day of December, in ihe year of our Lord aforesaid, havin^ re- ported to said Senate such suspension, with the evidence and reasons for his action in the case, and the name of the person designated to perform the duties of such office temporarily until the next meeting of the Senate, and said Senate thereafterward on the 13th day of January, in the year of our Lord 1868 hav- ing duly considered the evidence and reasons reported by said Andrew Johnson for said suspension, did refuse to concur in said suspension, whereby, and by force of provision of an act entitled "An act regulating the tenure of certain civil offices," passed March 2, 1867, said Edwin M. Stanton did forthwith re- sume the functions of his office, whereof the said Andrew Johnson had then and there due notice, and said Edwin M. Stanton, by reason of the premises on said 21st day of February, was lawfully entitled to hold said office of Secretary for the Department of War, which said order for the removal of said Edwin M. Stanton is, in substance, as follows, that is to say : Executive Mansion, ) WashinCxTON, D. C, Feb. 21, 1868, J Sir : By virtue of the power and authority vested in me as President by the Constitution and laws of the United States, you are hereby removed from office as Secretary for the Department of War, and your functions as such will ter- minate upon receipt of this communication. You will transfer to Brevet Major- Gen. Lorenzo Thomas, Adjutant-General of the Army, who has this day been 678 IMPEACHMENT. autliorizcd and empowered to act as Secretary of War ad interim, all records, books, papers, and other public property now in your custody and charge. Respectfully yours, Andrew Johnson. To the Hon. Edwin M. Stanton, "Washington, D. C. Which order was unlawfully issued, with intent then and there to violate an act entitled " An act regulating the tenure of certain civil offices," passed March 21, 1867, and contrary to the provisions of said act and in violation thereof, and contrary to the provisions of the Constitution of the United States, and without the advice and consent of the Senate of the United States, the said Senate then and there being in session, to remove said Edwin M. Stanton from the office of Secretary for the Department of War, whereby said Andrew John- son, President of the United States, did then and there commit and was guilty of a high misdemeanor in office. Art. 2. That on the said 21st day of February, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-eight, at Washington, in the District of Co- lumbia, said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, unmindful of the high duties of his office, of his oath of office, and in violation of the Constitu- tion of the United States, and contrary to the provisions of an act entitled "An act regulating the tenure of certain civil offices," passed March 2, 1867, ■without the advice and consent of the Senate of the United States, said Senate then and there being in session, and without authority of law, did appoint one Lorenzo Thomas to be Secretary of War ad interim, by issuing to the said Lorenzo Thomas a letter of authority in substance as follows, that is to say : Executive Mansion, ) Washington, D. C, Feb. 21, 1868. ] Sir : The Hon. Edwin M. Stanton having been this day removed from office as Secretary for the Department of War, you are hereby authorized and em- powered to act as Secretary of War ad interim, and will immediately enter upon the discharge of the duties pertaining to that office. Mr. Stanton has been instructed to transfer to you all tlie records, books, papers, and other public property now in his custody and charge. Respectfully yours, Andrew Johnson. To Brevet Major-Gen. Lorenzo Thomas, Adjutant-General U. S. A., Washing- ton, D. C. Whereby the said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, did then and there commit and was guilty of a high misdemeanor in office. Art. 3. That said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, on the 21st day of February, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-eight, at Washington, in the District of Columbia, did commit and was guilty of a high misdemeanor in office, in this : That, without authority of law, while the Senate of the United States was then and there in session, he did appoint one Lorenzo Thomas to be Secretary for the Department of War ad interim, without the advice and consent of the Senate, and in violation of IMPEACHMENT. 679 the Constitution of the United States ; no vacancy having happened in said office of iSecvetary for the Department of War during the recess of the Senate, and no vacancy existing in said office at the time, and which said appointment, so made by the said Andrew Johnson, of the said Lorenzo Thomas, is in sub- stance as follows : (See Art. 2._) Art. 4. That said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, un- mindful of the high duties of his office, and of his oath of office, in violation of the Constitution and laws of the United States, on the twenty-first day of February, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-eight, at Washington, in the District of Columbia, did unlawfully conspire with one Lorenzo Thomas, and with other persons to the House of Representatives un- known, with intent by intimidation and threats to hinder and prevent Edwin M. Stanton, then and there the Secretary for the Department of War, duly ap- pointed under the laws of the United States, from holding said office for Secre- tary of the Department of War, contrary to and in violation of the Constitution of the United States, and of the provision of an act, entitled "An act to define and punish certain conspiracies," approved July 21, 1861, whereby said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, did then and there commit and was guilty of a high crime in office. Art. 5. That ihs said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, un- mindful of the high unties of his office, and of his oath of office, on the 21st day of February, in the year of our Lord 1868, and on divers other days and times in said year, before the 28th day of said February, at Washington, in the District of Columbia, did unlawfully conspire with one Lorenzo Thomas, and with other persons to the House of Representatives unknown, by force to pre- vent and hinder the execution of an act entitled " An act regulating the tenure of certain civil offices," passed March 2, 1867, and in pursuance of said con- spiracy did attempt to prevent Edwin M. Stanton, then and there being Secre- tary for the Department of War, duly appointed and commissioned under the laws of the United States, from holding such office, whereby the said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, did then and there commit and was guilty of a high misdemeanor in office. Art. 6. That the said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, un- mindful of the duties of his high office, and of his oath of office, on the twenty- first day of February, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-eight, at Washington, in the District of Cohrmhia, did unlawfully conspire •with one Lorenzo Thomas by force, to seize and take possession of property of the United States in the War Department, contrary to the provisions of an act entitled "An act to define and punish certain conspiracies," approved July 21, 1861, and with intent to violate and disregard an act entitled "An act regulat- ing the tenure of certain civil offices," passed March 2, 1867, whereby said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, did then and there commit a high crime in office. Art. 7. That said Andrew Johnson, President of the LTnitcd States, un- mindful of the high duties of his office, and of his oath of office, on the 21st 680 IMPEACHMENT. day of February, in the year of onr Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-eight, and on divers other days in said year, before the 28th day of Feb- ruary, dt Washington, in the District of Columbia, did unlawfully conspire with one Lorenzo Thomas to prevent and hinder the execution of an act of the United States, entitled " An act regulating the tenure of certain civil offices," passed March 5, 180*?, and in pursuance of said conspiracy did unlawfully at- tempt to prevent Edwin M. Stanton, then and there being Secretary for the Department of War, under the laws of the United States, Irom holding said office, to whic!r he had been duly appointed and commissioned, whereby said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, did then and there commit, and was guilty of high misdemeanor in office. AuT. 8. That said Andrew Johnson, President of the Laiited States, un- mindful of the high duties of his office, and of his oath of office, on the 21st day of February, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty- eight, at Washington, in the District of Columbia, did unlawfully conspire with one Lorenzo Thomas to seize and take possession of the property of the United States in the War Department with intent to violate and disregard the act en- titled " An act regulating the tenure of certain civil offices," passed March 2, 1867, whereby said Andrew Jolmson, President of the United States, did then and there commit a high misdemeanor in office. Art. 9. That said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, un- mindful of the high duties of his office, and of his oath of office, with intent unlawfully to control the disbursement of the moneys appropriated for the military service and for the Department of War, on the 21st day of February, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-eight, at Wash- ington, in the District of Columbia, did unlawfully and contrary to the provis- ions of an act entitled " An act regulating the tenure of certain civil offices," passed March 2,' 1867, and in violation of the Constitution of the United States, and without the advice and consent of the Senate of the United States, and while the Senate was then and there in session, there being no vacancy in the office of Secretary for the Department of War, appoint Lorenzo Thomas Secre- tary of War ad hiterim, and then and there deliver to said Lorenzo Thomas letter of authority, in writing, in substance as follows, that is to say : (See Art. 2.) Whereby said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, did then and there commit, and was guilty of high misdemeanor in office. Art. 10. That said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, on the 22d day of February, in the year of our Lord 1868, at Washington, in the District of Columbia, in disregard of the Constitution and the laws of Congress duly enacted, as Commander-in-Chief of the Army of the United States, did bring before him then and there, William H. Emory, a Major-General by brevet in the Army of the United States, actually in command of the Department of Washington, and the military forces thereof, and did then and there, as such Commander-in-Chief, declare to and instruct said Emory, that part of a law of the United States, passed March 2, 1867, entitled "An act making appropria- tions for the support of the army for the year ending June 30, 1 868, and for IMPEACHMENT. (Jgl other purposes," especially the second section thereof, which provides amon" other things, tliat " all orders in instructions relating to military operations is- sued by the President or Secretary of War shall be issued through the General of the Army, and in case of his inabihty, through the next in rank," was un- constitutional and in contravention of the commission of said Emory, and therefore not binding on him as an officer in the Army of the United States, which said provision of law had been theretofore duly and legally promulgated by general order for the government and direction of the Army of the United States, as the said Andrew Johnson then and there well knew, with intent thereby to induce said Emory in his official capacity as Commander of the De- partment of Washington to violate the provisions of said act, and to take and receive, act upon, and obey such orders as he, the said Andrew Johnson, might make and give, and which should not be issued through the General of the Army of the United States, according to the provisions of said act, whereby said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, did then and there com- mit and was guilty of a high misdemeanor in office ; and the House of Repre- sentatives, by protestation, saving to themselves the liberty of exhibiting at any time hereafter any further articles or other accusation or impeachment against the said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, and also of replving to his answer which he shall make to the articles herein preferred against him, and of offering proof to the same and every part thereof, and to all and every other article, accusation or impeachment which shall be exhibited by them as the case shall require, do demand that the said Andrew Johnson may be put to answer the high crimes and misdemeanors in office herein charged against him and that such proceedings, examinations, trials and judgments may be there- upon had and given as may be agreeable to law and justice. To these Articles was afterward added : Art. 11. That the said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, un- mindful of the high duties of his office and of the dignity and proprieties there- of, and of the harmony and courtesies which ought to exist and be maintained between the executive and legislative branches of the Government of the United States, designing and intending to set aside the rightful authority and powers of Congress, did attempt to bring into disgrace, ridicule, hatred, contempt, and reproach, the Congress of the United States and the several branches thereof, to impair and destroy the regard and respect of all the good people of the Unit- ed States for the Congress and legislative power thereof, which all officers of the Government oughtinviolatoly to preserve and maintain, and to excite the odium and resentment of all the good people of the United States against Congress and the laws by it duly and constitutionally enacted ; and in pursuance of his said design and intent, openly and publicly, and before divers assemblages of the citizens of the United States convened in divers parts thereof, to meet and re- ceive said Andrew Johnson as the Chief Magistrate of the United Slates, did on the 18th day of August, in the year of our Lord 1866, and on divers other days and times, as w^ll before as afterward, make and deliver, with a loud voice cer- tain intemperate, inflammatory and scandalous harangues, and did therein utter 682 IMPEACHMENT. loud threats and bitter menaces, as well against Congress as the laws of the United States, duly enacted thereby, amid the cries, jeers, and laughter of the multitude then assembled and in hearing, which are set forth in the several speci- fications hereinafter written, in substance and efl'ect ; that is to say : Specification 1, — In this, that at Washington, in the District of Columbia, in the Executive Mansion, to a committee of citizens who called upon the Presi- dent of the United States, speaking of and concerning the Congress of the United States, said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, heretofore, to wit: on the 18th day of August, in the year of our Lord, 1866, did in a loud voice declare, in substance and effect, among other things, that is to say : " So far as the Executive Department of the Government is concerned, the ef- fort has been made to restore the Union, to heal the breach, to pour oil into the wounds which were consequent upon the struggle, and to speak in a common phrase, to prepare, as the learned and wise physician would, a plaster healing in character, and coextensive with the wound. We thought, and we think, that we had partially succeeded, but as the work progresses, as reconstruction seem- ed to be taking place, and the country was becoming reunited, we found a dis- turbing and marring element opposing us. In alluding to that element I shall go no further than your Convention, and the distinguished gentleman who has delivered to me the report of the proceedings. I shall make no reference to it that I do not believe the time and the occasion justify. We have witnessed in one department of the Government every endeavor to prevent the restoration of peace, harmony and union. We have seen hanging upon the verge of the Government, as it were, a body called, or which assumes to be the Congress of the United States, while in fact it is a Congress of only part of the States. We have seen this Congress pretend to be for the Union, when its every step and act tended to perpetuate disunion, and make a disruption of the States inevitable. We have seen Congress gradually encroach, step by step, upon Constitutional rights, and violate day after day, and month after month, fundamental princi- ples of the Government. We have seen a Congress that seemed to forget that there was a limit to the sphere and scope of legislation. We have seen a Con- gress in a minority assume to exercise power, which if allowed to be consum- mated, would result in despotism, in monarchy itself." Specification 2. — In this, that at Cleveland, in the State of Ohio, heretofore, to wit: on the 3d day of September, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-six, before a public assemblage of citizens and others, said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, speaking of and concern- ing the Congress of the United States, did in a loud voice declare in substance and effect, among other things, that is to say : " I will tell you what I did do. I called upon your Congress, that is trying to break up the Government. In conclusion, besides, that Congress had taken much pains to poison their constituents against him. But what has Congress done? Have they done anything to restore the Union of these States? No! On the contrary, they had done everything to prevent it, and, because he stood now where he did when the Rebellion commenced, he had been denounced as a IMPEACHMENT. 683 traitor. Who had run greater risks or made greater sacrifices tlian himself? But Congress, factious and domineering, had undertaken to poison the minds of the American people." Specification 3. — In this, that at St. Louis, in the State of Missouri, heretofore to wit, on the 8th day of September, iu the year of our Lord, 1866, before a public assemblage of citizens and others, said Andrew Johnson, President of the United States, speaking of and concerning the Congress of the United States, did in a loud voice declare in substance and effect, among other things, that is to say : "Go on; perhaps if you had a word or two on the subject of New Orleans you miglit understand more about it than you do, and if you will go back and ascertain the cause of the riot at New Orleans, perhaps you will not be so prompt in calling out ' New Orleans.' If you will take up the riot of New Orleans and trace it back to its source or its immediate cause, you will find out who was re- sponsible for the blood that was shed there. If you will take up the riot at New- Orleans and trace it back to the Radical Congress, you will find that the riot at New Orleans was substantially planned. If you will take up the proceedings in their caucuses, you will understand that they there knew that a Convention was to be called, which was extinct, by its power having expired ; that it was said that the intention was that a new government was to be organized, and on the organization of that government the intention was to enfranchise one portion of the population, called the colored population, who had just been emancipated, and at the same time disfranchise white men. When you design to talk about New Orleans you ought to understand what you are talking about. W^hen you read the speeches that were made, and take up the facts on the Friday and Saturday before that Convention sat, you will find that speeches were made, in- cendiary in their character, exciting that portion of the population — the black population — to arm themselves and prepare for the shedding of blood. You will also find that that Convention did assemble in violation of law, and the inten- tion of that Convention was to supersede the organized authorities in the State ' government of Louisiana, which had been organized by the Government of the United States, and every man engaged in that rebellion, in that Convention, with the intention of superseding and upturning the civil government which had been recognized by the United States, I say that he was a traitor to the Constitution of the United States, and hence you find that another rebellion was commenced, having its origin in the Radical Congress. So much for the New Orleans riot ; and there was the cause and the origin of the blood that was shed, and every drop of blood that was shed is upon their skirts, and they are responsible for it. I could test this thing a little closer, but will not do it here to-night ; but when you talk about the causes and consequences that resulted from proceed- ings of that kind, perhaps as I have been introduced here and you have pro- vol.ed questions of this kind, though it does not provoke me, I will tell you a few wholesome things that have been done by this Radical Congress, in connec- tion with New Orleans, and the extension of elective franchise. I know that I have been traduced and abused. I know that it has come in advance of me G£4 . IMPEACHMENT. here as elsewhere. That / have attempted to exercixe an arbitrary power in re- sisting laws that were intended to he forced upon the Government, that I had exer- cised that power, that I had abandoned the party that elected me, and that I was a traitor, because I exercised the veto power in attempting, and I did arrest for a time the bill that was called a Freedman\ Bureau Bill. Yes, I was a traitor, and I have been traduced, I have been slandered, I have been mcdigned, I have been called Judas Iscariot, and all that. Now my countrymen here to-night, it is very easy to indulge in epithets. It is easy to call a man Judas and cry out traitor; but when he is called upon to give arguments and facts he is very often found wanting. Judas Iscariot ; Judas ! There was a Judas and he was one of the twelve Apostles. Oh yes, the twelve Apostles had a Christ, and he never could have had a Judas unless he had had twelve Apostles. If I have played the Judas, who has been my Christ that I have played the Judas with? Was it Thad. Stevens ? Was it Wendell Phillips ? Was it Charles Sumner ? These are the men that stop and compare themselves with the Saviour, and every body that differs with them in opinion, and who try to stay and arrest their diabolical and nefarious policy, is to be denounced as a Judas. Well, let me say to you, if you will stand by me in this action ; if you will stand by me in trying to give the people a fair chance, soldiers and citizens, to participate in these offices, God being willing I will kick them out. I will kick them out just as fast as I can. Let me say to you, in conclusion, that what 1 have said, I intended to say. J was not provoked into this, and I care not for their menaces, the taunts and the jeers. I care not for threats, I do not intend to be bullied by my enemies nor over- awed by my friends ; but, God willing, with your help, I will veto their meas- ures, whenever any of them come to me." Which said utterances, declarations, threats, and harangues, highly censurable in any, are peculiarly indecent and unbecoming ui the Chief Magistrate of the United States, by means whereof said Andrew Johnson has brought the high office of President of the United States into contempt, ridicule, and disgrace, to the great scandal of all good citizens, whereby said Andrew Johnson, Presi- dent of the United States, did commit, and was then and there guilty of high misdemeanor in office. The Senate having adopted rules for the trial, reported by its committee, proceeded on Thursday, March 5th, to organize as a Court of Impeachment, Chief Justice Chase presiding. On Saturday, March 7th, the summons requiring the Pres- ident to appear and answer the Articles of Impeachment was served on him, with a copy of the articles. On Friday, March loth, the President appeared by his counsel before the Senate and requested forty days' time in which to prepare and serve his answers to the articles. His counsel, as first named, con- sisted of Messrs. Evarts, Stanbery, Curtis, Nelson, and Black. IMPEACHMENT. 685 Subseqiientlj, Mr. Black withdrew, and Mr. Groesbeck was added to the number. The Senate did not comply with the President's request, but designated Monday, March 23d, as the day for the presentation of his answers to the charges, and they were read before the Senate on that day. On the following day the Managers of the House presented their re- plication to the President's answers, and it was read bclbre the Senate. Oh Monday, March 30th, the great trial began, Mr. Butler making the opening speech on behalf of the Man- agers. The latter at once introduced their testimony, which consumed six days, until Saturday, April 4th. On Thursday, April 9th, the President's counsel began his defense, Mr. Cur- tis delivering the opening speech. Nine days were consumed by them in presenting their testimony, until Saturday, April 18th. Two days later, April 20th, additional testimony was offered by both sides. On Wednesday, April 22d, Mr. Bout- well of the Managers began to sum up the case in a protract- ed speech. Messrs. Stevens and Bingham likewise spoke for the prosecution, and Messrs. Nelson, Groesbeck, Evarts, and Stanbery for the President. Mr. Bingham's speech, the clos- ing speech of the trial, was concluded on Wednesday, May 6th. On Thursday, May 7th, the Senate, as the Court of Im- peachment, sat in secret session six hours, during which it was decided to take the final vote on Tuesday, May 12th. ]\[ay 11th, the Court deliberated on impeachment in secret session, and on the 12th of May, Senator Howard being un- able to take his seat, the final vote was postponed until Satur- day, May 16th. Meantime, painful rumors had been current of the defection of some of those Republican Senators who had at first ap- peared to be earnest and zealous for the "President's impeach- ment. These rumors gained strength throughout the week, and when the vote was taken on Saturday, May 16th, on the Eleventh Article, which it was thought best to have voted upon first, the vote stood thirty-five for conviction to nineteen for acquittal, and as the Constitution requires a two-thirds 686 IMPEACHMENT. vote for conviction, Mr. Johnson was technically acquitted oil" this article. The Votks for Conviction wkee : — Anthony, Cameron, Cattell, Chand- ler, Cole, Conkling, Conness, Corbett, Cragin, Drake, Edmunds, Ferry, Freling- huysen, Harlan, Howard, Howe, Morgan, Morrill, (Me.) Morrill, CVt.) Morton, Nye, Patterson, (X. H.) Pomeroy, Ramsey, Sherman, Sprague, Stewart. Sumner, Thayer, Tipton, Wade, Willey, Williams, Wilson, Yates — 35. For Acquittal; — Bayard, Buckalew, Davis, Dixon, Doolittle, Fessenden, Fowler, Grimes, Henderson, Hendricks, Johnson, McCreery, Norton, Patterson, (Tenn.) Ross, Saulsbury, Trumbull, Van Winkle, Vickers — 19. Messrs. Fessenden, Fowler, Grimes, Henderson, Ross, Trum- bull, and Van Winkle, all hitherto regarded as stanch Repub- licans, voted with the Democrats, and by their votes prevented the conviction of the President of the high crimes and misde- meanors of which he was accused. Other Senators, the peers of any of these in legal attainment and judicial ability, were fully convinced that the Managers had made out their case conclusively, and some of these also have admitted their belief in his guilt, but professed to find objections to the phraseology of the Articles of Impeachment. That the course of these seven Senators disappointed their friends, and gave encouragement to the enemies of reconstruction, can not be gainsaid. That it caused painful surmisings in regard to their motives, is equally true. In the case of almost any other man, an escape from con- viction and deposition from his high station by the lack of one vote to make up two-thirds, and this not without strong sus- picion of the purchase of that vote on his part, would be a lesson sufficiently severe to secure the most decorous behavior for the remainder of his term, if for no other reason than that he might avert the 'judgment still hanging over him by a slender hair ; but as we have already shown, there is no rea- son from Mr. Johnson's past conduct, to expect anything more than an aggravation of his previous offences, and a determina- tion to vent upon the nation all the malignity of his bitter and vindictive nature. REPUBLICAN CONVENTION. GS7 But to proceed with the record. After the vote on the Eleventh Article, further action was postponed till the 26th of May. On that day the second and third articles were voted upon, with precisely the same result as before, and as it was evident that a conviction could not he secured, the record of technical acquittal on the second, third and eleventh articles was entered, and the High Court of Impeachment adjourned sine die. On the same day, Mr. Stanton sent his relinquish- ment of the office of Secretary of War to the President, feel- ing that as Impeachment had failed, it was best for him to withdraw. A few days later. General J. M. Schofield, who had previ- ously been nominated, was confirmed by the Senate as Secre- tary of War, the Senate declaring that it was in the place of Edwin M. Stanton, unlawfully removed. In the interim between the two votes on the question of Im- peachment, the National Republican Union Convention was held at Chicago, and Ulysses S. Grant nominated for the Presidency by the unanimous vote of all the delegates, 650 in number, on the first ballot. Schuyler Colfax, of Indiana, was nominated for Vice-President on the fifth ballot, receiving by the change of votes of State delegations, 522 out of 650 votes. The balloting previous to these changes which were incident to the conviction that he had the majority, was as follows : Ist Ballot. 2d. 3d. 4th. 5th. Benjamin F. Wade, - - 149 170 178 204 199 Reuben E. Fenton, 132 140 130 144 137 Henry Wilson, - - 119 113 101 87 61 Schuyler Colfax, - 118 149 164 186 224 Andrew G. Curtin, - - 52 45 30 Hannibal Hamlin, 30 30 25 25 19 James Speed, - - 22 — — — James Harlan, 16 — — John A. J. Cresswell, - 14 — William D. Kelley, 6 — — — — 688 REPUBLICAN CONVENTION. The canvass for Mr. Colfax at the Convention was conduct- ed on strictly temperance principles, Mr. Colfax having ex- pressly requested his friend, Mr. Defrees, who conducted it, to permit no intoxicating liquor on the premises. The platform on which the Convention have placed these candidates, whose names win all hearts, is worthy of the men. It is as follows : Tlie National Republican Party of the United States, assembled in National Convention in the City of Chicago, on the 21s< day of May, 1868, make the fol- lowing Declaration of Principles : I. We congratulate the country on the assured success of the Reconstruction policy of Congress, as evinced by the adoption, in the majority of tlie States lately in rebellion, of Constitutions securing Equal Civil and Political Rights to all, and it is the duty of the Government to sustain those institutions, and to prevent the people of such States from being remitted to a state of anarchy. II. The guaranty by Congress, of E(iual Suffrage to all loyal men at the South, was demanded by every consideration of public safety, of gratitude, and of jus- tice, and must be maintained ; while the question of Suffrage in all the loyal States properly belongs to the people of those States. III. We denounce all forms of Repudiation as a national crime ; and the na- tional honor requires the payment of the public indebtedness in the uttermost good faith to all creditors at home and abroad, not only according to the letter but the spirit of the laws under which it was contracted. IV. It is due to the Labor of the Nation that taxation should be equalized, and reduced as rapidly as the national faith will permit. V. The National debt, contracted, as it has been, for the preservation of the Union for all time to come, should be extended over a fiiir period for redemp- tion ; and it is the duty of Congress to reduce the rate of interest thereon whenever it can be honestly done. VI. That the best policy to diminish our burden of debt is to so improve our credit that capitalists will seek to loan us money at lower rates of interest than we now pay, so long as repudiation, partial or total, open or covert, is threatened or suspected. VII. The Government of the United States should be administered with the strictest economy ; and the corruptions which have been so shamefully nursed and fostered by Andrew Johnson call loudly for radical reform. VIII. We profoundly deplore the untimely and tragic death of Abraham Lincoln, and regret the accession to the Presidency, of Andrew Johnson, who has acted treacherously to the people who elected him and the cause he was pledged to support ; who has usurped high legislative and judicial functions; who has refused to execute the laws ; who has used his high office to induce other officers to ignore and violate the laws ; who has employed his executive powers to render insecure the property, the peace, liberty and life, of the citizen ; wlio REPUBLICAN CONVENTION. 689 luis abused the pardoning power; who has denounced the Xational Legislature as unconstitutional; who has persistently and corruptly resisted, by every means in his power, every proper attempt at the reconstruction of the States lately in rebellion ; who has perverted the public patronage into an engine of wholesale corruption ; and who has been justly impeached for high crnnes and misde- meanors, and properly pronounced guilty thereof by the vote of thirty-five Senators. IX. The doctrine of Great Britain and other European powers that, because \ man is once a subject he is always so, must be resisted at every hazard by the (Jnited States, as a relic of feudal times not authorized by the laws of nations, and at war with our national hoiior and independence. Naturalized citizens are entitled to protection in all their rights of citizenship, as though they were na- tive-born ; and no citizen of the United States, native or naturalized, must be lia- ble to arrest and imprisonment by any foreign power for acts done or words spoken in this country; and, if so arrested and imprisoned, it is the duty of the Government to interfere in his behalf. X. Of all who were faithful in the trials of the late war, there were none en- titled to more especial honor than the brave soldiers and seamen who endured the hardships of campaign and cruise, and imperilled their lives in the service of the country ; the bounties and pensions provided by the laws for these brave defenders of the nation, are obligations never to be forgotten ; the widows and orphans of the gallant dead are the wards of the people — a sacred legacy be- queathed to the nation's protecting care. XI. Foreign immigration, which in the past has added so much to the wealth, development and resources and increase of power to this republic, the asylum of the oppressed of all nations, should be fostered and encouraged by a Uberal and just policy. XII. This Convention declares itself in sympathy with all oppressed peoples struggling for their rights. Unanimously added, on motion of Gen. Schurz : Resolved, That we highly commend the spirit of magnanimity and forbearance with which men who have served in the Rebellion, but who now frankly and honestly cooperate with us in restoring the peace of the country and reconstruct- ing the Southern State governments upon the basis of Impartial Justice and Equal Rights, are received back into the communion of the loyal people ; and we favor the removal of the disqualifications and restrictions imposed upon the late Rebels in the same measure as their spirit of loyalty will direct, and as may be consistent with the safety of the loyal people. Resolved, That we recognize the great principles laid down in the immortal Declaration of Independence, as the true foundation "of democratic government ; and we hail with gladness every effort toward making these principles a living reality on every inch of American soil. With such a platform, and such candidates, there should be, there can be, no question of the success of the Republican 44 690 REPUBLICAN CONVENTION. Party the coming election. The only question should be, whether any States, except Kentucky and Maryland, can be allowed to the Democratic Party, and whether the candidate of that party, whoever he may be, may not need a certificate after the election, testifying to the fact of his candidacy. With Reconstruction, Retrenchment, Reform, Equal Rights, Impartial Suffrage, and No Repudiation, for its cardinal prin- ciples, the great party of Freedom stands firm as the ever- lasting hills. It can afford to let traitors and renegades strut out their brief hour, for the eternal years of God belong to the party of Freedom and Right, and it may well say in the grand words of Whittier : " God's ways seem dark, but soon or late They touch the shining hills of day. The evil can not brook delay ; The good can well aiford to wait. Give ermined knaves their hour of crime,' We have the future grand and great, The safe appeal of Truth to Time ! " • LIEUT. GEKU. S. GRAITT^ APPENDIX. SKETCH OF THE LIFE OF GENERAL U. S. GRANT. General Ulysses Simpson Grant (or, as he was origi- nally named, Hiram Ulysses Grant) was born on the 2Tth of April, 1822, at Point Pleasant, Clement County, Ohio ; and is a descendant, in the eighth generation, of Matthew Grant, who came from England, in 1630, and was a first settler of Dorchester, Mass., and subsequently of Windsor, Conn. His father, Jesse Root Grant, a tanner by trade, and his moth- er, Hannali Simpson, were both natives of Pennsylvania, who had removed to Ohio, and were there married in June, 1821. The child grew to be a sturdy, fearless, and pertinacious ur- chin, whose good nature made him a general favorite, and whose " ruling passion," almost from the time he could go alone, was for horses. At school, he was faithful, diligent, and painstaking, showing an appreciation of the value of an educa- tion, but developing no especial eminence, except, perhaps, a fondness for mathematics. But, out of school, he was to* be found not far away from the horses. He learned to drive alone at the age of seven and a half years, and harnessed horses when he was so small that he had to get up into the manger to put the bridle and collar on, and then turn over the half- bushel and stand on it, in order to throw the harness on. And when a circus, or travelling show, came through the vil- NoTE. — Supposing many readers of this volume would like to read something of the life of General U. S. Grant, we insert this sketch for their benefit. — Publisher. 1 2 APPENDIX. lage where he was, or into its neighborhood, he was inevitably " on hand." If the ring-master called out for some boy in the audience to try and ride the pony, little Ulysses would present himself, eager to seize the opportunity, " and," says his father in the " New York Ledger," " whatever he undertook to ride he rode." This practice he kept up, until he got to be so large that he was ashamed to ride a pony. " Once, when he was a boy, a show came along in which there was a mischievous pony, trained to go round the ring like lightning, and which was expected to throw any boy that at- tempted to ride him. " ' Will any boy come forward and ride this pony ? ' " shouted the ring-master. " Ulysses stepped forward, and mounted the pony. The performance began. Round and round the ring went the pony, faster and faster, making the greatest effort to dis- mount his rider. But Ulysses sat as steady as if he had grown to the pony's back. Presently out came a large mon- key and sprang up behind Ulysses. The people set up a great shout of laughter, and on the pony ran ; but it all pro- duced no effect on the rider. Then the ring-master made the monkey jump up upon Ulysses' shoulders, standing with his feet on his shoulders, and with his hands holding on to his hair. At this there was another and a still louder shout, but not a muscle of Ulysses' face moved. There was not a tremor of his nerves. A few more rounds, and the ring-master gave it up ; he had come across a boy that the pony and the mon- key both could not dismount. " Ulysses had the habit of riding our horses to water, stand- ing up on their bare backs. He began this practice when about five years old. At eight or nine he would ride them at the top of their speed, standing upon one foot and balancing himself by the bridle reins. The ground over which he used to make these performances was a little descending towards the river ; a near neighboi*'s boy who undertook to rival him in speed, although without standing up, was unfortunately thrown from his horse and killed." APPENDIX. 3 He earlv acquired the habit of breaking horses to the har- ness, and developed a peculiar faculty for training them to pace. "It became known in the neighborhood," says his father, in the article from which we have already quoted, " and people used to apply to him to break their horses to pace ; but he had an idea that it was degrading, and would never under- take it. " One day a neighbor came to me and said, ' Ulysses has a remarkable faculty to teach a horse to pace. I have a fine young horse ; now how can I get Ulysses to teach him to pace ? ' " Said I : ' You must n't say a word to him about it, but send him on a mission to some place, and get him, while he is gone, to teach the horse to pace.' " Said he, ' I will do it.' So he came over again and said to Ulysses, ' I want to send a letter, in a hurry, thirteen miles to Decatur, and I will give you two dollars to get on my horse and carry it.' " Ulysses was then nine or ten years old. He was fond of making money, and fond of that kind of business, and he answered, ' I will go.' " Just as he was starting off the owner of the horse cried out after him, '• Itvant you to teach that horse to pace.'' " The horse had never paced a step before. But Ulysses accomplished the task. He returned the horse at night a per- fect pacer. The letter was all a sham. Ulysses found out the trick, and nobody after that could ever get him to break a horse to pace." When only ten or twelve years of age, the boy's energy and fertility of resource enabled him to render to his father assistance equal to that of a full-grown man. A remarkable feat, by which, with only the help of a large stout horse, he contrived to do the loading and hauling of a large quantity of fourteen-feet logs for a building which his father was erect- ing, is thus described in the fathers own words : " A large sugar-tree had been felled, so that it lay aslant, one end rest- 4 APPENDIX. ing on the ground and tlie other elevated. He had hitched the' horse Dave to tlie end of a hewn h)g, and hauled it upon this sugar-tree, the end projecting over far enough to back the watron under it. Three made a load ; and when he had got three hauled up in this way, he backed the hind end of the wagon up under them, and liitching the powerful horse in front by means of a long chain which extended over the whole length of the wagon-body, he pulled them, one at a time, into the wagon. This was much talked of in the neighborhood, as it was considered a great achievement for a boy of his size. He worked the whole seven months, and until the job was finished." The lad, however, showed an evident disrelish for his fa- ther's business, and a decided preference for some active out- of-door employment, or for a thorough education. These, Mr. Grant's somewhat straitened circumstances prevented him from attaining; but finally, through the kindness of Senator Thomas Morris, of Ohio, he heard that the Hon, Thos. L. Ha- mer, member of Congress from his own district, had an appoint- ment to the Military Academy at West Point at his disposal. On application to him, Ulysses was appointed, and having passed the preliminary examinations, he entered the Academy on the 1st of July, 1839. There he manifested the same stu- dious qualities which he had while in school, ranking No, 21 in his class, of which only thirty-nine out of nearly one hundred graduated in 1843, his standing being best in artillery and in- fantiy tactics, mathematics, engineering, and horsemanship. Upon graduating he was, in consequence of there being no ex- isting vacancy, made brevet Second Lieutenant of the Tenth Infantry Regiment, and performed duty as a private for a while after joining it at Jefferson Barracks, near St, Louis. In 1844, his regiment removed to Red River in Louisiana ; and in 1845, formed a part of the " army of occupation " on the Texan Border at the beginning of the war with Mexico, Meanwhik', he had declined the higher rank of First Lieuten- ant in the Seventh Infantry ; preferring to shai'e the fortunes APPENDIX. 5 of his old regiment, where chance of service seemed more immediate. In May, 1846, he was distinguished for gallan- try and courage at Palo Alto and Resaca de la Palma ; re- ceived honorable mention for good conduct at the storming of Monterey ; participated, in 1847, in the capture of Vera Cruz, and was made quartermaster of his regiment, serving in this capacity during the remainder of the campaign, but showing no disposition to avail himself of his privilege of remaining in his own department in time of battle. At the assault of Molino del Rey, and the storming of Chapultepec, his daring and skill elicited the highest commendations of his superiors, and he was made a first lieutenant on the spot. Indeed, the flanking maneuver by which, with a few men only, he turned and car- ried the first barrier at Chapultepec, seems to have been the germ of the celebrated fimikhig movements which he has so often since tried, and with such brilliant success, upon larger battle-fields. He was brevetted captain for this achievement, his commission dating from September 13, 1847. He partici- pated in fourteen battles during the Mexican War, and soon after its close in August, 1848, was married to Miss Julia A. Dent, residing near St. Louis, and whose brother, now Gen- eral Dent, was one of his West Point classmates. Shortly after this he was ordered with his regiment to Detroit, Mich., and subsequently to Sackett's Harbor, N. Y. In the autumn of 1851, his regiment was sent to Oregon, with head-quarters at Fort Dallas, and while on duty there, August, 1853, he received his full commission as captain. Seeing but little prospect, either of active employment or of further promo- tion, Grant now decided to return to civil life, and, on the 31st of July, 1854, resigned his commission in the army. Retirincv to a farm which his wife had received from her father, about nine miles from St. Louis, Mo., and which his own father had stocked completely, he entered upon his new life with his accustomed energy and fidelity, and no man ever worked harder. He built, in part with his own hands, a small house of hewn logs, for his family to live in ; 6 APPENDIX. and in all the departments .of husbandry proved himself a thorough farmer. In winter he hired help to cut wood, and hauled it to St. Louis and Carondelet, where he found a mar- ket ; and there are many now living who distinctly remember the present General, as he then appeared, dressed in his blouse, with old felt hat, and pants tucked into the tops of his boots. In summer he " turned an honest penny " by acting as collec- tor of taxes in his county ; but, though honest and persever- ing, he lacked the stern and unscrupulous character which is essential to success in that line of business; and the duties of an auctioneer, at which he occasionally tried his hand, were equally unsuited to his tastes. After four years of arduous farming, at the end of which he was not as well off as when he began, he quitted it and removed to St. Louis, where he entered the real estate business with a Mr. Boo;o;s. Findinor, after a few months' trial, that the profits were hardly sufficient to support two families, he gave up his interest to his partner, and next obtained a position in the Custom House, which, however, he held but two months. In 1859 he accepted an offer of partnership from his father, who with two other sons was conducting a well-established and profitable leather busi- ness at Galena, Illinois. He entered upon it, taking hold of the business with his accustomed industry, and speedily becoming an excellent salesman. Yet he took so little pains to extend his acquaintance in the place, that his father relates that " af- ter he had joined the army and had begun to be distinguished, citizens of the town would stop in front of our store, within six feet of the windows, and look in to see which of the Grants it was that was absent and had suddenly become famous." On the eventful morning when the telegraph flashed to every corner of this western continent, the news that Sum- ter had been fired upon by Southern guns, and with that news the President's proclamation calling for 75,000 troops, Grant was at his store, and his response was prompt and characteris- tic. Taking his coat from the counter wdiere it lay, he drew it on, simply remarking, " Uncle Sam educated me for the APPENDIX. 7 army, and although I have served through one war, I feel I am still a little in debt for my education, and I am ready and willing to discharge the obligation. I am for the war, to put down this wicked rebellion." Into the street he went, talked with some of his acquaintances, and speedily raised a company of volunteers, with which he repaired to Springfield and tendered their services to Governor Yates. That indefati- gable and patriotic State officer has since given the following interesting account of his first acquaintance with the future hero of the war : " In April, 1861, he tendered his personal ser- vices to me, saying, that he ' had been the recipient of a mil- itary education at West Point, and that now, when the coun- try was involved in a war for its preservation and safety, he thought it his duty to offer his services in defense of the Union, and that he would esteem it a privilege to be assigned to any position where he could be useful.' The plain, straight- forward demeanor of the man, and the modesty and earnest- ness which characterized his offer of assistance, at once awak- ened a lively interest in him, and impressed me with a desire to secure his counsel for the benefit of volunteer organizations then forming for government service. At first I assigned him a desk in the Executive office ; and his familiarity with military organizations and regulations made him an invaluable assistant in my own and the office of the Adjutant-General. Soon his admirable qualities as a military commander became apparent, and I assigned him to tlie camps of organization at ' Camp Yates,' Springfield, ' Camp Grant,' Mattoon, and * Camp Douglas,' at Anna, Union County, at which the 7th, 8th, 9th, 10th, 11th, 12th, 18th, 19th, and 21st regiments of Illinois Volunteers, raised under the call of the President of the 15th of April, and under the ' Ten Regiment Bill,' of the extraordinary session of the legislature convened April 23, 1861, were rendezvoused. His employment had special ref- erence to the organization and muster of these forces — the first six into the United States, and the last tln-ee into the State service. This was accomplished about the 10th of May, 1861, 8 APPENDIX. at which time he left the State for a brief period on a visit to his father, at Covington, Kentucky." At tliis juncture Gov- ernor Yates found himself greatly perplexed to find a compe- tent officer to command the 21st regiment, Illinois Volunteers, in camp at Mattoon, and which had become much demoral- ized by the incompetency of its officers. Acting upon his own favorable impressions of Grant, and by the earnest advice of those who knew him best, he telegraphed to Grant to take the charge of the refractory regiment and bring it into a proper state of discipHne. Grant promptly appeared at Mattoon, assumed command of the regiment, June 15, 1861, and removed it to Caseyville for reorganization. In Governor Yates's words : " Thirty days previous to that time, the regi- ment numbered over 1000 men ; but in consequence of laxity indiscipline of the first commanding officer, and otlier discour- aging obstacles connected with the acceptance of troops at that time, but 603 were found willing to enter the three years' service. In less than ten days Colonel Grant filled the regi- ment to the maximum standard, and brought it to a state of discipline seldom attained in the volunteer service in so short a time." Quincy, Illinois, was at this time supposed to be in danger from attack by Missouri rebels, and an application reached Governor Yates for a force sufficient for its protection. The railroads were lacking in the necessary facilities for trans- portation, and the Governor was sorely puzzled how to meet the demand, when he received word from Colonel Grant say- ing, " Send 7ny regiment, and I will find the transportation." At once the order was given to send the 21st, and before night it commenced the march on foot, accomplishing the whole dis- tance of 120 miles on foot (the only regiment that left the camp of organization on foot), and arrived in good time and excellent order. The duty to Avhich the 21st, in company with others, was assigned, was the protection of the Hannibal and St. Louis Railroad, and it being necessary that a briga- dier-general should be assigned to the command of the regi- ments employed upon this service, the choice fell upon Grant APPENDIX. 9 (although the youngest colonel on the ground), who took command at Mexico, Missouri,. upon the 31st of July, 1861, being fully commissioned on the 9th of tlie following month. Brigadier-General Grant was now sent with a large force into Southern Missouri, then threatened by the rebel general, Jeff. Thompson. He superintended the erection of fortifica- tions at Ironton and Marble Creek, and having garrisoned both places, hastened to the defense of Jefferson City, which he protected from rebel attack for ten days. Thompson having abandoned his purpose. Grant was next ordered to the com- mand of the important post of Cairo, 111., which commanded the Ohio and Upper Mississippi rivers, and was a de])ot of sup- plies for an extensive region. This district included Western Kentucky, whose citizens were at that time trying to remain " on the fence," until they could better see which side was to succeed ; and General Grant, learning that the rebels had finally crossed the lines, and possessed themselves of Columbus and Hickman, on the Mississippi, and Bowling Green, on the Green River, promptly availed himself of the opportunity of seizing positions within the State furnished by these violations of Kentucky's proi)osed neutrality, and quietly sent troops (September 6) up the Ohio, to Paducah, at the mouth of the Tennessee, and (on the 25th) to Smithland, at the mouth of the Cumberland River — thus effectually closing two of the principal avenues through which the rebels obtained supplies of food, clothing, arms, etc., from the North. He next turned his attention to Columbus, Ky., then held by the rebel Major- General Polk, but was prevented from attacking him by the withdrawal of a large portion of his force to St. Louis ; and on the 11th, learning that the rebel general, Jeff". Thompson, was contemplating a raid through southwestern Missouri, he sent an expedition, which defeated and routed him near Dallas, on the 21st of October. Then, being apprised of Jeff". Thomp- son's intention to blockade the Mississippi River, and move upon his own jwsition at Cairo, he determined to break up the camp at Belmont, Mo., where the rebels were concentrating. 10 APPENDIX. At the head of two brigades, he moved down the Mississippi in steamers. On tlie 6th of November they readied Belmont, marched rapidly upon the enemy's camp, two and a half miles distant, forced their way over all obstructions, and surprised the rebels, capturing camp equipage, artillery, small arms ; burning tents, blankets, etc., and capturing many prisoners. On their return to the steamers, however, the victorious Union army was met by about 4,000 rebel troops, who, under com- mand of Generals Polk, Pillow, and Cheatham, M^ere hasten- ing to reinforce their comrades, and a fierce battle ensued. The Union force, although losing some of the prisoners it had taken, succeeded in reaching the river, and embarking again in safety, under cover of gun-boats, bringing with them two cannon which they had taken, and spiking two others, which they were obliged to leave. The advantages of this fight, on the whole, were with the Union troops, who also gained new confidence in themselves, and in their commander. General Grant remained for some time in command of the Cairo district (which was subsequently enlarged, so as to in- clude all the southern portion of Illinois, that part of Ken- tucky west of the Cumberland River, and the southern counties of Missouri), and pei-formed a most important work in re- organizing, training, and distributing to various posts, the large number of newly mustered troops constantly sent into his district. On the 14th of January, 1862, he made an ex- tended reconnoissance in force for the purpose of ascertaining the rebel strength and position around Columbus ; and in fact, kept up such a feint of attack upon that point as led to large concentration there of the rebel forces. Meanwhile a fleet of gun-boats had been constructed above Cairo, manned and placed under command of Flag-officer A. H. Foote. Then, when all was ready. Grant secretly withdrew the"two divisions with which he had been threatening Columbus, and leaving one to defend his base at Cairo, joined the other to two large divisicms, which had been concentrated at Paducah (at the mouth of the Tennessee), and at Smithland (at the mouth APPENDIX. 11 of the Cumberland). With these, he then moved on Fort Henry, on the Tennessee ; at which point, also, the gun-boats arrived on the morning of February 6, in advance of the troops, who had been delayed by the condition of the roads. The fleet, however, attacked at once, and after a brief but spirited engagement, the fort surrendered, the rebels outside making their escape to Fort Donelson. Grant, whose plans had thus been anticipated by the gallant Foote, now undertook the cap- tui'e of Fort Donelson, a larger and stronger work, garrisoned by over 20,000 troops, and which still obstructed the passage of the Cumberland River, and the advance of the Union army southward. By the evening of the 12th, the fort was invested on all but the river front, which was, however, covered on the 14th by the arrival of the gun-boats, and a combined land and water attack was made, which, owing to damage done to the boats, was unsuccessful. On the following morning, a sortie by the rebel garrison broke the Union right and captured two batteries. Rallying to their work, the Union troops recap- tured nearly all their guns, and then ensued a desperate, shift- ing, uncertain, hand-to-hand fight, unfavorable on the whole to the Union side. But the cool, calm judgment, and the in- domitable tenacity of Grant wrested victory from the very jaws of defeat ; and the desperate heroism of his men, inspired by his example, secured for his army by nightfall, a position which, it was evident, would give them the possession of the fort on the morrow. Generals Floyd and Pillow escaped during the night with a brigade of rebel troops, and Buckner, who was left in command, sent to General Grant, at early dawn on the following morning (16th), a proposition for an armistice pending negotiations for suri'ender. To this Grant sent his brief but famous reply : " No other terms than uncon- ditional and inmiediate surrender can be accejyted. I propose to move imynediately upon your works.'''' Finding parley useless, the rebel General was obliged to surrender, which he did rather ungraciously ; and the fort, with 13,000 prisoners, 3,000 horses, 48 field-pieces, 17 heavy guns, 20,000 stand of arms, 12 APPENDIX. and a large quantity of stores, etc., fell into the possession of the Union army ; and on the following day, two rebel Tennes- seean regiments, uninformed of the surrender, marched into the fort with colors flying, and were made prisoners. The capture of Forts Henry and Donelson, rendered Columbus and Bowling Green untenable by the rebel forces, — General Polk retreating to Island No. 10, and Johnson to Nashville. General Grant was now commissioned a Major-General of Vol- unteers, dating from February 16, 1862 ; and March 5th was assigned to the command of the new military district of West Tennessee, bounded on the south by the Tennessee River and the Mississippi State line, and on the west by the Missis- sippi River, as far north as Cairo. From this district, Grant now proposed to drive out the rebels, and he accordingly sent gun-boats up the Cumberland, accompanied along the west bank of the river by a division of troops. Clarksville, an im- portant base of supplies on the river, was captured soon after, garrisoned, and held, — the gun-boats ascending the river to open the way for General Buell's army, then marching on Nashville. After the fall of that place, they returned to the Ohio, and reconnoitred the Tennessee River as far as Florence, Alabama. Grant, who meanwhile had been eno-ao-ed in reor- ganizing, and sending forward troops and supplies, then moved his head-quarters to Fort Henry, from whence he scoured the country in all directions. Meanwhile General Albert Sydney Johnston, who had been obliged to vacate Nashville, had con- centrated an army of 45,000 men, under able generals, at Corinth, Miss., at the junction of the Mobile and Ohio and Memphis and Charleston railroads. It was but twenty miles from Pittsburg Landing and Shiloh, on the west bank of the Tennessee, which had already been selected as a base of operations for the Union forces; and General Buell's army of the Ohio was now en route from Nashville to meet Grant's com- mand there, with such haste as the roads permitted. Johnston attempted to attack Grant's army before Buell's arrival, and while Lew. Wallace's division was yet at Crump's Landing, APPENDIX. 13 some six miles distance from the battle-field, lio])ing thus to be able to conquer the Union forces in detail. At daybreak of April 6, the blow suddenly fell upon Grant's left (Prentiss's division), which, although surprised, fought bravely, but finally gave way under the pressure, and were hurried as prisoners to the rebel rear. Next the rebels massed upon W. H. L. Wallace's and Sherman's divisions, and the former General being mortally wounded, his troops were driven back. Sher- man's force, however, held its position, and repulsed the enemy in two several attacks. Meanwhile, other parts of the Union line had been fiercely attacked by large bodies of rebel troops, and had been gradually pressed back nearly two and a half miks toward the Tennessee River. Sherman had by this time taken a new position, which he held firmly against all attack ; and the scattered Union batteries, being collected by General Webster (Grant's chief of artillery), opened a steady fire "upon the rebels, who were attempting to flank the Union left, with a view to possess themselves of the landing. This fire, together with that of two gun-boats in the river, and the new^s of the near approach of Buell's advance, Avhich had just arrived across the river from the scene of action, checked the rebels, and both armies rested on their arms until the following morning. In the evening. Lew. Wallace's division reached the battle-field, and during the night. General Nelson's division of Buell's army crossed the river ; the remainder, however, did not come over until the morning of the 7th. Assisnino; to the centre the troops which had stood their ground on the previous day, General Grant placed Wallace's division on the right, and Nelson's on the left, and boldly attacked the rebel line. The fighting, although not so heavy as on the preceding day, was spirited, and the field was substantially won by the Union troops by noon, at which time the remainder of Buell's army came up. By about 5 p.m., the rebels, defeated, routed, and much demoi-alized, abandoned the field, and night fell upon what liad been thus far the most sanguinary contest of the war. The Union loss, in killed, \vounded, missing, and prison- 14 APPENDIX. ers, was 13,298 ; that of the rebels 10,699, witli a remarkable loss of general officers. The wearied troops spent the night upon the battle-field, and pursuit was made on the 8th by- General Sherman, who destroyed the rebel camp and a large amount of ammunition. On the 13th of April, General Halleck, with a powerful army, composed of sixteen divisions under Generals Grant, Buell, and Pope, advanced from Pittsburg Landing to the attack of Corinth. On the 17th May, the Union army commenced a series of regular approaches to the town, which Grant was anxious to carry (as he was confident of his ability to do) by assault. Halleck refused, and a quarrel ensued between the two, the only one recorded in Grant's military career. On the night of the 28th, the rebels evacuated the closely invested city, moving southward along the Mobile and Ohio Railroad, to a safer position. New Orleans and Memphis had, mean- while, surrendered to the Union flag. On the 17th, General Halleck was appointed General-in-Chief of the United States armies, and Grant was assigned to the command of a newly created department of West Tennessee, embracing Northern Mississippi, West Tennessee, Western Kentucky, and South- ern Illinois. His head-quarters were at Memphis, which he quickly cleared of the illicit traffic carried on by crafty seces- sionists, gamblers, speculators, and smugglers. Grant now determined to attempt the reduction of Vicksburg, the key to the navigation of the Mississippi, strong by nature, and ren- dered apparently impregnable by military science. Even before its fortifications were completed, in the summer of 1862, Admiral Farragut's squadron had made no impression upon it ; and General Williams's attempt to turn the current of the river through a canal cut across the peninsula, formed by the bend of the stream in front of the city, had proved a failure. After full preparation for the enterprise, General Grant, in December, began his movement down the Mississippi Central Railroad, in order to flank Vicksburcj, which was to be attacked at the same time on the north and northwest, by Sherman descend- APPENDIX. 15 ing the river from ]\Iempliis, His plans, however, were deranged by the pusillanimity of the colonel conimandinii- at Holly Springs, where his chief depot of supplies was estab- lished, and he was obliged to forego his expected junction with Sherman. The latter general, unsupported by Grant, and unaware of the cause of his failure, attacked Vicksburg ; but after three days' hard fighting, was obliged to abandon the assault. Grant next descended the Mississippi to Youno-'s Point, a little above Vicksburg, and at first renewed the canal project, which was rendered futile by a sudden flood in the river ; then he attempted an entrance to the Yazoo, by the old Yazoo Pass, and afterwards by a circuit through Steel's and Black's bayous. Duck and Deer creeks, and Rolling Fork and Sunflower rivers. All these attempts failing to meet the emergency, he determined — despite the numerous and ap- parently insuperable difficulties which presented themselves — to attack the fortress and city from below. Sending a part of the gun-boat fleet, and sixteen or eighteen transports laden with forage and supplies, past the batteries on two different nights, — a most heroic act, which was accomplished with only the loss of two transports, — General Grant marched his army through the country west of the Mississippi to Hard Times, La., a distance of seventy miles, over roads well-nigh impas- sable, accomplishing the distance in thirty days. The gun- boats, after an ineffectual attempt to capture Grand Gulf as a base of operations, ran the batteries in the night, and on the morning of March 30, commenced to ferry over the troops to Bruinsburg, ten miles below. This was more easily effected, inasmuch as a simultaneous demonstration by General Sher- man against Haines's Bluff, attracted all their attention in that direction. From Bruinsburg, Grant's ai'my moved rapidly to Port Gibson, thus flanking Grand Gulf, which was evacuated by the rebels, and immediately occupied by the Union forces as a base of operations. Here, also, they were quickly joined by General Sherman's army, and, as had been previously ar- ranged by Grant, Colonel Grierson starting from Lagrange, at 16 APPENDIX. the junction of the Mississippi Central with the Memphis and Charleston railroads, and following tlie lines of the Mobile and Ohio and Mississippi Central railroads, and the Meridian and Jackson roads, reached Baton Rouge on the 1st of May, having very thoroughly cut the rebel communications. Grant now threw his army betw-een Johnston and Pemberton, routed the former, and drove the latter into Vicksburg, and by the 18th, had completely invested that city on the land side, and was in communication with the squadron and transports by way of Walnut Bluffs, above the river. On the 19th and 22d, assaults were made upon the city, but without decisive results, and a regular siege was commenced, which, after a prolonged and heroic resistance by the people and garrison, resulted in its unconditional surrender on the 4th of July, 1863. 34,620 prisoners, 211 field-pieces, 90 siege guns, and 45,000 small arms fell into the hands of the victors ; in addition to which the rebels sustained a loss of 11,800 killed, wounded, or deserters. The Union losses had been 8,575 killed, wounded, and missing. Sending Sherman to Jackson, to defeat and break up the rebel General Johnston's army, Grant sought and obtained a brief furlough — the first he had enjoyed during the two and a quarter years he had been in the army — in order to visit his family. Returning down the Mississippi — now, thanks to his genius and skill, open to navigation for its whole length — he visited General Banks at New Orleans, and while there (September 4), was seriously injured by a fall from his horse, so that it was not until November that he was able to take an active part in military affairs. He was then given the command of the Grand Military Division of the Mississippi, comprising the armies of the Cumberland, the Tennessee, and the Ohio, and promptly undertook the expulsion of the rebels from the Chattanooga Valley, and the possession of Lookout Mountain and Mission Ridge, from which points they Avere enabled to impede all railroad and river communication with Louisville and Nashville. The rebel General Bragg, who was besieging Chattanooga, sent word, on the 21st of November, APPENDIX. ^ 17 to General Grant, that " humanity would dictate the removal of all non-combatants " from the city, as he was about to shell it. Grant's plans, however, had all been carefully laid, and were now in course of execution, and the only reply to this rebel braggart was in the shape of quick, hard blows. Burn- side was engaged in luring Longstreet's force of 20,000 men, which had been detached from the rebel army for operations in East Tennessee, to such a distance as would render it im- possible for them to aid General Bragg when the finaJ move- ment should be made on him. Another force cut the rail- roads leading to Knoxville ; General Hooker, by a fine strategic movement, seized Lookout Mountain ; and Thomas, moving out from Chattanooga, had obtained, with some hard fighting, possession of Orchard Knob, and another hill in front of the city, which commanded a part of Mission Ridge and the rebel forts situated thereon. On the 25th, Grant ordered Sherman to demonstrate strongly and persistently against Fort Buckner, at the northern extremity of Mission Ridge, with a view of drawing thither the greater part of the rebel troops in Forts Breckinridge and Bragg, which would thus fall an easier prey to a strong force sent to attack them in the rear. It is need- less to write the record of that battle ; sufficient to say, that the genius of Grant and his generals, and the wonderful hero- ism of their men, overcame all obstacles, cai'ried the rebel posi- tions, and drove Bragg's routed army into the Valley of the Chickamauga, pursuing them beyond Red Clay Station, on the Dalton and Cleveland Railroad, which line of communication was also most effectually destroyed. Then Sherman, aS directed by General Grant, reinforced Burnside, and raised the siege of Knoxville (December 4), forcing Longstreet to retreat to Virginia, closely pursued by the Union cavalry. Four days later. Grant received from President Lincoln the following despatch : — " Washington, December 8, 1863. ' " Major- General Grant, — Understanding that your 18 APPENDIX. lodgment at Chattanooga and Knoxville is now secure, I wish to tender jou, and all under your command, my more than thanks, my profoundest gratitude, for the skill, courage, and perseverance with which you and they, over so great difficul- ties, have effected that important object. God bless you all ! "A. LINCOLN." In addition to this. Congress, by joint resolution of December 17, 1863, tendered to General Grant the national thanks, and provided for the preparation and presentation to him of a gold medal, with suitable emblems, devices, and inscriptions. Reso- lutions of thanks were also passed by the legislatures of most of the loyal States ; and the General became the recipient of numerous, costly, and appropriate gifts from various public bodies and private individuals. General Grant, meanwhile, devoted himself assiduously to the repair and strengthening of his army bases and lines of communication, the resting, equip- ment, and recruiting of his brave soldiers, and the preparation of the details connected with the coming campaign. He also set on foot an expedition, under command of General Sherman, which should leave Vicksburg, and at Meridian, Miss., should be joined by a large cavalry force under General W. S. Smith, the two then to traverse at will the central portions of Missis- sippi and Alabama. This expedition, carefully planned, and admirably carried out by Sherman, was shorn of its full measure of success by the failure of the cavalry force to cooperate with him at Meridian, yet it greatly crippled the rebels, and seriously interfered with their movements. Congress having now revived the grade of Lieutenant- General^ which had been bestowed as an actual rank in time of war only on General Washington (although given to General Scott, by brevet), the honor was conferred by the President, with the approval of the Senate, upon General Grant, on the 9th of March, 1864 (the commission bearing date of March 2), and General Sherman succeeded to the command of the Military Division of the Mississippi, while McPHerson took APPENDIX. 19 Sherman's place with the army of the Tennessee, and General Halleck, hitherto General-in-chief, was made Chief of Staff at Washino;ton. The new Lieutenant-General, who had in January, 1864, visited and carefully inspected the MiHtary Division of the Mississippi, now spent a few weeks in a similar examination of the other western departments, and in arranging with General Sherman the details of the coming spring and sum- mer campaign. Having clone this, and made such arrange- ments as should insure the simultaneous and cooperative movements of the Union armies in the West and East, so as to pi'event the reinforcement of one rebel army by the other, as had frequently been the case during the previous cam- paigns, he assumed the command in person of the Eastern ar- mies designed to assail Richmond. The forces with which he proposed to reduce the Confederate capital consisted of the army of the Potomac, under General Meade, and numbering nearly 130,000 men, besides Sheridan's splendid cavalry corps, and a reserve of nearly 40,000 men, of which one third were colored troops ; the army of the James, under Major-General Butler, composed partly of the former army of Eastern Vir- ginia and North Carolina, and partly of Gilmore's fine corps of colored troops ; and to these were soon after added the army of the Shenandoah, composed of the army of Western Vir- ginia, and a large cavalry force, all under command of General Sigel. The great rebel army, under General R. E. Lee, lay south of the Rapidan, with its left near Gordonsville, and its right near Chancellorsville. Opposite to this, and north of the Rapidan, was the army of the Potomac, extending from Brand}:' Station to Robertson's River, with its head-quarters at Culpepper Court-house. Confronting the rebel hosts, as it had done for months previous, it awaited the signal to strike the first blow in the final struggle. To the army of the James was assigned the duty of seizing, by a neat stratagem, the position of Bermuda Hundred, located on the right or south 20 APPENDIX. side of the James, midway between Richmond and Peters- burg ; and the interposition, if possible, of a sufficient force to cut the communications between those two cities, and insure the capture of the latter. The army of the Shenandoah was expected, by a movement on Staunton, Lynchburg, and Waynesboro', to cripple Lee, by cutting off his supplies from the west, and also to protect Maryland and Pennsylvania from any rebel movement through the Shenandoah Valley. When all was ready, the army of the Potomac made its first move on the morning of the 4th of May, 1864, crossed the Rapidan, with a view to flank Lee's riglit, then intrenched at Mine Run. Lee, however, was on his guard, and the Union army, plunging almost immediately on crossing into a large tract of dense and tangled forest near Chancellorsville, called " The Wilderness," found themselves attacked, before they could get into position, by a heavy rebel force under Long- street. The battle was fierce, and lasted into the night, but without any decisive result. At four o'clock on the following morning, the rebels renewed the assault, with very heavy attacking columns, and the battle raged fiercely, until about dark, they succeeded in completely flanking the Union right. Grant, however, skillfully extended his left and centre, and brought his right into a new position, by which maneuver his base was changed to Fredericksburg and the Rappahannock. By this move he flanked Lee in turn, and secured for himself a more open country, in which to use his artillery. Lee fell back, and the Union advance overtook him May 7, strongly posted at Spottsylvania Court-house. Sharp fighting ensued on the 8th, 9th, 10th, and 11th, but with no decisive result. On the night of the 11th, Grant transferred Hancock's corps to the left, and at half-past four o'clock of the following morning, it surprised the enemy's right with a terrible bayonet charge, which was a complete victory, capturing 30 heavy guns, and over 4,000 prisoners, including two generals. Other Union successes in other parts of the field, also called out the APPENDIX. 21 most determined resistance from the rebels, who endeavored, in vain, to recapture the positions they had lost. Lee's lines, on the 14th, were re-formed, and moved further to the right, and from the 12th to the 18th of May both armies rested, and were each largely reinforced. On the 18th, General Hancock charged, and gained two intrenchments on the rebel right ; and Grant, during the three following days, successfully ac- complished another flanking movement to Milford Bridge, via Guiney's Station. Lee, at the same time, took up a new and strong position between the North and South Anna. Some hard fighting which ensued, convinced General Grant that an- other flank movement was the best course to be adopted, and directing the army to recross the North Anna, under cover of an attack by his right wing, he burned the Virginia Central Railroad Bridge, rapidly crossed the Pamunkey, and on the 31st of May was within fifteen miles of Richmond. Here Lee was again ready to meet him, and much desultory fighting en- sued, but no general engagement. On June 1, the 6th Corps approached Cold Harbor, and being joined by a force from the army of the James, fought a stubborn battle on the 3d, which gave them the full possession of that place. A subsequent attack the same day, upon the rebel works, convinced Grant that a direct attack would involve too great a loss of life, and between the 12th and 15th June, he boldly recrossed the James in the face of the enemy, although without his knowl- edge, and prepared to attack Richmond from that side. General Butler, meanwhile, had seized and occupied Bermuda Hundred ; cut the railroad below Petersburg ; made a bold, but unsuccessful dash upon the city ; had besieged Fort Dar- ling, but was unable to hold his position ; had repulsed several rebel attacks upon his own lines, and was now awaiting sup- port from the approaching army of the Potomac. Sigel had not been very fortunate in effecting his share of the pro- gramme, — having been roughly handled by the rebels in the Shenandoah Valley : he was relieved in command by General Hunter, who at first defeated the rebels handsomely near 22 APPENDIX. Staunton ; but was, in turn, obliged to retreat by Early, and suffered terribly in a forced march into Western Virginia. During the time occupied in these changes, Sheridan had " raided " completely around Lee's lines, penetrating within the first line of Lee's communications, destroying railroads and depots of supplies, capturing rebels, and releasing many Union prisoners. The rebel General Early, having rid him- self of Sigel and Hunter, passed down the Valley of the She- nandoah, crossed into Maryland, occupied Hagerstown and Frederick, plundered and foraged, fought the militia, whom he encountered, and threatened Baltimore and Washington, approaching to within two miles of the latter city. Find- ing, however, most unexpectedly, that veteran troops from New Orleans and the army of the Potomac had arrived, and were now garrisoned there, and that General Couch was ap- proaching his rear from Pennsylvania, he decamped again into Virginia, well laden with plunder. Grant, upon reaching the south side of the James, ordered an attack upon Petersburg, which failed of success in conse- quence of the want of proper cooperation on the part of the cavalry. A series of attacks upon the rebel works ensued, and the city was fairly invested by the 22d of June, except on its northern and western side. On that day, also, the Union troops, by dint of hard fighting, secured possession of the South Side (Petersburg and Danville) Railroad, while Wilson's and Kautz's cavalry attacked and destroyed a considerable section of the Weldon Railroad, and a large amount of stores ; but were surrounded by a large rebel force before they could regain the Union lines, and lost seven or eight hundred men. An interval of compai^ative quiet succeeded these movements, during which an extensive mine was run under one of the enemy's forts, and in order to divert the attention of General Lee's force, at the time for its explosion General Grant ordered a feint to be made north of the James, against their left. This attack, known as the action of Strawberry Plains, was entirely successful ; the rebel left was turned, and four heavy guns were APPENDIX. 23 captured. On the 30th of July, the mine, containing eight tons of powder, was exploded, and under cover of a terrific cannonade along the whole length of the Union lines, an assault was made upon Petersburg. Fatal delays and misun- derstandings, at the critical moment, gave the enemy time to recover somewhat from the surprise of the explosions, and their courageous defense foiled the Union attack, which re- sulted disastrously, especially to the colored troops engaged in it. On the 12th of August, the 2d Corps fought the battle of Deep Bottom, north of the James, with a loss to the rebels of their position, 500 prisoners, 6 cannon and 2 mortars. On the 18th, the Weldon Railroad, at Reams' Station, was sur- prised, and occupied by the 5th Corps, which, in turn, was heavily attacked on the 19th by the rebel troops, and fell back ; but being reinforced by the 9th Corps, succeeded in partly retrieving their jiosition, but with a loss of nearly 4,000 men. For five weeks following, although a little advance had gradually been gained by the Union forces, no battle of impor- tance ensued. On the night of September 28, General Ord crossed to the north side of the James, and on the following morning carried the rebel intrenchments at Chaffin's Farms, without serious loss, capturing 15 pieces of artillery and some 300 prisoners. Simultaneously, General Birney carried the intrenchments on the Newmarket road, and the Union forces, having occupied Fort Harrison, advanced to Laurel Hill. The Confederates next made a desperate attempt to retake Fort Harrison, on the 30th, but were repulsed. On the 1st of October, the Union cavalry reconnoitred to within two miles of the Confederate capital ; and on the 7th, the army of the James repulsed a sharp attempt of the rebels to turn its right flank, with a severe loss to the assailants. On the 29th, a re- conn oissance in force was made against the rebel position at Hatcher's Run, which resulted in a severe battle, with great loss to the Union troops ; who, however, held the position until withdrawn by General Grant. The inefficiency of com- 24 APPENDIX. manders, which up to this time had existed in the Shenan- doah Valley and Northern Virginia and Maryland, led in August, 1864, to the oi'ganization of a new and larger depart- ment, known as the Department of the Shenandoah, to the command of which, by General Grant's desire. General Philip H. Sheridan was assigned. The new connnander soon justified the confidence of his chief; on the 19th of September, he de- feated and routed Early's army at Opequan Creek, taking over 2000 prisoners, and a large number of guns ; on the 22d, he routed them again at Fisher's Hill, and pursued them to Staunton ; and on the 9th of October, he repulsed General Rosser again at Fisher's Hill, thrashing him soundly. On the 19th of the same month, while Sheridan was absent at Wash- ington, his army was attacked by Early, defeated and driven back three miles, with the loss of twenty-four cannon ; but Sheridan, returning to the front met his routed men, rallied them, and swept back with them over the field, whipping the rebels, sending them, " man and horse," " whirling through the Valley," and capturing fifty-two pieces of artillery, in- cluding all those which his men had lost in the morning. Sherman, also, had been " cutting a wide swath " in the ene- my's country. A campaign of remarkable energy and hard fight- ing had given him the possession of Atlanta, Georgia, on the 2d of September ; then leaving General Thomas to watch and manage the rebel Hood in Alabama, he had cut loose from his base at Atlanta and marched through the heart of rebeldom, 300 miles, to Savannah, which surrendered to him on the 22d of De- cember. Hood, meanwhile, led on by Thomas' maneuvers of retreat, and by his own rashness, fell into the trap prepared for him and which " sprung" upon him at Franklin, on the 30th of November, in a battle which cost him the loss of eighteen gen- erals and nearly 7,000 troops. Still persisting in an attempt to invest Nashville, he was attacked by General Thomas, on the 15th of December, routed and driven in confusion to the Ten- nessee River and out of the State. During the same month, an expedition planned by General Grant, consisting of two di- APPENDIX. 25 visions under General Butler, and a naval force under Rear Admiral Porter, set sail (December 15) against Fort Fisher, N. C. This was unsuccessful, and was speedily followed by a second expedition, in which the command of the land forces was given to General Terry. This proved a grand success, capturing Fort Fisher, (January 15,) and effectually closing Wilmington harbor, which had long been one of the chief channels of foreign supplies to the Confederacy. On the 6th of February, a movement upon Hatcher's Run, ordered by General Grant for the purpose of gaining position nearer to the Weldon Railroad, resulted in a desperate struggle, in which (on the second day) the Union lines were broken, but the next day the lost ground was regained and held, and finally the lines were permanently advanced four miles in ad- vance of the original position. On the 25th of March, 1865, the rebels suddenly massed a heavy force upon Fort Stead- man, near Petersburg, which they captured, but were almost immediately repulsed, and a portion of their own lines held by the 6th and 2d Corps. Four days later (20th) General Grant ordered an advance in order to occupy the Southside Railroad, ■which was now Lee's only line of supplies. Sending Sheridan, who with his cavalry had just cut the rebel lines of com- munication north of Richmond, to threaten the railroad near Burkesville Junction, in order to attract Lee's attention in that direction, he moved the 2d and 5th Corps across Hatcher's Run (by the Vaughan and Halifax roads) to endeavor to seize the Boydton plank-road. On the first day, all went well ; the cav- alry reached Dinvviddie ; the 5th Corps had a sharp but suc- cessful fight for the possession of the Quaker road, and the 2d Corps encountered but little opposition. By the 30th of March, the 5th and 2d Corps held the White Oak road and the Boydton plank-road ; but the next day, the 5th, in attempt- ing to reach Five Forks, on the White Oak road, found the enemy strongly intrenched, and was driven back upon the 2d Corps. Rallying, and with the help of a division of the 2d Corps, they regained their previous position by nightfall, though 26 , APPENDIX. only by very hard fighting. Meanwhile Sheridan's cavalry .had been fiercely attacked by another rebel division, but the gallant general dismounted his men, placed them behind tem- porary breastworks, and repulsed the enemy until nightfall — both sides resting on their arms during the night, within a short distance of each other. Sheridan expected the reinforce- ment of Warren's 5th Corps, which Grant had notified him would report to him that night, and he dispatched a note to Warren at 3 a. m., urging his speedy approach, on the enemy's rear, while he would attack them in front. Warren, however, did not reply till morning, and did not succeed in reaching Dinwiddie ; and Sheridan, promptly at the time appointed, attacked the foe with his own troops, driving them west of Chamberlain's Creek. Meeting Warren, about seven or eight o'clock, four or five miles north of Dinwiddie, he di- rected him to press on the enemy when he should receive orders, and himself invested Five Forks, on two sides, with his cavalry. A little after noon he ordered Warren to attack on the east side, but Warren's movements seemed to him so reluctant and indiff'erent that, although the attack proved a perfect success, Sheridan relieved the general from his command, which was given to General GriflSn. On the fol- lowing day the enemy were pushed still farther to the river road on the banks of the Appomattox. A fierce bombardment continued along the Union lines surrounding Petersburg, and on the 2d of April, the 6th, 9th, and the Provisional Corps, after a short but terrible struggle, seized and tore up the long coveted Southside Railroad, cap- turing many prisoners and guns. Richmond and Petersburg, being thus rendered untenable, were evacuated during the same night, and occupied by Union troops on the morning of April 3, 1865. Pausing not for a moment, however, General Grant pressed on in the hopes of capturing the defeated rebel general and his army. At Deep Creek, Paine's Cross-roads, Deatonsville, Farmville, High Bridge over the Appomattox, and Appomattox Station, actions of greater or less severity were APPENDIX. 27 fought with the rebel army, which now, thoroughly demoral- ized, was strewing the road with deserted ai'tillery, wagons, and supplies, which were passed unnoticed and untouched by the Union troops in the heat of their unremitting and exultant pursuit. At length, on the 7th, General Grant at Farniville, sent a note to Lee, requesting the surrender of tlie Confed- erate Army of Northern Virginia. Pressing on, still in relent- less pursuit, he was met at Appomattox Station, on the morn- ing of the 9th, by a note from General Lee asking for an inter- view with a view to the surrender of his command. The same afternoon, at Appomattox Court-house, he received the sur- render of the rebel chieftain, on terms which were liberal in the extreme. The war was now virtually ended, and Grant, passing through Richmond, went to Washington, and on the 14th took the cars for a visit to his family, then in New Jer- sey, but was overtaken en route by the terrible news of the assassination of President Lincoln, and the tragic events caused by a plot, of which it seems that he had been one of the marked victims. Meanwhile, Sherman sweeping through the Carolinas, had flanked and captured Charleston, S. C, as well as Columbia, Cheraw, Fayetteville, and with the aid of Generals Terry and Schofield, had taken Goldsboro', Smithfield, and Raleigh, and held Johnston's rebel army "pinned to the wall." Stoneman's cavalry from Thomas' army, had also thoroughly broken the Virginia and East Tennessee Railroad and the North Carolina road above Salisbury, had released the Union prisoners confined there, captured a large amount of stores, and effectually cut off Johnston's retreat. From south, west. and southwest came cheering news of victories won, all tend- ing to the completion of the great plan by which the power of treason was to be destroved. At this juncture, the Cabinet at Washington received from General Sherman a memorandum of a treaty between himself and General Johnston, for the surrender of all the rebel armies in the field and the complete cessation of hostilities. In the 28 APPENDIX. then excited state of public feeling, the terms accorded by Gen- eral Sherman to the rebel leaders, were deemed too liberal ; and at the request of the Government, General Grant proceeded incognito to Raleigh, conferred with Sherman, and ordered the imiTiediate I'esumption of hostilities. This brought John- ston to terms, and, by General Grant's orders, General Sher- man receiv^ed his surrender, on the 26th of April, on the same terms as those accorded to General Lee. The surrender of Dick Taylor to General Canby on the 4th of May, 1865, and shortly after, of Kirby Smith's army west of the Missis- sippi, completed the record of the War of the Rebellion. General Grant returned to Washington, where on the 28th, he issued an order reducing the expenses of the Military De- partment, and attended the grand review of his victorious legions at Washington, preparatory to their disbanding and return to their homes. Visiting his family at Burlington, N. J., on the 2d of May, he was, on the 3d, welcomed by the citizens of Philadelphia, who presented him with a costly and elegantly furnished house in that city. A portion of the summer of 1865 was spent by him in flying trips to the East and West and Ganadas ; and his passage through the country was a series of brilliant receptions, orations, and public and private demonstrations of respect, which proved the people not unmindful of the distinguished services he had rendered to the Republic. At Galena, the place of his residence when he entered the service, the citizens met him with festive demonstrations of affection and respect, and presented him with an elegant and well-furnished house (costing $16,000), on a most beautiful elevation near the city, which he and his family entered amidst the cheers of the excited crowd, and the ringing of all the church-bells in the place. On the 10th of November, he was complimented by the City of New York, with a magnificent banquet and reception at the Fifth Ave- nue Hotel, rarely equalled even in that demonstrative metrop- olis, and presented by the merchants and capitalists of the city with one hundred thousand dollars, as a token of their APPEKDIX. 29 gratitude for his patriotic and successful labors in restoring union and ])eace to the country. The Thirty-Ninth Congress at its first session, resolved to create the rank of General of the army, which had hitherto been considered the special perquisite and prerogative of the President, and Lieutenant General Grant was promoted to this honor, which it was resolved by Congress, when again vacant, should not be filled. His commission as General bears date July 25, 1866, and on the same day, Major-General Sherman was promoted to the vacant Lieutenant General- ship. General Grant, by special order of President Johnson, ac- companied him in his tour in the summer of 1866, to Chi- cago and St. Louis ; but during the whole journey he neither by woixl or look manifested, as he doubtless did not feel, any sympathy with Mr. Johnson's " policy " of reconstruction. In the correspondence relative to the New Orleans massacre, he manifested his abhorrence of the act, though he knew that it had received the quasi-sanction of the President. With his habitual reticence, he refrained from any interference with, or expression of opinion upon, political questions ; and though urged as a candidate for the Presidency at first by conserva- tive Republicans and sonje Democrats, he manifested no in- terest in the movement, and the most skillful pumping failed to elicit from him any expression of opinion which the politicians could make available. His duties as General of the army were performed quietly, promptly, and satisfactorily, and the hospitalities of his house in Washington were freely tendered to men of all parties and of none. The time came, however, when this reticence could no longer be maintained. The President, who had long been cherishing hostility toward the Secretary of War, Hon. Edwin M. Stanton, early in August, 1867, requested him to resign ; Mr. Stanton refused to do so, on the plea that he was compelled to retain office from his view of what were the exigencies of the public service, and President Johnson imme- 80 APPENDIX. diately suspended him from office, and appointed General Grant Secretary, ad interim^ on the 12th of August, 1867. Mr. Stanton surrendered the office to General Grant under protest, though it was well understood, without any hostile feeling toward him personally. General Grant managed the affairs of the Department wisely and well, reducing expenses, and infusing a somewhat greater zeal and activity into the pub- lic service. On the reassembling of Congress in November, 1867, a demand was made by the Senate upon the President for an account of the circumstances attending the suspension of Secretary Stanton, and having received them, after a very full discussion, they decided them insufficient, and that Secre- tary Stanton must be reinstated. On the passage of this resolution by the Senate, General Grant promptly relinquished his position to Mr. Stanton, having notified the President that he should do so. The President, greatly enraged at having his purpose foiled, of putting a man into the place who would sympathize with him, commenced an angry correspondence with the General, and attempted to fasten upon hini the charges of treachery and want of veracity, claiming that he had promised to give him due notice of his intention to surren- der the office, that he might put some one else in his place, or to hold the position himself when Stanton should demand it. General Grant replied with a frank and soldier-like statement of the facts, to which the President rejoined somewhat abu- sively, and adduced letters from members of his Cabinet for the purpose of sustaining his statements. Some of these let- ters failed most signally to accomplish the object for which they were intended, while others were evidently a mere com- pliance with the President's request that they should sustain his statements. General Grant replied again, more briefly than before, but clearing himself handsomely from the charge of insubordination, which the President had sought to fix upon him. There was probably some misunderstanding of General Grant's language on the part of the President in the first place, as the General, before examining the subject, APPENDIX. 31 had expressed the opinion to the President that Secretary Stanton would have to apply to the courts to be reinstated, but had subsequently, on careful examination, changed his opinion, and so informed the President. As the result of his refusing to surrender the office would have been a fine of ten thousand dollars and five years' imprisonment, there is no probability that he made the promise to retain the position, notwithstanding the President's very liberal but totally im- practicable offer, to take the punishment upon himself. With the views he entertained, when he discovered the President's purpose of putting a man into the office who would carry out his views of reconstruction, it is equally incredible that he should have m'omised to give the President the opportunity of accomplishing his purpose and thwarting the congressional plan of reconstruction, the success of which he had much at heart. Aside from this, the issue in a question of veracity between Ulysses S. Grant and Andrew Johnson could not fail to be decided in favor of the former, whose sturdy truth- fulness has been as conspicuous as Johnson's shuffling self- contradiction, and general unveracity. General Grant is now by common consent the candidate of the Republican party for the Presidency, and seems to have the prospect of an election almost by acclamation. In person he is short, about five feet eight (the height if we recollect aright of the " Little Corporal," and like him some- what inclined to stoutness). He has a clear, well-balanced brain, with no faculty in excess and none deficient. He is not a genius, but a man of fair talents, M'ith a thorough insight into character, and a remarkable faculty of always putting " the right man in the right place." Despite the reports of his being addicted to intoxication, we have the highest authority for say- ing, that he is not only not a drunkard, but a man of remark- able temperance, abstaining from the use even of wine, when most men would consider themselves bound in courtesy to drink it. He does smoke excessively, being seldom seen with- out a cigar In his mouth, but his smoking is quiet and not 82 APPENDIX. spiteful, like that of General Sherman. He is a skillful billiard- player, and retains his old fondness for horses. He is one of the best equestrians in the country, and, like Phil. Sheridan, appears to extraordinary advantage in the saddle. For the rest, he is not ambitious ; is reticent in the extreme on all political questions, but evidently not from ignorance of them. He possesses great vitality, and a pertinacity and per- severance in completing what he undertakes, which on the right side (and he will be generally found there) is invaluable. His seven years of command have been a valuable discipline to him, and his views have been widened and deepened thereby. He is thoroughly honest, and will be as careful of the people's money as of his own; yet his views of economy are not of the scrimping, miserly sort. He only desires that money shall be rightly, judiciously, and prudently expended, and not squandered for the benefit of office-holders. While we do not regard him as the greatest of men, we believe if his life is spared he will make one of the best of Presidents. GEN. GRANT'S LETTER OF ACCEPTANCE. 7o Gen. Joseph R. Hawley, President National Union Republican Convention : In formally accepting the nomination of the National Union Republican Con- vention of the 21st of May inst. it seems proper that some statement of views be- yond the mere acceptance of the nomination should be expressed. The proceed- ings of the Convention were marked with wisdom, moderation, and patriotism, and I believe express the feelings of the great mass of those who sustained the country through its recent trials. I endorse the resolutions. If elected to the olhce of President of the United States, it will be my endeavor to administer all t'le laws in good faith, with economy, and with the view of giving peace, quiet, and protection everywhere. In times like the present it is impossible, or at least eminently improper, to lay down a policy to be adhered to, right or wrong, through an administration of four years. New political issues, not foreseen, are constantly arising ; the views of the public on old ones are constantly changing, and a purely administrative officer should always be left free to execu'.e the will of the people. I always have respected that will, and always shall. Peace and universal prosperity — ^its sequence — with economy of administration will lighten the burden of taxation, while it constantly reduces i'\e National debt. Let us have peace. With great respect, your obedient servant, U. S. GRANT. SCHUYLER COLFAX. 33 HON. SCHUYLER COLFAX. The universal popularity of Mr. Colfax, and the thorough confidence felt by all classes in his integrity, intellectual abil- ity and capacity to fill the highest position in the gift of the nation, should he be called to it, are among the most remark- able circumstances of his life-history. He is not a military hero. His fame, wide-spread as it is, was not won on the tented field, nor in the fierce strife and din of battle. His triumphs have been of a more peaceful character. Though of a good and honorable lineage, he owes nothing to the accident of birth or hereditary fortune, and though a man ot cultivated intellect and extensive general knowledge, he has not the eclat of honors won in college or university to make him conspicuous. Still less is his fame dependent on exalted political station, long and ably held. He has been indeed a representative of the people in Congress, and for five years past Speaker of the House of Representatives, and his abilities have been fairly and fully proved in both capacities, but other men have pre- sided over the House of Representatives, and been for years members of that body, or of the Senate, and yet no one has thought of them for the Vice-Presidency, or the Presidency. Whence then comes this universal esteem in which this man is held ; this almost brotherly attachment which leads all who know him personally, and tens of thousands who do not, to speak of him, not as Mr. Colfax, but as Schuyler Col- fax, just as men used to say Abraham, or "Abe" Lincoln, and not coldly, Mr. Lincoln ? We propose to answer this question by a brief sketch of his life, which will we tliink, give us tlie best key to this personal mao-netism which draws all men to him. 34 SCHUYLER COLFAX. In 1822, there lived in North Moore Street, then a quiet, home- like street running westward from West Broadway, New York, a young couple by the name of Colfax. The husband, named like his illustrious son, Schuyler Colfax, was a bank clerk. The child-wife, for she was then but little more than fifteen years of age, looked up confidingly and tenderly to the brave, noble-hearted young man on whom she had bestowed her heart's affections, and both anticipated a long and joyous future. But ere the new year of 1823 dawned, that young husband was taken from life, and the girl-wife was a widow. In tlie early spring, (on the 23d of March, 1823), a son, destined to cheer and comfort her in her subsequent earthly pilgrimage was given her, and though poor and widowed, the young mother felt that she was not alone. The boy grew up, a slender, delicate, bright, loving boy, flaxen-haired, and seemingly too frail to struggle with the rough world with which he was brought in contact ; but though poverty pressed hard upon mother and child, they were all in all to each other. The boy attended the school of the Public School Society, for in those days. Ward Schools were undreamed of, till he had reached his tenth year, and made good proficiency, being always, as one of his schoolmates testifies, at the head of his class. When he was ten years old his mother married again, and this time a merchant by the name of Matthews, who was. very fond of Schuyler, and in whose store he became thus early, a younger clerk. In 1836, the fever for emigra- tion, then so prevalent, seized the Matthews family, and they removed to what is now the garden of the west, the valley of the St. Joseph's river, in Indiana. It was then, much of it, an unbroken wilderness, though South Bend and two or three other villages were beginning to attract emigrants. In one of these villages. New Carlisle, the family made their new home, and Mr. Matthews engaged in trade. Schuyler Colfax was for four years more his clerk. In 1840, Mr. Matthews was chosen Auditor of St. Joseph's County, and for conve- nience in his official duties, removed to South Bend, the SCHUYLER COLFAX. ,35 county seat, which has ever since been the home of the family. Mr. Matthews made his step-son deputy auditor, and the boy, who had diligently improved every leisure moment in study, now a tall, flaxen-haired youth, soon became so thoroughly familiar with the law in all questions relating to the auditor's duties, that he was ere long the standard authority for the region about, on these subjects. But his reading of law at this time was not confined to that required for exercising an auditor's duties ; he found time to make himself master of its great principles, rather however for the sake of the general culture it would afford him, than with the view of adopting it as a profession. During this period too he was practicing himself in that facility for putting his thoughts on paper which was afterwards of so much advantage to him. A gen- tleman, well known in the philanthropic circles of New York and Brooklyn, who had been a schoolmate of Mr. Colfax in that Crosby Street School, which was the last one he attended in New York city, kept up a correspondence with him during these years of his service as deputy auditor, and says : " Schuyler's letters in those days were very interesting ; they were filled with details concerning his studies, knotty questions which he wanted me to aid him in clearing up, and brilliant thoughts, often expressed with the same felicity \rhich now marks his writings," To such a youth, writing for the newspapers was almost a necessity. There had been a paper in South Bend edited for some years by John D. Defrees, since then a Member of Con- gress and Government printer. To its columns Schuyler con- tributed often, and he was but little more than twenty-one years of age, when he became editor and proprietor of the St. Joseph'' s Valley Register, his friend Defrees having removed to Indianapolis to take charge of the State Journal. Previous to this, however, he and Mr. Defrees, with some other enter- prising young men of South Bend, had organized a debating society, and by a happy thought had modeled it after the House of Representatives, whose rules they adopted for their 36 SCHUYLER COLFAX. governance. Mr. Defrecs was for the time the "Speaker" of this Village House of Representatives, and Colfax, yet a youth under age, was " the gentleman from Newton." Parliament- ary rules were insisted upon, and the pages of Jefferson's and Cushing's Manuals were carefully and thoroughly conned, till " the gentleman from Newton " became as conversant with the rules and usage of " the House," as any presiding officer in our State legislatures. This, and the habit of off haM debate, were of great advantage to him in after years, and contrib- uted much to make him, as he is acknowledged to be, by all parties, the best presiding officer the House of Representa- tives has had for many years. He entered upon the work of editing and managing the >S'^. Joseph's Valley Register with but two hundred and fifty subscribers. It was a small sheet, and for some years, it required all his exertions, often protracted far into the night, to make it pay. He had not been bred a printer, but in these years he learned enough of the art to be able to render material service in setting up the paper. His friend Defrees, who knew his abilities, secured his services for two successive sessions of the legislature as Senate Reporter for the State Journal, and this helped him to relieve himself of the burden of debt, which for a time threatened to crush him. From the first, he made the Register a good paper. He was a Whig and his sympathies were with his party, and he ably defended its principles ; but though often attacked per- sonally and with scurrilous abuse by the Democratic papers of that section, he never allowed a discourteous or abusive word in his paper. He was too thoroughly a gentleman in word and thought and nature to stoop to scurrility, and his opponents soon found that they injured themselves in their efforts to injure him. In South Bend every body liked him and believed in him ; the magnetism of his genial face, his kindly nature, and his cordial hand-grasp won all hearts. He was, the villagers said, a remarkable man, especially for a newspaper editor ; he paid SCHUYLER COLFAX. 37 his debts; he drank no whiskey; he was prudent and econom- ical • he never uttered an oath; and though it was only by careful management that he avoided debt, he always seemed to have something to give to the poor. He was, during this period, steadily gaining reputation as a political writer and speaker. In 1848, he was chosen as a deleo-ate to the convention which nominated General laylor for the Presidency, and on taking his seat in the convention was elected its principal secretary. In 1850, he represented St Joseph's County in the convention which formed the present constitution of Indiana. In that convention he opposed with all his ability, the adoption of the clause preventing tree colored men from settling in the State. The next year he was nominated by his district for Congress, and had for a competitor Dr. Graliam N. Fitch, an old, wily and expe- rienced Democratic politician, subsequently the colleague of Jesse D. Bright, as Senator, and in a district which lor years had been Democratic by some thousands majority. Dr. l^itcli used his opDOsition to the black laws, merciless y, against him, but defeated him by only two hundred and thirty-eight votes. T ,„,.„ In 1852 Mr. Colfax was again a delegate to and secretaiy of the National Convention which nominated General Scott for the Presidency. In the spring of 1853, he was urged to accept another nomination for Congress, but dechned and Dr. Fitch was re-elected by a majority of more than a thou- sand votes. , It was the era of the Kansas-Nebraska swindle, and though the district which he represented was strongly opposed to this measure, and his constituents used all their influence to dis- suade him from supporting it, yet Dr. Fitch was so mole- eyed, and so wedded to slavery, that he advocated and voted for it steadily This was too much for the good people of St. Joseph coun- ty ; a majority of them had voted the Democratic ticket reg- ularly, but they were determined to do so no longer, ihe 38 SCHUYLER COLFAX. young editor of the St. Joseph's Valley Register was urged to accept the nomination for Congress, and was elected in 1854, a representative in the XXXIVth Congress, by seventeen hundred and sixty-six majority. This result was due in part to the great reaction, but it was aided by the efforts of Mr. Colfax, who took the stump, and discussed with his competitor, through the district, the political questions of the canvass with such ability and spirit as to carry all hearts with him. He entered Congress at the time of the protracted struggle in regard to the election of a Speaker, which terminated in the choice of Nathaniel P. Banks, and he gallantly plunged into the contest. His maiden speech took the whole House by surprise. It not only demonstrated that he was even then one of the ablest debaters in the House, but its eloquence, its logical power, and its graphic portrayal of the real condi- tion of Kansas, and of the iniquity of the Border-Ruffian movement, made it the most effective campaign document of the season, and of the Presidential conflict of that year. Over five hundred thousand copies of that speech were printed and circulated by the National Committee — a compliment we believe never before paid to any member of Congress, cer- tainly not to the maiden speech of one of the youngest mem- bers of the House. Into the Presidential contest of 1856, the first of the Re- publican party, Mr. Colfax entered with all his zeal and en- thusiasm. The banner of Fremont and Dayton was borne aloft in his paper, and his eloquent appeals in its behalf rang through all the States of the West. Victory was perhaps hardly to be expected for a new party at its first trial, but never was a fight more gallantly conducted. The people of northern Indiana knew and honored the tal- ents and worth of their Representative. By that personal magnetism which he possesses, in larger measure than most men, he had drawn all hearts to him, and they have kept him in Congress from 1855 to the present time, and always by large majorities. In 1860 he received thirty-four hundred SCHUYLER COLFAX. 39 more votes than his competitor, and in 1866 nearly twenty- two hundred more. His great power as a debater, his strong, clear common sense, quick intuition, and devotion to the best interests of his country, made him a very valuable member of the House of Representatives, and he was early placed on important committees. As chairman of the Committee on Post Offices and Post Roads, he was very efficient in promoting mail facil- ities with our new territories and the Paciffc states, and on other important committees he accomplished a vast amount of labor. He was deeply interested, and is still, in the pros- perity of the Pacific Railroad, regarding it as a most import- ant measure not only for the prosperity of the nation, Init as a means of bringing together the distant sections of our Great Republic. Into the Presidential Campaign of 1860, Mr. Colfax plung- ed with all his energy. Mr. Lincoln had been from the first his favorite as a candidate, and he had foreshadowed his nomination, months before it was made, in his paper. There were many points of resemblance in the character of the two men, and Colfax's heart warmed toward him as toward a brother. Hardly any man in the United States did so much to secure the election of Mr. Lincoln as this western ed- itor, and this from pure love, and not from any hope or desire of reward. Mr. Colfax could have had, if he had sought it, a place in Mr. Lincoln's cabinet, as he always had, (a very warm one,) in his heart; but he preferred to remain in Con- gress, and during the 'whole period of the war, he was a bosom friend and a-trusted adviser of the President. In his sound sense, his practical view of matters, and his freedom from hobbies, Mr. Lincoln could confide, with the assurance that his counsels would never lead him astray. Hopeful, even in the darkest hours, and ready to cheer and encourage the drooping spirits of those whose duller vision could not pierce the cloud-wrack, and see the clear heavens 40 SCHUYLER COLFAX. beyond, his presence and influence were invaluable in the murky and treason-tainted atmosphere of tlie Capitol. On the assembling of the XXXVIIIth Congress in its first session, he was chosen Speaker of the House and has been re-elected to the same position twi(^ since, an honor to which no other Representative except Henry Clay has ever attained. At the close of his present term as Speaker, he will probably take his seat as presiding officer at the other end of the Capitol. It is the testimony of members of all parties, that he is the best presiding officer the House has had since Henry Clay, and in some particulars he excels Mr. Clay. He is always genial and courteous, never betrayed into impatience or vexa- tion, and his marvelous quickness of thought, thorough knowledge of parliamentary usage, and talent for the rapid administration of details, and above all his extraordinary tact, enable him to control the House of Representatives, even in its most boisterous moods, with the skill and grace with which an accomplished pilot would manage the helm of one of our palace steamers on the Hudson. He is never at a loss in deciding a question of order, however delicate or dif- ficult, and the whole array of precedents are at his command. Very seldom indeed are his decisions overruled, and in the rare cases in which they have been, the House have generally found that they and not he, were in the wrong. It has been said that his talents were administrative and executive rather than deliberative. While this is in itself high praise, we are inclined to doubt its entire truth. He does possess great executive ability, and inherits from his mother that faculty of rapid intuition, which has very prop- erly been denominated "mother wit;" but he has also given indications of the possession of high reasoning and delibera- tive faculties, and both his editorials and speeches give evi- dence of fine logical as well as rhetorical power. He possesses, in a remarkable degree, the power of reading character, and when called upon to select men for special SCHUYLER COLFAX. 41 duties he will not make mistakes. While a Radical in his political views he is still cautious, and will adopt sure and safe policies. His mind is well balanced, no undue predomi- nance of any faculty being observable, but all uniting in such proportions as to make a sound, healthy-minded, judicious man ; one who will not be a seer far in advance of his age, nor a conservative lagging in the rear of it, but an able leader, to whose position the whole host of patriots will rally, and whose views will meet with a hearty response from all lovers of their country. He is a courteous man, not proudly or haughtily so, but genial and gentle from the necessities of his nature. The gentleman in his case, as in all others, is not, of necessity, he who is gentle-born, but he who possesses a truly gentle na- ture. Mr. Colfax never forgets, ho remembers rather with peculiar tenacity, the humble circumstances of his early years, and honors with peculiar love those sons of toil, who like himself have by diligent struggle and earnest endeavor wrought their way up to a higher and more extended sphere of action. A very pleasant ilhv?tration of this is contained in a speech which he delivered at a dinner given him by the representatives of the press in December 1866, at which the presiding officer, Samuel Wilkeson, Esq., had alluded to his passing his office at midnight, eighteen years before, while waiting for the change of horses in the stage, and having seen him busily at work. Mr. Colfax replied as follows : — "I have had to listen to-night to a eulogy from your dis- tinguished chairman, of which I can only wish I was worthy. What he has said has called back to my mind, what is often before it, the years of my early manhood — and I see a friend seated at this table (Mr. Defrees) who knows much of it about as well as myself — when, struggling against poverty and adverse fortune sometimes, I sought in the profession to which you have devoted yourselves, to earn an honest liveli- hood for myself and family, and a position, humble, but not 42 SCHUYLER COLFAX. dishonored, among the newspaper men of America. I cannot remember the exact evening to which he alkides, when, eighteen years ago, a stranger then, as I am glad he is not now, he saw me through a window in my office, with the mid- night lamp before me, and heard the commentary on my life from the lips of some too partial friend from among those who from my boyhood have surrounded me with so much kindness and attention. But well do I remember, in the early history of the newspaper that numbered but two hundred and fifty subscribers when I established it, I was often compelled to labor far into the hours of night. And little did I dream, at that time, I was ever to be a member of the American Con- gress ; and far less that I was to be the recipient of the honor whose conferment you commemorate and endorse to-night. I can say of that paper that its columns, from its very first number, will bear testimony to-day that in all the political canvasses in which I was engaged, I never avoided a frank and out-spoken expression of opinion on any question before the American people. And that, as these opinions had always been honestly entertained, I could not have hesitated to frank- ly and manfully avow them. Though the effect of these avow- als was, from the political complexion of the district and the State, to keep me in a minority, the people among whom I live will bear testimony that I was no less faithful to them then than I have been when, in later years, that minority has by the course of events been changed into a majority." In the course of this speech he uttered the following noble thoughts in regard to the vocation of the Editor, a vocation which he continued to honor by his own participation in it, until his assumption of the speaker's chair. "Were these views more prevalent, journalism would be a far greater blessing to the nation and the world than it now is. " Next to the sacred desk, and those who minister in it, there is no profession more responsible than yours. The editor cannot wait, like the politician, to see the set of the tide, but is required, as new necessities arise, not only to avow at SCHUYLER COLFAX. 43 once his sent^nents upon them, but to discuss them intelli- gently and instructively. It is also his duty to guide and protect public opinion in the proper channels, and to lay be- fore the readers of his sheet such matter as shall tend to the elevation of their character. I have sometimes thought that newspapers in their sphere might be compared to that exquisite mechanism of the universe whereby the moisture is lifted from the earth, condensed into clouds, and poured back again in refreshing and fertilizing showers to bless the husbandman and produce the abundant harvests. So, with the representa- tives of the press, they draw from public opinion, condense public opinion, and finally reflect and re-distribute it back again in turn to its elevation and purification." No man ever yet had occasion to complain of want of courtesy, or brusqueness in Mr. Colfax's treatment of him. His kindness of manner comes evidently from the heart, and men leave his presence with the impression that he is at once an able, honest and kind man. Political opponents like him personally, as well as his political friends, and even the bit- terest of copperheads will tell you that " after all, Schuyler Colfax is a good fellow." Personal enemies he has none, and the only condemnation to which he is liable, is that of the woe pronounced on those of whom all men speak well. The breath of slander has never sullied his fair fame. The wife of his youth, after being for a long time an invalid, sank to her final rest several years ago, leaving him childless. At his receptions, which though perhaps not the most brilliant, are certainly the most popular in "Washington, his mother, a still comely matron of but little more than sixty years, and his sister. Miss Matthews, preside. Nothing can exceed in chival- rous gallantry his attentions to his mother, who has been his cherished companion from his childhood. When she enters the gallery of the House, Mr. Colfax at once calls some mem- ber of the House to the speaker's chair, and hastens to her, remaining, if possible, with her during the whole time she continues at the Hall of Representatives. 44 SCHUYLER COLFAX. Eminently social and genial in his manners, Mr. Colfax has never fallen into the vices winch have so sadly marred the character of some of the noblest of our public men. Early in life he signed the pledge of total abstinence from all that could intoxicate, and that pledge he has never broken. At the National Republican. Convention at Chicago in May 1868, at which he was nominated for the Vice-Presidency, the can- vass for him was conducted by his special command without a drop of any intoxicating liquor. At the head-quarters of some of the other candidates, strong drink flowed freely, but he preferred to lose the nomination if necessary, rather than to violate his temperance principles. Mr. Colfax is a religious man, an exemplary member of the Reformed (Dutch) Church, and in all the relations of life, public and private, he has maintained an active and reputable Christian profession. The Sunday-school, the Tract, tlie Mis- sion and the Bible cause have all found in him an earnest and cordial supporter. During the war, both the Sanitary and the Christian Commissions were indebted to him for abundant labors and the exertion of his powerful influence. In the summer of 1866, in company with several friends, Mr. Colfax crossed the continent by the overland route, and received a hearty and cordial welcome in the Pacific States and Territories, and increased his already deep interest in the means of speedy and rapid communication with those portions of the Republic. One of the results of this journey was a lecture entitled "Across the Continent," which he has deliv- ered to many thousands of our people all over the Northern States, and almost always for the benefit of some benevolent enterprise. He has also published another lecture, on "The Education of the Heart," which has been widely circulated. To sum up our estimate of his character, we have only to say further, that the nation believes in him, trusts him, and is willing to confide its interests to him, confident that if either in the speedy or remote future he should be called to the Presidency, he will not disappoint the hopes of those who SCHUYLER COLFAX. 45 should elect him, or prove treacherous to the convictions he had previously avowed. He can not and will not imder any temptation be other than a true, honest, upright, God-fearing, manly man. Have we not, then, answered the inquiry we made at the beginning, why Schuyler Colfax is so popular? SPEAKER COLFAX'S LETTER OF ACCEPTANCE. Hon. J. R. Hawlet, President of the National Union Republican Convention. Dear Sir: The platform adopt' d by the patriotic Convention over which you presided, and the re-olutions which so happily supplement it, so entirely agree with my views as to a just national policy that my thanks are due to the Dele- gates as much for this clear and auspicious declaration of principles as for the nomination with which I have been honored, and which I gratefully accept. "When a great Rebellion, which imperiled the national existence was at last overthrown, the duty of all others, dfcvolving on those intrusted with the respon- sibilities of legislation, evidently was to require that the revolted States should be readmitted to participation in the Government against which they had erred only on such a basis as to increase and fortify, not to weaken or endanger, the strength and power of the nation. Certainly no one ought to have claimed that they should be readmitted under such rule that their organization as States could ever again be used, as at tlie opening of the war, to defy the national au- thority or to destroy the national unity. This principle has been the pole-star of those who have inflexibly insisted on the Congressional policy your Conven- tion so cordially endorsed. Baffled by Executive opposition, and by persistent refusals to accept any plan of reconstniction proffered by Congress, justice and public safety at last combined to teach us that only by an enlargement of suf- frage in those States could the desired end be attained, and that it was even more safe to give the ballot to those who loved the Union than to those who sought ineffectually to destroy it. The assured success of this legislation is being written on the adamant of history, and will be our triumphant vindication. More clearly, too, than ever before, does the nation now recognize that the greatest glory of a republic is that it throws the shield of its protection over the humblest and weakest of its people, and vindicates the rights of the poor and the powerless as faithfully as those of the rich and the powerful. I rejoice, too, in this connection, to find in your platform the frank and fearless avowal that naturalized citizens must be protected abroad at every hazard, as though they were native-born. Our whole people are foreigners, or descendants of foreign- ers; our fathers established by arms their right to be called a nation. It re- uiai;^ for Ua to establish the right to welcome to our shores all who are willing, 46 SCHUYLER COLFAX l^ % by oaths of allegiance, to become American citizens. Perpetual allegiance, as claimed abroad, is only another name for perpetual bondage, and would make all slaves to the soil where first they saw the light. Our National ccmieterics prove how faithfully these oatlis of fidelity to their adopted laud have been seaU ed in the life blood of thousamls unou thousands. Should we not, then, be faith- less to the dead if we did not protect their living brethren in the full enjoyment of that nationality for which, side by side, w ith the native-born, our soldiers of foreign birth laid down their lives. It was fitting, too, that the representatives of a party which had proved so true to national duty in time of war, should speak so clearly in time of peace for the maintenance, untarnished, of the na- tional honor, national credit and good faith as regards its debt, the cost of our national existence. I do not need to extend this reply by further comment on a platform which has elicited such hearty approval throughout the land. The debt of gratitude it acknowledges to the brave men who saved the Union from destruction, the frank approval of ainnesty based on repentance and loyalty, the demand for the most thorough economy and honesty in the Government, the sympathy of the party of liberty with all throughout the world who longed for the liberty we here enjoy, and the recognition of the sublime principles of the Declaration of Independence, are worthy of the organization on whose banners they are to be written in the coming contest. Its past record cannot be blotted out or forgotten. If there had been no Republican party. Slavery would to-day cast its baleful shadow over the republic. If there had been no Republican party free press and free speech would be as unknown from the Potomac to the Rio Grande as ten years ago. If the Republican party could have been stricken from existence when the banner of Rebelhon was unfurled, and when the response of "No Coercion" was heard at the North, we would have had no nation to-day. But for the Republican party daring to risk the odium of tax, and draft laws, our flag could not have been kept flying in the field until the long-hoped for victory came. Without a Republican party the Civd Rights bill — the guarantee of equality under the law to the humble and the defenseless as well as the strong — would not be to-day upon our National Statute book. With such inspiration from the past, and following the example of the founders of the Republic, who called the victorious General of the Revolution to preside over the land his triumphs had saved from its enemies, I cannot 3oubt that our la- bors will be crowned with success ; and it will be a success that shall bring re- stored hope, confidence, prosperity, and progress South as well as North, West as well as East, and above all, the blessings under Providence of National con- cord and peace. Very truly yours, SCHUYLER COLFAX.